diff options
| author | nfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org> | 2025-03-03 05:38:04 -0800 |
|---|---|---|
| committer | nfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org> | 2025-03-03 05:38:04 -0800 |
| commit | 44d0672e9632b71ed3a2c73762528078fc2501da (patch) | |
| tree | 7d1cfa707807cbdb5395eb1f78f4a673a78de36b | |
| parent | 0d50f8faa18d9ada1b02e3b2210acd7fc27081db (diff) | |
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-0.txt | 401 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-0.zip | bin | 147712 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-8.txt | 8261 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-8.zip | bin | 147348 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-h.zip | bin | 2174411 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-h/38845-h.htm (renamed from 38845-h/38845-h.html) | 374 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst.zip | bin | 2153609 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/38845-rst.rst | 10246 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-028.jpg | bin | 121829 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-042.jpg | bin | 126392 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-054.jpg | bin | 100519 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-070.jpg | bin | 113110 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-094.jpg | bin | 125683 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-100.jpg | bin | 117851 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-116.jpg | bin | 118064 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-126.jpg | bin | 118790 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-148.jpg | bin | 114836 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-162.jpg | bin | 116384 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-180.jpg | bin | 119748 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-198.jpg | bin | 113995 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-210.jpg | bin | 130505 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-228.jpg | bin | 126297 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-242.jpg | bin | 97221 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-cover.jpg | bin | 146705 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845-rst/images/img-front.jpg | bin | 100317 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845.txt | 8261 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 38845.zip | bin | 147328 -> 0 bytes |
27 files changed, 4 insertions, 27539 deletions
diff --git a/38845-0.txt b/38845-0.txt index d5ec42f..57dd4fa 100644 --- a/38845-0.txt +++ b/38845-0.txt @@ -1,27 +1,4 @@ - STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER - - - - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost -no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it -under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this -eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license. - - - -Title: Stories of the Scottish Border -Author: Mr and Mrs William Platt -Release Date: July 17, 2013 [EBook #38845] -Language: English -Character set encoding: UTF-8 - - -*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER -*** - - - +*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 38845 *** Produced by Al Haines. @@ -7878,378 +7855,4 @@ Science through the Ages _Other volumes in active preparation_ - - - - - -*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER -*** - - - - -A Word from Project Gutenberg - - -We will update this book if we find any errors. - -This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/38845 - -Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one -owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and -you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission -and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the -General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and -distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the Project -Gutenberg™ concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered -trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you -receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of -this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this -eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, -reports, performances and research. They may be modified and printed and -given away – you may do practically _anything_ with public domain -eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, especially -commercial redistribution. - - - -The Full Project Gutenberg License - - -_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._ - -To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or -any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project -Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project -Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at -http://www.gutenberg.org/license. - - -Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works - - -*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the -terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all -copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your possession. If you -paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg™ -electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the terms of this -agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to whom you -paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. - -*1.B.* “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things -that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works even -without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph -1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help -preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. See -paragraph 1.E below. - -*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the -Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of -Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in -the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an -individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are -located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you -from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating -derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project -Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the -Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting free access to electronic works -by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ works in compliance with the terms -of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg™ name associated -with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by -keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project -Gutenberg™ License when you share it without charge with others. - - -*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in -a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check -the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement -before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or -creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project -Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the -copyright status of any work in any country outside the United States. - -*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work on -which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase -“Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, -viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with - almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away - or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License - included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org - -*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is derived -from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is -posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied -and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees -or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with -the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, -you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through -1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project -Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional -terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked -to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works posted with the -permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. - -*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™ -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™. - -*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg™ License. - -*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any -word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or -distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other than -“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version -posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ web site -(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or -expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a -means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original -“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include -the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works unless -you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided -that - - - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you - already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to - the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to - donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 - days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally - required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments - should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, - “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary - Archive Foundation.” - - - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ License. - You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the - works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and - all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ works. - - - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - - - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works. - - -*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg™ -electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth -in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the -Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the -owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set -forth in Section 3. below. - -*1.F.* - -*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg™ collection. -Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, and the -medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but -not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription -errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a -defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer -codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. - -*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES – Except for the “Right -of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all liability -to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. YOU AGREE -THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF -WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. -YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR -UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, -INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE -NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. - -*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND – If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with -your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with -the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a -refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity -providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to -receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy -is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further -opportunities to fix the problem. - -*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS,’ WITH NO OTHER -WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO -WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. -If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the -law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be -interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by -the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any -provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. - -*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY – You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance -with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, -promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, -harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, -that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do -or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg™ -work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any -Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any Defect you cause. - - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™ - - -Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers -including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists -because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from -people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s goals -and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will remain freely -available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and -permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To learn -more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how -your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the -Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org . - - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive -Foundation - - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state -of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue -Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification number is -64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at -http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the -Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the -full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. - -The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. -S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered -throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 -North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email -business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact -information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official page -at http://www.pglaf.org - -For additional contact information: - - Dr. Gregory B. Newby - Chief Executive and Director - gbnewby@pglaf.org - - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation - - -Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread -public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the -number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely -distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of -equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to -$5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with -the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where -we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state -visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any -statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside -the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways -including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, -please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate - - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic -works. - - -Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg™ -concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared -with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project -Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless -a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks -in compliance with any particular paper edition. - -Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook’s eBook -number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII, -compressed (zipped), HTML and others. - -Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over -the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed. -_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving -new filenames and etext numbers. - -Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: - - http://www.gutenberg.org - -This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg™, including -how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive -Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to -our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. +*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 38845 *** diff --git a/38845-0.zip b/38845-0.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 8cf81fd..0000000 --- a/38845-0.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-8.txt b/38845-8.txt deleted file mode 100644 index ddfc336..0000000 --- a/38845-8.txt +++ /dev/null @@ -1,8261 +0,0 @@ - STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER - - - - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost -no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it -under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this -eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license. - - - -Title: Stories of the Scottish Border -Author: Mr and Mrs William Platt -Release Date: July 17, 2013 [EBook #38845] -Language: English -Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1 - - -*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER -*** - - - - -Produced by Al Haines. - - - -[Illustration: _The Rookhope Ride_] - - - - - STORIES OF THE - SCOTTISH BORDER - - - BY - - Mr and Mrs WILLIAM PLATT - - - - WITH SIXTEEN FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS BY - M. MEREDITH WILLIAMS - - - - GEORGE G. HARRAP & CO. LTD. - LONDON BOMBAY SYDNEY - - - - - _First published December 1910_ - _by_ GEORGE G. HARRAP & COMPANY - _39-41 Parker Street, Kingsway, London, W.C.2 - Reprinted: December 1916; March 1919; - April 1929_ - - - - _Printed in Great Britain by Turnbull & Spears, Edinburgh_ - - - - - *Contents* - - -INTRODUCTION - - I. THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS - II. A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER - III. WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US - - -CHAP. - - I. Bamburgh and its Coast - II. Athelstan at Vinheath - III. Monks and Minstrels - IV. Sir Patrick Spens - V. Auld Maitland - VI. The Mystery of the Eildons - VII. Black Agnes of Dunbar - VIII. The Young Tamlane - IX. The Gay Goss-Hawk - X. The Corbies - XI. Otterbourne and Chevy Chase - XII. The Douglas Clan - XIII. Alnwick Castle and the Percies - XIV. Hexham and Queen Margaret - XV. Fair Helen of Kirkconnell - XVI. Johnie of Breadislee - XVII. Katharine Janfarie - XVIII. By Lauder Bridge - XIX. The Battle of Flodden Field - XX. After Flodden - XXI. Graeme and Bewick - XXII. The Song of the Outlaw Murray - XXIII. Johnie Armstrong - XXIV. The Lament of the Border Widow - XXV. The Raid of the Kers - XXVI. Merrie Carlisle - XXVII. Kinmont Willie - XXVIII. Dick o' the Cow - XXIX. The Lochmaben Harper - XXX. The Rookhope Ride - XXXI. Barthram's Dirge - XXXII. Queen Mary and the Borders - XXXIII. The Raid of the Reidswire - XXXIV. Jock o' the Side - XXXV. Hobbie Noble - XXXVI. The Laird o' Logie - XXXVII. Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead -XXXVIII. Muckle-Mou'd Meg - XXXIX. The Dowie Dens of Yarrow - XL. Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland - XLI. Gilderoy - XLII. Archie Armstrong's Oath - XLIII. Christie's Will - XLIV. Northumberland at the Time of the Civil War - XLV. Montrose and Lesly - XLVI. The Death of Montrose - XLVII. The Borderers and the Jacobites - XLVIII. The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall - XLIX. In Wild Northumberland To-Day - - - - - *Illustrations* - -The Rookhope Ride. . . . . . . Frontispiece - -Egil at Vinheath - -The Siege of Maitland Castle - -Black Agnes - -The Twa Corbies - -The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham - -Johnie of Breadislee. - -Flodden Field - -"Tell Us All--Oh, Tell Us True!" - -The Border Widow - -The Escape of Kinmont Willie - -Queen Mary crossing the Solway - -"A Boon, a Boon, my Noble Liege!" - -"She Kissed his Cheek, She Kaim'd his Hair" - -The Storming of Newcastle - -"'Tis I, 'Tis thy Winifred!" - - - - -_In liquid murmurs Yarrow sings_ - _Her reminiscent tune_ -_Of bygone Autumn, bygone Springs,_ - _And many a leafy June._ - -_No more the morning beacons gleam_ - _Upon the silent hills;_ -_The far back years are years of dream--_ - _Now peace the valley fills._ - -_No more the reivers down the vale_ - _On raid and foray ride;_ -_No more is heard the widow's wail_ - _O'er those who fighting died._ - -_When morning damns with all its joys_ - _Then from the meadows rise_ -_A hundred throbbing hearts to voice_ - _Their anthems to the skies._ - -_When noontide sleeps where brackens wave,_ - _Ere shadows yet grow long,_ -_No sound awakes the echoes save_ - _The Yarrow's pensive song._ - -_And when the eve, with calm delight,_ - _Betokens night is nigh,_ -_Beneath the first star's tender light_ - _Is heard the owlet's cry._ - -_While Yarrow's liquid cadence swells_ - _By meadow, moor, and hill,_ -_At morn or noon or eve there dwells_ - _A mournful memory still._ - -W. CUTHBERTSON. - - - - - *Stories of The Scottish Border* - - - *Introduction* - - *I.--THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS* - - -The district called the Border is one of the most interesting in Great -Britain. It consists of that part of England that is nearest Scotland, -and that part of Scotland that is nearest England, mainly the counties -of Northumberland, Cumberland, Berwickshire, Roxburghshire, and -Dumfriesshire. - -The country is very picturesque and highly romantic. It abounds in great -rolling, breezy hills, with swift streamlets or "burns" running down -their sides to swell the rushing rivers. No part of our island has more -beautiful valleys than those of the Border. - -This bold, rough district, well adapted to defence, and situated also -just where the island of Great Britain is almost at its narrowest, -became, after many a struggle, the boundary between England and -Scotland. The character of the country was suited to the rearing of -hardy Moorland sheep and cattle; its inhabitants therefore were a tough, -open-air race of men, strong, strapping fellows, fearless riders, always -ready for an adventure, especially if it meant a fight. - -In those days of Border strife there was hardly such a thing as -international justice, that is to say, the people of one nation were not -very particular as to what they did to people of another nation; -therefore these bold, hardy Border men, Englishmen and Scot alike, were -fond of creeping across the boundary to steal the cattle of their -neighbours. Men devoted to such raids were called "Freebooters" or -"Mosstroopers," the name "Moss" being given in the North Country to -boggy tracts that lie about the hill-sides. - -So it happened that the Border was in a perpetual state of petty -warfare, conducted, it is true, with a certain amount of good-will and a -rough approach to chivalry, and with the concurrence of the powerful -Border nobles of both nations, who often played an important part -therein. At times these raids developed into important warlike -expeditions, when a fierce noble, or even a king, had some reckless game -to play. Hence, among the ballads which give us so vivid an account of -Border strife, we find descriptions not only of the minor doings of -picturesque sheep-stealers, but also of pitched battles such as Chevy -Chase and Homildon Hill. - -The union of England and Scotland in 1603 naturally put an end to all -the former excuses for raiding, and therefore terminated the true -Freebooter period. After this, despite one or two belated attempts, -such as Elliot's big raid in 1611, sheep-stealing ceased to be looked -upon as an honourable calling, and became mere thieving. The men who -would have raided one another's farms in 1602 became friendly neighbours -after the Border Commission of 1605. There had been little malice in -their former freebooting. Both sides were of one race; and they had the -pleasure of finding that their lands went up greatly in value in -consequence of the Border peace. - -To-day, the Border presents scenes of peaceful cattle-farming. But -Romance is still in the air, hangs about the fine, breezy moorlands and -beautiful dales, and is seen clearly in the faces of the healthy -Border-folk. A holiday at any Border farm would prove a most enjoyable -one. There are wonderful Roman remains, for here it was that the Romans -built their wall; there are castles of the Border barons; the views are -wide and grand; the river-valleys are unmatched for beauty, and -delightful wild flowers are plentiful, chief among which are fox-gloves, -the giant wild Canterbury Bells, the handsome North Country wild -geranium, several interesting kinds of wild orchids, and a variety of -others too numerous to mention. Last, but not least, it is often -possible in the evenings to see the farmers' sons engaged in friendly -wrestling in the meadows, when we can realise that these great manly -fellows are of the same vigorous race that kept the Borders lively a few -centuries ago. - - - - II.--A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER - - -Before dealing in detail with the stirring stories of Border history and -legend, to retell which is the purpose of this book, we will first -inquire--What is it that settles exactly the position of the border-line -between two countries? To find the answer we must think what happens -when a country is invaded. - -If the invaders are stronger than the people whom they attack, they go -on thrusting back their foes till these reach some strong position -where, by the aid of mountain, river, or marsh, they are able, at any -rate for a time, to hold their own. Thus, a border-line is always -determined by some natural feature of the country which gives the -defenders an advantage. - -The attackers will not always operate from the same locality, and the -defenders will not always fall back in the same direction; the two -sides, also, will vary in power from time to time. For these reasons a -border-line, especially in the old fighting days, was often altered. - -When the Romans invaded Britain they gradually conquered the southern -part of it, but they could not subdue the wilder north; one of their -boundary lines was drawn from the Solway to the Tyne; then they fought -their way further north and their next definite boundary was a line -running from the Forth to the Clyde. Along each of these boundaries they -built a great wall, and to this day parts of these Roman walls remain. -But it is worth noting that neither of these wall border-lines stands -upon the present border, one being all in England and the other all in -Scotland. - -When the Romans left Britain, called back to defend their own native -land from invasion, there followed a brief period for which we have no -definite record of events in this island. This is the period of King -Arthur, and none can say how much is true in the Arthurian legends. - -But history begins to become clear again about the time that the Angles -came in their ships across the North Sea, bent on conquest. They landed -on all the natural harbours of the east coast, driving the Britons back -and taking the land for themselves. The fact that they landed on the -East and drove the Britons westward, leads us to think that sooner or -later a boundary would have been formed dividing the island into the -east side (for the Angles) and the west side (for the Britons). - -Now that is exactly what did happen. The border-lines were nowhere like -the present ones. The northern kingdom of the Angles reached to the -Forth, where these people founded Edinburgh (Edwin's burgh). On the -west the Britons had sway in Cornwall (Corn-Walles), Wales, Cumbria -(which stretched from the Mersey to the Solway), and Strathclyde (from -the Solway to the Clyde). North of the Forth was the country of the -Picts; while the Scots were a race recently come from Ireland, and they -only owned what we now call Argyleshire, and the islands lying near to -it. Not one inch of the present Border was at that day in the -border-line! - -Of the various races that lay round about where the Border now is, the -Northumbrians seemed at first to be the strongest. The capital of their -kingdom was Bamburgh, a place still famous for its castle, though to-day -it is not important enough to have a railway station! But it still -looks very picturesque on the wild coast, with the Farne Islands, the -first seat of Northumbrian Christianity, in the near distance. - -Ambition had much to do with the downfall of Northumbria. The famous -King Eadbert would not rest content till he had scaled Dumbarton, the -capital of Strathclyde. This was to his career what the march to Moscow -was to Napoleon's, for, though Eadbert got safely to Dumbarton (756) his -army was cut to pieces in getting back again. The Northumbrians seem to -have lost some of their northern lands, for they moved their capital -further south, to the old Roman city of Corbridge which stood on the -Tyne just where the delightful country town of that name stands to-day. - -In 844 a king of the Scots, named Kenneth MacAlpin, became (we don't -quite know how) king of the Picts also, joining two strong races under -one ruler, and thus was powerful enough to give great trouble to the -weakened kingdom of Northumbria. He several times led his army through -Lothian, the district belonging to the Angles between the Forth and the -Tweed, but was never quite able to conquer it. It is important to -remember that up to that date Lothian had never belonged to Scotland. -The appearance of the Danes added to the confusion of those restless -days. For some few years it was doubtful whether Scot, Dane, or Angle -would get the best of it in Northumbria. But at last the genius of -Athelstan of Wessex revived the power of the Angles over the whole of -that large part of the island which they had settled, right up to the -Forth itself. Edinburgh was still English in 957, and the border-line -was still very far from the present one. But there was no longer a king -of Northumbria; only an earl, who was subject to the will of the -West-Saxon kings. - -This fact of the dominance of the West Saxons, whose capital was far to -the south at Winchester, must have added to the weakness of the -Northumbrian border. By the year 963 the Scots had conquered Edinburgh, -and it was now never again to return to English rule. Before very long -the whole of Lothian had passed under Scottish control; but it was not -yet held to be part of Scotland. Nor must it be thought that this -conquest of Lothian fixed the border-line in its present position, for -the king of the Scots was at that time ruler over Cumberland, which had -never yet been English and was all that was left of the old British -kingdom of Cumbria. - -Frontier wars with varying successes between Scot, Angle, and Dane mark -the stormy history of this time. The power of Cnut held back the Scotch -attempts upon Nothumberland; but during a lull in the wars the grand-son -of the Scottish king married the sister of Earl Siward, and received as -her dowry twelve towns in the valley of the Tyne, an astonishingly -imprudent arrangement. - -At the time of the battle of Hastings, the earldom of Northumberland was -so far distant from Winchester as to be somewhat out of the control of -the King of England; the power of the Scottish kings threatened it; they -held twelve towns in Tynedale, and Cumberland was a part of Scotland. -The Northumbrians refused to accept William the Conqueror as their king; -and had they been able to make good their refusal, they must sooner or -later have been conquered by the Scots, and the border-line between -England and Scotland would then most probably have been formed by the -Tees, the mountain boundary of Westmoreland, and Morecambe Bay. - -But William was not a king to be played with. He reduced Northumberland -to subjection and carried his army into Scotland as far as the river -Tay, where he forced the King of Scotland to admit that he, William, was -his overlord. - -Notwithstanding this humiliation, when King William returned to -Winchester, the Scots several times went back to their favourite -amusement of raiding unhappy Northumberland. - -One of these invasions took place in the reign of William Rufus (1093), -who went north in person. He doubtless recognised the fact that owing -to the Scots possessing Cumberland they were in the strong position of -being able to attack Northumberland on two sides. He took Cumberland by -force of arms, and thus for the first time it became a part of England -(the word "Cumberland" means the land of the Cumbrians or Welsh, a Saxon -form of the Welsh word Cymry). - -Rufus rebuilt the strong fortress of Carlisle to defend his new border -at its weakest corner. For the most part this border is excellently -protected by the natural rampart of the wild Cheviot Hills, and is in -every way as good a border as could be devised. It runs in a fairly -straight line from south-west to north-east, across a narrow part of the -island. - -But although this border-line proved to be a permanent one, it must not -be thought that it remained undisputed. The times were rough, and hardy -fighting folk lived on the Border. They had many grounds for quarrel, -and took advantage of them all. For one thing, the exact boundary of -North Cumberland was never quite defined till 1552; up to which year -there was a tract of land between the rivers Esk and Sark, which was -claimed by both countries, and therefore called the "Debateable Land." -Then the Scots maintained that they were overlords of Northumberland, -while the English kings cherished the notion that they were overlords of -the whole island of Britain, and the wild spirits on both sides were -always ready to fight. - -Out of this fighting spirit sprung the stirring history of the Border, -which forms the theme of the deathless Ballads, the stories of which it -is now our purpose to retell. - - - - III.--WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US - - -Many a name holds a meaning wrapt up within itself like a nut in its -shell. For instance, "Edinburgh" is a Saxon name--Edwin's burgh--and -the word tells us that this noble city, though now the capital of -Scotland, was originally founded by and belonged to a Saxon king of -Northumbria. The Highlanders, in their own Gaelic language, called it -Dunedin. This has the same signification as Edinburgh, but, like most -Gaelic names, it is arranged in the reverse order to that in which an -English name is generally put together. "Dun" means burgh, "Edin" is -Edwin. This is the same Dun that we have in "Dundee," which means the -burgh on the Tay, and might be translated as "Tayburgh." "Dumbarton" -means the burgh of the Britons, and teaches us another notable lesson, -namely, how far north in the old times the British influence extended. -For "British" in this case means "Welsh." Nowadays we associate the -Welsh with Wales only. Formerly there must have been a numerous colony -of Welsh in Scotland, as the name "Dumbarton" testifies, as also many -Scottish family names. The great name of Wallace itself, for instance, -suggests such an origin, for "Wallace" is merely a corrupt form of the -word "Welsh," and proves that the great national hero was of Welsh -extraction. Then "Cumberland"--Cymry land--means the land of the Welsh, -or Cymry, as they call themselves. The county of Cumberland did not -really belong to the English till the time of William Rufus. The first -syllable of "Carlisle" denotes a Celtic fortified town, and must be -compared with the first syllable of "Carnarvon." - -The presence of the Roman wall is shown in many names in Northumberland, -such as "Wallsend," "Walltown," "Wallridge," "Heddon-on-the-Wall," -"Wallhouses," and "Thirlwall." - -For a very interesting instance of what a name tells us we may leave the -Border for a moment and consider why the northernmost part of Scotland -is called "Sutherland." It must have been so named by people living in -the Orkney and Shetland isles, of a different race from the Scotch--that -is, Norse settlers in those islands. - -With regard to surnames, how many stop to think that "Oliphant" is -merely a form of "elephant," and was originally an allusion to a big, -burly ancestor? "Grant," which is the same as "grand," must also have -been once applied to one who was a giant in size. The Frazers somehow -got their name from the French word for a strawberry, fraise. The -odd-looking "Scrymgeour" means simply a scrimmager or skirmisher. -"Turnbull" recalls one who turned the bull at a bull-baiting. The -well-known "Gladstains" or "Gladstone" has nothing to do with "glad," -but is from "glede," an old word for the kite, and commemorates some -stone where these birds frequented. "Buccleuch" is from the killing of -a buck in a cleugh or ravine. - -The Christian names of the Borderers are full of life and local colour, -and differ much from those of Southern England. "Barthram" is the -northern form of "Bertram," "Nigel" of "Neil," "Jellon" of "Julian," -"Ringan" of "Ninian." It was the general custom to abbreviate Christian -names or use them in the diminutive form, as is constantly the practice -in these Border ballads. "Hobbie" stands for "Halbert," a fine old name -which must not be confused with "Albert." "Dandie" or "Dandrie" is -"Andrew," "Eckie" is "Hector," "Lammie" is "Lambert," "Lennie" is -"Leonard." "Adam" becomes, in the familiar form, "Aicky," "Christian" -becomes "Christy," "Gilbert" becomes "Gibby." - -Another peculiarity of the ballads is the regular recurrence of such -phrases as "the Laird's Jock," "the Laird's Wat," "Ringan's Wat," etc. -These expressions mean, "John the son of the Laird," "Walter the son of -the Laird," "Walter the son of Ringan or Ninian." - - - - - *Chapter I* - - *Bamburgh and its Coast* - - -The little town of Bamburgh has two striking features--the great castle -upon its stern rock, and the wild coast-line at its feet where dash the -storms of the North Sea. - -To-day it is not important enough to have a railway station of its own; -yet once it was the capital of the great Saxon kingdom of Northumbria. -Its original name was Bebbanburgh, so called after Queen Bebba; of its -Saxon fortress hardly a trace remains, the present building being partly -the old Norman castle, with repairs and additions of a later date. The -ancient pile has a strength, dignity, and grandeur which accords well -with its truly noble situation. - -The North Saxons in choosing such a spot for their capital showed a very -evident desire to keep in touch with the sea. Over the sea they had -come; and over the sea would come both friends and enemies. Many a -meeting of both friend and foe has taken place at Bamburgh! - -Perhaps the fiercest of the enemies was Ragnar of the hairy-breeches, a -famous viking who plundered, ravaged, and burnt without mercy. These -vikings, powerful men and fearless sea-rovers, were a standing terror to -Northumbria. Men with frames and muscles strong as iron; at home both -on the sea and on the battle-field; fair-haired, blue-eyed men, guarded -by helmet, breast-plate, and shield, armed with heavy weapons, because -at that date the art of the smith was not equal to making them sharp, -light, and strong at once. So these mighty warriors hewed their way -through the field of battle with great strokes, and when their foes fled -in terror, the vikings took back to their ships all the treasure they -could find, and away they went across the sea again. But with all their -fierceness they loved poetry (wild war-poetry, most of it) and they -loved their strong, brave women. - -Ragnar was a thorough viking. He loved fighting, and his handsome wife, -and the battle songs he made. But the Saxons had no cause to love him, -and when his ship ran aground near Jarrow, they bound him and cast him -into a pit of snakes, and watched him slowly die. The viking had no fear -of death. He sang as he lay there, of his life and his deeds--of the -great banquets he had given to the wolves and the vultures and the -fierce battles he had won, spreading the terrors of his name from the -Orkneys to the Mediterranean; of his beautiful wife and strong sons, and -of how they would avenge him; and of how Woden, the lord of all -warriors, was calling him to his Hall. - -Many a battle has been fought on that wild coast since Ragnar died; much -history has been made thereabouts, and many legends have attached -themselves to Bamburgh. Like most famous places, it had its own special -dragon, the "Laidly Worm" or loathsome serpent of the ancient ballad. - - "For seven miles east, and seven miles west, - And seven miles north and south, - No blade of grass or corn would grow, - So venomous was her mouth!" - - -And yet, when the gallant knight gave her "kisses three," she changed at -once into a beautiful lady! - -But despite its castle, its battles, and its legends, Bamburgh slowly -declined in importance. As the capital of Northumbria it had been one -of the chief towns in England. But the gallant Northumbria of the -Saxons was more open to enemies than any other part of the country; -Cumbrians were on the west and Scots on the north, and this was of all -Saxon kingdoms the most exposed to the ravages of the Danes. From the -capital of a kingdom it became the capital of a county (Bamburghshire), -returning two members to Parliament in the reign of Edward I.; but it -grew of less and still less importance, till at last it was known only -to the student of history. It shared this fate with Lindisfarne, called -Holy Island, once the Canterbury of the North, on whose rocky shores -still stand the ruins of the fine Norman cathedral which took the place -of the old Saxon one. Lindisfarne and Bamburgh--neighbours, divided -only by a narrow belt of sea--two names that conjure up vivid pictures -of romantic history. Yet suddenly, early in the nineteenth century, the -great deed of a splendid heroine lent new glory to the wild, sea-girt -town. - -Grace Darling was born at Bamburgh in 1817, in a cottage on the south -side of the village street, which can still be seen to-day. Her father -became keeper of the lighthouse on the Langstone, a rocky islet five -miles from the coast, guarding ships from the dangerous Farne Islands, a -group of iron-bound rocks where seabirds dwell. In the early morning of -September 7, 1838, during the raging of a most terrible storm, she heard -the crash of a ship dashed upon the rocks, and anguished cries; as soon -as dawn enabled them to see, the girl and her father made out the dark -outline of the wreck, and the miserable forms of the mariners crouching -on rocks from which the rising tide would sweep them inevitably to -death. With superb heroism Grace and her father pushed their small boat -into the furious waters, and after strenuous and dauntless efforts, -always at the peril of their own lives, they saved the whole ship's -company, nine souls in all. So fierce was the storm that it was three -days before a boat dared take them from the Langstone to the mainland. - -The roar of approbation which greeted her from the whole country found -her as modest as she was brave. But for all her courage, this noble girl -was not strong. She died four years later, and lies buried at Bamburgh, -within sound of the sea. And the Langstone is known to-day as "Grace -Darling's Island," and the tomb of the brave girl rouses sweeter -memories than the frowning fortress of Bamburgh. - - - - - *Chapter II* - - *Athelstan at Vinheath* - - -Famous among the old Norse sea-rovers was Egil, son of Skallagrim. In -the course of his many voyages, he visited all the lands between the -White Sea and the Bay of Biscay, and when at last he settled down in his -Iceland home, where he lived on till well past the age of eighty, he -loved to gather his children and grandchildren around him by the -fireside during the long Icelandic winter, and to tell the story of his -adventures. He was a true Norseman, fond of the sea and the fight, fond -of his wife and children, fond of song, at which he was highly skilled. -His songs and his stories of adventure were listened to with eagerness, -and they were repeated after him, and were at last written down, -probably between one hundred and fifty and two hundred years after his -death. Books were scarce in those days, and stories were treasured and -faithfully re-told. So this story of Egil was probably written out very -much in the simple, vigorous style in which the old warrior would have -told it to his grandchildren, as they listened to him with wide-open, -wondering eyes. And as the old man had taken part in an early battle -between Saxon-English and Scots, upon the Border, we have here a fine -picture of how fights were fought in the reign of King Athelstan. - -Egil was speaking to Icelandic children who knew little about England, -so he began by telling how in the days when Harold Fairhair was king of -Norway, Alfred the Great was the first supreme king over all England. -When Alfred died he was succeeded by his son Edward, who was followed by -Athelstan the Victorious. In Egil's day Athelstan was young and had but -just been made king, and many chieftains, who had kept quiet before, now -thought that the time had come when they could do as they pleased again. -But Athelstan meant to show them that he too could rule England strongly -and wisely. - -These were the days of brute force, and the king had first to get an -army together. Besides his own English folk, many roving Norsemen came -to take his pay, and among the number were Egil and his elder brother -Thorolf, with their men. They saw the king himself, who received them -well. Athelstan was a good Christian, known as the Faithful, and he -desired that Thorolf and Egil should submit to be marked with the Cross, -that they might take their place by his Christian soldiers without -quarrel. This they agreed to, and the king gave them command over three -hundred men. Now Olaf the Red was king in Scotland. His father was a -Scot, but his mother was a Dane of the family of Ragnar -with-the-hairy-breeches, that savage old viking. Northumberland, which -in those days extended to the Humber, and included York as its chief -city, was half-full of Danes, and King Olaf wished to claim it for his -own, and add it to Scotland. - -Athelstan had set Earl Alfgeir and Earl Gudrek to rule Northumberland -and defend it from the Scots. But Olaf of Scotland came south with his -mighty host; there was a fierce battle; Earl Gudrek was slain and Earl -Alfgeir fled. When Athelstan heard of the triumph of Olaf, he began at -once to march northward with all the men he could get together; but he -was yet young, and some of the treacherous earls, hearing that Olaf had -so far been victor, deserted King Athelstan. Chief among these traitors -were Earl Hring and Earl Adils, who should have been in the very front -of the English army, but who basely went over to the Scots. Thus Olaf's -host became exceeding great, greater by far than the English army. - -Then Athelstan called together his captains and his counsellors; Egil -was there, and heard all the grave talk as to what should be done. At -last a plan was made that all thought good, and this is what followed. - -First, messengers were sent to King Olaf, saying that King Athelstan -would meet him in fair fight at Vinheath by Vinwood, in Northumberland, -where he would mark out the field of battle with rods of hazel. He who -won the battle should be king over all England. The armies should meet -a week hence, and whichever was first on the ground should wait a week -for the other. King Olaf should bide quiet, and not harry the land till -the battle was ended. North of the heath was a town; there King Olaf -stayed, for there he could best get provisions for his army. But some -of his men he sent to the heath, to view it. - -The hazel-poles were already set up on the large level plain. A river -was on one side, and a wood was on the other. And where river and wood -were nearest to one another, there King Athelstan's tents were pitched. - -Many tents there were, but the front line of tents stood high, so that -the Scots could not see how many were behind. Every third tent was -empty, but many men were sleeping on the grass in the open, so that the -Scots might think that the English had a large army there. Every day -more English troops came in, and when the time was come that was fixed -for the battle, English envoys went to the King of the Scots asking if -there need be the great fight and bloodshed that threatened; if Olaf -would go peaceably home, Athelstan would give him a shilling of silver -for every plough that ploughed in England. The Scots took counsel -together and said they must have more than this. Then the messengers -begged a three days' truce to consider this. On the third day they came -again, saying that King Athelstan would give what he offered before and -also to the Scottish army a silver shilling for every freeman soldier, a -silver mark for every lesser officer, a gold mark for every captain, and -five gold marks for every earl. But the Scots asked not only for this, -but also for Northumberland to be yielded to them. Then the English -messengers answered that Scottish messengers must ride back with them, -to take the answer from Athelstan himself. - -Now the truth is this: that the Scottish king had taken Athelstan by -such surprise that he needed time to get his men together; all these -messages were but a trick to gain time till the king should come up -himself with all the men he could gather. When, therefore, the -messengers rode up to King Athelstan, he had but just arrived on the -scene of battle. And when he heard the message he said: "Tell King Olaf -this, that I will give him leave to return to Scotland safely if only he -give back all he has unjustly taken from this land, and if he own -himself my under-king, holding Scotland for me and at my behest." - -This proud answer made the Scottish messengers at once see what had been -going on. So they hastened back to their king to tell him how they had -been received and what the meaning of it was. - -When the Scots found that the English had thus outwitted them, they took -counsel together in some anger. Earl Adils, he who had deserted the -English, said that he and his brother, Earl Hring, would that very night -make a surprise attack; if it succeeded, well and good; if not, then -they could easily withdraw, and the main battle could begin in the -morning. This the King of Scots held to be good advice. - -So the two traitor earls and their men moved southward under cover of -the darkness. But Thorolf the Norseman was used to the ways of war, and -his sentries were alert and blew a great war-blast on their horns. And -thus the fight began. - -Thorolf was armed with a massy halberd that stood taller than a man; -broad was its blade and thick its socket, and it ended in a four-edged -spike. He had a strong sword by his side and a big, heavy shield on his -left arm; he had a helmet but no shirt of mail. His brother Egil was -armed in much the same way. The Norsemen's standard was borne by Thorfid -the strong. - -Next to the Norsemen, in the first rank also, was the division led by -Earl Alfgeir, he who had once before fled from the Scots. King -Athelstan gave him this chance to redeem himself. Now when the first -onslaught of the Scots took place, Earl Adils came against Earl Alfgeir, -while Earl Hring came against the Norsemen. - -And now the battle began. The two traitor earls urged on their men, who -charged with spirit. The fight was fierce, and soon Alfgeir gave -ground; this made the foe press on the fiercer, and before long Alfgeir -was in full flight. He avoided the town where Athelstan was, and fled -night and day to the coast, where he took ship out of the country he had -served so ill. - -Adils did not dare to pursue him far, for fear of being himself cut off -from his friends. So he returned to help his brother Hring against the -Norsemen. Thorolf, like a true general, saw the danger of this, and at -once told Egil to turn aside with half their force to prevent Adils from -joining his brother. The Norsemen fought a grand fight, but were badly -outnumbered, and the battle seemed to be going against them. Then -Thorolf became furious. Disdainful of life, he cast his shield behind -his back, grasped his great halberd with both hands, and sprang forward, -hacking down all who opposed him. Straight for Hring's standard he went, -nothing could stop him. He slew the standard-bearer, cut through the -standard-pole, and with a mighty stroke thrust his halberd right through -the body of Hring, the traitor earl, and lifted him up in the air that -all might see that he was slain. Then Adils and the rest of the men -fled to the wood, and thus ended the first part of the fight. More was -to come on the morrow. - -At dawn next day King Athelstan came forward with his main army. He had -heard of the great deeds of the brothers Thorolf and Egil; most -courteously he thanked them, and said that he would always reckon them -as his friends. Then with his captains he made his plans for the -battle. Egil he put in command of the front ranks of his men, and -Thorolf he set aside to face those of the Scots who might charge the -English in loose array. - -[Illustration: Egil at Vinheath] - -"For this is the way of the Scots," he said; "they dash to and fro, rush -forward and hither and thither, and are dangerous except to a commander -who is both wary and bold." - -Egil said, "I would rather that Thorolf and I were near together"; but -Thorolf answered, "As the king commands, so will we do." - -The battle began, and soon waged furiously. Thorolf and his men pressed -forward along the woodside, hoping to take the enemy on the flank. Now, -unknown to him, Adils and his followers were hiding among the trees, and -of a sudden Adils sprang out and smote him down. Thorfid, too, the brave -standard-bearer, was pressed back, but rallied the men, who fought -desperately. - -The Scots had raised a great shout at the fall of Thorolf, and this was -heard by Egil, who, when he saw the standard forced back, feared that -his brother was dead, for Thorolf had never drawn back from any foe. So -with a fierce cry Egil hacked his way through to that part of the field, -and when he learnt the truth from his men, he never rested till he had -slain Adils with his own hand. - -The followers of Adils then fled, and Egil and the Norsemen hewed their -way through the flank of the Scottish force towards the place where King -Olaf's standard was. Noting this, King Athelstan, that wary general, -caused his own standard to be set forward and all his army to attack at -once. Fierce and furious was the fight, and great was the slaughter. -King Olaf was slain, with great numbers of his men, and the rest fled in -confusion. The English victory was complete. - -As soon as Athelstan saw that victory was his, he left the pursuit to -his captains and hastened to the town to make his arrangements. Egil -pursued far and fiercely, and when at last he came back to the -battlefield his first thought was for his dead brother. Worn out though -he was, he would take no rest until he had buried the warrior with full -honours, with his arms and his raiment; and before the sad farewell was -said Egil clasped a gold bracelet on both of Thorolf's wrists to show -his deep love. Then they buried the hero deep and put a high cairn of -stones over him. - -Then one last tribute Egil paid to his brother, the greatest of them -all. Among these old Norse warriors there existed a great love of song; -the great fighters strove also to be great song-makers, and Egil was -famous above most for this power. The Norsemen's poems had not rhymes -like ours; they had short vigorous lines, and in each pair of lines -three of the important words had to begin with the same letter. Wild -strong chants they were. This is the song that Egil sang at the burial -of his brother, Thorolf Skallagrimsson:-- - - "The halberd of the hero - Hewed down the foe before him; - Then in the brunt of battle - Was spilt brave Thorolf's blood. - The grass is green on Vinheath - Where sleeps my great-souled brother; - But death, in doubled sorrow, - Our doleful hearts must bear." - - -When Egil got to the town he found the king and his army making merry -over their victory at a huge feast. The courteous king saw Egil and bade -him come and sit near to him. The king watched the burly Norseman, who -was tall, with broad shoulders, a powerful head and mighty strength; but -now his head was bent forward, and he kept his sword across his knees, -and now and again half drew it and then clashed it back into its -scabbard like a man who fights with heavy thoughts. He ate little and -drank less. Then King Athelstan, watchful and courteous, took a gold -ring from his arm, and placing it on his sword-point, handed it thus to -where Egil sat. At this mark of honour the Norseman's face grew -brighter. Then the king sent round his own horn for Egil to drink; so -he drank to the king and sang a verse of wild poetry in his praise, made -on the spur of the moment; and with this the king was much pleased. - -Then the king sent also for two chests full of silver, and said to -Egil:-- - -"These chests carry to thy father; it is fitting that King Athelstan -make him some gift for the loss of his son. And do thou stay with me -long, and I will give thee honour and dignity." - -Thus the great king in kindness and courtesy did what he could to soothe -the grief of the warrior; and Egil stayed the winter with Athelstan, but -when the summer came he wished to go back to his own people. But he had -much respect for King Athelstan, and ere he bade him farewell he made a -long poem to his glory. - -_From the Song of Egil Skallagrimsson, to the Glory of King Athelstan._ - - "See how the kingly warrior, - Land-warder, battle-wakener, - Smites even to the earth - The earls who rise against him! - Glad is now Northumberland, - This the king she needed, - Wise and bold of race and blood, - Dauntless in the battle-field!" - - -Many were the verses of this stirring song; and after each came the -refrain:-- - - "Scottish hills where reindeer roam - Own the rule of Athelstan!" - - -The king gave Egil two heavy gold rings and a handsome cloak that he -himself had worn; then the Norseman sailed away, for always near to his -heart was the welfare of his dead brother's wife and child. Yea, for -the rest of his long life he loved this child even as he loved his own. - - - - - *Chapter III* - - *Monks and Minstrels* - - -The wild Borderland was the scene of the labours of many ol the first -great Christian leaders. Where the arts of war were so much practised, -it was needful that the arts of peace should flourish also. Great was -the influence, even in the wildest times, of these able, serious, -devoted leaders of early religious thought, men like Ninian and -Kentigern. - -Christianity first came into Britain in Roman times, and some of the -Britons were converted. After the Romans quitted the country, King -Arthur was the leader of the Christian Britons, and he is said to have -fought with the pagan Britons, the pagan Picts, the pagan Saxons, who -had begun their invasions, and the disorderly soldiers of various races, -probably pagans whom the Romans left behind along the wall. - -In due time the fight developed into a struggle between Christian -Britons and pagan Saxons, and then the Saxons themselves began to accept -the new religion. Oswald, a Northumbrian prince, had in a time of peril -hidden in the island of Iona, to where the great Irishman Columba had -come from Ireland as a missionary. When Oswald returned to power he -summoned to his kingdom Aidan, a high-minded Christian teacher, whom he -made first bishop of Lindisfarne (Holy Island). Aidan being a Celt, had -to do his work through interpreters, but he did it well, and laid the -foundations of Christianity and learning in Northumbria. Cuthbert was -another famous missionary. Rising from shepherd-boy to bishop, he -impressed both king and peasant by the dignified simplicity and -sincerity of his life. His place of meditation was a sea-girt rock by -Lindisfarne, lonely and picturesque, and still called after his name. A -curious fossil, with the mark of a cross, is plentiful there, and goes -by the name of St Cuthbert's beads. Other famous teachers were Wilfrid -of York, who founded the churches of Hexham and Ripon; Boisil, who -founded Melrose, and Biscop, who founded Jarrow. - -But perhaps the most celebrated of all was Bede, the "Venerable Bede," -who lived at Jarrow and wrote forty-five learned books on all subjects, -including music, astronomy, and medicine. All the scholars in England -flocked to hear his teachings, and he was justly called "the father of -English learning." He it was who first introduced into England the art -of making glass. - -His last work was to translate the Gospel of St John into Northumbrian -English. This was in the year 735. Being too ill to hold a pen, he -dictated to his favourite pupil. "Write quickly," he said, for he felt -that he was dying. "It is finished," answered the lad, and the old -man's heart was satisfied. In a faint, brave voice he chanted the -_Gloria_, and so died singing. - -In those days there was, of course, no such thing as printing. Every -manuscript was written and rewritten, carefully, by hand, and treasured -as a sacred possession in the seats of learning. So proud were they of -their manuscripts that they beautified them with illustrations in -colour. Many of these manuscripts have, of course, been destroyed; for -instance, the Danes in 875 burnt the priceless library of Bishop Acca at -Hexham, destroying in one day the treasured collection of a lifetime; -but many remain to show the love of learning which existed even then. -Bishop Edfrid, who lived in the little rocky island of Lindisfarne, made -a copy of the Gospels, which is looked upon with wonder even to-day. -Strings of beautiful birds and quaint animals are drawn upon his pages; -evangelists with mantles of purple and tunics of blue, pink, or green. -With the writing clear and beautiful, the decorations showing the -greatest care and devotion, this manuscript of one thousand two hundred -years ago has been the delight of thousands, and comes down to us to -witness to the loving care of the scholars of old in the days before -printing was known. - -Great as was their love of beautiful manuscripts, they had an equally -noble passion for grand buildings. A superb monument of simple dignity -and religious grandeur is the Norman Cathedral at Durham, commenced by -Bishop Carilef in 1093, and finished by Bishop Flambard in 1128. -Occupying a wonderful position at the top of a wooded hill, around which -flows the beautiful river Wear, Durham Cathedral is in itself one of the -noblest buildings in the world. While the Church in those troublous -times kept thus a storehouse of learning for serious scholars, other -methods kept the people informed of the more stirring events of their -day. - -In the old days, when no newspapers existed to tell people the news, -when books were scarce and history was not taught to every lad as a part -of his training, the ballad-writer and the wandering minstrel played a -very important part. Ballads, sometimes really fine pieces of poetry, -sometimes a mere halting troop of lame lines, were made upon every -occasion of local or general interest. They were sung to simple and -often beautiful tunes or chants. The best of the minstrels were welcome -to the halls of the nobles, and even to the king himself; the poorest of -them sang on the village green. The ballads were learnt and repeated by -the folk of the country-side; some were in later times printed on loose -sheets, but at first they were handed on from mouth to mouth. -Alterations and errors often crept in; mistakes due to a sameness of -sound. For instance, in the old ballad of _Mary Ambree_, a soldier is -referred to as "Sir John Major," probably meaning Sergeant-major. In -one of the versions of the battle of Chevy Chase, Henry Percy was said -to have been killed there, whereas he really lived on to be slain at -Shrewsbury. But, despite such occasional blunders, the ballads on the -whole throw a vivid light on the manners and customs of the old days, as -well as being usually stirring and sometimes strikingly noble and -pathetic pieces of poetry. They deal as a rule rather with the side -currents than with the main stream of history; but they express -themselves with such homely force and directness that they bring home to -us with wonderful clearness the character of the vigorous manly men with -whose doings they are chiefly concerned. - -During the last one hundred and fifty years many able men have laboured -to collect old ballads, writing them down from the mouths of the -country-folk and printing them in books with notes of explanation. One -of the earliest thus to collect ballads seriously was Bishop Percy; the -best known is Sir Walter Scott, of whose interest in the subject -Lockhart, his biographer, writes very pleasantly. - -Prefaced to many of the stirring tales in this present book are lines -from the old Border ballads from which they are taken. It is to be -hoped that readers will be tempted sooner or later to read the rest of -these fine ballads for themselves. - - - - - *Chapter IV* - - *Sir Patrick Spens* - - - "The king sits in Dunfermline town - Drinking the blood-red wine; - 'O where shall I get a well-skilled skipper - To sail this new ship of mine?'" - - -Almost every collection of Scottish songs contains this picturesque old -ballad, which refers to a very remote time in Scottish history, probably -the end of the thirteenth century. King Alexander III. of Scotland died -in 1285; he had the bitter grief of seeing all his children die before -him. His daughter Margaret had been married to Eric, King of Norway, -and she left a daughter also called Margaret, and known as the "Maid of -Norway." This maid was now heiress to the Scottish throne, and it is -natural to suppose that the lonely king should wish her to return to -Scotland, and should send a richly appointed ship to fetch her back. -And although there is no strictly historical record of such an -expedition, the truth of the ballad is made more probable by the fact -that it opens in the fine old town of Dunfermline. - -Dunfermline was a favourite residence of Alexander, who was killed in -its neighbourhood by a fall from his horse, and was buried in the abbey -there, the ruins of which beautiful structure still remain. - -In this ballad the king is feasting at Dunfermline town, and calls for a -skilful mariner to sail his new ship. An old knight at the king's right -hand answers that the best sailor who ever sailed the sea is Sir Patrick -Spens. So the king writes a letter, sealing it with his own hand, and -sends it to Sir Patrick, commanding him to sail away to Norway over the -white sea-foam and bring home the maid. - -Now every good sailor dreaded the rough Northern seas in winter, so -though the brave Sir Patrick laughed aloud when he began to read, he -wept blinding tears before he had ended. "Who has done this deed?" he -cried; "who has told the king of me and urged him to send us out at this -time of the year to sail on the stormy sea? Yet, wind, wet, hail, or -sleet, we must set out, for 'tis we who must fetch home the maid." - -So they set sail on a Monday morning, and reached Norway on a Wednesday. -History tells us that Eric of Norway was very unwilling to part with his -daughter. This probably accounts for the fact that the old ballad tells -us that the Scotsmen had only been there a fortnight when the lords of -Norway began to say that Sir Patrick and his men were spending the gold -of their king and queen. "Ye lie," cried Sir Patrick, "loudly I hear ye -lie, for I brought with me over the sea enough red gold and white money -to supply the wants of my men. Make ready, make ready, my merry men; we -will sail at daybreak." "Alack," quoth the men, "a deadly storm is -brewing. Yesterday evening the new moon was seen carrying the old moon -in her arms; we shall certainly come to harm if we go to sea." - -Barely had they sailed three leagues when the sky darkened, the wind -blew loudly, and the sea grew boisterous. Soon they were in the midst -of a terrible storm. The anger of the sea was far more dreadful than -the anger of the lords of Norway. The anchors broke away, the topmasts -snapped, and the waves came over the broken ship, tearing her sides -asunder. "O where shall I get a good sailor to take the helm while I -climb the tall topmast to see if I can espy land?" "That I fear ye -never will," cried a sailor as he took the helm, and scarcely had Sir -Patrick gone a step when a plank started in the ship's side and the -water came pouring in. - -"Fetch a web of silken cloth, and fetch a web of twine," cried Sir -Patrick, "and cast them down to our ship's side!" For it was the custom -in those days, when a leak could not be reached from inside the vessel, -to cast down some closely woven stuff in the hope that the suction of -the water would drag it across the leak and stop thus the fatal inrush -of water. Alas! all their efforts failed. Then the ballad-writer says -somewhat grimly of the dandies among the Scottish lords that whereas at -first they grumbled to see the water spoil their fine cork-heeled shoes, -when the storm had done its fatal work the sea was "above their hats"! - - "And many was the feather bed - That fluttered on the foam; - And many was the gude lord's son - That never mair came home! - - The ladyes wrang their fingers white; - The maidens tore their hair, - A' for the sake of their true loves; - For them they'll see nae mair. - - O lang, lang may the ladyes sit, - Wi' their fans into their hand, - Before they see Sir Patrick Spens - Come sailing to the strand! - - And lang, lang may the maidens sit, - With their goud kaims[#] in their hair, - A' waiting for their ain dear loves! - For them they'll see nae mair. - -[#] Golden combs. - - O forty miles off Aberdeen, - 'Tis fifty fathoms deep, - And there lies gude Sir Patrick Spens, - Wi' the Scots lords at his feet." - - - - - *Chapter V* - - *Auld Maitland* - - - "'Wha holds this house?' young Edward cried, - 'Or wha gives it o'er to me?' - ''Tis I will keep my good old house, - While my house will keep me!'" - - -The story of Auld Maitland is said to be taken from a very old ballad, -and known chiefly to the people who lived in the neighbourhood of -Ettrick Forest. The old folks there would while away the long winter -evenings by singing of the deeds of their ancestors, and the ballad of -_Auld Maitland_, as thus chanted, was written down by the mother of -James Hogg, the "Ettrick Shepherd." - -The castle of Thirlestane stood on the river Leader, and still, in its -restored form, deserves its name of "the darksome house." It may have -often withstood the English during the Baliol wars, and hatred of the -English and of Edward I. is expressed with extreme virulence throughout -the poem. Here is the story:-- - -There lived in the south country a king named Edward, who wore the crown -unworthily for fifty years. This king had a nephew, strong in blood and -bone, who bore the same hateful name. One day the young man came before -the king, and kneeling low, he said, "A boon, a boon I crave of thee, my -good uncle. Oft have I wished to take part in our long wars in fair -Scotland. Grant me fifteen hundred chosen strong men to ride there with -me." - -"Certainly thou shalt have them, and more, and I myself, though old and -grey, will see thy host arrayed for battle." - -King Edward sent hither and thither, and assembled fifteen hundred men -on Tyne side, and three times as many at North Berwick, all bound for -battle. They marched up the banks of Tweed, burning the Merse and -Teviotdale, and up and down the Lammermoor Hills, until they came to the -darksome house called, by some, "Leader-Town." - -"Who holds this house?" cried young Edward, "or who gives it over to -me?" He was answered, as proudly, by a grey-haired knight: "I hold my -house of Scotland's king, who pays me in meat and fee, and I will hold -it as long as it will stand together." - -Thereupon the English brought up their sows[#] to the wall with many a -heavy sound, but the soldiers on the wall cast down blazing pitch and -tar barrels, to consume the formidable machine. They also threw down -stones and beams and darts from their springalds,[#] and slew many of -the English. - -[#] A military engine framed of wood, covered with hides and mounted on -wheels, so that, being rolled forward to the foot of the wall, it served -as a shed to defend the miners underneath it and their battering-rams -from the stones and arrows of the soldiers above. - -[#] Large crossbows worked by machinery. - -Fifteen days they besieged the castle of Auld Maitland, but left him at -the end of that time unhurt within his stone stronghold. - -[Illustration: _The Siege of Maitland Castle_] - -They loaded fifteen ships with as much spoil as they could carry away -from the district around, and claimed that now they had conquered -Scotland with buckler, bow, and brand. So they sailed away to France to -meet the old King Edward, who was burning every castle, tower, and town -that he met with. They came at last to the town of Billop-Grace, where -Auld Maitland's three sons were at school. - -Edward had quartered the arms of Scotland with his own. "See'st thou -what I see?" said the eldest son to the youngest; "if that be true that -yonder standard says, then are we all three fatherless, and Scotland -conquered up and down. Never will we bow to the conquerer. Let us go, -my two brothers, and try our chance in an adventure?" Thereupon they -saddled two black horses and a grey, and rode before day-dawn to King -Edward's army. Arrived there, they hovered round, and Maitland begged -to be allowed to carry the king's standard, the Golden Dragon. - -"Where wast thou born and bred, and in what country?" demanded the -knight who bore the banner. "I was born in the north of England," -answered Maitland; "my father was a knight and my mother a lady, and I -myself am a squire of high renown, and may well carry the banner of a -king." "Never had the son of an Englishmen such an eye or brow," -answered the knight; "thou art more like Auld Maitland than any man I -have ever seen; yet God grant that such a gloomy brow I never see again; -he slew and wounded many of our men." - -At the mention of his father's name Maitland's anger burst out, and -lifting up a gilded dagger that hung low by his knee, he struck fiercely -at the standard-bearer, and, catching hold of the corner of the -standard, rode swiftly away with it, crying to his brothers, "Is it not -time to flee?" "Ay, by my sooth," they both shouted, "we will bear you -company." So they rode off at hot speed, the pursuers following. The -youngest Maitland, turning round in the path, drew his brand and killed -fifteen of the foremost, and the rest fell back. Then he dug his spurs -into the sides of his faithful grey, until both the sides ran blood. -"Thou must carry me away, or my life lies in pledge," he cried. - -About daybreak the brothers arrived at their uncle's castle, who, seeing -the three Scottish lads with pursuers riding hard at their heels, -ordered the portcullis to be drawn up and the drawbridge let down, for -that they should lodge with him that night in spite of all England. - -When the three came inside the gate, they leapt down from their horses, -and taking three long spears in their hands, they fought till it was -full daylight, killing and wounding many of the Englishmen round the -drawbridge. Some of the dead were carted away in waggons, and stones -were heaped upon the rest as they lay in the gutter. - -King Edward proclaimed at his pavilion door that three lads of France, -disguised, and with false words, had come and stolen away the standard, -and had slain his men in their lawful attempt to regain it. - -"It ill befits a crowned king to lie," said the youngest Maitland, "and -he shall be reproved for it before I taste meat or drink." - -Straightway he went before King Edward, and, kneeling low, begged leave -to speak a word with him. "Man, thou shalt have leave to speak, even -though thou shouldst speak all day," answered the king. - -"Ye said," spoke the youngest Maitland, "that three young lads of France -had stolen away the standard with a false tale, and slain many men. But -we are not lads of France, and never have pretended to be; we are three -lads of fair Scotland, and the sons of Auld Maitland, nor are there men -in all your host dare fight us three to three." - -"Now, by my sooth," said the young Edward, who stood by, "Ye shall be -well fitted, for Percy shall fight with the eldest, and Egbert Lunn with -thee, and William of Lancaster with the other, and the surviving brother -shall fight with me. Remember, Percy, how oft the Scot has cowered -before thee; I will give thee a rig of land for every drop of Maitland -blood." - -So they set to, and the eldest Maitland clanked Percy over the head and -wounded him so deeply that the best blood of his body ran down his hair. -"I have slain one," shouted Maitland to his brothers; "slay ye the other -two, and that will be good company, and if the two shall slay ye both, -ye shall get no help from me."[#] - -[#] According to the laws of chivalry, having slain his own man, he -could, if he pleased, come to the assistance of the others. - -But Egbert Lunn was like a baited bear and had seen many battles, and -when Maitland saw that his youngest brother was having the worst of it, -he could not restrain himself longer, and shouting, "I am no king; my -word shall not stand," he struck Egbert over the head and slew him. -"Now I have slain two; slay ye one for good company," he cried; "neither -shall ye get any help from me even if the one shall slay ye both." So -the two brothers slew the third, and hung him over the drawbridge for -all the host to see. - -Then they rode and ran, but still got not away, but hovered round, -boasting: "We be three lads of fair Scotland that fain would see some -fighting." - -When young Edward heard this, he cried wrathfully, "I'll take yon lad -and bind him, and bring him bound to thee." - -"Now God forbid that ever thou shouldst try that," said the king; "we -have lost three worthy leaders; wouldst thou be the fourth? Never again -would I be happy if thou wert to hang on yonder drawbridge." - -But Edward struck fiercely at Maitland, cleaving his stout helmet and -biting right near his brain. When Maitland saw his own blood flowing he -threw away his weapon, and springing angrily at young Edward's throat, -he swung him thrice about and flung him on the ground, holding him there -though he was of great strength. - -"Now let him up," cried King Edward, "let him come to me, and for thy -deed thou shalt have three earldoms." - -"Nay," replied Maitland, "never shall it be said in France or in -Scotland that Edward once lay under me and got up again," and with that -he pierced him through the heart and hung him over the drawbridge with -the other three. - -"Now take from me my bed of feathers," said the king, "make me a bed of -straw. Would that I had not lived to see the day that makes my heart so -sad." - - - - - *Chapter VI* - - *The Mystery of the Eildons* - - - "Before their eyes the Wizard lay - As if he had not been dead a day. - His hoary beard in silver roll'd, - He seemed some seventy winters old. - High and majestic was his look, - At which the fellest friends had shook, - And all unruffled was his face; - They trusted his soul had gotten grace." - SCOTT: _Lay of the Last Minstrel._ - - -Just above Melrose, the ruined abbey of which is one of the beauties of -Scotland, there rises a striking mass of three hills known as "the -triple Eildons." They rise very high above the surrounding land, and -are steep enough to need a very hard scramble to mount to the very -summit; but once at the top the view is wonderful indeed. On a fine day -the Tweed can be seen winding in and out most picturesquely, till it -loses itself in the low distant haze of the North Sea, thirty miles -away. But even grander is the view of the entire line of the Cheviots, -like a huge wall, fifty miles long, seen to immense advantage from -Eildon, which towers over the rich valleys of Tweed and Teviot that lie -between. One of the legends of the triple Eildons is that King Arthur -lies sleeping beneath them, some day to awaken. Tradition says that he -fought a great battle near here, by Gala Water, in the Vale of Woe. - -However that may be, it is certain that at the foot of Eildon lie many -famous dead. In Melrose Abbey lies the heart of Robert Bruce, and also -the body of the strong King Alexander II., he who first subdued and made -obedient the wild tribes of Argyle. Here, too, is buried the brave -Douglas who died so gallantly on the field of Otterbourne; and also of -another brave Douglas who got his death wound at Poictiers. - -Sir Walter Scott, who did more than any other man to spread all over the -world the knowledge of Scotland, Scottish history, Scottish romance, and -Scottish character, lies buried on the southern side of Eildon, in the -rival abbey of Dryburgh. But Melrose can claim a man who in his day was -an object of the deepest wonder and terror--Michael Scott, the famous -wizard of the thirteenth century, he who brought the learning of -Aristotle to expound to Western Europe, he whom Dante described as -learned in every deep spell of the magic arts. Perhaps he was only a -scientist, born before his time; yet even to-day old folk in the country -remember that it was he who is said to have cleft the head of Eildon -Hill into three! - -One of the many strange tales told of Michael Scott is this:-- - -They say that the lord of Morpeth, in Northumberland, promised the great -wizard a rich reward if he would only make the sea roll up the valley of -the pretty river Wansbeck till it reached Morpeth, so that vessels could -sail up to the town. The distance is seven miles, and the wizard, -declaring the matter a most simple one, prepared his magic spell. He -then said that if a certain man would run from the sea to the town, and -on no account look back, whatever he heard, the desire of the lord would -be satisfied. The man no sooner started to run than he heard the waters -following him. Faster and faster he went, and faster and faster came -the ocean, dashing and roaring, never overtaking him, but always so near -his heels as to fill him with ever greater and greater terror. - -Before he had finished the third mile he was in such a state of alarm -that he could not resist the impulse to see what was happening. He -turned round, and the spell was broken; the waters had followed him thus -far, but would come no further. Even the best of wizards will fail when -his instructions are not obeyed. - -So says the story. People are free to believe it or not, as they -please. It is certain that the sea runs nearly three miles up the -Wansbeck valley, and there stops; but many people think that that is -explained by the natural rise of the land! - -The story of how Michael Scott came to divide the Eildon Hill into three -runs as follows:-- - -The wizard had one very active little demon, who was always bothering -his master to give him something to do. First Michael commanded him to -put a barrier across the Tweed at Kelso, thinking to keep him quiet for -at least a week; it was done in a single night, and again the demon -demanded work. Then Michael set him to divide Eildon into three; this -also was done in a night, and again the demon came clamouring for -employment. So in despair the wizard ordered him to make ropes out of -sea-sand! This, of course, is impossible, as the sand will not hold -together. But if you go down to the shore on the south-east coast of -Scotland on a dark and stormy night, you can still hear what sounds like -the demon moaning and groaning over his impossible task; and there is -certainly a barrier across the Tweed at Kelso, and the Eildon Hill is -certainly divided into three! So you may believe as much as you please -of this story. - -Another tale that is told of the magic powers of this famous man relates -that he was once chosen to go as ambassador from the King of Scotland to -the King of France on urgent business. Instead of going, as is usual in -such cases, with a number of followers, he conjured up a demon shaped -like a huge black horse, and rode away over the sea. When half-way -across the North Sea the horse said to his rider:-- - -"What do the old women of Scotland say at bed-time?" Had the magician -fallen into the trap and named a prayer, the demon would have -disappeared and the wizard would have been drowned! But Michael Scott -merely commanded his steed to go on quickly and not to talk. Very soon -he came to Paris, tied his horse to the gate of the French king's -palace, and boldly entered and stated his business. The French king -sneered at an ambassador who was not followed by a train of knights, and -began at once to refuse all he asked. "Wait a moment, your Majesty," -said Michael, "till you have seen my horse stamp three times." - -At the first stamp the ground so shook that every steeple in Paris -rocked, making all the bells ring loudly; at the second stamp the king -heard behind him a loud crash that made him leap three feet in the air; -looking round, he saw that three of the towers of his palace had fallen; -the horse raised his foot to stamp a third time, but the king was so -terrified that he shouted hastily that he would grant all that Michael -asked if only he would keep his horse from stamping! - -Whether this tale is true or not, Michael Scott was certainly one of the -ambassadors sent to bring back the Maid of Norway to Scotland on the -death of King Alexander III. He wrote many learned books, and possessed -many others; and they say that when he was buried at Melrose many of -these same magic books were buried with him. - -To this romantic district of the Eildons belonged True Thomas, Thomas -the Rhymer, or Thomas of Ercildoune, as he was variously called, who was -held in awe by Border-folks as a prophet. The ruins of his tower are -still shown by the pretty river Leader, just about two miles above the -spot where it joins the Tweed. The Rhymer seems to have died a few -years before 1300; but despite the passing of six centuries he is still -remembered. The story of how he gained his prophetic powers is quite -worth hearing, whether we believe it or not. - -The tale goes that Thomas was on Huntlie bank, near the Eildon Hills, -when he saw a wonderful lady approaching him. She was dressed in -grass-green silk, with a mantle of fine velvet, and the noble horse on -which she rode had silver bells in its mane. Thomas was so surprised at -this remarkable sight that when the lady came near he dropped on his -knee and pulled off his cap, and cried out, reverently, that she must be -the Queen of Heaven. But she answered that she was Queen of fair -Elfland, and dared him, with a witching glance, to kiss her lips. The -bold and gallant Thomas did not need a second invitation, and promptly -kissed the fairy, when she seized upon him and fled away with him -swifter than the wind. - -Soon all living land was left behind, and they came to a wild place -where three roads met. One was a narrow path, beset with thorns and -briers; and this the fairy said was the road of righteousness, which -very few people ever troubled to find. Another was a broad and -attractive road, which was the way of sinners; whilst the third, a -pretty winding road, led to Elfland, and thither they went together. - -Soon there was neither sun nor moon to lighten the way, and Thomas and -his companion waded through rivers above the knee. The sea moaned and -roared in the dread darkness, and Thomas somehow found that they waded -oft through streams of red blood--blood that had been shed on earth. -Then they came to a beautiful garden, and the Elfland queen gave Thomas -an apple to eat, saying:-- - -"Take this for thy wages, true Thomas; it will give thee the tongue that -can never lie." Poor Thomas turned pale at the thought of such a gift. -"Let my tongue be my own!" he pleaded; "how shall I buy or sell in any -market, flatter a prince, or compliment a lady, if you give me such a -tongue!" - -But the Elfland queen would take no denial, and Thomas had to do her -behest, wherefore for the rest of his life Thomas carried with him this -gift of truthfulness. - - - - - *Chapter VII* - - *Black Agnes of Dunbar* - - -The fortress of Dunbar was always a very important one to the Scots. It -commanded the coast road from England across the Border to Edinburgh, -not only one of the best routes in itself, but one which had the -additional advantage to the English that by following it they could keep -in touch with their ships. So it is not surprising that many stirring -events in history took place at this historic town. - -King Edward I. of England won a very important victory at Dunbar during -his first invasion of Scotland, and to the place which had witnessed the -triumph of the father, his son, Edward II., fled for safety after his -defeat at Bannockburn, taking ship thence back to England. In the time -of Mary Queen of Scots the fortress was held by Earl Bothwell; from here -he consented to the surrender of poor Mary, and here he rested in safety -before his final flight to Scandinavia. Oliver Cromwell fought and won -at Dunbar his desperate battle with the Scottish Presbyterians, the fate -of which for some time hung in the balance. Cromwell considered the -place so valuable that he had new harbour works made there, and a -portion of his work, forming part of the east pier of the present much -larger harbour, is still to be seen. - -The last time that Dunbar resounded to the march of an army bent on -immediate fight was in 1745, when the boastful English general, Sir John -Cope, landed here to engage the Highland followers of Prince Charles -Edward (called the "Young Pretender"). Prince Charlie was at Edinburgh, -and Dunbar Castle commanded the road into England. Cope asserted that -the Highlanders would run away at the mere sight of his army. He -marched westward, but was surprised in the early morning by his enemies -when near Prestonpans. In less than ten minutes it was the unprepared -English who were flying in disorder, utterly routed. - -The foregoing is but a brief outline of the stormy history of those grey -and ruined battlements overlooking the bleak North Sea at the -southernmost point of entrance to the noble Firth of Forth. The mention -of these stirring incidents, however, will serve to show what a very -important place Dunbar was, and that it was necessary to Scottish safety -that a strong hand should have charge of its fortress. We are now to -see how at one of the most critical hours a woman was to hold command, -and to hold it worthily. - -Early in the reign of King Edward III. of England Scottish affairs were -in some confusion. King Robert Bruce had lately died, leaving a son, -King David II., then only five years old. That great leader and friend -of Bruce, Randolph, Earl of Moray, was appointed Guardian of Scotland, -but he too soon died. Edward III., anxious to interfere in Scottish -affairs, agreed to help Edward Balliol to make himself king of the -Scots. So an English army was again in Scotland, and one of the places -they were keenest to take was the fortress of Dunbar. - -[Illustration: _Black Agnes_] - -The castle was a very strong one. It was built on a chain of great -rocks that stretched out to sea, and could only be reached from land by -one road, which was, of course, strictly guarded. The lord of the -castle was the Earl of March (the word March in those days meant a -border-land), but he was away with the Scottish army, and his wife was -in charge of the castle. She was the daughter of that brave Earl of -Moray, Guardian of Scotland, who has just been mentioned. The English -army was led by an experienced general, the Earl of Salisbury, and he -probably thought that he would not have much trouble in overcoming -"Black Agnes," as the dark-haired countess was called. - -He soon discovered that she was of heroic mould, however, for though he -himself led the storming-parties, she on her side, urging on her men in -person, hurled back his every attack. The Lady Agnes was quite -fearless, and treated the siege as if it were a pastime to be enjoyed. -When the English, with machines made for the purpose, hurled heavy -stones against the walls, Black Agnes would call one of her maidens with -a napkin to wipe off the dust that they made! The biggest of all the -English war-machines was called a sow, and when it was brought to the -walls the countess cried out in rough jest that it was surrounded by -little pigs. At the same moment a mass of rock, which she had caused to -be loosened, was hurled by her men on to the English, crushing their sow -and many soldiers with it. - -At last there seemed a chance for the English. Near midnight a Scot -came into their camp, saying that he was ready to betray the castle for -a reward. The Earl of Salisbury and some chosen knights rode carefully -forward, and found the gate open and the portcullis raised, as the man -had promised. But for all that, they doubted if Black Agnes could so -far relax her vigilance; wherefore instead of the earl entering first, -he sent forward a retainer. His caution was soon justified, for no -sooner had this man passed the gate than the portcullis fell. It was a -trick to capture the earl, but the Scots were disappointed this time. - -The gallant English lord was loud in admiration of the brave Scottish -lady who was thus defying him. Once when examining the defences with a -lieutenant, an arrow struck his companion dead. "The countess's -love-arrows pierce to the heart," said Salisbury, on his return to the -camp. Despite the courtly manner in which the well-bred baron referred -to the lady, however, he did not relax his efforts to overcome her. - -Salisbury's land forces had now surrounded the castle on the land side, -while his ships at sea completed the blockade. The garrison was -threatened with starvation. Greater and greater became the privations -of the heroic defenders. The countess, no less brave than ever, hoped -on, though ground for hope grew less and less. She could not bring -herself to think of defeat, and her brave, bright face still gave -courage and inspiration to all. - -Meantime the story of the struggle and difficulties of the defenders was -raising up helpers, and Sir Alexander Ramsay of Dalhousie got ready a -light vessel filled with provisions and manned by forty brave Scots, who -only waited for a dark night to make the attempt to steal past the -English fleet. They lay hidden by the Bass Rock, a lofty islet at the -mouth of the Firth of Forth, some seven or eight miles from Dunbar, -until one starless night they stole very cautiously down the wild -coast-line of Haddingtonshire, sometimes all but bumping into an English -vessel in the dark. Fortune favours the brave, and despite dangers and -difficulties they got safely at last to the castle, whose distant light -had been their guide. Be sure Black Agnes welcomed them! This proved to -be the turning-point of the long siege. With fresh hope, the garrison -made a sudden sally on the English, driving back their advance guard, -and after five months of fierce but fruitless attempts, Salisbury was -compelled to withdraw his forces and admit defeat. Nevertheless, the -English were gallant enough to sing their praises of this Scottish -heroine; their minstrels made songs in her honour, in one of which -Salisbury is made to say:-- - - "Came I early, came I late, - I found Black Agnes at the gate." - - - - - *Chapter VIII* - - *The Young Tamlane* - - - "He's ta'en her by the milk-white hand, - Among the leaves so green." - - -This tale belongs to the romantic side of the Border minstrelsy, and -illustrates some of the common superstitions of olden times concerning -elves and fairies. The scene is laid in the Selkirk or Ettrick Forest, -a mountainous tract covered with the remains of the old Caledonian -Forest. About a mile above Selkirk is a plain called Carterhaugh, and -here may still be seen those fairy rings of which it was believed that -anyone sleeping upon one will wake in a fairy city. And here was, and -perhaps still is, an ancient well. The ballad opens by telling how all -young maids were forbidden to come or go by way of Carterhaugh, "for -young Tamlane (or Thomalin) is there," and every one going by -Carterhaugh is obliged to leave him something in pledge. But the Lady -Janet, the fairest of the Selkirk lasses, was obstinate, and declared -that she would come or go to Carterhaugh, as she pleased, "and ask no -leave of him," since the land there belonged to her by hereditary right. -She kilted her green mantle above her knee, and braided her yellow hair -above her brow, and off she went to Carterhaugh. When she got to the -well, she found the steed of the elfin knight Tamlane standing there, -but he himself was away. - - "She hadna pu'd a red, red rose, - A rose but barely three; - Till up and starts a wee, wee man - At Lady Janet's knee. - - Says--'Why pu' ye the rose, Janet? - What gars (makes) ye break the tree? - Or why come ye to Carterhaugh, - Withouten leave of me?' - - Says--'Carterhaugh it is mine ain; - My daddy gave it me: - I'll come and gang to Carterhaugh, - And ask nae leave o' thee.'" - - -But Tamlane took her by the hand and worked upon her his spells, which -no maiden might resist, however proud she might be. - -When she came back to her father's hall, she looked pale and wan; and it -seemed that she had some sore sickness. She ceased to take any pleasure -in combing her yellow hair, and everything she ate seemed like to be her -death. When her ladies played at ball, she, once the strongest player, -was now the faintest. One day her father spoke out, and said he, "Full -well I know that you must have some lover." She said:-- - - "'If my love were an earthly knight, - As he's an elfin grey, - I wouldna give my own true love - For no lord that ye hae.'" - - -Then she prinked herself, and preened herself, all by the light of the -moon alone, and went away to Carterhaugh, to speak with Tamlane. When -she got to the well, she found the steed standing, but Tamlane was away. -She had barely pulled a double rose, when up started the elf. - -"Why pull ye the rose, Janet?" says he; "why pull ye the rose within -this garden green?" "The truth ye'll tell me, Tamlane; were ye ever in -holy chapel, or received into the Christian Church?" "The truth I'll -tell thee, Janet; a knight was my father, and a lady was my mother, like -your own parents. Randolph, Earl Moray, was my sire; Dunbar, Earl -March, is thine. We loved when we were children, which yet you may -remember. When I was a boy just turned nine, my uncle sent for me to -hunt, and hawk, and ride with him, and keep him company. There came a -wind out of the north, a deep sleep came over me, and I fell from my -horse. The queen of the fairies took me off to yon green hill, and now -I'm a fairy, lithe and limber. In Fairyland we know neither sickness -nor pain. We quit our body, or repair unto them, when we please. We can -inhabit, earth, or air, as we will. Our shapes and size we can convert -to either large or small. We sleep in rose-buds, revel in the stream, -wanton lightly on the wind, or glide on a sunbeam. I would never tire, -Janet, to dwell in Elfland, were it not that every seven years a tithe -is paid to hell, and I am so fair of flesh, I fear 'twill be myself. If -you dare to win your true love, you have no time to lose. To-night is -Hallowe'en, and the fairy folk ride. If you would win your true love, -bide at Miles Cross." Miles Cross is about half a mile from -Carterhaugh, and Janet asked how she should know Tamlane among so many -unearthly knights. "The first company that passes by, let them go. The -next company that passes by, let them go. The third company that passes -by, I'll be one of those. First let pass the black steed, Janet, then -let pass the brown; but grip the milk-white steed, and pull down the -rider-- - - "For I ride on the milk-white steed, - And aye nearest the town; - Because I was a christened knight, - They gave me that renown." - - -Tamlane went on to explain that his fairy comrades would make every -effort to disgust her with her captive. They would turn him in her very -arms into an adder; they would change him into a burning faggot, into a -red-hot iron goad, but she must hold him fast. In order to remove the -enchantment, she must dip him in a churn of milk, and then in a barrel -of water. She must still persevere, for they would shape him in her -arms into a badger, eel, dove, swan, and, last of all, into a naked man, -but - - "Cast your green mantle over me, - I'll be myself again." - - -So fair Janet in her green mantle went that gloomy night to Miles Cross. -The heavens were black, the place was inexpressibly dreary, a north wind -raged; but there she stood, eagerly wishing to embrace her lover. -Between the hours of twelve and one she heard strange eldrich sounds and -the ringing of elfin bridles, which gladdened her heart. The oaten -pipes of the faires grew shrill, the hemlock blew clear. The fairies -cannot bear solemn sounds or sober thoughts; they sing like skylarks, -inspired by love and joy. Fair Janet stood upon the dreary heath, and -the sounds waxed louder as the fairy train came riding on. Will o' the -Wisp shone out as a twinkling light before them, and soon she saw the -fairy bands passing. She let the black steed go by, and then the brown. -But she gripped fast the milk-white steed, and pulled down the rider. -Then up rose an eldrich cry, "He's won among us all!" As Janet grasped -him in her arms the fairies changed him into a newt, an adder, and many -other fantastic and terrifying shapes. She held him fast in every -shape. They turned him at last into a naked man in her arms, but she -wrapped him in her green mantle. At last her stedfast courage was -rewarded, she redeemed the fairies' captive, and by so doing won his -true love! Then up spoke the Queen of Fairies, "She that has borrowed -young Tamlane has got a stately groom! She's taken the bonniest knight -in all my company! But had I known, Tamlane," said the fairy queen, "had -I known that a lady would borrow thee, I would have taken out thy two -grey eyes, and put in wooden eyes. I would have taken out thy heart of -flesh, Tamlane, and put in a heart of stone. I would have paid my tithe -seven times to hell ere I would have let her win you away." - - - - - *Chapter IX* - - *The Gay Goss-Hawk* - - -In the opening lines of this old ballad Lord William is talking to the -goss-hawk, who tells his master that he is looking pale and thin, and -seeks to know che cause. - - "O waly, waly, my gay goss-hawk, - Gin your feathering be sheen!" - "And waly, waly, my master dear, - Gin ye look pale and lean! - - O have ye tint[#] at tournament - Your sword, or yet your spear? - Or mourn ye for the Southern lass, - Whom ye may not win near?" - -[#] lost - - "I have not tint at tournament - My sword, nor yet my spear; - But sair[#] I mourn for my true love, - Wi' mony a bitter tear. - -[#] sore - - But weel's me on ye, my gay goss-hawk, - Ye can baith speak and flee; - Ye sall carry a letter to my love, - Bring an answer back to me." - - "But how sall I your true love find, - Or how suld I her know? - I bear a tongue ne'er wi' her spake, - An eye that ne'er her saw." - - "O weel sall ye my true love ken, - Sae sune[#] as ye her see; - For, of a' the flowers of fair England, - The fairest flower is she. - -[#] soon. - - The red that's on my true love's cheek - Is like blood-drops on the snaw; - The white that is on her breast bare, - Like the down o' the white sea-maw. - - And even at my love's bour-door - There grows a flowering birk;[#] - And ye maun sit and sing thereon - As she gangs to the kirk. - -[#] birch. - - And four-and-twenty fair ladyes - Will to the Mass repair; - But weel may ye my ladye ken, - The fairest ladye there." - - Lord William has written a love-letter, - Put it under his pinion grey; - An' he is awa' to Southern land - As fast as wings can gae. - - And even at the ladye's bour[#] - There grew a flowering birk; - And he sat down and sung thereon - As she gaed to the kirk. - -[#] bower. - - And weel he kent that ladye fair - Amang her maidens free, - For the flower that springs in May morning - Was not sae sweet as she. - - He lighted at the ladye's yate[#] - And sat him on a pin,[#] - And sang fu' sweet the notes o' love, - Till a' was cosh[#] within. - -[#] gate. -[#] pine. -[#] quiet. - - And first he sang a low low note, - And syne[#] he sang a clear; - And aye the o'erword[#] o' the sang - Was--"Your love can no win here." - -[#] then. -[#] refrain. - - "Feast on, feast on, my maidens a', - The wine flows you amang, - While I gang to my shot-window - And hear yon bonnie bird's sang. - - Sing on, sing on, my bonny bird, - The sang ye sung yestreen, - For weel I ken, by your sweet singing - Ye are frae my true love sen."[#] - -[#] sent. - - O first he sang a merry song, - And syne he sang a grave; - And syne he picked his feathers grey, - To her the letter gave. - - "Have there a letter from Lord William; - He says he's sent ye three; - He canna wait your love langer, - But for your sake he'll die." - - "Gae bid him bake his bridal bread, - And brew his bridal ale; - And I shall meet him in Mary's Kirk, - Lang, lang ere it be stale." - - The lady's gane to her chamber, - And a moanfu' woman was she; - As gin[#] she had taken a sudden brash[#] - And were about to die. - -[#] if -[#] illness. - - "A boon, a boon, my father dear, - A boon I beg of thee!" - "Ask not that haughty Scottish lord, - For him ye ne'er shall see. - - But for your honest asking else, - Weel granted it shall be." - "Then, gin I die in Southern land, - In Scotland gar[#] bury me. - -[#] cause - - And the first kirk that ye come to, - Ye's gar the mass be sung; - And the next kirk that ye come to - Ye's gar the bells be rung. - - And when ye come to St Mary's Kirk, - Ye's tarry there till night." - And so her father pledged his word, - And so his promise plight. - - She has ta'en her to her bigly bower - As fast as she could fare; - And she has drank a sleepy draught, - That she had mixed wi' care. - - And pale, pale grew her rosy cheek, - That was sae bright of blee,[#] - And she seemed to be as surely dead - As any one could be. - -[#] bloom. - - Then spake her cruel step-minnie,[#] - "Tak ye the burning lead, - And drap a drap on her bosome, - To try if she be dead." - -[#] mother. - - They took a drap o' boiling lead, - They drapped it on her breast; - "Alas! alas!" her father cried, - "She's dead without the priest." - - She neither chattered with her teeth, - Nor shivered with her chin; - "Alas! alas!" her father cried, - "There is nae breath within." - - Then up arose her seven brethren, - And hewed to her a bier; - They hewed it frae the solid aik,[#] - Laid it o'er wi' silver clear. - -[#] oak. - - Then up and gat her seven sisters, - And sewed to her a kell,[#] - And every steek[#] that they put in - Sewed to a siller bell. - -[#] shroud. -[#] stitch. - - The first Scots kirk that they cam to, - They garred the bells be rung; - The next Scots kirk that they cam to, - They garred fhe mass be sung. - - But when they cam to St Mary's Kirk, - There stude spearmen all on a row; - And up and started Lord William, - The chieftaine amang them a'. - - "Set down, set down the bier," he said, - "Let me look her upon;" - But as soon as Lord William touched her hand, - Her colour began to come. - - She brightened like the lily flower, - Till her pale colour was gone; - With rosy cheek, and ruby lip, - She smiled her love upon. - - "A morsel of your bread, my lord, - And one glass of your wine; - For I have fasted these three lang days, - All for your sake and mine. - - Gae hame, gae hame, my seven bauld brothers, - Gae hame and blaw your horn! - I trow[#] ye wad hae gi'en me the skaith,[#] - But I've gi'en you the scorn. - -[#] reckon. -[#] harm. - - Commend me to my grey father, - That wished my soul gude rest; - But wae be to my cruel step-dame, - Garred burn me on the breast." - - "Ah! woe to you, you light woman! - And ill death may ye die! - For we left father and sisters at hame, - Breaking their hearts for thee." - - - - - *Chapter X* - - *The Corbies* - - -Two ancient songs have come down to us in which the principal speakers -are supposed to be Corbies, carrion-crows or ravens, birds which feed on -the flesh of the dead. In both songs the birds discuss a dead knight -upon whose rich body they wish to feed. But deep interest lies in the -fact that the two song-writers present entirely different views of the -case. One appeals to our feelings with a beautiful and touching picture -of devotion, the knight's companions proving true to him in death. The -other is far more grim, and causes us to shudder at the utter loneliness -of the dead man, deserted by all those who in life were beholden to his -friendship. Both are powerful and striking examples of ancient vigour -and directness. - - THE TWA CORBIES - - As I was walking all alane, - I heard twa corbies making a mane;[#] - The tane unto the t'other say, - "Where sall we gang and dine to-day?"-- - -[#] moan. - - "In behint yon auld fail dyke, - I wot there lies a new-slain knight; - And naebody kens that he lies there, - But his hawk, his hound, and lady fair. - - His hound is to the hunting gane, - His hawk, to fetch the wild-fowl hame, - His lady's ta'en another mate, - Sa we may mak our dinner sweet. - - Ye'll sit on his white hause-bane,[#] - And I'll pick out his bonny blue een: - Wi' ae lock o' his gowden hair, - We'll theek[#] our nest when it grows bare.[#] - -[#] neck. -[#] thatch. -[#] Variant reading--"We'll theek our nest--it's a' blawn hare." - - Mony a one for him makes mane, - But nane sall ken where he is gane; - O'er his white banes, when they are bare, - The wind sall blaw for evermair." - -[Illustration: The Twa Corbies] - - - - THE THREE RAVENS - - There were three ravens sat on a tre, - They were as black as they might be: - - The one of them said to his mate, - "Where shall we our breakfast take?"-- - - "Downe in yonder greene field, - There lies a knight slain under his shield; - - "His hounds they lie downe at his feete, - So well they their master keepe; - - "His hawkes they flie so eagerlie, - There's no fowle dare come him nie. - - "Down there comes a fallow doe, - As great with yong as she might goe. - - "She lift up his bloudy hed, - And kist his wounds that were so red. - - "She got him up upon her backe, - And carried him to earthen lake. - - "She buried him before the prime, - She was dead her selfe ere even song time. - - "God send every gentleman, - Such hawkes, such houndes, and such a leman." - - - - - *Chapter XI* - - *Otterbourne and Chevy Chase* - - - "It fell about the Lammas-tide, - When moor-men win their hay, - The doughty Douglas bound him to ride - Into England, to drive a prey." - - -The ballads of _Otterbourne_ and _Chevy Chase_ record the Scottish and -English versions of a most stubborn Border battle. Whichever of the two -contains the greater amount of truth, it is clear that the day was a -bloody one, and that, moreover, it was fought on both sides with a -chivalrous admiration for the powers of the other which is -characteristic of those strife-loving days. Sir Philip Sidney wrote of -it: "I never heard the old song of Percy and Douglas, that I found not -my heart moved more than with a trumpet." - -The ballad of _Chevy Chase_ is of later date than its rival, and it -contains certainly one misstatement of historical fact, since Hotspur -outlived the fight at Chevy Chase (1388) and was slain some fifteen -years later at the battle of Shrewsbury (1403). - -The Scottish version of the battle of Otterbourne tells us that it was -about the Lammas-tide or haymaking time of the year 1388 when the brave -Earl of Douglas, with his brother, the Earl of Murray, made a foray into -England, with a gay band of Gordons, Graemes, and Lindsays. He burned -Tynedale and half of Bamborough and Otterdale, and marching up to -Newcastle, rode round about the castle, crying, "Who is lord of this -castle, and who is its lady?" - -Then up spake proud Lord Percy, known as _Hotspur_, and said, "I am the -lord of this castle, and my wife is the gay lady of it." - -"That pleases me well," answered Douglas, "yet, ere I cross the Border -hills, one of us shall die." - -Then Percy took his long spear, shod with metal, and rode right -furiously at the Douglas; but his lady, looking from the castle wall, -grew pale as she saw her proud lord go down before the Scottish spear. - -"Had we two been alone, with never an eye to see, I would have slain -thee, but thy lance I will carry with me," said Douglas, and, to -complete the disgrace, this lance bore attached to it the Percy pennon. - -"Go then to Otterbourne," said Percy, "and wait there for me, and if I -come not before the end of three days, call me a false knight." - -"Otterbourne is a pleasant and a bonny place," answered Douglas; "but -though the deer run wild among the hills and dales, and the birds fly -wild from tree to tree, yet is there neither bread nor kale nor aught -else to feed me and my men. Yet will I wait thee at Otterbourne to give -thee welcome, and if thou come not in three days' time, false lord, will -I call thee!" - -"By the might of Our Lady, I will come," cried the proud Percy. "And -I," answered Douglas, "plight thee my troth that I will meet thee -there." - -So Douglas and his men encamped at Otterbourne, and sent out their -horses to pasture. - -But before the peep of dawn, up spake a little page: "Waken ye, waken -ye, my good lord; the Percy is upon us!" "Ye lie, ye lie," shouted -Douglas; "yesterday, Percy had not men enough to fight us. But if thou -lie not, the finest bower in Otterbourne shall be thy reward, and if -what thou sayest prove false, thou shalt be hanged on the highest tree -in Otterbourne. Yet I have dreamed a dreary dream; I dreamed that a -dead man won a battle and that I was that dead man." - -So Douglas belted on his good broadsword, and ran to the field, but -forgot his helmet, and Percy and the Douglas fought with their swords -together till the blood ran down like rain, and the Douglas fell, -wounded on the brow. - -Then he called to him his little foot-page and told him to run quickly -and bring to him his sister's son, Sir Hugh Montgomery. - -"My good nephew," said Douglas, "the death of one matters not; last -night I dreamed a dreary dream, but yet I know the day is thine. My -wound is deep; take thou the vanguard; bury me in the bracken high that -grows on yonder lea, and let no man living know that a Scot lies there. -And know that I am glad to die in battle, like my good forefathers, and -not on a bed of sickness." - -Montgomery lifted up his noble lord, while his eyes wept salt tears, and -hid him in the bracken bush that his followers might not see, and before -daylight the Scots slew many a gallant Englishman. The good Gordons -steeped hose and shoes in the blood of the English; the Lindsays flew -about like fire till the battle was ended, and Percy and Montgomery -fought till the blood ran down between them. - -"Now, yield thee, yield thee, Percy," cried Sir Hugh, "or I vow I will -lay thee low!" - -"Since it must be so," quoth Earl Percy, "to whom shall I yield?" - -"Thou shalt not yield to me or to any lord, but to the bracken bush that -grows on yonder lea!" - -"I will not yield to briar or bracken bush, but I would yield to Lord -Douglas or to Sir Hugh Montgomery, if he were here." - -Then Montgomery made himself known, and as soon as Percy knew that it -was Montgomery, he struck the point of his sword into the ground, and -Montgomery, who was a courteous knight, took him up by the hand. - -This deed was done at Otterbourne at daybreak, where Earl Douglas was -buried by the bracken bush, and Percy led captive into Scotland, and it -is said that Hotspur, for his ransom, built for Montgomery the castle of -Penoon, in Ayrshire. - -But the English version of these stirring events can also claim to be -heard; the ballad upon it is called _Chevy Chase_, which means the Chase -on the Cheviots; and so popular was this ballad that its name was given -to a boys' game, which is so called even to this day. It tells how the -Percy, from his castle in Northumberland, vowed that within three days -he would hunt on the mountains of Cheviot in spite of the doughty -Douglas and his men, and that he would kill and carry away the fattest -deer in Cheviot. - -"By my faith," said Douglas, when he heard of the boast, "but I will -hinder his hunting." - -Percy left Bamborough Castle with a mighty company, no less than fifteen -hundred bold archers chosen out of three shires. - -The foray began on a Monday morning in the high Cheviot Hills, and many -a child yet unborn was to rue the day. - -The drivers went through the woods and raised the deer, and the bowmen -shot them with their broad arrows. Then the wild deer rushed through -the woods, only to be met and killed by the greyhounds, and before -noontide a hundred fat deer lay dead. The bugles sounded, "A mort!" and -on all sides Percy and his men assembled to see the cutting up of the -venison. - -Said Percy: "The Douglas promised to meet me here this day, yet right -well did I know that he would fail." But a Northumberland squire saw -the doughty Douglas coming with a mighty company, with spear and -batter-axe and sword. Never were men hardier of heart and hand seen in -Christendom--two thousand spearmen born along the banks of the Tweed and -Teviotdale. Then said Lord Percy: "Now leave off the cutting of the -deer, and take good heed to your bows, for never had ye more need of -them since ye were born." - -Earl Douglas rode before his men, his armour glittering like a burning -coal, and never was such a bold baron. "Tell me whose men ye are," said -he, "and who gave ye leave to hunt in Cheviot without word asked of me?" - -Then answered Lord Percy, "We will not tell thee whose men we are, and -we will hunt here in spite of thee. We have killed the fattest harts in -Cheviot and will carry them away." - -"By my troth," said Douglas, "one of us shall die this day. Yet it were -great pity to kill all these guiltless men. Thou, Percy, art a lord of -land, and I am called an earl in my country; let our men stand by, and -we will fight together." - -"Now a curse on his crown, who says nay to that," cried Lord Percy. "By -my troth, Douglas, thou shalt never see the day either in England, -Scotland, or France, when I fear to meet one, man to man." - -Then spoke Richard Witherington, a squire of Northumberland. "Never -shall this be told in England, to the shame of good King Harry the -Fourth. I wot ye be two great lords, and I but a poor squire, yet would -I never stand and look on while my captain fought. While I can wield a -weapon, I will not fail, both heart and hand." - -So the English with good heart bent their bows, and slew seven score -spearmen with the first arrows they shot. - -Earl Douglas stayed on the field, but that he was a good captain was -truly seen, for he wrought great woe and mischief. He parted his host -in three like a proud chieftain, and they came in on every side with -their mighty spears, wounding the English archers and slaying many a -brave man. - -Then the English pulled out their brands, and it was a heavy sight to -see the bright swords light on the helmets, striking through the rich -mail, and the cloth of many folds under it, and laying many low. - -At last the Douglas and the Percy met and fought with swords of Milan -steel till the blood spurted like rain and hail from their helmets. - -"Hold thee, Percy," said Douglas, "and I will bring thee to James, our -Scottish king, where thou shalt have an earl's wages and free ransom, -for thou art the manfullest man that ever yet I conquered fighting in -the field." - -"Nay, then," said Lord Percy. "I told thee before that never would I -yield to any man of woman born." - -With that there came an arrow hastily from a mighty man, and struck Earl -Douglas through the breast bone, and never more did he speak a word but -only this: "Fight, my merry men, while ye may--my life's days are done." - -Then Percy leaned on his hand, and when he saw the Douglas die, he said, -"Woe is me. I would have parted with my land for three years to have -saved thy life, for a better man of heart and hand was not in all the -north country." - -But Sir Hugh Montgomery, a Scottish knight, when he saw the Douglas done -to death, grasped a spear and rode through a hundred archers, never -slackening his pace till he came to Lord Percy, whom he set upon, -sending his mighty spear clean through his body, so that a man might see -a long cloth-yard and more at the other side. There were no two better -captains in Christendom than were that day slain. - -When one of the Northumberland archers saw this, he drew an arrow to his -bow and set upon Montgomery, until the swan feathers of his arrows were -wet with his heart's blood. - -Not one man gave way, but still they stood hewing at each other, while -they were able. - -This battle began in Cheviot, an hour before noon, nor was it half done -at evensong, but they fought on by moonlight though many had scarce the -strength to stand. Of fifteen hundred English archers only fifty-three -remained, and of two thousand Scottish spearmen only fifty-five -remained, all the rest being slain in Cheviot. - -With Lord Percy were slain, Sir John of Agerstone, Sir Roger the gentle -Hartly, Sir William the bold Heron, Sir George the worthy Lovel, a -renowned knight, and Sir Ralph the rich Rugby. Woe was it that -Witherington was slain, for when both his legs were hewn in two he -kneeled and fought on his knees. - -With the brave Douglas were slain Sir Hugh Montgomery, and worthy Sir -Davy Liddle, that was his sister's son; Sir Charles, a Murray who -refused to flee, and Sir Hugh Maxwell. On the morrow they made biers of -birch and grey hazel, and many widows bore weeping from the field the -bodies of their dead husbands. Well may Teviotdale and Northumberland -wail and moan for two such great captains. - -Word came to James the Scottish king at Edinburgh, that the brave -Douglas, Lieutenant of the Marches, lay slain in Cheviot, and he wept -and wrung his hands, and said, "Alas! Woe is me; there will never be -such another captain in Scotland." - -Word came also to London, to Harry the Fourth, that Lord Percy, -Lieutenant of the Marches, lay slain in Cheviot. "God have mercy on his -soul," said King Harry; "I have a hundred captains in England as good as -he, yet I wager my life that his death shall be well avenged"; and this -vow he kept, at the Battle of Homildon Hill, where he beat down six and -thirty Scottish knights on one day. - -But so real to the Borderers was their grief over their dead that the -ballad ends with a quaint but heartfelt appeal to the Prince of Peace:-- - - "Jesus Christ our ills abate, - And to His bliss us bring! - Thus was the hunting of the Cheviot; - God send us all good ending!" - - - - - *Chapter XII* - - *The Douglas Clan* - - -The Douglas clan was at one time the strongest of all the great Scotch -families on the Border; they were wild and proud and recklessly brave, -and no account of the Borders would be complete without the broad -details of their tragic history. - -The first to raise the fame of the family to the highest place in honour -was the brave Sir James Douglas, the friend of Bruce, and, after Bruce -himself, the greatest hero among the Scots of that stormy period. He -was a powerful, black-haired man with a dark complexion, and was called -by the English "The Black Douglas." So great was the terror of his name -that English mothers on the Border, when their children were naughty, -would tell them that the Black Douglas would get them, or if they were -fretful they would comfort them with the assurance-- - - "Hush ye, hush ye, little pet ye, - Hush ye, hush ye, do not fret ye, - The Black Douglas shall not get ye." - - -Sir Walter Scott relates how, when the garrison of Roxburgh Castle were -making merry at Shrovetide, the castle was surprised by the Douglas, who -mounted to the ramparts where a woman was crooning the refrain to her -babe. "You are not so sure of that," he said, laying his hand upon her -shoulder. It is pleasant to read that on this occasion the Black -Douglas did not turn out so black as he was painted, and beyond her -fright the woman came to no harm at the hands of Sir James and his -followers. - -At one time the English had seized the Douglas castle in Lanarkshire, -and Sir James and his men disguised themselves and came to church on -Palm Sunday, when the English soldiers were worshipping there. Suddenly -in the midst of the service Douglas dropped his cloak and drew his sword -and shouted: "A Douglas! a Douglas!" - -The English soldiers were taken by surprise, and were killed before they -could recover themselves. This deed brought Douglas great fame, but -after all it was hardly a fair fight. - -In 1327, when Edward III. was only fifteen years old, Douglas led a raid -into Northumberland and Durham which did the English much damage. -Edward came after them with an English army, and the Scots, being -outnumbered, were compelled to dodge up and down in order to avoid a -pitched battle. But in one bold night attack, Douglas and five hundred -of the Scots penetrated to the king's tent, and almost succeeded in -taking him prisoner. Failing in this, they returned unharmed to their -own country, and shortly afterwards, at the Treaty of Northampton in -1328, King Edward III. agreed to acknowledge Robert Bruce as King of -Scotland, and the long war between Scotland and England ended. - -A year later Bruce died, but after a romantic custom of that day he -bequeathed his heart to his gallant friend, Sir James Douglas. Douglas -had this heart enclosed in a silver casket and carried it hung about his -neck. The war with England being over, this restless knight sought -adventures in Spain, fighting against the Saracen followers of Mahomet. -In one fierce battle, he and his men were surrounded by their enemies. -Douglas, probably realising that this was his last fight, took the -casket and flung it into the midst of his foes, crying: "Go first in -fight, as thou wert used to do; Douglas will follow thee or die!" He -then rushed desperately after it, fighting his way on till at last his -dead body fell on this dearly prized relic, which he guarded to the end. -The casket lies buried in the Abbey of Melrose, but Douglas's body was -laid in his own church. - -Of the bold Earl Douglas who fought and died at Otterbourne the tale is -told in our last chapter. We may pass on to another famous Douglas, -this time a heroine, who lived in the reign of James I. of Scotland -(quite a different king from James I. of England). When James was only -twelve years old, he was taken prisoner by Henry IV. of England, and -kept captive till he was thirty. But he was given an education fit for -a king, and in England he met the lady he devotedly loved, Lady Joan -Beaufort, daughter of the Earl of Somerset. He addressed a beautiful -poem to her and married her, and these two always most dearly loved one -another. When at last his long captivity came to an end, he got back to -Scotland to find the kingdom in disorder, and the nobles defying the law -and acting as they pleased. James, a strong and able king, set his -strength against their strength, and gradually got his whole kingdom -into order and ruled with wisdom and justice. - -But in these days it was impossible to be firm without sternness, and -James made enemies. When he was staying at Perth one Christmas-time, -these enemies, led by a bold villain called Sir Robert Graham, secretly -encircled the house where he was staying. The unarmed king only heard -of their presence when they were advancing, fully armed, to his room. -He tore up a plank in the floor, seeking thus to find a hiding-place. -The enemies were almost at the door, and it was necessary to delay their -entrance, for one minute might save his life. All the bars of the door -had been removed beforehand, but a brave heroine, Kate Douglas, thrust -her arm through the staples. The villains were angered to find the door -barred against them, and hurled their weight upon it. - -The Douglas heroine stood there, her pale face set hard, without a cry, -as the crash broke the bone of her brave strong arm, and the would-be -murderers staggered in. But alas! the sacrifice of Kate Douglas availed -nothing except to place her name upon the immortal roll of the heroes of -the ages, for after a brief search the murderers found the king and slew -him. - -The queen, who had loved James with the utmost devotion, found her love -give added fierceness to her hate against his murderers. They were all -tracked down, and she caused them to die with terrible tortures, the -cruellest of which she reserved for Graham. Thus did great King James's -"milk-white dove" revenge the slaying of the husband she loved dearer -than life itself. - -Till this time it had seemed as if the Douglases were devoted to the -good of Scotland. But in those wild, reckless times qualities that were -strong for good could also be strong for evil. - -When James I. of Scotland was murdered, his young son was only six years -old. This meant that for many years there would be no strong king able -to cope with the lawless spirit of the nobles, strongest among whom were -the proud, bold Douglases. - -The lawlessness of the times is well shown by an act of foul treachery -committed by Sir William Crichton, Governor of Edinburgh, and an enemy -of the Douglas family. He invited one of the earls to dinner at the -castle, and while there had him seized and beheaded. It is said that a -bull's head was placed on the dish in front of Douglas, this being a -sign that he was to be killed. The people called this "Douglas's black -dinner," and sang of the wicked deed in sorrowful verse:-- - - "Edinburgh Castle, town and tower - God grant thou sink for sin! - And even for that black dinner - Earl Douglas got therein." - - -But the new King James found, before he was twenty years old, that the -Douglases themselves could act with equal cruelty and lawlessness. - -The king was fond of a brave young soldier named Maclellan, who, having -some quarrel with Earl Douglas, was thrown by him into a dungeon in his -castle. So the king wrote a letter to Douglas, saying he must set -Maclellan free, and sent this letter by Maclellan's uncle, Sir Patrick -Gray. When Douglas saw Gray riding up to his castle, he at once guessed -the errand. So he came out as though he were delighted to see him, and -insisted on his sitting down and having dinner with him, before the -king's letter was opened and discussed. But the treacherous earl had -given secret orders that Maclellan should be beheaded while they were -dining, so that after dinner was over, and the letter was read, he could -say that this had been done before he had seen the king's message. - -Gray dared not show his anger, for fear he too should be killed. He -mounted his swift horse and rode away, but the moment he was outside the -castle walls he shook his mailed fist at Douglas and cried out-- - -"Treacherous earl, disgrace to knighthood, some day you shall pay for -this black, base deed!" - -Douglas mounted his men, and they pursued Gray almost to the gates of -Edinburgh; but he rode for his life, and faster than they. - -When Douglas and the king next met there was a stormy scene. The earl -was so proud and wilful that he would not bend to any of the king's -wishes or heed the king's anger in the least. So King James, mad with -rage, stabbed the reckless earl with his dagger, and Sir Patrick Gray, -seeing this, struck him a death-blow with his axe. - -The king was in Stirling Castle, a powerful fortress at the top of a -steep hill, when the new earl, the younger brother of the murdered man, -rode up with six hundred followers, and burnt and plundered the town -before the king's very eyes, and added to the insult by publicly -declaring that King James II. was a law-breaker. - -For three years the quarrel went on between the king and the Douglases, -but it was then evident that there could be no peace between them. So -at last the king's army attacked the collected forces of the strong -Douglas family at a place on the Borders then called Arkinholm, where -the picturesque little town of Langholm now stands. Here the beautiful -river Esk receives the water of two smaller streams, and so it was a -good place to make a stand for a fight. The battle was long and -desperate; three brothers of the bold black Douglases were there, and -they withstood the king's men till the rivers ran red; but their cause -was hopeless. One was slain in battle; one was taken and executed; one -escaped into England; and the power of the Black Douglases was gone. - -Thus it was that the strongest and most famous family of the Borders was -broken up, because its proud leaders dared to dictate to the king -himself. - - - - - *Chapter XIII* - - *Alnwick Castle and the Percies* - - -The castle of Alnwick stands on a hill on the south bank of the river -Alne; being protected on one side by the river and on another by a deep -gorge, it stands in a strong natural position. There are traces of -earthworks that seem to show that the spot was fortified in the old -British days, but the earliest fact which we know certainly is that -there was a Saxon fortress here, held by a Gilbert Tyson, when William -the Conqueror claimed England. Tyson hastened south to fight on -Harold's side, and was killed at the battle of Hastings. - -The fortress seems to have got into the hands of a Norman knight, Ivo de -Vesci, who married the grand-daughter of Gilbert Tyson. King Malcolm of -Scotland was killed in front of it, in 1093, with three thousand of his -men. De Vesci's son-in-law was probably the knight who rebuilt the -castle in the Norman style, some portions of which still remain. - -In 1174, William the Lion, King of Scotland, who had claimed -Northumberland as his own, attacked the castles of Wark and of Alnwick. -Wark was defended by a gallant knight named Roger de Stuteville. -William's brave men tried in vain to force their way through the -portcullis, but were beaten back. Then William ordered up his -_perire_, a machine made for hurling stones. "This," said the king, -"will soon smash down the gate for us!" With great expectations the -machine was set in motion, but it acted so badly that it threw the -stones on to William's own men, and nearly killed one of his best -knights! William raved in his fury, and swore he would rather have been -captured in fair fight than be made to look so foolish in the eyes of -his enemies. He gave word to burn the castle, but the wind was in the -wrong quarter and blew back the flames. So he had to give up the siege. -Stuteville, like a gallant enemy, told his men not to shout taunts and -jeers at the departing Scots. But instead they blew trumpets and horns, -and sang songs, and called out a very loud and hearty "Good-bye." - -Shortly afterwards, William came before Alnwick, and it was then De -Vesci's turn. It was Saturday morning on a hot July day, and the -Scottish king's knights flatteringly told him that the English were -bound to give way to him, and Northumberland would be his. The king was -dining in front of the castle, with no helmet on, when suddenly a part -of the English army made a surprise attack. The bold king leapt on to -his grey charger, and unhorsed the first knight he met. So quick and -brave were the Scots that they had almost defeated the English when an -English foot-soldier stabbed the king's horse with his lance, and it -fell, bringing William down to the ground and pinning him there. This -turned the course of battle; the Scots were beaten back, and William -taken prisoner. - -In was in 1309 that the great Percy family first obtained possession of -Alnwick and its domain. Henry Percy purchased it from Anthony Bek, -Bishop of Durham, who had somehow obtained power over it, and the brave -De Vesci family disappear. About this date Northumberland was in a -miserable condition; it was the reign of the feeble Edward II., and -Bruce had invaded the four northernmost counties of England, and was -exacting tribute from them. The English were safe only within their -fortresses. - -However, the brave Sir Thomas Gray, who held Norham Castle, did much to -uphold the falling honour of England, and Henry Percy almost rebuilt the -castle of Alnwick, which in his son's time successfully withstood a -siege. But at last peace was restored by the Treaty of Northampton in -1328, by the terms of which the English king renounced all claim to -Scotland. - -The Percy family were of Norman origin, deriving their name from a -Norman village. William de Percy crossed to England just after the -battle of Hastings, and received grants of land in Yorkshire. Agnes de -Percy married Jocelin, Count of Louvain, and their son Henry took his -mother's surname. From that year onward, the the Christian name of -Henry was always given to the eldest son; there were fourteen Henry -Percies! - -Even in these wild times the Percies were distinguished by the boldness -of their spirits. One of the Counts of Louvain, grandfather of the -first Henry Percy, shocked the men of his day by hanging some of his -enemies with the church bell-ropes. It was not the hanging that was -objected to--hanging was common enough; but the use of church-ropes for -the purpose was thought very wicked! - -After they had rebuilt Alnwick Castle and settled down there, the -Percies soon established their power in the North. At the coronation of -Richard II., in 1377, a Henry Percy was Marshal of England, and he was -then made Earl of Northumberland. His son, "Hotspur," was the most -famous of all the Percies. In their time, the battles of Otterbourne -and Homildon Hill were fought. But they rebelled against Henry IV. and -Hotspur was killed at the battle of Shrewsbury (1403), while his father -was slain a few years later at Bramham Moor, his head set up on London -Bridge, and quarters of his body on the gates of Berwick, Newcastle, -Lincoln, and London, to discourage others from following in his -footsteps! - -Henry, son of "Hotspur," was the second earl. He repaired and added to -the castle and was present at the battle of Agincourt. It was not the -habit of the Percies to die in their beds, and this one was killed in -the Wars of the Roses, at the first battle of St Albans, in 1455. - -The fact of their having taken the losing Lancastrian side in these wars -kept the family under a cloud for a number of years. One of them -deserted Richard III. on Bosworth field in 1485; one of them was -beheaded at York in 1572, for taking part in the "Rising of the North"; -one of them was found shot in his bed in 1585, and another died in the -Tower in 1632. So that the family could hardly be said to be quieting -down. - -They sided with Parliament during the Civil War, but later on they -favoured the Restoration. At last there came a time when there were no -male heirs left in this great line, but only a daughter, Elizabeth. She -married the Duke of Somerset, and had thirteen children, the eldest -surviving of whom was created Earl of Northumberland in 1748. But he -died the year after, leaving only a daughter, who had married a very -able baronet, to whom was given the title of Duke of Northumberland in -1766. He very wisely took the surname of Percy, and again restored the -castle of Alnwick, putting the family estates and affairs in good order. -So that the Percies of Alnwick Castle are Dukes of Northumberland to -this day. - - - - - *Chapter XIV* - - *Hexham and Queen Margaret* - - -The town of Hexham stands on the south bank of the Tyne, rising -gradually up the hill and presenting a most picturesque appearance. -About two miles above Hexham the North and the South Tyne meet, and the -combined river is broad and noble, and the hills around Hexham give -strength and beauty to the scene. The commanding appearance and central -position of the priory church adds its note of dignity, and the total -effect of the town is very pleasing to the eye. - -There is no doubt that from very early times there was a town in this -fine natural position. The burial-grounds of primitive races have been -discovered here, with stone and bronze implements. The Romans had a -town here of some importance, although it was four miles south of their -great wall. A Roman tombstone was discovered here, nine feet by three -and a half feet, showing a Roman officer on horseback, overthrowing in -fierce fight a savage and scowling foe. This fine relic is set up in -the church, and is not the only thing to see there. The original church -upon this spot was built in 674, in the reign of King Egfrid of -Northumbria. Wilfrid, the very able and influential Bishop of York, was -the man who presided at the building of it, and there were bishops at -Hexham for a couple of centuries. In 875 the Danes ruthlessly burnt the -town; and nearly one thousand years later, in 1832, there was found -buried in the ground a bronze vessel containing about nine thousand -Saxon coins of the eighth and ninth century, evidently buried to protect -this treasure from the invaders. Those who buried them were probably -slain before they had time to dig them up again. There was a legend of -another treasure hidden between Hexham and Corbridge, and King John came -to Hexham in 1201 to search for it. He returned in 1208 and in 1212, -but found nothing. Time passed, and this tale of hidden treasure ceased -even to be local gossip, but in 1735 by accident it was found. - -The present handsome priory church must have been built about the time -of King John's visits to Hexham. It is a noble building, well worth a -visit. In 1725, when some work was being done in the church, a -wonderful discovery was made. It was found that there was an old Saxon -crypt, a narrow vault with several passages, underneath the church! -This was so carefully hidden that it was evidently intended as a place -of refuge in danger. It was built of Roman stones, several of which -have Roman inscriptions. - -The Scots several times attacked Hexham. Once Sir William Wallace came -there with his army, but he would not let his Scots damage the church, -so that Hexham, on the whole, had a less stormy life than many of the -Border towns, although in 1537, when Henry VIII. caused the monastery to -be suppressed, the prior and five of the leading monks were hanged -before the gates as a gentle reminder that they were to live there no -longer. - -But by far the most stirring event in Hexham's history was the battle -which raged there in 1464. The Wars of the Roses do not form a pleasing -episode in English history. They were pitiless, and treachery was -mingled with bloodshed; desertions and executions were the accompaniment -of every battle. Edward IV. was coldly cruel and unscrupulous, one of -the blackest figures of a black time. But romance centres round Queen -Margaret, the dauntless and resourceful wife of the feeble King Henry -VI., with whom Edward disputed the throne. She it was who, making up for -her husband's weakness, urged ever bravely and hopefully the cause of -her son. Thus she pressed on to the very end, till that son, worthy of -his heroic mother, proudly answered the taunts of his base enemies, even -though in their power, preferring speedy death to any lessening of his -tragic dignity, and dying before the eyes of the successful and exultant -Edward. - -In this fierce drama, Hexham was but an episode. The Lancastrians had -scattered after their heavy defeat at Towton. Margaret in person had -begged a little help of the King of Scotland, a little more of the King -of France. The Borderland was favourable to her, and she gathered her -forces together there, King Henry VI. staying in Alnwick Castle. - -Lord Montague, brother to the powerful but crafty Earl of Warwick, was -warden of the East Marches for Edward, and he hastily collected the -Yorkist forces. He was swift, able, and unscrupulous. He attacked a -small body of Lancastrians on Hedgeley Moor, only ten miles from -Alnwick, and defeated them, killing their leader, Sir Ralph Percy, son -of Hotspur. As this gallant man died he consoled himself by saying, "I -have saved the bird in my bosom," by which poetical phrase he meant that -he had saved his honour by being true to his queen. In May the greater -battle of Hexham was fought. King Henry was there in person, with the -dauntless Queen Margaret and her son, and their brave general, the Duke -of Somerset. They marched out of Hexham to attack Lord Montague; the -battle began by the village of Linnels, on the south side of the Devil's -Water, a stream that runs into the Tyne. The fight was desperate, for -both sides knew that no quarter would be given. It is said by some that -the Scots, having no interest in the war, deserted Margaret; anyway, bit -by bit the Lancastrians were forced back, to the very streets of Hexham -itself, two miles away. In these narrow streets, in the quarter that is -still called Battle Hill, the last desperate fighters on the side of the -Red Rose made their final and unavailing stand. - -At last the remnant fled, and no doubt many a Hexham maid and dame, at -the risk of her own life or limb, hid that day some devoted follower of -Margaret. - -The gallant Duke of Somerset was taken prisoner, and there and then was -brought to the block in the market-place and beheaded. The cruel -Montague had not the true soldier's respect for a brave enemy, whose -blood thus mingled with that of his men. Other nobles were taken as -prisoners to Newcastle, but Edward also was devoid of mercy, and all -perished. - -[Illustration: _The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham_] - -Till the last moment the queen hoped on. She was not daunted by scenes -of strife and bloodshed. When defeat was an accomplished fact, she and -her young son fled to the Dipton Woods, where they fell into the hands -of rough men, some say a party of Yorkist stragglers. Whilst these men -were eagerly dividing and quarrelling over the queen's jewels, she and -the prince slipped away. Deeper into the dangerous woods they had to go, -for worse than robbers were hunting for them around Hexham. Suddenly an -outlaw stood in their path with drawn sword. Even after that day of -stir and terror Margaret's courage did not fail her. She boldly -declared to the man that she was the Queen of England, and with her was -her only son. Now, if he chose to betray them he could do so; but if he -had that natural nobility that hailed gladly great chances to do great -deeds, now was his time to prove himself a man, and to save the -ill-fated prince and his queen. - -The robber bowed before her as though she were on her throne, and as if -the trees were her army around her. He swore to die a hundred deaths -rather than betray his rightful sovereign and her prince. He honourably -kept his word; and through his safe guidance and steady devotion, both -queen and prince were able to join King Henry in Scotland, to which -place he had safely escaped. - -Thus the bandit of Hexham proved himself to be a truer man than either -Lord Montague, or Warwick, the King-maker, or King Edward IV. of -England. - - - - - *Chapter XV* - - *Fair Helen of Kirkconnell* - - -Very simple, very touching, is the story of fair Helen of Kirkconnell. -This beautiful maiden had two lovers, one rich, one poor. Her friends -favoured the rich one, she loved the poor one. She and her chosen lover -used to meet secretly in the romantic churchyard of Kirkconnell, by the -side of the river Kirtle. Learning this, the rejected lover crept up -one evening, with his carbine, to shoot his luckier rival; Helen saw him -at the moment of firing, and threw herself forward to receive the shot -in her bosom, and so save her lover's life at the cost of her own. - -The ballad describing the grief of her lover is one of the most -beautiful and touching pieces of poetry in existence, and must be given -here entire. - - - *FAIR HELEN* - - I wish I were where Helen lies; - Night and day on me she cries; - O that I were where Helen lies, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee! - - Curst be the heart that thought the thought, - And curst the hand that shot the shot, - When in my arms burd Helen dropt, - And died to succour me. - - O think ye not my heart was sair, - When my love dropt and spak nae mair! - There did she swoon wi' meikle care, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee. - - As I went down the water-side, - None but my foe to be my guide, - None but my foe to be my guide, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee! - - I lighted down my sword to draw, - I hacked him in pieces sma', - I hacked him in pieces sma', - For her sake that died for me. - - O Helen fair beyond compare, - I'll make a garland of thy hair, - Shall bind my heart for evermair, - Until the day I die. - - O that I were where Helen lies, - Night and day on me she cries; - Out of my bed she bids me rise, - Says, "Haste and come to me!" - - O Helen fair! O Helen chaste! - If I were with thee, I were blest, - Where thou lies low, and takes thy rest, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee. - - O that my grave were growing green, - A winding sheet drawn ower my een, - And I in Helen's arms were lying, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee! - - I wish I were where Helen lies! - Night and day on me she cries, - And I am weary of the skies, - For her sake that died for me. - - - - - *Chapter XVI* - - *Johnie of Breadislee* - - -Johnie of Breadislee, outlaw and deer-stealer, was one of the "broken -men," as they were called, the Ishmaels of the Border. Johnie rose up -one May morning, and called for water to wash his hands. He ordered to -be unleashed his good grey dogs, that were bound with iron chains. When -his mother heard that he had called for the dogs, she wrung her hands. -"O Johnie!" she cried, "for my blessing, do not go to the greenwood -to-day. Ye have enough of good wheat bread, enough blood-red wine, -therefore, Johnie, I pray, stir not from home for any venison." But -despite his mother's tears, Johnie busked up his good bent bow, and his -arrows, and went off to Durrisdeer to hunt down the dun deer. As he -came by Merriemass he espied a deer lying beneath a bush of furze. -Johnie let fly an arrow, and the deer leapt as the pitiless shaft found -its mark, and between the water and the brae his good hounds "laid her -pride." So Johnie cut up the venison, giving the liver and lungs to his -faithful hounds, as if they had been earl's sons. With such zest did -they eat and drink that Johnie and the dogs fell asleep, as if they had -been dead. Then as they lay, there came by a silly old man, and, as -soon as he saw the poachers, he ran away to Hislinton, where the Seven -Foresters were. "What news?" they asked. "What news bring ye, ye -grey-headed carle?" "I bring no news," said the grey-headed carle, -"save what my eyes did see. As I came down by Merrimass among the -stunted trees, the bonniest child I ever saw lay asleep among his dogs. -The shirt upon his back was of fine Holland, his doubtlet, over that, -was of Lincoln twine, his buttons were of the good gold, the mouths of -his good grey hounds were dyed with blood." - -Now Johnie, like many another free-hearted outlaw, was a well-liked man. -So the chief forester said, "If this be Johnie of Breadislee we will -draw no nearer." But this was not the spirit of his men. Quoth the -sixth Forester, "If it indeed be he, rather let us slay him." -Cautiously they went through the thicket, and when they saw their man, -asleep and helpless, they shot a flight of arrows. Johnie sprang up, -sore wounded on the knee. The seventh forester cried out, "The next -flight will kill him," but little chance did the outlaw give them for -such an easy victory. He set his back against an oak and propped his -wounded leg upon a stone; with bow or with sword he was a better man by -far than any of his foes. - -In the short, sharp fight that followed, he killed six of the foresters, -some with arrow, and some with steel; and when the seventh turned to -flee, Johnie seized him from behind and threw him on to the ground with -a force that broke three of his ribs. Then he laid him on his steed, -and bade him carry the tidings home. - -[Illustration: _Johnie of Breadislee_] - -But Johnie himself was hurt to death. "Is there no bonnie singing -bird," he cried, "that can fly to my mother's bower and tell her to -fetch Johnie away?" A starling flew to his mother's window sill, and -sang and whistled, and the burden of its tune was ever the same. "Johnie -tarries long." So the men made a litter from rods of the hazel bush and -of the thorn and fetched Johnie away. Then his old mother's tears -flowed fast, and she said, "Ye would not be warned, my son Johnie, to -bide away from the hunting. Oft have I brought to Breadislee the less -or greater gear, but never what grieved my heart so sorely. But woe -betide that silly old grey-headed carle! An ill death shall he die! -The highest tree in Merriemass shall be his reward." - - "Now Johnie's gude bent bow is brake, - And his gude grey dogs are slain, - And his body lies dead in Durrisdeer, - And his hunting it is done." - - - - - *Chapter XVII* - - *Katharine Janfarie* - - -This ballad is evidently the original of Sir Walter Scott's "Lochinvar," -though Sir Walter reversed the names of the two leading male characters. -In "Katharine Janfarie" Lochinvar plays the part of the craven -bridegroom. - - There was a may,[#] and a weel-far'd may, - Lived high up in yon glen; - Her name was Katharine Janfarie, - She was courted by mony men. - -[#] maiden. - - Up there came Lord Lauderdale, - Up frae the Lowland Border, - And he has come to court this may, - A' mounted in good order. - - He told na her father, he told na her mother, - And he told na ane o' her kin, - But he whispered the bonnie lassie hersell, - And has her favour won. - - But out there cam Lord Lochinvar, - Out frae the English Border, - All for to court this bonny may, - Weel mounted, and in order. - - He told her father, he told her mother, - And a' the lave[#] o' her kin; - But he told na the bonny may hersell, - Till on her wedding e'en. - -[#] rest. - - She sent to the Lord o' Lauderdale, - Gin[#] he wad come and see, - And he has sent back word again, - Weel answered he suld[#] be. - -[#] if. -[#] should. - - And he has sent a messenger - Right quickly through the land, - And raised mony an armed man - To be at his command. - - The bride looked out at a high window, - Beneath baith dale and down, - And she was aware of her first true love, - With riders mony a one. - - She scoffed him, and scorned him, - Upon her wedding-day; - And said, "It was the Fairy Court, - To see him in array! - - "O come ye here to fight, young lord, - Or come ye here to play? - Or come ye here to drink good wine, - Upon the wedding-day?" - - "I come na here to fight," he said, - "I come na here to play, - I'll but lead a dance wi' the bonny bride, - And mount, and go my way." - - It is a glass of the blood-red wine - Was filled up them between, - And aye she drank to Lauderdale, - Wha[#] her true love had been. - -[#] who. - - He's taen[#] her by the milk-white hand, - And by the grass-green sleeve; - He's mounted her hie behind himsell, - At her kinsmen speired[#] na leave. - -[#] taken. -[#] asked. - - "Now take your bride, Lord Lochinvar! - Now take her if ye may! - But if you take your bride again, - We'll call it but foul play." - - There were four-and-twenty bonnie boys, - A' clad in the Johnstone grey; - They said they would take the bride again, - By the strong hand, if they may. - - Some o' them were right willing men, - But they were na willing a'; - And four-and-twenty Leader lads - Bid them mount and ride awa'. - - Then whingers flew frae gentles' sides, - And swords flew frae the shea's,[#] - And red and rosy was the blood - Ran down the lily braes. - -[#] sheathes. - - The blood ran down by Caddon bank, - And down by Caddon brae, - And, sighing, said the bonnie bride-- - "O wae's me for foul play." - - My blessing on your heart, sweet thing! - Wae to your wilfu' will! - There's mony a gallant gentleman - Whae's bluid ye have garred[#] to spill. - -[#] caused. - - Now a' the lords of fair England, - And that dwell by the English Border, - Come never here to seek a wife, - For fear of sic[#] disorder. - -[#] such. - - They'll track ye up, and settle ye bye, - Till on your wedding-day; - Then gie ye frogs instead of fish, - And play ye foul foul play. - - - - *LOCHINVAR* - -In Sir Walter Scott's poem, Lochinvar is the hero, and the story has a -happier ending. The song was supposed to have been sung to James IV. by -Lady Heron at Holyrood shortly before the fatal battle of Flodden. - - O young Lochinvar has come out of the west, - Through all the wide border his steel was the best; - And save his good broadsword, he weapons had none, - He rode all unarmed, and he rode all alone, - So faithful in love, and so dauntless in war, - There never was knight like the young Lochinvar. - - He staid not for brake, and he stopped not for stone, - He swam the Eske river where ford there was none, - But ere he alighted at Netherby gate, - The bride had consented, the gallant came late; - For a laggard in love, and a dastard in war, - Was to wed the fair Ellen of brave Lochinvar. - - So boldly he entered the Netherby Hall, - Among bride's men, and kinsmen, and brothers, and all, - Then spoke the bride's father, his hand on his sword - (For the poor craven bridegroom said never a word), - "O come ye in peace here, or come ye in war, - Or to dance at our bridal, young Lord Lochinvar?" - - "I long wooed your daughter, my suit you denied; - Love swells like the Solway, but ebbs like its tide, - And now am I come, with this lost love of mine, - To lead but one measure, drink one cup of wine, - There are maidens in Scotland, more lovely by far, - That would gladly be bride to the young Lochinvar." - - The bride kissed the goblet; the knight took it up, - He quaffed off the wine, and he threw down the cup. - She looked down to blush, and she looked up to sigh, - With a smile on her lips, and a tear in her eye. - He took her soft hand, ere her mother could bar, - "Now tread we a measure!" said young Lochinvar. - - So stately her form, and so lovely her face, - That never a hall such a galliard did grace; - While her brother did fret, and her father did fume, - And the bridgroom stood dangling his bonnet and plume, - And the bride-maidens whispered, "'Twere better by far, - To have matched our fair cousin with young Lochinvar." - - One touch to her hand, and one word in her ear, - When they reached the hall-door, and the charger stood near; - So light to the croupe the fair lady he swung, - So light to the saddle before her he sprung! - "She is won! we have gone over bank, bush, and scaur; - They'll have fleet steeds that follow," quoth young Lochinvar. - - There was mounting 'mong Graemes of the Netherby clan; - Fosters, Fenwicks, and Musgraves, they rode and they ran, - There was racing and chasing, on Cannobie Lee, - But the lost bride of Netherby ne'er did they see. - So daring in love, and so dauntless in war, - Have ye e'er heard of gallant like young Lochinvar? - - - - - *Chapter XVIII* - - *By Lauder Bridge* - - -The Ancient Royal Burgh of Lauder, a quaint little border town with -hardly more than one street, is on the banks of the river Leader, on the -high road between Edinburgh and Kelso. It stands very picturesquely, -among the bold hills and fine woods of Berwickshire, and the valley is -called Lauderdale, extending to where the Leader joins the Tweed, just -below Melrose. Peacefully beautiful is the spot; and yet it was once -the scene of a harsh, grim tragedy. - -It was in the reign of King James III. of Scotland, who offended his -subjects in two particulars. - -First, to get wealth for himself, he mixed brass and lead with his -silver money, and put it into circulation as pure silver; next, he chose -favourites from the common people, and set these above the proud -noblemen of Scotland. - -This latter would not have been so bad a fault if the king had always -chosen wisely; but, as often in such cases, he was led by flatterers -rather than by worthy men. - -In 1482 the king declared war against England, and, as in these warlike -days the nobles were the leaders of the army, this brought the -discontented lords together. - -When the Scottish army reached Lauder in their southward march, the -proud nobles met in Lauder church; all were angry with the king, yet -each was afraid to make the first move. So Lord Gray told them a -mocking fable. - -"Do you remember," said he, "how all the mice got together and agreed -that it would be a splendid thing if a bell were hung round the cat's -neck, so that wherever she went she could be heard; the only difficulty -was to find a mouse to bell the cat!" - -These warlike nobles did not like to be spoken of as if they were mice, -and it roused them to deeper rage. - -Then out spoke Archibald Douglas, Earl of Angus, the head of the younger -branch of the Douglas family. "Trust me, I'll bell the cat!" - -There was a knock at the door; Cochrane, the architect, whom the nobles -said had been a mason, but was now the king's chief favourite, entered, -dressed in black velvet, with a heavy chain of gold round his neck, a -horn of gold tipped with precious stones, and all his attire of the -costliest. Angus caught the chain in his hands and said, "A rope would -suit that neck better!" - -Then the nobles laid violent hands on all the king's low-born favourites -and hanged them by the bridge of Lauder, in front of the king's very -eyes! Cochrane was proud and brave to the last. He said that as the -king had made him an earl he should be hanged with a rope made of silk; -little did the nobles care for his protests, the halter of a horse was -in their opinion good enough for him. - -From this time onward the headstrong Earl of Angus was known by the -nick-name of "Bell-the-Cat." It may be taken for granted that neither -he nor the nobles who supported him would have dared to act so -arrogantly and violently unless they felt quite sure that the king had -not the power to punish them. He returned sullenly to Edinburgh, more -the captive of the nobles than their master. - -A parliament appointed the Duke of Albany lieutenant-general of the -kingdom, but he in turn soon lost favour, for he was suspected of too -great a friendship for Edward IV., King of England, and fled for safety -to France, giving James another chance to govern his kingdom for -himself. - -This weak and unhappy monarch, however, was not destined to have much -peace. Before very long, another quarrel with his nobles led to their -taking up arms with a view of deposing him and placing his son on the -throne. The king and his nobles met in battle near Stirling, but, at -the very beginning of the fight, James was thrown from his horse and -stabbed by a soldier, whose name remained unknown. Thus died this weak -but amiable and unfortunate king. - - - - - *Chapter XIX* - - *The Battle of Flodden Field* - - -One of the most tragic episodes in the History of the Borders was the -battle of Flodden Field, when the flower of the Scottish nobility fell -around their sovereign, James IV., while fighting against the English -under Surrey. - -The causes of the war were many. Henry of England refused to give up -the jewels which had been promised as the dowry of his sister Margaret -on her marriage with James IV. - -The Lord High Admiral of England, Sir Edmund Howard, had attacked and -taken two Scottish ships, and slain their captain, Sir Andrew Barton. -James, who was fond of Barton, demanded redress, but Henry insolently -replied that kings should not quarrel about pirates. - -But the immediate cause was the friendship between France and Scotland. -Henry was preparing for war with France, and James stood by his ally, -declaring that if Henry warred with France, he would lead an army into -England. The Queen of France sent James a turquoise ring, asking him to -carry out his threat to serve her interests. - -James had been warned that his action would have terrible consequences. -A man appeared to him at Linlithgow, clad in a long blue gown, with bare -head, and carrying a pikestaff, and having told the king that his dead -mother had sent him to warn him not to go to war against England, he -disappeared as suddenly as he had come. - -Also at the dead of night a voice had been heard proclaiming aloud at -the market Cross in Edinburgh the names of those who, within forty days, -would be no more. It was thought at the time that these happenings were -instigated by Queen Margaret, but the king still persisted in his -policy, and led his army across the Border, in spite of the warnings of -his counsellors and his queen. - -A fine description of his army is given by Sir Walter Scott, when Lord -Marmion watches the scene from Blackford Hill. - - "Thousand pavilions, white as snow, - Spread all the Borough-moor below, - Upland, and dale, and down:-- - A thousand, did I say? I ween, - Thousands and thousands, there were seen, - That chequer'd all the heath between - The streamlet and the town; - In crossing ranks extending far, - Forming a camp irregular; - Oft giving way, where still there stood - Some relics of the old oak wood, - That darkly huge did intervene, - And tamed the glaring white with green, - In these extended lines there lay, - A martial kingdom's vast array. - - For from Hebudes, dark with rain, - To eastern Lodon's fertile plain, - And from the southern Redswire edge, - To farthest Rosse's rocky ledge, - From west to east, from south to north, - Scotland sent all her warriors forth, - Marmion might hear the mingled hum, - Of myriads up the mountain come; - The horses' tramp, and tingling clank, - Where chiefs reviewed their vassal rank, - And charger's shrilling neigh; - And see the shifting lines advance - Whilst frequent flash'd, from shield and lance, - The sun's reflected ray. - * * * * * - They saw, slow rolling on the plain, - Full many a baggage-cart and wain, - And dire artillery's clumsy car. - By sluggish oxen tugg'd to war; - * * * * * - Nor mark'd they less, where in the air - A thousand streamers flaunted fair, - Various in shape, device, and hue, - Green, sanguine, purple, red, and blue, - Broad, narrow, swallow-tailed, and square, - Scroll, pennon, pensil, bandrol,[#] there - O'er the pavilions flew. - Highest and midmost, was descried - The royal banner floating wide; - The staff, a pine-tree, strong and straight, - Pitch'd deeply in a massive stone, - Which still in memory is shown, - Yet bent beneath the standard's weight. - Whene'er the western breeze unroll'd, - With toil, the huge and cumbrous fold, - And gave to view the dazzling field, - Where, in proud Scotland's royal shield, - The ruddy lion ramp'd in gold." - -[#] Each feudal ensign intimated the rank of those who displayed them. - - -Marmion wondered that with such a glorious army at his back anyone -should try to dissuade James from battle, yet Sir David Lindesay of the -Mount answered him, - - "'twere good - That Kings would think withal, - When peace and wealth their land has bless'd, - 'Tis better to sit still at rest, - Than rise, perchance to fall." - - -Men-at-arms were there, sheathed in plate armour, with battle-axe and -spear, and mounted on Flemish steeds. Young knights and squires -practised their chargers on the plain. Hardy burghers marched on foot, -armed with long pikes and two-handed swords and bright bucklers. - -The yeoman, too, was on foot, dressed in steel-jack quilted well with -iron, and bearing at his back, provisions for forty days. He seemed sad -of cheer, and loth to leave his humble cottage, wondering who would till -the land during his absence. - -There, too, was the Borderer:-- - - "bred to war, - He knew the battle's din afar, - And joy'd to hear it swell. - His peaceful day was slothful ease, - Nor harp nor pipe his ear could please - Like the loud slogan yell." - -for - - "War's the Borderer's game, - Their gain, their glory, their delight, - To sleep the day, maraud the night, - O'er mountain, moss, and moor." - -[Illustration: _Flodden Field_] - -There, too, were the Celts, with savage eyes looking out wildly through -red and sable hair, with sinewy frames and legs bare above the knees, -their chiefs known by the eagle's plumage. They wore the skin of the -red deer, a graceful bonnet, and a plaid hung from the shoulders, and -carried as weapons a broadsword, a dagger, and quivers, bows, and -shafts. - -The Isles-men, too, were there, carrying the ancient Danish battle-axe. -While the army was mustering together, James feasted the chiefs in -Holyrood Palace, for at dawn they were to march southward. - - "Well loved that splendid monarch aye - The banquet and the song, - By day the tourney, and by night - The merry dance, traced fast and light, - The maskers quaint, the pageant bright, - The revel loud and long. - This feast outshone his banquets past; - It was his blithest and his last." - - And hazel was his eagle eye, - And auburn of the darkest dye, - His short curl'd beard and hair. - Light was his footstep in the dance, - And firm his stirrup in the lists; - And oh! he had that merry glance, - That seldom lady's heart resists." - - -Yet no fair lady was as dear to James as his own Queen Margaret, who sat -alone in the tower of Linlithgow weeping for the war against her native -country, and for the danger of her lord. - -On the morrow, James marched south, crossed the Tweed, and encamped on -the banks of the Till, near Twisel Bridge. The Scottish army moved down -the side of the Tweed to Flodden Hill taking Norham Castle, and the -Border towns of Etal, Wark, and Ford. Much time was wasted in these -petty enterprises, time which should have been spent in marching to -Newcastle before the English were prepared to offer resistance. When -the castle of Ford was stormed, Lady Heron, wife of Sir William Heron, -then a prisoner in Scotland, was taken, and this beautiful and artful -woman induced James to idle away his time until all chance was lost of -defeating the enemy. - -The army suffered severely from want of provisions, and many of the -Highlanders and Isles-men returned home, many who had come only for -booty, deserted, and the numbers were reduced to about thirty thousand. - -Meanwhile, the Earl of Surrey had raised twenty-six thousand men, and -received other enforcements as he came north from Durham. He therefore -challenged James to fight, and charged him with violating the treaty of -peace between the two kingdoms. - -The Scottish nobles were unwilling to fight, and said it was impossible -to remain in a country so plundered; also, if fight the king must, he -would fight to much greater advantage in his own country, to whose -welfare the loss of this battle would be fatal; while he had -sufficiently indicated his honour by crossing the Border. - -James would not listen to the counsel of his nobles, though even the -aged Earl of Angus expostulated with him. To this old warrior he -angrily said, "Angus, if you are afraid, you may go home," at which -insult the aged Earl burst into tears. - -The English army crossed the Till by Twisel Bridge and pressed on while -the Scottish army stood idly by, the Scottish nobles in vain entreating -the king to attack the English while they were crossing. - -When the English army had drawn up in order of battle on the left bank -of the river, the Scots, setting fire to their temporary huts, came down -the ridge of Flodden. The clouds of smoke from the burning huts were -driven into the face of the English, so that the Scots had got to within -a quarter of a mile of them before they perceived them. - - "No martial shout, nor minstrel tone, - Announced their march; their tread alone, - At times one warning trumpet blown, - At times a stifled hum, - Told England, from his mountain-throne, - King James did rushing come: - Scarce could they hear or see their foes - Until at weapon-point they close." - - -With clanging blows and arrows that fell like rain, with yelling and -clamour and sword-sway and lance-thrust, the battle continued until the -evening, and when even fell, the Scots still fought in an unbroken ring -round their king. But when darkness came, and Surrey withdrew his men, -the flower of Scotland's chivalry had fallen, and the king lay dead on -the field. - - "Afar, the royal standard flies, - And round it toils and bleeds and dies. - Our Caledonian pride!" - * * * * * - But yet, though thick the shafts as now, - Though charging knights like whirlwinds go, - Though billmen ply the ghastly bow, - Unbroken was the ring. - The stubborn spearmen still made good - Their dark impenetrable wood, - Each stepping where his comrade stood - The instant that he fell. - No thought was there of dastard flight: - Link'd in the serried phalanx tight, - Groom fought like noble, squire like knight, - As fearlessly and well; - Till utter darkness closed her wing - O'er their thin host and wounded King. - Then skilful Surrey's sage commands - Led back from strife his shattered bands; - And from the charge they drew, - As mountain-waves, from wasted lands, - Sweep back to ocean blue. - Then did their loss his foemen know; - Their King, their lords, their mightiest low, - They melted from the field as snow, - When streams are swoln and south winds blow - Dissolves in silent dew. - * * * * * - Still from the sire the son shall hear - Of the stern fight and carnage drear - Of Flodden's fatal field, - Where shiver'd was fair Scotland's spear, - And broken was her shield! - * * * * * - And well in death his trusty brand, - Firm clench'd within his manly hand - Beseem'd the Monarch slain." - - - - - *Chapter XX* - - *After Flodden* - - -So deeply did the tragic result of Flodden touch the hearts of the -Scottish people that no Scot could for many a long day hear it mentioned -without a heart-thrill. - -Many are the songs written about it, the most famous perhaps, being the -"Flowers of the Forest," written two centuries later, though partly -founded upon an older and almost forgotten song. - - - *THE FLOWERS OF THE FOREST* - - I've heard them lilting, at our ewe-milking, - Lasses a' lilting, before dawn o' day; - But now they are moaning on ilka green loaning[#] - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - -[#] a broad grassy lane used as milking-ground. - - At bughts, in the morning, nae blythe lads are scorning;[#] - The lasses are lonely, and dowie, and wae; - Wae daffing,[#] nae gabbing,[#] but sighing and sabbing; - Ilk ane lifts her leglin,[#] and hies her away. - -[#] rallying. -[#] joking. -[#] chatting. -[#] milking-pail. - - In hair'st, at the shearing, nae youths now are jeering, - The bandsters[#] are runkled,[#] and lyart[#] or gray; - At fair, or at preaching, nae wooing, nae fleeching;[#] - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - -[#] sheaf-binders. -[#] wrinkled. -[#] inclining to grey. -[#] coaxing. - - At e'en, in the gloaming, nae younkers are roaming - 'Bout stacks with the lasses at bogle to play; - But ilk maid sits dreary, lamenting her deary-- - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - - Dool and wae for the order, sent our lads to the Border! - The English, for ance, by guile wan the day: - The Flowers of the Forest, that fought aye the foremost, - The prime of our land, are cauld in the clay. - - We'll hear nae mair lilting at the ewe-milking; - Women and bairns are heartless and wae: - Sighing and moaning on ilka green loaning-- - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - JEAN ELLIOT (1727-1805). - - -The following poem also gives eloquent and touching expression to the -deep gloom which descended upon the Border after the fatal battle, and -tells of the despair felt in almost every Ettrick home:-- - - - *SELKIRK AFTER FLODDEN* - - (A WIDOW'S DIRGE, OCTOBER 1513) - - It's but a month the morn - Sin' a' was peace and plenty; - Oor hairst was halflins shorn, - Eident men and lasses denty. - But noo it's a' distress-- - Never mair a merry meetin '; - For half the bairns are faitherless, - And a' the women greetin'. - O Flodden Field! - - Miles and miles round Selkirk toun, - Where forest flow'rs are fairest, - Ilka lassie's stricken doun, - Wi' the fate that fa's the sairest. - A' the lads they used to meet - By Ettrick braes or Yarrow - Lyin' thrammelt head and feet - In Brankstone's deadly barrow! - O Flodden Field! - - Frae every cleuch and clan - The best o' the braid Border - Rose like a single man - To meet the royal order. - Oor Burgh toun itsel' - Sent its seventy doun the glen; - Ask Fletcher[#] how they fell, - Bravely fechtin', ane to ten! - O Flodden Field! - -[#] This was the man who brought an English flag back to Selkirk from -Flodden. Four brothers of that name are said to have perished in the -battle. - - Round about their gallant king, - For country and for croun, - Stude the dauntless Border ring, - Till the last was hackit doun. - I blame na what has been-- - They maun fa' that canna flee-- - But oh, to see what I hae seen, - To see what now I see! - O Flodden Field! - - The souters a' fu' croose, - O'er their leather and their lingle, - Wi' their shoon in ilka hoose, - Sat contentit round the ingle. - Noo there's naething left but dool,-- - Never mair their work will cheer them; - In Flodden's bluidy pool - They'll neither wait nor wear them! - O Flodden Field! - - Whar the weavers used to meet, - In ilka bieldy corner, - Noo there's nane in a' the street, - Savin' here and there a mourner, - Walkin' lonely as a wraith, - Or if she meet anither, - Just a word below their braith - O' some slauchtered son or brither! - O Flodden Field! - - There stands the gudeman's loom - That used tae gang sae cheerie, - Untentit noo, and toom, - Makin' a' the hoose sae eerie, - Till the sicht I canna dree; - For the shuttles lyin' dumb - Speak the loudlier to me - O' him that wunna come. - O Flodden Field! - - Sae at nicht I cover't o'er, - Just to haud it frae my een, - But I haena yet the pow'r - To forget what it has been; - And I listen through the hoose - For the chappin o' the lay, - Till the scrapin' o' a moose - Tak's my very braith away. - O Flodden Field! - - Then I turn to sister Jean, - And my airms aboot her twine, - And I kiss her sleepless een, - For her heart's as sair as mine,-- - A heart ance fu' o' fun, - And hands that ne'er were idle, - Wi' a' her cleedin' spun - Against her Jamie's bridal. - O Flodden Field! - - Noo we've naether hands nor hairt-- - In oor grief the wark's forgotten, - Though it's wantit every airt, - And the craps are lyin' rotten. - War's awsome blast's gane bye, - And left a land forlorn; - In daith's dool hairst they lie, - The shearers and the shorn. - O Flodden Field. - - Wi' winter creepin' near us, - When the nichts are drear and lang, - Nane to help us, nane to hear us, - On the weary gate we gang! - Lord o' the quick an' deed, - Sin' oor ain we canna see, - In mercy mak gude speed, - And bring us whar they be, - Far, far, frae Flodden Field! - "J. B. Selkirk" (JAMES B. BROWN). - _By permission of W. Cuthbertson, Esq._ - - -Another lyric, relating to the fatal battle of Flodden, refers to the -gallantry of the Souters, or shoemakers of Selkirk, who, to the number -of eighty, and headed by their town-clerk, joined the army as it entered -England. They distinguished themselves greatly, and few returned. The -"yellow and green" are the liveries of the house of Home, taxed by some -with being the cause of the defeat. - - - *THE SOUTERS OF SELKIRK* - - Up wi' the Souters of Selkirk, - And doun wi' the Earl of Home; - And up wi' a' the braw lads - That sew the single-soled shoon. - - Fye upon yellow and yellow, - And fye upon yellow and green, - But up wi' the true blue and scarlet, - And up wi' the single-soled sheen. - - Up wi' the Souters of Selkirk, - For they are baith trusty and leal; - And up wi' the men o' the Forest, - And doun wi' the Merse to the deil. - - -In Aytoun's "Lays of the Scottish Cavaliers," the following well-known -poem tells how the news of the disaster at Flodden Field was received in -Edinburgh:-- - - - *EDINBURGH AFTER FLODDEN* - - I - - News of battle! news of battle! - Hark! 'tis ringing down the street: - And the archways and the pavement - Bear the clang of hurrying feet. - News of battle! Who hath brought it? - News of triumph! Who should bring - Tidings from our noble army, - Greetings from our gallant King? - All last night we watched the beacons - Blazing on the hills afar, - Each one bearing, as it kindled, - Message of the opened war. - All night long the northern streamers - Shot across the trembling sky: - Fearful lights that never beckon - Save when kings or heroes die. - - - II - - News of battle! Who hath brought it? - All are thronging to the gate; - "Warder--warder! open quickly! - Man--is this a time to wait?" - And the heavy gates are opened; - Then a murmur long and loud, - And a cry of fear and wonder - Bursts from out the bending crowd. - For they see in battered harness - Only one hard-stricken man; - And his weary steed is wounded, - And his cheek is pale and wan. - Spearless hangs a bloody banner - In his weak and drooping hand-- - God! can that be Randolph Murray, - Captain of the city band? - - - III - - Round him crush the people, crying, - "Tell us all--oh, tell us true! - Where are they who went to battle, - Randolph Murray, sworn to you? - Where are they, our brothers--children? - Have they met the English foe? - Why art thou alone, unfollowed? - Is it weal, or is it woe?" - Like a corpse the grisly warrior - Looks from out his helm of steel; - But no word he speaks in answer-- - Only with his armd heel - Chides his weary steed, and onward - Up the city streets they ride; - Fathers, sisters, mothers, children, - Shrieking, praying by his side. - "By the God that made thee, Randolph! - Tell us what mischance hath come." - Then he lifts his riven banner, - And the asker's voice is dumb. - -[Illustration: "_Tell us all--oh, tell us true!_"] - - - IV - - The elders of the city - Have met within their hall-- - The men whom good King James had charged - To watch the tower and wall. - "Your hands are weak with age," he said, - "Your hearts are stout and true; - So bide ye in the maiden town, - While others fight for you. - My trumpet from the Border-side - Shall send a blast so clear, - That all who wait within the gate - That stirring sound may hear. - Or, if it be the will of Heaven - That back I never come, - And if, instead of Scottish shout, - Ye hear the English drum, - Then let the warning bells ring out, - Then gird you to the fray, - Then man the walls like burghers stout, - And fight while fight you may. - 'Twere better that in fiery flame - The roofs should thunder down, - Than that the foot of foreign foe - Should trample in the town!" - - - V - - Then in came Randolph Murray, - His step was slow and weak, - And, as he doffed his dinted helm, - The tears ran down his cheek: - They fell upon his corslet - And on his mailed hand, - As he gazed around him wistfully, - Leaning sorely on his brand. - And none who then beheld him - But straight were smote with fear, - For a bolder and a sterner man - Had never couched a spear. - They knew so sad a messenger - Some ghastly news must bring; - And all of them were fathers, - And their sons were with the King. - - - VI - - And up then rose the Provost-- - A brave old man was he, - Of ancient name, and knightly fame, - And chivalrous degree. - He ruled our city like a Lord - Who brooked no equal here, - And ever for the townsmen's rights - Stood up 'gainst prince and peer. - And he had seen the Scottish host - March from the Borough muir, - With music-storm and clamorous shout, - And all the din that thunders out - When youth's of victory sure. - But yet a dearer thought had he;-- - For, with a father's pride, - He saw his last remaining son - Go forth by Randolph's side, - With casque on head and spur on heel, - All keen to do and dare; - And proudly did that gallant boy - Dunedin's banner bear. - Oh! woeful now was the old man's look, - And he spake right heavily-- - "Now, Randolph, tell thy tidings, - However sharp they be! - Woe is written on thy visage, - Death is looking from thy face; - Speak! though it be of overthrow-- - It cannot be disgrace!" - - - VII - - Right bitter was the agony - That wrung that soldier proud; - Thrice did he strive to answer, - And thrice he groaned aloud. - Then he gave the riven banner - To the old man's shaking hand, - Saying--"That is all I bring ye - From the bravest of the land! - Ay! ye may look upon it-- - It was guarded well and long, - By your brothers and your children, - By the valiant and the strong. - One by one they fell around it, - As the archers laid them low, - Grimly dying, still unconquered, - With their faces to the foe. - Ay! ye may well look upon it-- - There is more than honour there, - Else, be sure, I had not brought it - From the field of dark despair. - Never yet was royal banner - Steeped in such a costly dye; - It hath lain upon a bosom - Where no other shroud shall lie. - Sirs! I charge you, keep it holy; - Keep it as a sacred thing, - For the stain ye see upon it - Was the life-blood of your King!" - - - VIII - - Woe and woe and lamentation! - What a piteous cry was there! - Widows, maidens, mothers, children, - Shrieking, sobbing in despair! - Through the streets the death-word rushes, - Spreading terror, sweeping on. - "Jesu Christ! our King has fallen-- - O Great God, King James is gone! - Holy mother Mary, shield us, - Thou who erst did lose thy Son! - O the blackest day for Scotland - That she ever knew before! - O our King--the good, the noble, - Shall we see him never more? - Woe to us, and woe to Scotland! - O our sons, our sons and men! - Surely some have 'scaped the Southron, - Surely some will come again!" - - -Randolph Murray describes how the monarch lies dead on the field with -his nobles round him. - - "All so thick they lay together, - When the stars lit up the sky, - That I knew not who were stricken, - Or who yet remained to die." - - -A hollow knell is rung and the miserere is sung, and all is terror and -disorder until the Provost rouses them. - - "If our King be taken from us, - We are left to guard his son. - * * * * * - Up! and haste ye through the city, - Stir the burghers stout and true! - Gather all our scattered people, - Fling the banner out once more-- - Randolph Murray! do thou bear it, - As it erst was borne before: - Never Scottish heart will leave it, - When they see their monarch's gore!" - - - - - *Chapter XXI* - - *Graeme and Bewick* - - -Good Lord Graeme and Sir Robert Bewick were friends. They met one day -in Carlisle, and went arm in arm to the wine, and, as was too oft the -custom of these days, they stayed and drank till they were both merry. -Good Lord Graeme took up the cup. "Sir Robert, and here's to thee!" he -said, "and here's to our two sons at home, for they like us best in our -own country." - -"O were your son a lad like mine," answered Bewick, boastfully, "and -learnt some books that he could read, they might be two brothers in -arms, and lord it over the Borderside. - - 'But your son's a lad, and he's but bad, - And billie[#] to my son he cannot be.' - -[#] Comrade, or brother-in-arms. - -You sent him to school, and he would not learn; you bought him books, -and he would not read!" - -Lord Graeme called angrily for the reckoning. "My blessing shall he -never earn," said he, "till I see how his arm can defend his head." He -threw down a crown, and went to the stable, took his horse, and rode -home. "Welcome, my old father," said his son, Christie Graeme, "but -where were ye so long from home?" "I have been at Carlisle town, and a -shamed man I am by thee," answered his father with a black look; "I have -been at Carlisle town, where Sir Robert Bewick met me. He says you are -but a bad, wild youth, and can never be billie to his boy. I sent you -to the school, and you would not learn. I bought you books, and you -would not read; therefore you shall never have my blessing till I see -you save your head in fight with young Bewick." "Now God forbid, my old -father, that ever such a thing should be! Billie Bewick was my master, -and I his scholar, in spite of the pains he wasted in teaching me." "O -hold thy tongue, thou foolish lad! If thou dost not soon end this -quarrel, there's my glove, I'll fight with thee myself." - -Then Christie Graeme stooped low. "Father, put on your glove again, the -wind has blown it from your hand." - - "What's that, thou sayst, thou limmer loon? - How darest thou stand to speak to me? - If thou do not end this quarrel soon, - There's my right hand, thou'lt fight with me!" - - -Then went Christie to his chamber, to consider what should happen. -Should he fight with his own father, or with his brother-in-arms, -Bewick? - - "If I should kill my billie dear, - God's blessing I shall never win; - But if I strike at my auld father, - I think 'twould be a mortal sin. - But if I kill my billie dear - It is God's will, so let it be; - But I make a vow, ere I go from home, - That I shall be the next man's die." - -He put a good old jack or quilted doublet on his back, and on his head -he put a cap of steel, and well did he become them with his sword and -buckler by his side! - -Now young Bewick had taken his father's sword under his arm, and walked -about his father's close. He looked between himself and the sun, to see -some approaching object, and was aware of a man in bright armour, riding -that way most hastily. - - "O who is yon, that comes this way, - So hastily that hither came? - I think it be my brother dear, - I think it be young Christie Graeme. - Your welcome here, my billie dear, - And thrice you're welcome unto me." - - -Christie explained that he was come to fight, that his father had been -to Carlisle, and had met with the elder Bewick. He retailed what had -passed, "and so I'll never earn my father's blessing, till he sees how -my arm can guard my head in fight against thee." - - "O God forbid, my billie dear, - That ever such a thing should be! - We'll take three men on either side, - And see if we can our fathers agree." - - -Christie shook his head. He knew that it was useless. "O hold thy -tongue, billie Bewick. If thou'rt a man, as I'm sure thou art, come -over the dyke and fight with me." - -"But I have no harness, billie, as I see you have." - -"As little harness as is on your back shall be on mine." - -With that Christie threw off his coat of mail and cap of steel, stuck -his spear into the ground, and tied his horse up to a tree. Bewick -threw off his cloak, and cast aside his psalter book. He laid his hand -upon the dyke, and vaulted over. The two fought for two long hours. -The sweat dropped fast from them both, but not a drop of blood could be -seen to satisfy the requirements of honour. At last Graeme hit Bewick -under the left breast, and he fell to the ground wounded mortally. - - "Rise up, rise up, now, billie dear, - Arise and speak three words to me! - Whether thou's gotten thy deadly wound, - Or if God and good leeching[#] may succour thee?" - -[#] Doctoring. - -Bewick groaned. "Get to horse, billie Graeme, and get thee hence -speedily. Get thee out of this country--that none may know who has done -this." "O have I slain thee, billie Bewick? But I made a vow, ere I -came from home, that I would be the next man to die!" Thereupon he -pitched his sword hilt downwards into a mole-hill, took a run of some -three and twenty feet, and on his own sword's point he fell to the -ground dead. - -Then up came Sir Robert Bewick. "Rise up, my son," he said, "for I -think you have got the victory." - -"O hold your tongue, my father dear. Let me be spared your prideful -talking. You might have drunken your wine in peace, and let me and my -billie be! Go dig a grave, both wide and deep, and a grave to hold us -both; but lay Christie Graeme on the sunny side, for full sure I know -that the victory was to him." - -"Alas," cried old Bewick, "I've lost the liveliest lad that ever was -born unto my name." "Alas," quoth good Lord Graeme, "my loss is the -greater. - - 'I've lost my hopes, I've lost my joy, - I've lost the key, but and the lock; - I durst have ridden the world around, - Had Christie Graeme been at my back!'" - - - - - *Chapter XXII* - - *The Song of the Outlaw Murray* - - - "Word is gone to our noble king, - In Edinburgh where that he lay, - That there was an Outlaw in Ettrick Forest - Counted him nought, nor all his Court so gay." - - -The King mentioned in the ballad is supposed to have been either James -IV. or James V. This places the date somewhere in the early part of the -sixteenth century. - -The Outlaw Murray and his lady kept royal state in Ettrick Forest. Here -he lived with five hundred men, all gaily clad in livery of Lincoln -green. His castle, built of lime and stone, stood fair and pleasantly -in the midst of the Forest, surrounded by pine trees under which -wandered many a hart and hind, many a doe and roe and other wild -creatures. In the forefront of the castle stood two unicorns, with the -picture of a knight and lady with green holly above their brows. - -The King in Edinburgh heard of all this royal state and that the Outlaw -in Ettrick Forest cared nought for the King of Scotland and his court. - -"I make a vow," said the King, "that either I shall be King of Ettrick -Forest, or the Outlaw shall be King of Scotland." - -Then up spoke Lord Hamilton to the noble King, "my sovereign prince, -take counsel of your nobles and of me. I counsel ye to send to the fine -Outlaw and see if he will come and be your man and hold the Forest in -fee from you. If he refuse, we will conquer both him and his lands, -throw his castle down, and make a widow of his gay lady." - -Then the King called to him James Boyd, son of the Earl of Arran, and -when Boyd came and knelt before him, "Welcome, James Boyd," said the -noble King; "you must go for me to Ettrick Forest where bides yonder -Outlaw, ask him of whom he holds his lands, and who is his master, and -desire him to come and be my man, and hold the Forest free from me. I -will give him safe warrant to and from Edinburgh, and if he refuse we -will conquer him and his lands, and throw down his castle, and make a -widow of his gay lady; and hang his merry men pair by pair wherever we -see them." - -James Boyd took leave of the King and went blithely on his way, until he -came to the fair Ettrick Forest, the first view of which he got coming -down Birkendale Brae. He saw the doe and roe, the hart and hind and wild -beasts in plenty, and heard blows ringing boldly, and arrows whizzing -near by him. - -He saw, too, the fair castle, the like of which he had never seen -before, with the two gay unicorns on the forefront, and the picture of -the knight and lady with the green holly above their brow. - -Then he spied the five hundred men, all clad in livery of Lincoln green, -and shooting with their bows on Newark Lee. In the midst of them was a -knight armed from head to foot, mounted on a milk-white steed, with -bended bow, all fine to look upon; whom Boyd knew at once to be the -Outlaw himself. - -"God save thee, brave Outlaw Murray, thy lady, and all thy chivalry!" - -"Marry, thou art welcome, gentleman; thou seemst to be a King's -messenger." - -"The King of Scotland sent me here, good Outlaw, to know of whom you -hold your lands, and who is your master." - -"These lands are _mine_. I know no King in Christendom. I won this -Forest from the English when neither the King nor his knights were there -to see." - -"The King desires that you come to Edinburgh, and hold the Forest then -of him. If you refuse, he will conquer your lands and you, and he has -vowed to throw down your castle, make a widow of your gay lady, and hang -your knights pair by pair wherever he finds them." - -"Ay, by my troth! I should indeed be far behind. Before the King should -get my fair native land, many of his nobles would be cold, and their -ladies right weary." - -Then spoke the lady of the Outlaw, fair of face. "That an Outlaw should -come before the King without my consent makes me fear much that there is -treason. Bid him be good to his lords at home, for my lord shall ne'er -see Edinburgh." - -James Boyd took leave of the bold Outlaw and went back to Edinburgh, and -when he came to the King, knelt lowly on his knee. - -"Welcome, James Boyd," said the noble King, "of whom is Ettrick Forest -held?" - -"Ettrick Forest is the fairest forest that ever man saw. There are doe -and roe and hart and hind and wild beasts in plenty; there's a fine -castle of lime and stone standing there pleasantly, and in the forefront -of the castle two unicorns all fine to see, with a picture of a knight -and a lady, and the green holly above their brows. There the Outlaw -keeps a royal company--five hundred merry men, all gaily clad in Lincoln -green, and the Outlaw and his lady in purple. Surely they live right -royally. He says that the forest is his own, that he won it from the -English, and that as he won it, so will he keep it against all the Kings -in Christendom." - -"Go warn me Perthshire and Angus," cried the King, "go warn Fife up and -down and the three Lothians, and harness my own horse, for I will myself -to Ettrick Forest." - -When the Outlaw heard that the King was coming to his country to conquer -him and his lands: - -"I make a vow," said he. "I make a vow, and that truly, that the King's -coming shall be a dear one." - -Then he called messengers and sent them in haste hither and thither. - -"One of you go to Halliday, Laird of Corehead, my sister's son. Tell -him to come quickly to my aid, for that the King comes to Ettrick -Forest, and we shall all be landless." - -"What news? What news, man, from thy master?" said Halliday. - -"No news thou carest to hear; I come seeking your aid; the King is his -mortal enemy." - -"By my troth, I am sorry for that; if Murray lose fair Ettrick Forest, -the King will take Moffatdale from me. I'll meet him with five hundred -men, and more if need be, and before he gets to Ettrick Forest, we will -all die on Newark Lee." - -Another messenger went from the Outlaw to Andrew Murray of Cockpool, his -dear cousin, to desire him to come and help him with all the power he -could get together. - -"It is hard," said Andrew Murray, "very hard to go against a crowned -King and put my lands in jeopardy; but if I come not by day I shall be -there at night." - -A messenger went also to Sir James Murray of Traquair. - -"What news? What news, man, from your master to me?" said James Murray. - -"What need I tell? Well ye know that the King is his mortal enemy and -that he is coming to Ettrick Forest to make ye all landless men." - -"By my troth," said James Murray, "with yonder Outlaw will I live and -die; the King has long ago given away my lands, so matters can be no -worse for me." - -So the King came on with five thousand men through Caddon Ford. They -saw the dark forest before them and thought it awesome to look upon, and -Lord Hamilton begged that the King should take counsel of his nobles and -should desire the Outlaw to meet him at Permanscore with four of his -company and that the King should go there also accompanied by five -Earls. "If he refuse to do that, we'll conquer both him and his lands; -there shall never a Murray after him hold lands free in Ettrick Forest." - -The Laird of Buckscleuth, a man stalwart and stern, thought it beneath -the state and dignity of a King to go and meet an Outlaw. "The man that -lives in yonder forest, lives by robbery and felony! wherefore, ride on, -my liege; we will follow thee with fire and sword; or if your courtier -lords fall back, our Borderers will make the onset." - -But the King spoke forth, casting a wily glance around. "Thou mayest -hold _thy_ tongue, Sir Walter Scott, nor speak more of robbery and -felony, for if every honest man had his own cattle thy clan would be a -poor one." - -The King then called to him a gentleman, a royal banner-bearer, James -Hoppringle of Torsonse by name, who came and knelt before him. -"Welcome, James Pringle of Torsonse, ye must take a message for me; go -to yonder Outlaw Murray, where he bideth so boldly; bid him meet me at -Permanscore with four of his company, I myself will come to him with -five Earls. If he refuse, bid him look for no favour from me. There -shall never a Murray after him have free land in Ettrick Forest." - -So James Pringle came before the Outlaw. "Welcome James Pringle of -Torsonse! What message bringst thou from the King to me?" - -"He bids ye meet him at Permanscore, with four of your company, and he -will go there himself with no more than five Earls. If you refuse, he -will cast down your bonny castle, make a widow of your gay lady, and -loose on you the bloodhound Borderers to harry you with fire and sword. -Never shall a Murray after you hold free land in Ettrick Forest." - -"It goes hard with me," said the Outlaw; "judge if it go not very hard. -I mind not the losing of myself, but when I think of my offspring after -me, my merry men's lives, my widow's tears, that is the pang that -pinches me. Yonder castle will be right dreary when I am laid in bloody -earth. Auld Halliday, young Halliday, ye two shall go with me, with -Andrew and James Murray." - -When they came before the King they fell on their knees. "Mercy, mercy, -noble King, for His sake who died on the Cross." - -"Such mercy shall ye have; ye shall be hanged on the gallows." - -"May God forbid, and may your mercy be better than that, else, when ye -come to the port of Edinburgh, ye shall be thinly guarded. These lands -of fair Ettrick Forest I won from the Southrons, and as I won them so -will I keep them, against all the Kings in Christendom." - -The nobles round the King thought it a pity that he should die. - -"Grant me mercy, sovereign prince, and extend me favour. If thou wilt -make me Sheriff of Ettrick Forest, and my offspring after me, I will -give thee the keys of my castle, and the blessing of my gay lady." - -"If thou wilt give me thy castle keys and the blessing of thy gay lady, -I'll make thee Sheriff of Ettrick Forest as long as the trees grow -upward, and never shalt thou forfeit it, if thou be not a traitor to the -King." - -"But Prince, what shall become of my men? When I go back they will call -me traitor. I had rather lose both life and land than be rebuked by my -merry-men." - -"I will pardon them all if they amend their lives. Name thy lands where -they lie, and I will render them back to thee." - -"Philiphaugh and Lewinhope are mine by right, Newark, Foulshiells and -Tinnies I won by my bow and arrow. I have farms at Newark Lee and -Hangingshaw which are mine by birth, and I have many farms in the Forest -whose names I do not know." Thereupon he gave the King the key of his -castle, with the blessing of his fair lady, and the King made him -Sheriff of Ettrick Forest for as long as the trees should grow upward, -never to be forfeited while he and his descendants remained faithful to -the King. Much of this land belongs to Murray's heirs, even to this -day. - - "Wha ever heard in, in ony times, - Sicken an outlaw in his degr, - Sic favour got befor a King, - As did the Outlaw Murray of the Foreste free?" - - - - - *Chapter XXIII* - - *Johnie Armstrong* - - - "When Johnie came before the King, - With all his men so brave to see, - The King he moved his bonnet to him; - He knew he was a King as well as he." - - -In 1529 James V. visited the Border country to execute justice on the -wild freebooters. Of these the chief was Johnie Armstrong of Gilnockie, -who levied blackmail for many miles round his residence at the Hollows, -and spread the terror of his name as far as Newcastle. Acting on the -evil counsel of false friends, Johnie presented himself before the King -in all the pomp of Border chivalry. - -According to the old ballad the King wrote with his own hand a loving -letter to Johnie Armstrong, Laird of Gilnockie, bidding him come and -speak with him speedily. Whereupon the Elliots and Armstrongs convened a -meeting, to which they came in gallant company, and decided to ride out -to meet the King and bring him to Gilnockie. - -"Make ready rabbits and capon and venison in plenty," said Johnie, "and -we'll welcome home our royal King to dine at Gilnockie." - -So they ran out their horses on Langholm Down, and broke their spears, -and the ladies, looking from their high windows, cried "God send our men -safe home again." - -When Johnie came before the King with all his brave fellows, the King -took off his bonnet to him as to an equal. - -"My name is Johnie Armstrong," said the freebooter, "your subject, my -liege; let me find grace for my loyal men and me." - -But the King cried, "Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! -Never have I granted a traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a bonnie -gift--four-and-twenty milk-white steeds, newly foaled--I'll give thee -four-and-twenty milk-white steeds that prance and neigh at a spear, and -as much English gold as four of their broad backs are able to bear." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a bonnie -gift--four-and-twenty mills that are working all the year round for -me--four-and-twenty mills that shall go for thee all the year round, and -as much good red wheat as all their happers are able to bear." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a great -gift--four-and-twenty sisters' sons shall fight for thee though all -should flee." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a brave gift. All -between here and Newcastle town shall pay thee yearly rent." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Ye lie, calling me traitor; ye lie now, King, although ye be King and -Prince. Well dare I say it, that all my life I have loved naught but -honesty, a fleet horse, a fair woman, and two bonny dogs to kill a deer; -yet had I lived for another hundred years, England should have still -found me meal and malt and plenty of beef and mutton. Never would a -Scot's wife have been able to say that I robbed her of aught. But -surely it is great folly to seek for hot water beneath cold ice. I have -asked grace of a graceless King, but there is none for me and my men. -But had I known before I came how unkind thou wouldst prove to me, I -would have kept the Borderside in spite of thee and thy nobles. How -glad would be England's King if he but knew that I was taken, for once I -slew his sister's son and broke a tree over his breastbone." - -Now Johnie had a girdle round his waist embroidered and spangled with -burning gold, very beautiful to look upon, and from his hat hung down -nine tassels, each worth three hundred pounds. "What wants that knave -that a King should have, but the sword of honour and the crown?" cried -the King. - -"Where did ye get those tassels, Johnie, that shine so bravely above -your brow?" - -"I got them fighting in the field where thou darest not be," replied -Johnie. "And had I now my horse and good harness, and were I riding as -I am used to do, this meeting between us should have been told these -hundred years. God be with thee, my brother Christy, long shalt thou -live Laird of Mangertown on the Border-side ere thou see thy brother -ride by again. God be with _thee_, my son Christy, where thou sitst on -thy nurse's knee; thou'lt ne'er be a better man than thy father, though -thou live a hundred years. Farewell, bonnie Hall of Gilnockie, standing -strong on Eskside; if I had lived but seven more years, I would have -gilded thee round about." - -Then Johnie Armstrong was slain by the King's orders at Carlinrigg with -all his gallant company, and Scotland's heart was sad to see the death -of so many brave men, who had saved their country from the Englishmen. -None were so brave as they, and while Johnie lived on the Border-side no -Englishman durst come near his stronghold. - - - - - *Chapter XXIV* - - *The Lament of the Border Widow* - - -How King James V. of Scotland, in 1529, set forth to strike terror into -the Border freebooters, has been already told in the account of Johnie -Armstrong. A less celebrated moss-trooper, Cockburne of Henderland, was -hanged by the pitiless King over the gate of his own tower. The wife of -Cockburne loved him most dearly, and when she found the King would show -no mercy, fled away to the rocks behind the castle whilst the cruel -sentence was carried out. She sat by a roaring torrent of the -Henderland burn, the noise of which in her ears drowned the savage -shouts of the King's soldiers. The beautiful song which describes the -grief of this loving woman is one of the gems of ancient poetry, and is -here printed entire. - - - *THE LAMENT OF THE BORDER WIDOW* - - My love he built me a bonny bower, - And clad it a' wi' lilye flower, - A brawer bower ye ne'er did see, - Than my true love he built for me. - - There came a man by middle day, - He spied his sport, and went away; - And brought the King that very night, - Who brake my bower, and slew my knight. - - He slew my knight to me sae dear; - He slew my knight, and took his gear; - My servants all for life did flee, - And left me in extremitie. - - I sew'd his sheet, making my moan; - I watch'd the corpse, myself alone; - I watch'd his body, night and day; - No living creature came that way. - - I took his body on my back, - And whiles I gaed, and whiles I sat; - I digg'd a grave, and laid him in, - And happ'd him with the sod sae green. - - But think na ye my heart was sair, - When I laid the moul' on his yellow hair; - O think na ye my heart was wae, - When I turn'd about, away to gae? - - Nae living man I'll love again, - Since that my lovely knight was slain, - Wi' ae lock of his yellow hair, - I'll chain my heart for evermair. - -[Illustration: "_I sew'd his sheet, making my moan; I watch'd the -corpse, myself alone._"] - - - - - *Chapter XXV* - - *The Raid of the Kers* - - -The spirited ballad that describes this raid is quite modern, since it -was written by Hogg, "the Ettrick Shepherd," in 1830. But the rash raid -it describes took place in 1549. The Kers were an important Border -family, the leaders of whom afterwards became Earls of Roxburgh. Sir -Andrew Ker was warden of the Border at the time of the raid, but he -proved that it took place without his consent. The Kers were all -left-handed men, and puzzled their enemies by their left-handed -swordsmanship. Even to-day in some parts of the borders a left-handed -man is called "Ker-handed." - -On a fine September evening Tam Ker rode out, with fifty in his company. -They were armed for a fight and their swords were keen; they rode by the -Maiden Crags and down the Osway burn, going carefully till the daylight -closed, for they were soon in Northumberland. Their bold plan was to get -down the valley of the Coquet even as far as Rothbury where Withrington, -the English warden, kept a magnificent herd of cattle. They had one -castle to pass, that of Biddleston, which had been held by the Selby -family since the reign of Henry III., and still belongs to them to this -day. Biddleston Castle guarded the Allanton or Alwinton ford, where the -Alwin stream enters the Coquet. So they sent the reckless Mark Ker -first, to scout along by the ford, and told him to set up marks on the -cairns to show his progress. Having nothing else to mark with, he tore -the shirt off his back, and left strips of it on the cairns. At the -ford a sentry challenged him, and he answered that he had a message for -Withrington. The sentry demanded his sealed warrant, and the Scot drew -his sword. They fought bravely and long before the Englishman was -killed, and the Scot marvelled that a common soldier should so withstand -him, for he was the best swordsman of his race. On he galloped, on and -on, till he met a comely maiden, and addressing her he tried to imitate -the Northumberland speech, saying that he had lost his way. She told -him at once that she knew he was a Scot, but so also was she. She had -been taken captive, but word had came by an English spy that the Kers -were out upon a raid, and while the English had set a hundred soldiers -to guard their cattle she had slipped away to warn the Scots and to -return with them. Being a gallant after the manner of that day, he -sprang from his horse, kissed her, and invited her to mount his saddle -even if he had to run beside till he could capture another steed. But -an English soldier came up and warned him roughly off the road. Mark -Ker had been brought up to answer rough words with rougher blows; out -leapt his sword, and he cut the rude words short by slashing the man's -head off. Then he disguised the maid in the dead man's clothes, and they -retraced their steps that he might warn his companions. They very soon -came upon them, and all together hid in the lowest dell of the Larbottle -burn while they made their plans. Tam Ker, with twenty of the men, was -to draw off the English, while Mark with thirty others slipped round and -drove off the cattle unperceived. This was done, and till after -midnight, Tam, aided by the darkness and by the difficulties of the wild -locality, held the English at bay. - -Then he heard the bugle signal, and knew that Mark was well on the road -with the beasts, and that he must follow quickly. But Withrington also -guessed what the signal meant, and pursued with all the speed he knew. -Mark had not long crossed the ford at Biddleston before the English were -on him. First Mark and Withrington fought in single combat, hand to -hand, all their men watching eagerly; it was still very dark, but the -clash of sword against sword lit the air with sparks. Withrington was -badly wounded, but Mark was killed. With desperate shouts the Scots fell -upon the English; then up came Tam and his men from behind to help the -Scots, but the Captain of Biddleston had also been awakened, and -galloped down with his men to aid the English. Tam smote his head off -with his sword, but the horse galloped on with his headless body right -into the ranks of the Scots. They thought it must be a demon and began -to scatter in full flight to the Border. Tam was slain, trying to -follow them, and his men, seeing that they had work enough to gallop for -their lives, slew the cattle they could no longer hope to steal. On and -on the hard-pressed remnant spurred their weary horses. It was daylight -now, and the English along the road shot arrows at them as they galloped -past. Out of fifty-one hardy, healthy Kers who had started forth in the -raid, only seventeen, weary and wounded, saw their homes again. - -And back in the south country, the comely Scottish maiden lay dead -across the breast of the gallant Mark, their hearts' blood mingling in a -common stream. Small wonder that a Scot should make a ballad of the -story and that Borderers should sing it even to this day. - - - - - *Chapter XXVI* - - *Merrie Carlisle* - - -The city of Carlisle stands in the midst of a beautiful and fertile -district with pleasant but not too steep hills around. In the old days -an easy water-supply was a first essential, and at Carlisle three rivers -meet, the Caldew and the Petterill running here into the broad stream of -the Eden. These three rivers almost enclose the ground upon which the -city is built, so that it is most probable that there was an ancient -British settlement upon so advantageous a site, before the Roman -invasion. Our earliest record, however, goes back no further than Roman -days, and it is certain there was then a Roman city here called -_Luguvallium_ (the trench of the legion). Even to-day, when new -gas-pipes are being laid in the ground, it is by no means rare to dig up -Roman relics. The long Roman name became gradually corrupted into -"Luel," or "Liel," and the Britons added their word "Caer," which means -a city, hence "Caer-luel"--an earlier form of the modern Carlisle. The -Roman city stood, as might be expected, by the great Roman wall, -guarding the spot where the wall crossed the river Eden. And visitors -may see to-day that the centre of Carlisle consists of a market-place -with two main streets leading therefrom, the usual plan in cities of -Roman origin. - -Carlisle was destined to have a stormy history. Draw a line from the -Solway eastward, straight through Carlisle, and it will be seen that -here the mainland of Britain is about at its narrowest, hardly so much -as seventy miles wide, as the crow flies. Note, too, that the wild -hills of the Pennines and the Cheviots fill in most of this narrow -district, and that the mainland of Scotland strikes sharply off to the -west. It is plain from these facts that Carlisle commands the main road -between Scotland and England, and they provide the reason why at the -present day seven different railways, most of them important ones, run -their trains into Carlisle station. The very same reason was responsible -for the fact that in the good old times no English town was more often -burnt down by enemies than "Merrie Carlisle." - -Even in Roman days, during the reign of Nero, Carlisle was burnt down at -least once by the wild Picts, who were brave enough to venture against -the well-armed troops of Rome. After the Romans left Britain this town -was one of the strongholds of King Arthur; to be sure, nothing very -definite is known about this romantic king, but the old ballads tell us -that he was victorious over Gauls, Dacians, Spaniards, and Romans. This -sounds very unlikely to those who do not realise that when Rome called -home her best men for her own defence she may have left behind many -rough soldiers, of various nations, to guard the wall. Although we know -nothing about King Arthur save what is vague and legendary, we do know -that the Roman legions were recruited from all the provinces of the -empire. Cumberland had many connexions with King Arthur; within twenty -miles of Carlisle, near Penrith, is a big round hill called "King -Arthur's Table"; while nearer still, on the Penrith and Carlisle road, -is shown the spot where stood Tearne-Wadling Lake and Castle, where King -Arthur was bewitched and taken prisoner by the "foul, discourteous -knight," only to be released provided one of his men would consent to -marry the hideous lady with hair like serpents! When at last Sir -Gawaine married this hag for his King's sake, she, of course, changed at -once into a beautiful young woman! This does not sound very convincing, -it is true, but in the old days many tales just as unlikely were told of -famous men. At any rate the ballad begins with the lilting line:-- - - "King Arthur lives in merrie Carleile," - -and all that concerns us at the moment is that perhaps he really did -live there, and did do some very real fighting along the debateable line -of the wall. - -We next learn of Carlisle that King Egfrid of Northumbria rebuilt the -city about the year 675, wherefore we can only suppose that it had -suffered its somewhat usual fate, perhaps at the hands of that savage -Saxon warrior called The Burner. But in any case, Carlisle never -belonged to the Northumbrians for any considerable space of time, but -was the capital of the Celtic or Welsh kingdom of Cumbria, from which -the present name of Cumberland is derived. - -In 875 the Danes had a turn at pillaging and harrying Carlisle, which -was again in sorry plight. Both Cumbria and Northumbria were faring -very badly in the struggle between the various kingdoms which then -divided up Britain, and for a while it looked as if the energetic kings -of the Scots would annex both these northern dominions. But the coming -of the strong-handed Normans altered all this; and by far the most -noteworthy event in the history of Carlisle was the fact that during -1092 and 1093 William Rufus seized Cumberland, and for the first time -added it definitely to England. - -Recognising at once the strength and value of Carlisle, Rufus caused a -strong Norman castle to be built where the old Roman fort used to stand. -To-day, despite the many rough adventures which have befallen this -northern city, there yet remain portions of William Rufus's castle, side -by side with fragments of the old Roman walls. Many of the modern -buildings put up in King George's day are crumbling, but the old Norman -and Roman remains are firm as a rock! - -The castle was strengthened by King Henry I., but this did not prevent -its seizure in 1135 by King David of Scotland, who added to it in turn. -The Scots held the keep till 1157, when it was retaken by Henry II., but -a few years later, in 1173, William the Lion, King of Scotland, besieged -it, and for the next fifty years it changed hands several times, -according to the fortunes of war. It is significant that a main street -in the northern part of Carlisle is called "Scotch Street," while -another in the southern part is called "English Street!" - -Edward I. held a parliament here after defeating Wallace at Falkirk; and -it was from Carlisle that this English King conducted his later -operations against Scotland. It is a pathetic picture, that of this -stern warrior in his old age, on his last march, trying to carry out his -pet scheme of uniting the entire island under one rule. He was so ill -that he had to be carried in a litter as far as Carlisle. Finding -himself again so near the border, he felt the old fire glow within him, -and sprang upon his horse--but at Burgh-on-Sands, on the shore of the -Solway, whence he could view the goal of his ambition, the brave King -died. - -During the next thirty years Carlisle was frequently attacked by the -Scots, but they were usually defeated. In 1337, however, they partly, -and in 1345 almost entirely burnt it down. Again in 1380 they burnt -part of what had been rebuilt! Had there been fire insurance in these -wild days, the premiums in Carlisle would have been heavy! - -After the Wars of the Roses, the city seemed to settle down somewhat, -and was chiefly known on the Border as the place where Scottish -freebooters were hanged if caught. In one of the Border villages there -is a famous churchyard where of old only the graves of women and -children were to be seen. The explanation was given to a passing -traveller by an old woman, who said that the men were all buried "in -merrie Carlisle," meaning, that is, that they had all been hanged there! - -In 1537 there was a rising in England known as the "Pilgrimage of -Grace," in opposition to the savage policy of Henry's minister, Thomas -Cromwell, and no less than eighty thousand insurgents are said to have -attacked Carlisle; but after much fighting the rebels were defeated and -seventy-four of their leaders were executed on the city walls. - -When Mary Queen of Scots was imprisoned in Carlisle in 1568 it was -vainly besieged by a force that sought to rescue her; but less than -thirty years afterwards, in 1596, by a bold stroke of daring, Lord Scott -of Buccleuch succeeded in surprising the castle and in liberating the -well-known freebooter, "Kinmont Willie." - -When King James united England and Scotland, the troubles of Carlisle -might have been thought to be over. But in the civil war between King -and Parliament it was again a storm centre, and was held alternately by -each of the parties. - -The last warlike operations against this much-besieged city were -undertaken in 1745, when it was first taken by Prince Charlie, who made -a triumphal entry without any serious fighting, and afterwards retaken -almost as easily by the cruel Duke of Cumberland, whose entry into the -place was followed, as usual, by a series of executions. - -Among those who suffered was Sir A. Primrose, a gallant ancestor of the -present Lord Rosebery. The victims were executed, with the cruelties of -the old law against treason, on the celebrated Gallows Hill, at Harraby, -and were buried in nameless graves in the Kirkyard of St Cuthbert's. -Passing down the Botchergate (the London Road), past the site of the old -Roman cemetery, the wayfarer may see Gallows Hill rise where a deep cut -has been made to avoid a steep rise in the road. It was just outside the -boundary of old Carlisle, and executions were witnessed from the walls, -by men and women alike. Climb the hill--it is worth while. The little -river Petteril sparkles at our feet; the view, fresh and green, -stretches away nobly to the Pennines and the Border Hills. Keep a warm -thought in your heart for all the gallant fellows who met death bravely -in this place. - -No history of Carlisle could omit to mention the Cathedral. English -cathedrals are shaped like a cross lying on the ground; the long stem of -the cross is the _nave_ of the cathedral; the two arms are the -_transepts_; and the upper end that continues the main stem is the -_choir_. Where choir, nave and transepts meet, the _tower_ rises. But -unlike every other English cathedral, that of Carlisle has height and -width, but is too short in length, two-thirds of the nave having been -hurled down by the Scots! - -Every cathedral has its history written in its stones, for those who -know how to read it. That of Carlisle shows a stormy history, stormier -than any other. It is not a peaceful building carried out very much in -one style and undisturbed. It is a building full of signs of -disturbance, the builders of which were interrupted in their plans by -war and frequently had their building seriously damaged by their -enemies. It is a mixture of styles, a mass of re-buildings and -afterthoughts, but for that very reason it is a fitting symbol of the -much-harassed city. With all its signs of storm and stress it has much -beauty, and possesses the finest window in all England, one of the -finest in the world. Just outside the Cathedral is a noble stretch of -the old West Wall of the city, which gives a vivid idea of its strength -in the old days. - -The bishops of Carlisle live at Rose Castle, five miles south of the -Cathedral. This has been their residence for over six hundred years. -No doubt they thought it advisable not to live in the "merrie city"! - -In this castle King Edward I. stayed. It was once partly burnt by -Bruce, and again partly by the Puritans, but this is a comparatively -clean record for such a district! In 1745 Captain Macdonald and his -Scots came down to besiege it, but hearing that the bishop's baby -daughter was about to be christened, the gallant captain would not let -warfare spoil so peaceful a ceremony, and not only withdrew his men, but -also left a white cockade behind him as a sign that the place was not to -be molested. In all this he showed that true courtesy that always marks -the real Highland gentleman. - -Standing to-day in this bustling, breezy, pleasant little city, it is -not easy to realise the wild scenes it has witnessed. The charming -rivers that hem it in show no traces of the bloodshed of the past. Yet -here have contended painted Pict and war-trained Roman; here the most -skilful leaders of the Celts, Saxons, and Danes have led their brave and -sturdy men to battle; here Norman knight has fought with hardy Scot, and -fierce Border factions have wrangled and sought speedy justice; Puritan -has fought Cavalier, and Jacobite has faced Hanoverian; kings, generals, -and warriors of many centuries have found a fitting meeting-place before -or behind the walls of Carlisle. - -An open, airy, quaint city. There is not very much that is old in it, -for the old was not allowed to stand long enough! But on the top of its -principal hill the tall truncated Cathedral presents a picturesque -figure, and if we stand there or by the castle the eye commands fine, -ancient walls and very delightful distances. It is a place of lingering -memories, and if these are chiefly of strife and bloodshed we do not -forget that to the Border folk the city was "Merrie Carlisle." - - - - - *Chapter XXVII* - - *Kinmont Willie* - - - "O have ye not heard of the false Sakelde, - O have ye not heard of the keen Lord Scroope, - How they have taken bold Kinmont Willie - On Haribee to hang him oop?" - - -The story of this famous freebooter, William Armstrong of Kinmonth, -belongs to the time of Queen Elizabeth, when Lord Scroope was Warden of -the Western Marches, and Mr Sakelde of Corby Castle was his Deputy. - -Kinmont Willie was a descendant of the famous Johnie Armstrong of -Gilnockie, and his capture was a violation of the existing truce between -Scroope and Buccleuch, the Keeper of Liddesdale. Elizabeth was -indignant at Buccleuch's action in rescuing Willie, and as the Scots at -that time were very anxious not to offend her, Buccleuch was sent to -England and came before the Queen, who asked him how he dared to -undertake such an adventure. "What is it," answered he, "that a man -dare not do?" - -"With ten thousand such men," said Elizabeth, turning to a -lord-in-waiting, "our brother of Scotland might shake the firmest throne -of Europe." - -The ballad tells of the capture of Kinmont Willie, and how the false -Sakelde and his men treacherously seized him. - -They bound his legs beneath his horse, and tied his hands behind his -back, and with five men on each side to guard him, brought him over -Liddel ford and through Carlisle sands to Carlisle castle. - -When he arrived there, Willie addressed his captor in these words: - -"My hands are tied, but my tongue is free. Who will avow this deed or -answer for it to bold Buccleuch?" - -"Hold thy tongue, thou rank robber! Never a Scot shall set thee free. -Ye shall take farewell of me before ye cross my castle gate," said -Scroope. - -"Fear ye not that, my lord," answers Willie, "for by the faith of my -body, never did I yet lodge in a hostelry but that I paid my reckoning -before I went." - -Word was sent to Branksome Hall to the Keeper of Liddesdale that Lord -Scroope had captured Kinmont Willie, whereupon the Keeper smote the -table with his hand till the red wine sprang on high, "A curse on my -head," he cried, "if I be not avenged of Lord Scroope. Is my helmet a -widow's cap, or my lance a twig from a willow-tree, or my fist a lady's -lily hand, that an English lord should appraise me so lightly? Have -they taken Kinmont Willie in spite of the truce, and forgotten that the -bold Buccleuch is Keeper on the Scottish side? Have they taken Kinmont -Willie so fearlessly, and forgotten that the bold Buccleuch can back a -steed and wield a weapon? Were there but war between the lands, then -would I slight Carlisle Castle though it were built of marble; I would -set it on fire and drench it with English blood. But since there is -peace and not war, I'll set the Kinmont free yet never harm English lad -or lass!" - -So Buccleuch called forty bold Marchmen, all of his own name and kin -except one, Sir Gilbert Elliot, Laird of Stobs. They came spur on heel -and armour on shoulder, with gloves of green and feathers of blue. Five -and five came first with hunting-horns and bugles; five and five more -came with Buccleuch like Warden's men arrayed for battle; five and five -came like a gang of masons, carrying long high ladders; and five and -five came like broken men, and so they reached Woodhouselee. - -When they had crossed to the English side, the first man they met was -the false Sakelde. - -"Where are ye going, ye keen hunters?" quoth Sakelde. - -"We go to hunt an English stag that has trespassed on Scottish ground." - -"Where are ye going, ye martial men?" - -"We go to catch a rank robber that has broken faith with the bold -Buccleuch." - -"Where are ye going, ye mason lads, with all these long high ladders?" - -"We go to harry a corbie's nest not far from here." - -"Where are ye going, ye broken men?" said false Sakelde. - -But Dickie of Dryhope, leader of the broken men, had never a word of -learning, and answered nothing. - -"Why trespass ye on the English side? Stand! ye raw-footed outlaws!" - -Never a word yet said Dickie, but for answer ran his lance clean through -the body of the false Sakelde. - -On then they went to Carlisle town, crossing the Eden at Staneshaw-bank, -nor lost they either horse or man, though the water was high in flood. - -When they reached Staneshaw-bank the wind was rising, and the Laird -ordered them to leave there their horses for fear they should stamp and -neigh. The wind blew loudly enough then, but when they came beneath the -castle wall there was wind and rain and flying sleet. On they crept on -their knees and held their breath till they placed the ladders against -the wall. Buccleuch himself mounted first, took the watchman by the -throat and flung him down upon the leads. "Thou hadst gone on the other -side," said he, "had there not been peace between our lands." - -[Illustration: _The Escape of Kinmont Willie_] - -"Sound out the trumpets!" quoth he; "let's wake up Lord Scroope!" Then -loud blew the Warden's trumpet to the tune of "O wha dare meddle wi' -me?" - -To work they went speedily, and cut a hole through the lead, gaining -thus the castle hall. - -Those inside thought the castle had been taken by King James and all his -men, yet it was only twenty Scots and ten that had put a thousand in -such a stir. They hammered and banged at the bars until they came to -the inner prison, where lay Kinmont Willie. - -"Do ye sleep or wake, Kinmont Willie, on the morn when ye shall die?" - -"O I sleep lightly and wake often; it's long since sleep was frightened -from me. Give my service to my wife and bairns and all good fellows -that enquire after me." - -Red Rowan, the strongest man in Teviotdale, lifted him up. "Stay now, -Red Rowan, till I take farewell of Lord Scroope. Farewell, farewell, my -good Lord Scroope," he cried. "I will pay ye for my lodging when first -we meet on the Border." - -With shout and cry Red Rowan bore him on his shoulders down the long -ladder, the irons clanking at every stride. - -"Many a time," said Kinmont Willie, "have I ridden a horse both wild and -unruly, but never have my legs bestrode a rougher beast than Red Rowan. -Many a time have I pricked a horse over the furrows, but never since I -backed a steed have I worn such cumbrous spurs." - -Scarcely had they won the Staneshaw-bank when all the bells in Carlisle -were ringing and Lord Scroope was after them with a thousand men on -horse and on foot. But-- - - "Buccleuch has turn'd to Eden water - Even where it flowed frae bank to brim, - And he has plunged in wi' a' his band, - And safely swam them through the stream. - - He turn'd him on the other side, - And at Lord Scroope his glove flung he-- - 'If ye like na my visit to merry England, - In fair Scotland come visit me!' - - All sore astonished stood Lord Scroope, - He stood as still as rock of stane; - He scarcely dared to trew[#] his eyes, - When through the water they had gane. - -[#] Trust - - 'He is either himsell a devil frae hell, - Or else his mother a witch maun be; - I wadna have ridden that wan water, - For a' the gowd[#] in Christentie.'" - -[#] Gold - - - - - *Chapter XXVIII* - - *Dick o' the Cow* - - - "Fair Johnie Armstrong to Willie did say - 'Billie, a-riding we will gae.'" - - -The ballad of this name, a popular one in Liddesdale, relates, like that -of Kinmont Willie, to the time when Lord Scroope was Warden of the West -Marches and Governor of Carlisle. Dick o' the Cow seems to have been his -fool or jester. Dickie, some years after the events described in the -ballad, fell a victim to the vengeance of the Armstrongs. - - -There had been no raids from Liddesdale for a considerable time, and no -riding, and the horses had all grown so fat that they dare scarcely stir -out of the stall. Then fair Johnie Armstrong said to his brother Willie, -"Brother, we will go a-riding. We have long been at feud with England, -and perhaps we shall find some spoil." - -So they rode to Hulton Hall and round about it, but the laird, a wise -man, had left neither goods nor cattle outside to steal, except six -sheep in a meadow. Said Johnie, "I'd rather die in England than take -those six sheep to Liddesdale." - -"But who was that man we last met as we came over the hill?" - -"Oh, he is an innocent fool, and men call him Dick o' the Cow." - -"That fool has three good cows of his own, as good as there are in -Cumberland. Betide me life or death, they shall go to Liddesdale with -me!" - -So they came to the house of the poor fool, broke down his thick wall, -loosed his three cows, and took also three coverlets from his wife's -bed. - -In the morning at daylight when the loss was discovered, there were loud -lamentations. "Hold thy tongue, wife," said Dickie, "and stop thy -crying. I'll bring thee back three cows for each one that thou hast -lost." - -So Dickie went to Lord Scroope. "Hold thy tongue, fool," said Scroope. -"I have no time for jesting." - -"A shame on your jesting, my lord!" said Dickie, "jesting agrees not -with me. Liddesdale was in my house last night and has taken my three -cows. I can no longer dwell in Cumberland as your poor faithful fool, -unless you give me leave to steal in Liddesdale." - -"I give thee leave, fool!" said Scroope; "but thou speakest against me -and my honour unless thou give me thy hand and pledge that thou wilt -steal from none but those who stole from thee." - -"There is my right hand and pledge! May my head hang on Haribee, and -may I never again cross Carlisle sands if I steal from any man who stole -not from me.", - -Dickie joyfully took leave of his lord and master, and went and bought a -bridle and a pair of new spurs which he packed up in the thigh of his -breeches, then he came on as fast as he could to Pudding-burn house, -where were thirty-three Armstrongs. - -"O what has come to me now?" said Dickie, "what great trouble is this? -For here is but one innocent fool against thirty-three Armstrongs?" Yet -he went courteously up to the Hall board. - -"Well may ye be, my good Laird's Jock, but the devil bless all your -company. I'm come to complain of your man, Johnie Armstrong, and of his -brother Willie, that they came to my house last night and took away my -three cows." - -Quoth fair Johnie Armstrong, "We'll hang him." - -"Nay," said Willie, "we'll slay him." - -But up spoke another young Armstrong, "We'll give him a thrashing and -let him go." - -Then up spoke the good Laird's Jock, the best fellow in all the company, -"Sit down a while, Dickie, and we'll give thee a bit of thine own cow's -thigh." - -Dickie's heart was so sore that he could not eat a bit, but he went and -lay down in an old peat-house where he thought to sleep the night, and -all the prayers the poor fool prayed were, "I wish I had amends for my -three good cows." - -Now it was the custom of Pudding-burn house and of the house of -Mangerton, whose laird was chief of the Armstrong clan, that any who -came not to the table at the first summons got no more meat till the -next meal, so some of the lads, hungry and weary, had thrown the key of -the stable above the door-head. Dickie took good notice of that to turn -it to his own account, went into the stable where stood thirty-three -horses and tied thirty of them with St Mary's knot, tight to their -stalls. - -Of the remaining three, Dickie took two, which belonged to Johnie and -Willie Armstrong, and the one belonging to the Laird's Jock he left -loose in the stable. Leaping on one, he took the other along with him, -and rode off as fast as he could. - -When day came, there were great shouts and cries. - -"Who has done this," quoth the good Laird's Jock; "see that ye tell me -the truth." - -"It is Dickie that has been in the stable last night, and has taken the -horses." - -"Ye never would listen to me," said the good Laird's Jock, "though I -told ye true tales. Ye would never stay out of England but would steal -everything, till ye were crooked and blind." - -"Lend me thy bay," said fair Johnie; "he is the only horse loose in the -stable, and I'll either fetch back Dick o' the Cow, or he shall die." - -"Lend thee my bay!" said Jock; "he is worth gold and good money. Dick -o' the Cow has taken two horses; I would not ye make them three." - -Johnie, however, took the Laird's steel jacket on his back, and a -two-handed sword by his side, and a steel cap on his head, and galloped -after Dickie, who was barely three miles from the town when Johnie -overtook him on Cannobie Lee, on the borders of Liddesdale. - -"Abide, abide, thou traitor thief!" cried Armstrong; "the day is come -that thou shalt die!" - -Dickie looked over his left shoulder and said, "Johnie, hast thou no -more in thy company? There is a preacher in our chapel who teaches all -the livelong day, and when day is gone and night has come, there are -only three words I remember--the first and second are Faith and -Conscience--the third is 'Ne'er let a traitor free.' What faith and -conscience was thine, Johnie, when thou tookest away my three cows? And -when thou hadst taken them away, thou wast not satisfied. Thou sentest -thy brother Willie, and took away three coverlets off my wife's bed!" - -Then Johnie let his spear fall low by his side, and thought he would -have killed Dickie, but the powers above were stronger than he, and he -only succeeded in running through the fool's jerkin. Dickie out with -his sword and ran after him, and when he could not get at him with the -blade, he felled him with the butt-end over the eye, felled Johnie -Armstrong, the finest man in the south country. "Gramercy," said -Dickie, "I had but two horses, thou hast made them three!"--and he took -Johnie's steel jacket off his back and his two-handed sword, and his -steel cap. "Farewell, Johnie," said he, "I'll tell my master I met -thee." - -When Johnie wakened out of his swoon, he was a sad man. "Art thou gone, -Dickie?" he said. "Then the shame and woe are left with me. Art thou -gone? Then, Dickie, the devil go in thy company, for if I live to be a -hundred, I'll never again fight with a fool." - -Dickie came home to the good Lord Scroope as fast as he could. "Now, -Dickie, I'll neither eat nor drink till thou art hanged on high." -"Shame speed the liars, my lord," said Dickie, "this was not the promise -ye made me, for I would never have gone to Liddesdale to steal if I had -not got leave from thee." "But why did ye steal the Laird's Jock's -horse? Ye might have lived long in Cumberland before the Laird's Jock -had stolen from thee." - -"Indeed, I knew ye lied, my lord. I won the horse from fair Johnie -Armstrong hand to hand on Cannobie Lee. There is the jacket that was on -his back, and the two-handed sword that hung by his side, and the steel -cap that was on his head. I brought all these tokens to show thee." - -"If that be true that thou tellest me (and I think thou durst not lie) -I'll give thee fifteen pounds for the horse, all told out in the lap of -thy cloak; I'll give thee one of my best milk cows to maintain thy wife -and three children, and they will be as good as any two of thine would -be." - -"Shame speed the liars, my lord!" said Dickie. "Do ye think aye to make -a fool of me? I'll either have twenty pounds for the horse or else I'll -take him to Mortan fair." - -So Scroope gave him twenty pounds for the horse, all in gold and good -money, and one of his best milk cows to maintain his wife and three -children. - -Then Dickie rode as fast as he could through Carlisle town, and the -first man he met was my lord's brother, Ralph Scroope, Bailiff of -Glozenburrie. - -"Well be ye met, Ralph Scroope!" said Dickie. - -"Welcome, my brother's fool!" said Ralph. "Where did ye get Johnie -Armstrong's horse?" - -"Where did I get him? I stole him," said Dickie. - -"Wilt thou sell me the bonny horse?" - -"Ay, if thou count out the money in the lap of my cloak, for never a -penny will I trust thee." - -"I'll give thee ten pounds for the horse and count it into the lap of -thy cloak, and one of my best milk cows to maintain thy wife and three -children." - -"Shame speed the liars, my lord! Do ye think aye to make a fool of me? -I'll either have twenty pounds for the horse, or I'll take him to Mortan -fair." - -So Ralph gave him twenty pounds for the horse, all in gold and good -money, and one of his milk cows to maintain his wife and three children. - -Then Dickie leaped and laughed, and cried, "May the neck of the third -horse be broken if either of the two were better than he!" - -So he came home to his wife and ye may judge how the poor fool had -succeeded. For her three stolen coverlets he gave her two score English -pounds, and two cows as good as her own three. "And here," said he, "is -a white-footed nag that I reckon will carry us both. But if I stay -longer in Cumberland the Armstrongs will hang me." So Dickie took leave -of his lord and went to live at Burgh under Stanmuir. - - - - - *Chapter XXIX* - - *The Lochmaben Harper* - - -The castle of Lochmaben is said to have been the residence of Robert -Bruce while Lord of Allandale. Hence, as a royal fortress, the keeping -of it was always granted to some powerful lord. There is extant a grant -giving to one of these, Robert Lauder, the office of Captain and Keeper -of Lochmaben Castle for seven years, and among his perquisites were -"lands stolen from the King"! - -The inhabitants of four small villages near the castle have each still -to this day a right to a small piece of ground. These people are -descendants of Robert Bruce's retainers, to whom he assigned these -portions of land in reward for faithful service, and there are still to -be found some families (_e.g._ the Richardsons of Lochmaben) who hold -their lands direct from the times of Bruce without a break. - - "O heard ye na o' the silly blind Harper, - How long he lived in Lochmaben town? - And how he wad gang to fair England, - To steal the Lord Warden's Wanton Brown? - - But first he gaed to his gude wyfe, - Wi' a' the haste that he could thole[#] - 'This wark,' quo' he, 'will ne'er gae well - Without a mare that has a foal.' - -[#] Suffer. - - -Quoth his wife, "Thou hast a good grey mare that can jump both high and -low; so set thee on her back and leave the foal at home with me." Away -went the Harper to England as fast as he might, and when he came to -Carlisle gate, who should be there but the Warden himself? - - "'Come into my hall, thou silly blind Harper, - And of thy harping let me hear!' - 'O, by my sooth,' quo' the silly blind Harper, - 'I wad rather hae stabling for my mare." - - The Warden looked o'er his left shoulder, - And said unto his stable groom-- - 'Gae take the silly blind Harper's mare, - And tie her beside my Wanton Brown.'" - - -So the Harper harped and sang, the lordlings danced, and so sweet was -the music that the groom forgot all about the stable door. Still the -Harper harped on till all the nobles were fast asleep, when he quickly -took off his shoes, crept softly down the stair, and hied with light -tread to the stable door, which he opened and entered. He found there -three-and-thirty steeds. He took a colt's halter which he had hidden in -his hose, slipped it over Wanton Brown, tied it to the grey mare's tail, -and turned them both loose at the castle gate. - -Away they went over moor and moss and dale, and the mare never let -Wanton rest a moment, but kept him galloping home to her foal. So swift -of foot was she, and knew her way so well, that she reached Lochmaben a -good three hours before daybreak. - -When she came to the Harper's door, she neighed and snorted. "Rise up," -shouted the Harper's wife, "thou lazy lass, and let in thy master and -his mare." The lass rose up, put on her clothes and looked through the -lock-hole. "By my sooth," cried she, "our mare has got a fine brown -foal!" - -"Hold thy tongue, thou foolish wench, the light is dazzling thine eyes. -I'll wager all I have against a groat that it's bigger than ever our -foal will be." - -Still in merry Carlisle the Harper harped to high and low, and nought -could they do but listen to him until day-dawn. But when it was -daylight they discovered that Wanton Brown was gone and also the poor -blind Harper's mare. - -"Alas! alas!" cried the cunning old Harper, "alas that I came here; in -Scotland I have lost a brown colt foal and in England they have stolen -my good grey mare." - -"Cease thy lamenting, thou silly blind Harper, and go on harping; we'll -pay thee well for the loss of thy colt foal and thou shalt have a far -better mare." So the harper harped and sang, and so sweet were his -harpings that he was paid for the foal he never had lost and three times -over for the gray mare. - - - - - *Chapter XXX* - - *The Rookhope Ride* - - -This Durham border song is supposed to be spoken by a Weardale man, who -begins by denouncing the inhabitants of the Tyne valley, "and all their -companies there about" as false thieves, - - "minded to do mischief - And at their stealing stands not out." - - -It must be confessed that the Tynedale men had an unenviable reputation. -They were such lawless desperadoes, so addicted to rapine, that during -more than two centuries the merchants of Newcastle regularly refused to -take an apprentice born in that district. The date is December 1572. -The rebel Earl of Northumberland, who had taken up arms for Mary Queen -of Scots, and for the old religion, had been betrayed by the Scots and -beheaded at York. Owing to this rebellion there was great confusion in -the northern counties, hence the time was well chosen by the "limmer -thieves" of Tynedale to make a predatory raid on their neighbours. They -gathered together the stoutest men of arms and the best in gear, a -hundred or more in number, and in the forenoon, about eleven o'clock, -they came into a "bye-fell" and stopped for a meal--the last which some -of them would eat. When they had eaten, they chose their captains, -Harry Corbyl, Simon Fell, and Martin Ridley. Then they rode on over the -moss, "with many a brank and whew," saying to one another that they were -men enough, - - "For Weardale-men have a journey ta'en, - They are so far out o'er yon fell, - That some of them's with the two earls, - And others fast in Bernard castell. - - There we shall get gear enough, - For there is nane but women at hame; - The sorrowful fend that they can make. - Is loudly cries as they were slain." - - -They came in at Rookhope Head, which is the top of a rocky valley, about -five miles long, at the end of which Rookhope Burn empties itself into -the river Wear. This valley is as wild and open to-day as it was then. -In some four hours they gathered together about six hundred sheep and -they were engaged in "shifting" the horses, when the hue and cry was -raised by one Rowley, whose horse they tried to take. He was the first -man to see them. The cry spread rapidly down Rookhope burn and through -Weardale, and word came to the bailiff's house at the East-gate. He was -out, but his wife had his horse saddled and sent it to him, together -with his sword, spear, and jacket quilted with iron plates, the sort of -harness worn by the moss-troopers and other light horsemen of the time. -The bailiff had already heard the bad news, and was sorely troubled -thereby. His own brother had been attacked three days before by -marauders, and lay sick with nineteen wounds. Yet the bailiff shrank -not at all, but hied fast after the sheep-stealers, with as many of the -neighbours as he could gather to bear him company. - -The pursuers overtook the thieves in Nuketon Cleugh, and gave them all -the fighting they wanted. Not one of them ever thought to see his wife -again. They bore three banners against the Weardale men, "as if the -world had been all their own." The fray lasted only an hour, but many a -tall man lay weaponless and sore wounded before that hour was done, and -four of the Northumbrian prickers were slain, including Harry Corbyl -whom they had chosen to be their captain. Eleven of them were taken -prisoners. Only one of the Weardale men fell but-- - - "These Weardale-men, they have good hearts, - They are as stiff as any tree; - For, if they'd everyone been slain, - Never a foot back man would flee. - - And such a storm amongst them fell, - As I think you never heard the like; - For he that bears his head on high, - He oft-tymes falls into the dyke. - - And now I do entreat you all, - As many as are present here, - To pray for the singer of this song, - For he sings to make blythe your cheer." - - - - - *Chapter XXXI* - - *Barthram's Dirge* - - -The story of how this ballad came to be preserved to us is a very -interesting one. A Mr Surtees, who was very interested in the old -ballads, used to give work to a poor old Scotswoman to weed in his -garden. Finding that she had learnt ballads in her young days, he -encouraged her to talk about them, and this was amongst those which she -recited to him. She told him that it referred to a young man named -Bertram or Barthrum, who made love to a young lady against the wish of -her brothers. The cruel brothers slew him, but the lady had him buried -at the very spot where he was wont to come to visit her in the days of -their love. Sir Walter Scott thinks that perhaps Barthram was an -Englishman and the lady was Scottish, and that the anger of the lady's -brothers against him was partly on that account. - -It must be remembered that in those stormy days, when Border rivalry was -keen, and all the Border chiefs, on both sides, were men of war-like -mould, intermarriage between the two races was punishable by Border law. -Each side felt equally that such mixed marriages would sooner or later -produce a race that was neither loyal English nor loyal Scotch. A -spirit of aloofness and rivalry was deliberately encouraged, right up to -the time of the union of the two countries under one king. - - - *BARTHRAM'S DIRGE* - - They shot him dead at the Nine-Stone Rig, - Beside the Headless Cross, - And they left him lying in his blood, - Upon the moor and moss. - - * * * * * - - They made a bier of the broken bough, - The sauch and the aspin gray, - And they bore him to the Lady Chapel, - And waked him there all day. - - A lady came to that lonely bower, - And threw her robes aside, - She tore her long yellow hair, - And knelt at Barthram's side. - - She bathed him in the Lady-Well, - His wounds so deep and sair, - And she plaited a garland for his breast, - And a garland for his hair. - - They rowed him in a lily-sheet, - And bare him to his earth, - And the Gray Friars sung the dead man's mass, - As they pass'd the Chapel Garth. - - They buried him at the mirk midnight, - When the dew fell cold and still, - When the aspin gray forgot to play, - And the mist clung to the hill. - - They dug his grave but a bare foot deep, - By the edge of the Ninestone Burn, - And they covered him o'er with the heather-flower, - The moss and the Lady fern. - - A Gray Friar staid upon the grave, - And sang till the morning tide, - And a friar shall sing for Barthram's soul, - While the Headless Cross shall bide.[#] - -[#] Mr Surtees observes, on this passage, that in the return made by the -commissioners, on the dissolution of Newminster Abbey, there is an item -of a Chauntery, for one priest to sing daily _ad crucem lapideam_. -Probably many of these crosses had the like expiatory solemnities for -persons slain there. They certainly did bury, in former days, near the -Ninestone Burn, for Sir Walter Scott found there, lying among the -heather, a small monumental cross, with initials, which he reverently -placed upright. - - - - - *Chapter XXXII* - - *Queen Mary and the Borders* - - -The brief reign of Mary, Queen of Scots, was so crowded with incident -that she was left with little time to visit the disturbed borderland of -her kingdom. None-the-less her few visits to this district were fraught -with important consequences. In 1565, when she married her cousin Lord -Darnley, the head of the Douglas faction and a Roman Catholic, the -Protestant nobles took up arms. In her very honeymoon she headed her -soldiers, pursued the rebels to Dumfries, entered the town with a pistol -in each hand, and laughed heartily at the fun of making her enemies -"skip like rabbits" over the Border. She was only twenty-two years -old--a fearless, dashing, attractive woman, with a clever head, a strong -will, and a wild and lawless disposition. - -In the next year she again visited the Border, but on a very different -errand. Mary had developed an extreme fancy for that bold Border Lord, -the Earl of Bothwell, whose Castle of Hermitage commanded the -picturesque and important valley of the Liddel. The Queen had given him -authority to control the fierce Borderers; and when the earl was riding -out he met the most lawless of them, Jock Elliot, of whom the couplet-- - - "My name is little Jock Elliot - And who dare meddle wi' me?" - -Bothwell fired straight at Elliot with his pistol, wounding him in the -leg. Elliot aimed a mighty blow at Bothwell with his two-handed sword, -giving the earl so sore a wound that he was glad enough to gallop home -while there was yet time to save his life. - -Mary was holding solemn court at Jedburgh when she heard of her -favourite's danger. She straightway took horse and rode to Hermitage, a -hard cross-country ride of twenty miles, through a district infested -with reckless men. When she galloped back to Jedburgh, she was in high -fever and nearly died. Later on, in the misery of her long -imprisonment, she often said, "Would I had died at Jedburgh!" Years -later, a broken piece of a silver spur was found at Queensmire, on this -difficult and dangerous road, just where Queen Mary's horse was said to -have come to grief. - -Yet another time Queen Mary came to the Border, this time to cross -it--after her imprisonment at Lochleven, her escape, and the disastrous -rout of her followers at Langside. Daring and resourceful as ever, she -fled across the Solway in an open boat; Scotland had failed her, she -sought the protection of England. She landed at Cockermouth, and was -led to Carlisle by Sir R. Lowther, and kept there, in reality a -prisoner, while Elizabeth was musing of the dangers of the position. The -Earls of Northumberland and Westmoreland took up Mary's cause and -attempted to rescue her, but the Warden of Carlisle, Lord Scroope, -defended the town successfully against the two earls, and they were soon -in flight, eastward for their very lives. After this attempt at rescue -Mary was, for greater safety, sent down to Bolton Castle in Yorkshire. - -[Illustration: Queen Mary crossing the Solway] - -Leonard Dacre, a member of the powerful Cumberland family of the Dacres, -seems to have played a treacherous part, first promising the earls his -help, and then betraying them to Elizabeth. He seized Nawarth Castle, -which properly belonged to his young niece, and collected together three -thousand men to the old Border war-cry, "A Red Bull, a Red Bull!" -(probably the nickname of some fierce red-haired Celtic champion). The -defeated earls came to Nawarth for shelter, and Dacre refused to harbour -them. But by this time Elizabeth was convinced of Dacre's treason, and -ordered Lord Hudson, the Governor of Berwick, to arrest him. - -Hudson appears to have marched by rather a round-about way, for Dacre -met him at Geltbridge, on the west of Nawarth. A bridge is always a -good point of vantage for meeting an enemy, especially when the river -runs, as the Gelt does, through a deep and wooded gorge. The enemy has -only a narrow way by which to approach, and no doubt Dacre posted his -archers behind the trees and among the great rocks. The fight was a -desperate one, but Hudson's men prevailed and pursued their foes far up -the hill of Gelt, scuffling fiercely among the forest trees and dyeing a -deeper hue the red sandstone cliffs and quarries. - -All the rebels who could escape fled across the Border to Scotland, -where the Borderers, who were till then their enemies, received them -with that open and fair hospitality which was one of their many great -qualities. Elizabeth demanded that the leading noblemen should be given -up to her; but although the Scottish Regent, Murray, made a pretence of -trying to secure the Earl of Westmoreland, the Scots had too much sense -of honour to allow him to proceed. - -The Earl of Northumberland, was however betrayed to the Scottish Regent -by Hector Armstrong of Harelaw; but this the gallant Borderers held to -be shameful, and Armstrong was a ruined man from that day forth. - -Two years later, this Earl was actually sold to Elizabeth and beheaded -at York. Thus ended this small rebellion, called in history the Rising -of the North, but which is known locally in Cumberland as Dacre's Raid. - -There is a little stream which rushes down a deep and beautiful glade to -join the river Gelt above Geltbridge; this stream is known as -"Hellbeck," and villagers tell us that the reason for this name is that -it was stained with blood for two whole days after some battle that took -place there. This battle is probably the one spoken of here. - -A wicket gate by Geltbridge leads us to the path through Gelt woods. -The noble gorge is deeply cleft through the grand red sandstone rocks. -Below roars and dashes the impetuous river; the path winds, sometimes -high, sometimes low, through wonderful weeds, carpeted with beautiful -mosses, gemmed with delightful flowers. On one of the rocks is an -inscription carved by a Roman soldier, over fifteen hundred years ago. -Follow the river, up, up, till the little Hellbeck is seen trickling -down from the east; cross the little bridge and follow the streamlet on -its opposite bank, along a path so little trod as to be scarcely -visible; wander among ferns along one of the loneliest glens in the -whole of Britain, passing the great railway bridge (_under_ if the -stream be low or _over_ if it be high) till you join the main road -again. There is no spot more beautiful or more peaceful. Yet this is -the Hellbeck where men fought and hacked, and slashed and slew, among -these woods, up and down these steep hillsides. These old trees, when -young, have felt warm blood at their roots; and all because of a young, -wild wilful queen, who fascinated men's hearts then, and the memory of -whom fascinates them still. - - - - - *Chapter XXXIII* - - *The Raid of the Reidswire* - - - "To deal with proud men is but pain, - For either must ye fight or flee, - Or else no answer make again, - But play the beast, and let them be." - - -Reidswire, the name of a place about ten miles from Jedburgh, means the -Red Swire. Swire is an old northern term for the descent of a hill, and -the epithet red may refer to the colour of the heath. - -The affair about which we are to tell took place on the 7th of July -1575, at a meeting held, on a day of truce, by the Wardens of the -Marches, for redressing wrongs and adjusting difficulties which could -not be prevented from arising upon the Border. The Scottish Warden was -Sir John Carmichael, and among his following were the Armstrongs and -Elliots, Douglas of Cavers (a descendant of the Douglas who fell at -Otterbourne), Cranstoun, whose ferocious motto was "Ye shall want ere I -want," Gladstain, "good at need," and the ancient head of the -Rutherfoords, called in tradition the Cock of Hunthill, "with his nine -sons him about." The English Warden was the haughty Sir John Forster, -and he had full fifteen hundred men with him, chiefly Northumbrians, -Tynedale, and Reedsdale men, who looked with scorn upon the much smaller -array of their hereditary foes. - -The meeting, however, began meekly enough, with merriment and jests. -Such Border meetings of truce, though they might wind up in blood, as -was to happen now, always began as occasions of marketing and revelry. -Both parties came fully armed to such a tryst, yet intermixed in mutual -sports and familiar intercourse, - - "Some gaed to drink, and some stood still, - And some to cards and dice them sped." - - -The Scots planted their pavilions or tents and feared no ill, even when -they saw five hundred Fenwicks (a powerful Northumbrian clan) "marching -in a flock." The clerk began to call the rolls, and to deal with one -complaint after another for the loss of cows or ewes or other property. -In the course of the proceedings an accusation was raised against an -English freebooter named Farnstein, at the instance of a Scotch -complainant. A "true bill" was found against the man, which means that -he ought to be handed over to justice. But the English Warden alleged -that he had fled, and could not be found. Carmichael, considering this -as a pretext to avoid making compensation for the felony, bade the -Northumbrians speak out plainly, and "cloke no cause for ill nor good." -Upon this Sir John Forster, a proud and insolent man, "began to reckon -kin and blood," by which picturesque phrase the ballad probably means -that he swiftly added up his forces. Then he drew himself up, backed by -his Dalesmen, all fingering their bows, and with insulting expressions -against Carmichael's kin he bade him "match with his equals." The men -of Tynedale, who only wanted a pretext for a quarrel, drew their bows -and let off a flight of arrows among the Scots. The more moderate men on -both sides at first tried to quell the tumult, but in vain. The fight -was bound to come. - - "Then there was naught but bow and spear, - And every man pulled out a brand." - - -The English showed their usual dexterity with the bow. The Scots, for -some reason, never took to this weapon; they had fire-arms, pistolets, -and the like. The terrible cloth-yard arrows "from tackles flew," and -the old proverb bade fair to justify itself, that every English archer -carried twenty-four Scots under his belt--an allusion to his bundle of -shafts. Success seemed certain for the English side; some of the -foremost men among the Scots fell, and even Carmichael was thrown to the -ground and was within an ace of being made a prisoner. The air -resounded with the rallying cries of the English, the names of their -captains, "A Shaftoe! A Shaftoe!" "A Fenwick! A Fenwick!" The Scots -had little harness among them, only a few had the jack which served them -as a defence for the body. Nevertheless, they laid about them sturdily, -with "dints full dour," and there was many a cracked crown. Then -suddenly a shout was heard. "Jedburgh's here!" A body of Jedburgh -burgesses appear to have arrived just in the nick of time to add to the -outnumbered force of Scots. They probably wore armour and what were -called "white hats," that is steel caps. Meanwhile, the English, too -confident of easy victory, instead of slaying more Scots and turning the -repulse into a rout, thought only to plunder the unhappy merchants, who, -trusting to the truce which had been proclaimed, had attached themselves -to the meeting. Had it not been for the English greed, the Scots would -have been defeated. As it was, the Tynedale men, throwing themselves on -the merchants' packs, fell into disorder, their adversaries recovered -from their surprise, and the timely arrival of the Jedburgh men turned -the tables. A short, sharp bout ended in the triumph of the Scots and -the Northumbrians fled, "Down ower the brae, like clogged bees." The -Scots took many prisoners, amongst whom were the English Warden, and his -son-in-law, Sir Francis Russell; but the most gallant soldier taken that -day was that courteous knight, Sir Cuthbert Collingwood, to whose family -Admiral Collingwood belonged. Several of those "Fenwicks fierce," who -had turned up five hundred strong at the commencement of the fray, had -the mortification of being carried off in triumph by their enemies. All -these prisoners were sent to the Earl of Morton, Regent of Scotland, who -detained them at Dalkeith for some days, until the bitter feeling -natural after such an affair had died down, at any rate in part, and by -this prudent precaution the Regent is thought to have probably averted a -war between the two kingdoms. He ultimately permitted them to return to -their own country, parting from them with great expressions of regard. -The interest taken in the matter by Queen Elizabeth, and the -representations of her Ambassador at Edinburgh, no doubt had something -to do with this happy issue. - -It will probably occur to the careful reader of this book as somewhat -strange to find the ruling powers of England and Scotland both so set -upon peace; but it must be remembered that at this period in the reign -of Queen Elizabeth the heir-apparent to the English throne was the young -James VI., King of Scotland, who would naturally not wish for any -quarrel with the country which he hoped later on to rule. Elizabeth, on -the other hand, had Mary Queen of Scots as her prisoner, and did not -wish in any further way to strain the already delicate relations between -the two countries. - -The Carmichael mentioned in this ballad, known in full as Sir John -Carmichael of Edrom, Scottish Warden of the Middle Marches, was -afterwards murdered by one of the wild Armstrongs, who is said to have -composed, the night before his execution, the following manly and -pathetic "Good-night." The third and fourth lines show clearly the -disrepute into which this once honoured clan was falling; the seventh -and eighth lines could only have been written by one who, despite his -faults, had the true gallant instincts deep in his blood. - - - ARMSTRONG'S GOOD-NIGHT - - "This night is my departing night, - For here nae langer must I stay; - There's neither friend nor foe o' mine, - But wishes me away. - - What I have done thro' lack of wit, - I never, never can recall; - I hope ye're a' my friends as yet; - Good-night and joy be with you all!" - - - - - *Chapter XXXIV* - - *Jock o' the Side* - - - "He is well kend, John of the Syde, - A greater thief did never ryde." - - -The subject of this ballad bears some resemblance to Kinmont Willie, and -such adventures were not uncommon in those turbulent times. The events -we are to relate originated in a raid ridden by the famous Liddesdale -spearmen (the hardiest of the Scotch moss-troopers) upon English ground. - -"They had better hae staid at home," for the outcome was that one of -their best men, Michael of Winfield, was killed, and Jock o' the Side, -nephew to the Laird of Mangerton, was taken prisoner, and promptly -lodged in Newcastle Jail. When the news reached Jock's mother she -kilted her coats up to her knee, and ran down the water with the tears -falling in torrents from her eyes. She ran to Mangerton House, on the -banks of the Liddel, and told her brother, the good old lord, the bad -news. "Michael is killed, and they have taken my son John." "Never -fear, sister," quoth Mangerton, "I have eighty-three yokes of oxen, my -barns, my byres, my folds are all filled, I'll part with them all ere -Johnie shall die." Then he thought out his plan. "Three men I'll send -to set him free, all harnessed in the best steel; the English loons -shall feel the weight of their broad swords. The Laird's Jock shall be -one, the Laird's Wat two, and Hobbie Noble, thou must be the third. Thy -coat is blue, and since England banished thee thou hast been true to -me." Now this Hobbie was an Englishman, born in Bewcastledale, the -wildest district in Cumberland. Like numerous other English outlaws, he -had made his own country too hot to hold him; his misdeeds had banished -him to Liddesdale, and he was now in high favour with the Laird of -Mangerton. The Laird gave the dauntless three orders to reverse the -shoes of their horses, so that anyone crossing their trail might think -they were proceeding in a contrary direction. He also warned them not -to seem gentlemen, but to look like corn-carriers; not to show their -good armour, nor appear like men of war, but to be arrayed as country -lads, with halter and cart-collar on each mare. So Hobbie mounted his -grey, Jack his lively bay, and Wat his white horse, and they rode for -Tyne water. When they reached the Tyne they lighted down at a ford, and -by the moonlight they cut a tree, with fifteen nogs on each side, to -serve them as a scaling ladder, to climb Newcastle wall with. However, -when they came to Newcastle town and alighted at the wall, their tree -proved three ells too short, and there was nothing for it but to force -the gates. At the gate a proud porter attempted to withstand them. The -Armstrongs wrung his neck, took his life and his keys at once, and cast -his body behind the wall. Soon they reached the jail, and called to the -prisoner, - - "Sleeps thou, wakes thou, Jock o' the Side, - Or art thou weary of thy thrall?" - - -Jock answered dolefully, "Often I wake, nay, sleep seldom comes to -me--but who's this knows my name so well?" Then out and spoke the -Laird's Jock, his cousin and namesake, "Now fear ye not, my billie!" -quoth he; "for here are the Laird's Jock, the Laird's Wat, and Hobbie -Noble the Englishman come to set you free." Jock o' the Side did not -think it possible that they could effect his release. "Now hold thy -tongue, my good cousin," said he. "This cannot be-- - - 'For if all Liddesdale were here the night, - The morn's the day that I must die.' - -They have laid full fifteen stone of Spanish iron on me, I am fast bound -with locks and keys in this dark and dreary dungeon." But the Laird's -Jock replied. "Fear not that; faint heart never won fair lady. Work -thou within, we'll work without, and I'll be sworn we'll set thee free." -They loosed the first strong door without a key, the next chained door -they split to flinders. The Laird's Jock got the prisoner on his back, -irons and all, and brought him down the stairs with no small speed and -joy. Hobbie Noble offered to bear some of his weight, but the Laird's -Jock said that he was lighter than a flea. When they had all gone out -at the gates, the prisoner was set on horseback, and they all joked -wantonly. "O Jock," they cried, "you ride like a winsome lady, with -your feet all on one side." The night was wet, but they did not mind. -They hied them on full merrily until they came to the ford at -Cholerford, above Hexham. There the water was running mountains high. -They asked an old man, "Honest man, tell us in haste, will the water -ride?" "I've lived here thirty years and three," replied he, "and I -never saw the Tyne so big, nor running so like a sea." The Laird's Wat -counselled them to halt. "We need not try it, the day is come we all -must die!" "Poor faint-hearted thief!" cried the Laird's Jock. -"There'll no man die but him that's fated; I'll guide you safely -through; lift the prisoner behind me." With that they took to the water -and managed to swim through. "Here we are all safe," said the Laird's -Jock triumphantly. "Poor faint Wat, what think ye now?" They now saw -twenty men pursuing them, sent from Newcastle, all English lads, stout -and true. But when their leader saw the water he shook his head. "It -won't ride, my lads," said he. Then he cried to the party of Scots: -"Take the prisoner, but leave me my fetters." But the Laird's Jock was -not a Scot for nothing. "I wat weel no," he shouted back, "I'll keep -them, they'll make horse-shoes for my mare--for I am sure she's bought -them right dear from thee." Then they went on their way to Liddesdale, -as fast as they could, and did not rest until they had brought the -rescued prisoner to his own fireside, and made him free of his irons. - - - - - *Chapter XXXV* - - *Hobbie Noble* - - - "Keep ye weel frae the traitor Mains! - For gold and gear he'll sell ye a'." - - -In the ballad of "Jock o' the Side," we have seen Hobbie Noble act a -distinguished part in the deliverance from captivity of Jock, cousin of -the Laird of Mangerton, chief of the Armstrong clan. Now in the -following ballad we shall learn how ungrateful the Armstrongs were for -his faithful services. The Armstrongs were one of those outlawed or -broken clans, whose hand was against every man, and living as they did -in what was called the Debateable Land, on the frontier between -Liddesdale and England, these stark cattle-lifters and arrant thieves -levied tribute from English and Scotch alike. Halbert or Hobbie Noble -was an Englishman, a Cumbrian born and bred, but his misdeeds were so -great, they banished him never to return, and he established himself -among the Armstrongs. From their territory he continued his -depredations upon the English, in resentment of which they at length -offered a bribe to the Armstrongs to decoy him into England under -pretence of inviting him to join them in a foray. - - "At Kershope foot the tryst was set, - Kershope of the lily lee," - -and the name of the chief traitor and leader of the gang was Sim o' the -Mains. Hobbie harnessed himself "both with the iron and with the -steel," buckled spur on his heel and belted brand to his side, leaped -upon his "fringed grey," and rode down the banks of the Liddel. As soon -as he saw the others, "Well be ye met, my comrades five," he cried. -"Now, what is your will with me?" They all answered, with one consent, -"Thou'rt welcome here, brave Noble; wilt thou ride with us into England, -and we will be thy safe warrant? If we get a horse worth a hundred -pounds thou shalt soon be upon its back." But Hobbie said that he dared -not ride into England by day, as he had a feud with the Land-Sergeant -(an officer under the Warden, to whom was entrusted the arrest of -delinquents). - - "But will ye stay till the day gae down, - Until the night come o'er the ground, - And I'll be a guide worth any two - That may in Liddesdale be found? - Though the night be black as pitch and tar, - I'll guide ye o'er yon hill so high; - And bring ye all in safety back, - If ye'll be true and follow me." - - -They let him guide them over moss and moor, over hill and hope, and over -many a down, until they came to the Foulbogshiel. But meanwhile word -was gone to the Land-Sergeant, in Askerton, about seventeen miles from -Carlisle. "The deer that you have hunted so long, is in Bewcastle Waste -this day." The Sergeant understood at once. Quoth he, "Hobbie Noble is -that deer! He carries the style full high. He has often driven our -bloodhounds back. Now go, warn the bows of Hartlie Burn, see they -sharpen their arrows on the wall! Warn Willeva and Speir Edom, take -word to them that they meet me on the Rodric-haugh at break of day. We -will on to Conscouthart-green, for there, I think, we'll get our -quarry." In the meantime Hobbie had alighted and was sleeping in the -Foulbogshiel. He dreamed that his horse was shot beneath him, and he -himself was hard put to it to get away. The cocks crowed, the day -dawned, and if Hobbie had not wakened he would have been taken or slain -in his sleep. - - "Awake, awake, my comrades five! - I trow here makes a full ill day; - Yet the worst cloak o' this company - I hope shall cross the Waste this day," - -Thus cried he to his companions, thinking the gates were clear. But -alas! it was not so. They were beset by the Land-Sergeant's men, cruel -and keen, and while the Englishmen came before, the traitor Sim o' the -Mains came behind. Had Noble been as masterful a champion as Wallace -himself, he could not have won under such untoward circumstances. He -had but a laddie's sword, but he did more than a laddie's deeds, for -that sword would have cleared Conscouthart-green had it not broken over -one of the English heads. So his treacherous companions delivered -Hobbie up to the officers of justice; they bound him with his own -bowstring, but what made his heart feel sorest of all, was that it was -his own five who bound him. They took him on to Carlisle. They asked -him mockingly if he knew the way. He thought much, but said little, -though he knew it as well as they did. As they took him up the Carlisle -streets, the old wives cast their windows wide, every woman whispering -to another, "That's the man loosed Jock o' the Side." The poor fellow -cried out, "Fie on ye, women! why call ye me man? It's no like a man -that I'm used, but like a beaten hound that's been fighting in the -gutter." They had him up through Carlisle town, and set him by a -chimney fire, where they gave him a wheaten loaf to eat, and a can of -beer. "Confess my lord's horse, Hobbie," they said, "and to-morrow in -Carlisle thou shalt not die." "How can I confess them," says the poor -man, "when I never saw them." And he swore a great oath, by the day -that he was born, that he had never had anything of my lord's. He had -but short shrift and they hung him the next morning. - -According to the ballad, his last words were of manly pride:-- - - "Yet wad I rather be ca'd Hobbie Noble, - In Carlisle, where he suffers for his fault, - Than I'd be ca'd the traitor Mains, - That eats and drinks o' meal and malt." - - -Thus died the doughty Noble. It is proper to add, however, that the -Armstrong's chief, Lord Mangerton, with whom Hobbie had been a -favourite, took a severe revenge on the traitors who betrayed him. The -contriver of the scheme, Sim o' the Mains, fled into England to escape -the resentment of his chief, and was there caught by the English, and -himself executed at Carlisle, two months after Hobbie's death in the -same place! Such is, at least, the tradition of Liddesdale. - - - - - *Chapter XXXVI* - - *The Laird o' Logie* - - -In 1592, the Earl of Bothwell, Francis Stuart, failed in an attempt -against King James VI., whom he tried to surprise in the palace of -Falkland. Amongst his adherents, whom he sought about the King's person, -was the hero of this ballad, the Laird of Logie, who was taken prisoner -and laid in Edinburgh chapel in the keeping of Sir John Carmichael, the -hero of the ballad called the "Raid of Reidswire." Carmichael was at -this time captain of the King's Guard, and had the keeping of State -criminals. - - I will sing, if ye will hearken, - If ye will hearken unto me; - The King has ta'en a poor prisoner, - The wanton laird o' young Logie. - - Young Logie's laid in Edinburgh chapel, - Carmichael's the keeper o' the key; - And may Margaret's lamenting sair, - A' for the love of young Logie. - - "Lament, lament na, may Margaret, - And of your weeping let me be; - For ye maun to the King himsell, - To seek the life of young Logie." - - May Margaret has kilted her green cleiding,[#] - And she has curl'd back her yellow hair-- - "If I canna get young Logie's life, - Farewell to Scotland for evermair." - -[#] Clothing. - - When she came before the King, - She kneelit lowly on her knee-- - "O what's the matter, may Margaret? - And what needs a' this courtesie?" - - "A boon, a boon, my noble liege, - A boon, a boon, I beg o' thee! - And the first boon that I come to crave, - Is to grant me the life of young Logie." - -[Illustration: "_A boon, a boon, my noble liege, A boon, a boon, I beg -o' thee!_"] - - "O na, O na, may Margaret, - Forsooth, and so it mauna be; - For a' the gowd o' fair Scotland - Shall not save the life of young Logie." - - But she has stown[#] the King's redding kaim,[#] - Likewise the Queen her wedding knife, - And sent the tokens to Carmichael, - To cause young Logie get his life. - -[#] Stolen. -[#] Dressing comb. - - She sent him a purse of the red gowd, - Another o' the white monie; - She sent him a pistol for each hand, - And bade him shoot when he gat free. - - When he came to the Tolbooth stair, - There he let his volley flee; - It made the King in his chamber start, - E'en in the bed where he might be. - - "Gae out, gae out, my merrymen a', - And bid Carmichael come speak to me; - For I'll lay my life the pledge o' that, - That yon's the shot o' young Logie." - - When Carmichael came before the King, - He fell low down upon his knee; - The very first word that the King spake, - Was--"Where's the laird of young Logie?" - - Carmichael turn'd him round about - (I wot the tear blinded his ee), - "There came a token frae your grace, - Has ta'en away the laird frae me." - - "Hast thou play'd me that, Carmichael? - And hast thou play'd me that?" quoth he; - "The morn the justice-court's to stand, - And Logie's place ye maun supplie." - - Carmichael's awa to Margaret's bower, - Even as fast as he may dree-- - "O if young Logie be within, - Tell him to come and speak with me!" - - May Margaret turn'd her round about - (I wot a loud laugh laughed she), - "The egg is chipp'd, the bird is flown, - Ye'll see nae mair of young Logie." - - - - - *Chapter XXXVII* - - *Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead* - - - "'Tis I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, - And a harried man I think I be! - There's nothing left at the fair Dodhead - But a woeful wife and bairnies three!" - - -About Martinmas time, when Border steeds get corn and hay, the Captain -of Bewcastle rode over to Tividale to forage. And first he met a guide -high up in Hardhaughswire, and next he met a guide low down in Borthwick -water. - -"What tidings, what tidings, my trusty guide?" "No tidings have I--yet -if ye go to the fair Dodhead, I'll let ye see many a cow's calf." Right -hastily they came to the fair Dodhead, loosed the cows and ransacked the -house. - -Jamie Telfer's[#] heart was sore when he saw this, and the tears ran -down his cheeks, and he pleaded with the Captain to give him back his -gear, or else he would have revenge upon him. But the Captain only -laughed and said, "Man, there's nothing in thy house but an old sword -without a sheath that could scarcely kill a mouse." - -[#] The Telfers, though they had become Scotch at the time of this -ballad, were originally a Norman family, descended from the knight -"Taille-fer" (cut-iron), who came over with William the Conqueror. - -The sun was not up though the moon had gone down, and there was a -sprinkling of new-fallen snow upon the ground when Jamie Telfer ran ten -miles a-foot between the Dodhead and Stob's Hall. When he came to the -tower gate he shouted aloud, and old Gibby Elliot came out and asked the -meaning of such disturbance. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I, for -nothing is left at fair Dodhead but a sad wife and three bairnies." - -"Go and seek help at Branksome Hall, for ye shall get none from me--seek -help where ye paid blackmail, for, man, never did ye pay _me_ any." - -James turned him about, his eyes blinded with tears. "Never shall I pay -blackmail again to Elliot. My hounds may all run masterless, my hawks -may fly as they will from tree to tree, and my lord may seize the lands -of his vassal, for never shall I see again the fair Dodhead." - -He turned him to Tiviotside and made as fast as he could for Coultart -cleugh, and there he shouted aloud until out came old Jock Grieve, and -asked who it was that made such a noise. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I, for -nothing is left at fair Dodhead but a weeping wife and three bairnies, -and six poor calves stand in the stall crying aloud for their mothers." - -"Alack!" quoth Jock Grieve, "alack, my heart is sore for thee! for I -married the eldest of three sisters, and you married the youngest." - -So he took out his bonny black horse, right well fed with corn and hay, -and set Jamie Telfer on his back, to take his troubles to Catslockhill. -When he came to Catslockhill he shouted aloud until out came William's -Wat to ask what was the matter. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I. -The Captain of Bewcastle has driven away my gear; for God's sake rise -and help me." - -"Alas and alack," quoth William's Wat, "my heart is sore for thee. -Never did I yet come to the fair Dodhead and found thy basket bare." - -He set his two sons on coal-black steeds, and he himself mounted a -freckled grey, and with Jamie they rode to Branksome Hall, where they -shouted so loud and high that old Buccleuch came out to ask what was the -matter. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I; -there is nought left at fair Dodhead but a weeping wife and three -bairnies." - -"Alack," quoth the good old lord, "my heart is sorry for thee; go call -Willie, my son, to come speedily. Go call up hastily the men that live -by the waterside. They who will not ride for Telfer's cattle, let them -never again look me in the face. Call up Wat o'Harden and his sons, -call up Borthwick Water, Gaudilands and Allanhaugh, call Gilmanscleugh -and Commonside; ride by the gate at Priesthaughswire and call the -Currors of the Lee, and call brave Willie of Gorrinberry as ye come down -the Hermitage slack." - -So the Scotts rode and ran bravely and steadily, shouting "Ride for -Branksome," and when Willie looked ahead he saw the cattle being driven -fast up the Frostylee brook, and to the plain. - -"Who drives yon cattle?" cried Willie Scott, "to make us a laughing -stock?" "'Tis I, the Captain of Bewcastle; I will not hide my name from -thee." - -"Let Telfer's cattle go back, or by the faith of my body," said Willie, -"I'll ware my dame's calf-skin on thee." - -"I will not let the cattle go back neither for thy love nor fear; I will -drive Jamie Telfer's cattle in spite of all your company of Scotts." - -"Set on them, lads!" cried Willie; "set on them cruelly; there will be -many an empty saddle before they come to Ritterford." - -So they set to with heart and hand, and blows fell like hail until many -were slain and many a horse ran masterless. But Willie was struck by a -sword through the headpiece and fell to the ground, and auld Wat of -Harden wept for rage when he saw that his son was slain. He took off -his steel cap and waved it thrice, and the snow on the Dinlay mountain -was never whiter than the locks of his hair. - -"Revenge! revenge!" he cried; "lay on them, lads. Willie's death shall -be revenged or we will never see Teviotside again." - -The lances flew into splinters, and many another brave rider fell, and -before the Kershope ford was reached, the Scots had got the victory. -John of Brigham was slain, and John of Barlow, and thirty more of the -Captain's men lay bleeding on the ground. The Captain himself was run -through the right thigh and the bone broken, and never would woman love -him again, if he should live a hundred years. - -"Take back the kye!" said he; "they are dear kye to some of us; never -will a fair lady smile on me if I should live to be a hundred." - -Word came to the Captain's bride in her bower, that her lord had been -taken prisoner. "I would rather have had a winding-sheet," said she, -"and helped to put it over his head than that he should have been -disgraced by the Border Scot when he led his men over Liddel." - -There was a wild gallant there named Watty Wudspurs (Madspurs) who -cried, "Let us on to his house in Stanegirthside, if any man will ride -with us!" - -So they came to Stanegirthside, pulled down the trees, burst open the -door, and drove out all the Captain's kye before them. - -An old woman of the Captain's kin cried, "Who dare loose the Captain's -kye, or answer to him and his men?" - -"It is I, Watty Wudspurs, that loose the kye; I will not hide my name -from thee; and I will loose them in spite of him and his men." - -When they came to the fair Dodhead they were a welcome sight, for -instead of his own ten milk kye Jamie Telfer had now got thirty-three. -He paid the rescue shot in gold and silver, and at Willie Scott's -burial, there were many weeping eyes. - - - - - *Chapter XXXVIII* - - *Muckle-mou'd Meg* - - -The Scott family was very powerful on the Border in the days of Queen -Elizabeth, the bravest and strongest of them being the bold Lord of -Buccleuch. His name is often mentioned in Border history, and so is -that of another Scott, "auld Wat Scott of Harden." He was a fit man for -these wild times, being both brave and canny. He married a beautiful -Border lass, "the Flower of Yarrow," and it is surprising how many able -men have descended from this marriage. Not only did Sir Walter Scott -and Robert Louis Stevenson claim descent from this fine old freebooter; -his daughter Maggie married Gilbert Elliot of Stobs, nicknamed "Gibbie -wi' the Golden Garters," and from them were descended George Augustus -Elliot (Lord Heathfield), famous for his splendid defence of Gibraltar, -worthy of the best Border traditions, and also the Elliots of Minto, who -have twice been Viceroys of India, once late in the eighteenth and once -early in the twentieth century. - -But on one occasion one of the sons of Scott of Harden came perilously -near to finding out how far his neck was capable of carrying the weight -of his body. It was late in Queen Elizabeth's reign, and King James VI. -of Scotland was extra anxious to live at peace with England, for he -expected now very soon to be King over both countries. So he told his -Warden, the bold Buccleuch, to restrain the wild Scotch freebooters; and -you may imagine that the order was little to their liking. Young Willie -Scott, Scott of Harden's son, quickly determined that cattle he must -steal anyhow; he was his father's son, and did not his father once say, -as he gazed longingly at a fine English haystack, "if only ye'd got four -legs, haystack, ye would not be standing there!" So as Willie Scott was -forbidden to steal English cattle, he decided to steal Scotch. - -Sir Gideon Murray, of Elibank Castle, was an old enemy of the Scott -family, having once been told off to punish them for some audacious act -of theirs. And Sir Gideon had some cattle that would make any -Borderer's mouth water and his arm itch to drive them home. So Willie -and a few boon companions started off one night for Elibank. But a -warning voice had reached Sir Gideon, and Willie received a warm -reception, and was taken prisoner. He lay in the castle dungeon all -night, reflecting on the folly of being caught, and fully expecting to -be hanged very early next morning, perhaps without even his breakfast to -comfort him! - -But early on the fatal morning, Lady Murray startled her husband by -asking him if he really meant to hang Willie Scott. He looked at her as -if she were mad; of course, what else was there to do? Then she -unfolded her scheme. She had a very plain-looking daughter known as -"Muckle mou'd Meg," or Margaret with the extremely large mouth. Young -Scott was handsome and of good family, and poor Meg would never again -have such a chance of getting a good husband. Why not release Willie -Scott, if only he would marry Mucklemou'd Meg? - -They were men of action in those days, and the priest was instantly sent -for. Then, all being ready, the prisoner was brought forth. He was -shown on the one hand the priest and the girl, and on the other hand the -tree and the noose, and was asked to take his choice. His first proud -feeling was that he would be mocked at if he married such a girl on such -terms, and he walked bravely towards the rope. But the nearer he got to -it the uglier it looked. He had to confess to himself that it was not -at all a comfortable looking rope; he had a nasty feeling round his neck -from merely looking at it, and thought it would probably feel worse when -it got round his throat. Then he looked at the girl; she certainly was -not as beautiful as his mother, the lovely Flower of Yarrow; and a -Borderer loved a beautiful wife. But if he hanged he would have no wife -at all! Then he suggested that he should have three days to think it -over, but Murray said no, neither priest nor noose was prepared to wait, -he must decide at once. Then he looked again at Meg and saw a kind -glance in her eye; she felt sorry for the handsome young fellow. Then -he knew she had a good heart, and that decided the matter; he went up -and kissed her with a good grace, and the priest married them straight -away. - -Afterwards he became Sir William Scott, and an important man on the -Border. And, best of all, Meg proved to be a real good wife to him, and -he never regretted the day when he elected to suffer the knot to be tied -by the priest instead of by the hangman. - - - - - *Chapter XXXIX* - - *The Dowie Dens of Yarrow* - - -This is one of the most famous and widely known of all the Border -ballads, and has proved a source of inspiration to several poets, -including Wordsworth, who wrote three poems upon the subject. The bard -does not relate the full particulars, but gives only the barest outlines -of facts, which were well known in his day, and still live in tradition. -The story tells of a duel between two brothers-in-law. The very spot -where it took place is still pointed out, a low muir on the Yarrow -banks. The slain knight was apparently Walter Scott, one of the -ancestors of Lord Napier. His murderer was his brother-in-law, John -Scott. "Dowie" means melancholy, and "den" is a word used to describe a -narrow, rocky valley, usually wildly beautiful. - - Late at e'en drinking the wine, - And e'er they paid the lawing, - They set a combat them between, - To fight it in the dawing.[#] - -[#] Dawn. - - "O stay at home my noble lord, - O stay at home my marrow. - My cruel brother will you betray, - On the dowie houms[#] of Yarrow." - -[#] Hillocks. - - "O fare ye well, my lady gay! - O fare ye well, my Sarah! - For I must go, though I ne'er return - From the dowie banks of Yarrow." - - She kissed his cheek, she combed his hair, - As oft she had done before, O, - She belted him with his noble brand, - "And he's away to Yarrow." - - As he gaed up the Tennies bank - I wot he gaed with sorrow, - Till down in a den he spied nine armed men, - On the dowie houms of Yarrow. - - "O come ye here to part your land, - The bonnie forest thorough? - Or come ye here to wield your brand, - On the dowie houms of Yarrow?" - - "I come not here to part my land, - And neither to beg nor borrow, - I come to wield my noble brand - On the bonnie banks of Yarrow. - - "If I see all, ye're nine to ane; - And that's an unequal marrow; - Yet will I fight, while lasts my brand, - On the bonnie banks of Yarrow." - - Four has he hurt, and five has slain, - On the bloody braes of Yarrow, - Till that stubborn knight came him behind, - And ran his body thorough. - - "Gae hame, gae hame, good brother John, - And tell your sister Sarah, - To come and lift her leafu'[#] lord; - He's sleepin' sound on Yarrow." - -[#] Lawful. - - "Yestreen I dreamed a dolefu' dream, - I fear there will be sorrow! - I dreamed I pu'd the heather green, - Wi' my true love on Yarrow. - - "O gentle wind, that bloweth south, - From where my love repaireth, - Convey a kiss from his dear mouth, - And tell me how he fareth! - - "But in the glen strive armed men; - They've wrought me dole and sorrow; - They've slain--the comeliest knight they've slain, - He bleeding lies on Yarrow." - - As she sped down yon high, high hill, - She gaed wi' dole and sorrow, - And in the den spied ten slain men, - On the dowie banks of Yarrow. - - She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair, - She searched his wounds all thorough, - She kiss'd them till her lips grew red, - On the dowie houms of Yarrow. - - "Now haud[#] your tongue, my daughter dear, - For a' this breeds but sorrow; - I'll wed ye to a better lord, - Than him ye lost on Yarrow." - -[#] Hold. - - "O haud your tongue, my father dear! - Ye mind me but of sorrow; - A fairer rose did never bloom - Than now lies cropp'd on Yarrow." - -[Illustration: "_She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair, She searched -his wounds all thorough._"] - - - - - *Chapter XL* - - *Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland* - - - "When for the lists they sought the plain - The stately lady's silken rein - Did noble Howard hold; - Unarmed by her side he walk'd - And much, in courteous phrase they talk'd - Of feats of arms of old. - Costly his garb; his Flemish ruff - Fell o'er his doublet, shaped of buff, - With satin slashed and lined; - Tawny his boot and gold his spur, - His cloak was all of Poland fur, - His hose with silver twined. - His Bilboa blade, by Marchmen felt, - Hung in a broad and studded belt; - Hence, in rude phrase, the Borderers still - Call'd noble Howard, Belted Will." - SCOTT, _Lay of the Last Minstrel_. - - -One of the many picturesque figures of Border history was "Belted Will," -or to call him by his proper name and title, Lord William Howard, a -younger son of the powerful Duke of Norfolk. - -His mother had died when he was an infant, and his father, the foremost -Roman Catholic nobleman in England, took up the cause of Mary Queen of -Scots, whom he wished to marry. For this treason against Queen -Elizabeth he was beheaded in 1572, when young Lord William was only nine -years old. At the age of fourteen the young lord's guardians arranged -for him a marriage with Elizabeth Dacre, a member of a powerful Border -family, and heiress to the Baronry of Gilsland. As the bride was even -younger than her boy-husband, let us hope that they both went to school -again immediately after the marriage! - -When he grew to manhood, Lord William warmly supported the Roman -Catholic cause and was imprisoned by Elizabeth; but when James became -King, he was released and restored to his estates on the Border. -Throughout the remainder of his career he was the most notable man of -his district. He knew how to make himself respected by his wild -neighbours. His fame and power were great. He founded the fortunes of -his family so surely that he it is who is usually thought of as the -ancestor of the Earls of Carlisle, though his great-grandson was the -first to hold the title. - -Lord William had great energy and many interests, and was remarkable as -being an "all-round" man. He was equally a leader of men and a lover of -books; no detail in the management of his estates was too small for him -to study; he was a good husband to his wife, and a splendid father to -his fifteen children. He selected the most beautiful of his several -castles, that of Naworth, and repaired and almost rebuilt it; he took -there the fine old oak ceiling from the ancient castle of Kirkoswald, -which was ornamented with portraits of all the kings of England. -Visitors to Naworth can see to-day the "hall of Belted Will," by kind -permission of the present Earl of Carlisle. - -He was something of a poet and very much of an antiquarian. His estates -were full of interesting things, and none knew them better than he. -There were miles of the Roman wall, still in excellent condition; there -were many Roman altars and inscriptions, which he copied and translated; -quite near him, at Coome Crags, was a Roman quarry, which can still be -seen to-day, with marks of Roman tools on its stones. It stands in a -beautiful wood by the side of the lovely river Irthing. And only a -little further on, standing on a fine cliff overlooking the river, is -the old Roman station of Amboglanna, a fort that covered five and a half -acres, with walls that were once five feet thick, the main foundations -of which are still standing, clear enough for anyone to trace them out. -It is quieter there to-day than it was in Roman times, or in the -stirring days of Belted Will! - -It is good to think that this broad-shouldered, gallant, powerful -nobleman, who could ride, shoot, fight and keep this wild district in -order, was at the same time such a clever student and book-worm. They -tell a story that he was once sitting in his library intent on a book -when his men brought in a robber whom they had caught red-handed, and -asked Lord William to try him. Belted Will, angry at being interrupted, -cried out:--"Don't disturb me; hang him!" Half an hour later he rose -and came down to try the man, but finding that he was already hanged he -went on with his book. It is only fair to add that robbers in those -days expected no mercy when caught. - -One of the many clever things that Lord William did was to have figures -carved in oak to represent soldiers; these he placed on the top of his -high towers, and deceived the Scots into thinking that he had a large -and very watchful garrison! These figures can still be seen at Naworth. -Near Naworth Castle is Lanercost Priory, where King Edward I. stayed on -his way to Scotland. There is a secret passage from Naworth tower which -is supposed to run under the river to Lanercost. No one is allowed to -go through it, as it is considered dangerous; the people of the district -say that the last man to do so was Oliver Cromwell. - -Visitors to Naworth to-day should certainly go on to Gilsland itself, -the picturesque straggling little town, which was the head of the -Baronry which Elizabeth Dacre brought to her boy-husband. The Irthing -at Gilsland runs through a wonderfully beautiful gorge, rocky and -wooded, wild and romantic. Stand on the venturesome stepping stones -near the old church, with the river rushing at your very feet, and see -if this is an exaggeration of the beauties of the scene. Right in the -midst of the glen you can see the "Popping-stone" where Sir Walter Scott -walked with the lady of his choice and asked her to marry him. Readers -of "Guy Mannering" can see in Over Denton church near Gilsland the grave -of Meg Merrilees, who died here at the age of ninety-eight. The town is -also interesting for the fact that the county border is at Gilsland, and -there is an inn so built that it stands in both counties, and contains a -bed in which you can sleep with your head in Northumberland and your -feet in Cumberland! - -There is a story of Belted Will that tells eloquently of the strength of -his character. When he was released from prison by King James he found -his estates so ruined by careless management that he knew that great -care was needed to put things right again; so until he got his affairs -into order, all the pocket-money that he would allow himself was twenty -shillings per month! - -Bold William, Belted Will, gallant Lord Howard, as you will, died at -Naworth in 1640 aged seventy-seven, one year after the death of his -devoted wife. His descendants were, like himself, students and men of -action; the present Earl of Carlisle is directly sprung from him, and is -very proud of the fact. - - - - - *Chapter XLI* - - *Gilderoy* - - -Gilderoy was a celebrated and most daring highwayman, who roamed far, -and was well-known all over Scotland and indeed in London. His death -inspired a very striking ballad, but this is hardly a Border Lowland -ballad, but refers chiefly to another Border district, namely, that -between the Lowlands and Highlands. Just as the Scottish Lowlanders -thought the English their legitimate quarry, so the Highlanders in turn -looked upon the Lowlanders as created to supply them with all they -lacked. There is a story on record of a Highland chief who, finding his -men had carelessly robbed another Highlander, returned the spoil with a -handsome apology, and issued stringent orders that in future nothing was -to be taken except in the Lowlands, "where all men make their prey." - -Among the robber clans of the Highlands, the MacGregors stand easily in -the first rank. In a long series of Scottish Acts of Parliament, they -are habitually referred to as "the wicked clan Gregor, so long -continuing in blood, slaughter, theft, and robbery." One of their most -famous exploits was the battle of Glenfruin, when they defeated their -enemies, the Colquhouns, and slew two hundred of them. The Colquhouns -appeared before the King at Stirling with the bloody shirts stripped off -their dead, and the law was put in motion against the MacGregors more -vigorously than ever. This was in 1603. The execution of Gilderoy, as -described in our poem, took place in 1638. His real name was Patrick -MacGregor, and the fact that he belonged to this Ishmaelite clan, whose -hand was directed against every man, and whose very name had been -solemnly abolished, may well serve as an excuse for his career of crime. -Gilderoy, in Gaelic, means the red-haired gillie or lad, and besides the -name there are many other points of similarity between him and Rob Roy, -who was the head of the Clan MacGregor in the following century. Both -Gilderoy and Rob Roy were professional blackmailers, that is, they could -be relied on never to plunder anyone who was prudent enough to buy them -off by paying a fixed contribution. This is what is meant in the -following lines of the ballad-- - - "All these did honestly possess - He never did annoy, - Who never failed to pay their cess - To my love, Gilderoy." - - -The "cess" is the blackmail, or insurance against robbery. The -widespread reputation of Gilderoy is attested by the many legends of him -which are printed in the old chap-books and "Lives of the Highwaymen." -According to these authorities, Gilderoy once robbed Oliver Cromwell -near Glasgow; but an even more romantic episode of his career was a -roaming trip upon the continent, in the course of which he is said to -have picked Cardinal Richelieu's pocket while he was celebrating mass in -the King's presence, at the church of St Denis in Paris. He made his -way even to Madrid, where he succeeded in carrying off the Duke of -Medina-Cell's plate. Altogether a most notorious and dashing cateran. -The ballad is supposed to be spoken by a young woman who had all her -life been attached to him. - - "Gilderoy was a bonnie boy, - Had roses to his shoon;[#] - His stockings were of silken soy, - With garters hanging down. - It was, I ween, a comely sight - To see so trim a boy; - He was my jo, and heart's delight, - My handsome Gilderoy. - * * * * * - My Gilderoy and I were born - Both in one town together; - We scant were seven years before - We 'gan to love each other. - Our daddies and our mammies they - Were filled with meikle joy, - To think upon the bridal day - Of me and Gilderoy." - -[#] Shoes. - - -But there intervened the spirit of adventure which had ever been the -birthright of all of his surname, - - "Oh, that he still had been content - With me to lead his life! - But ah! his manful heart was bent - To stir in deeds of strife; - And he in many a venturous deed - His courage bold would try; - And now this gars[#] my heart to bleed - For my dear Gilderoy." - -[#] Makes. - - -No doubt those who knew Gilderoy personally would have agreed, as was -actually said of Rob Roy, that he was a benevolent and humane man "in -his way." - - "My Gilderoy, both far and near, - Was feared in every town; - And boldly bore away the gear - Of many a Lowland loun, - For man to man durst meet him none, - He was so brave a boy; - At length with numbers he was ta'en, - My winsome Gilderoy." - - -He was not so fortunate as Rob Roy, who ultimately died peacefully in -his bed. Gilderoy had lost the game, and he had to pay the stakes. - - "Of Gilderoy so feared they were, - They bound him fast and strong; - To Edinbro' they led him there, - And on a gallows hung. - They hung him high above the rest, - He was so trim a boy; - There died the youth whom I loved best, - My handsome Gilderoy." - - -Thus perished one of the characteristic products of an age whose -standards were so different from ours that we can hardly judge him -fairly. He was banned before his birth, a scion of a race so -indomitably and innately ferocious that the law attempted to extirpate -them, root and branch. The very name of Gregor could be given by no -clergyman at baptism, under penalty of deprivation and banishment. -Cunning and politic neighbours were not slow to take advantage of the -stubborn disposition of the MacGregors, and gradually stripped them of -their once extensive lands in Argyle and Perthshire. Gilderoy might well -consider that he was "an honester man than stood on any of their -shanks," and we may be excused for feeling a very lively sympathy with -him, and for echoing in our inmost hearts the exquisitely feminine point -of view expressed by the lady composer of the ballad. - - "If Gilderoy had done amiss, - He might have banished been; - Ah! what sore cruelty is this - To hang such handsome men! - To hang the flower of Scottish land, - So sweet and fair a boy! - No lady had so white a hand - As thee, my Gilderoy! - - When he had yielded up his breath - I bare his corpse away; - With tears, that trickled for his death, - I washt his comely clay; - And sicker[#] in a grave sae deep - I laid the dear lo'ed boy; - And now for ever maun I weep, - My winsome Gilderoy." - -[#] Safely. - - - - - *Chapter XLII* - - *Archie Armstrong's Oath* - - - "And oft since then, to England's King, - The story he has told; - And aye, when he 'gan rock and sing, - Charlie his sides would hold." - - -Archie Armstrong lived in Eskdale, where he did his best to keep up the -grand reputation of his family as being among the very boldest -sheep-stealers of the Border. His house was at Stubholm, where the -Wauchope stream runs into the river Esk, near where the picturesque town -of Langholm now stands. Living in the reign of Charles I., after the -union of crowns, the profession of freebooter was far less honourable -than of old. He could not now plead that he was a Border soldier, -fighting against his nation's enemy. The wild Border blood in him might -cry out for the old adventurous career, but he could no longer hope for -the aid of powerful Border families. When cornered, his sole protector -would be his own wits, and woe betide him if they failed! - -Archie's house was about eight miles from the Border, and he could not -help strolling towards the fascinating line and tasting the sweetness of -temptation. When the chance came that seemed to him sufficiently safe, -he would go home in company though he had walked out alone; the -"company" being a good fat English sheep. One night a shepherd had -marked him lingering about, and had watched him, and raised an alarm. -Away went stout Archie at a Marathon pace; half way home he passed -Gilnockie tower, where his ancestor bold Johnie Armstrong lived so -gaily. "Alas!" thought Archie, dolefully, "he too was hanged in the -end!" - -He got home well in front of his pursuers, but his wife gave him small -encouragement. With typical Scottish dourness she remarked to him, "Ye -will be ta'en this night and hanged i' the morning." - -But Archie put a braw face on it, and declared that he would never hang -for one silly sheep. Quicker than any butcher he skinned and roughly -trimmed the dead animal, throwing the rejected parts into the swift -stream. Then rejoicing in the fact that his child was away with its -aunt, he put the carcase carefully in the cradle and began rocking it -and singing a lullaby to it, as if he were the most loving father in all -the British Isles. - -The pursuers now rushed in, and began to accuse Archie triumphantly; but -he rebuked them for making so much noise, telling them that his child -was at death's door! As for stealing their sheep, he took a solemn oath -that if he had done such a thing he would ask to be doomed to "eat the -flesh this very cradle holds!" - -Such an oath on the Borders was a very serious matter; they little knew -that the only flesh in the cradle was sheep's flesh, which Archie asked -nothing better than to devour! - -Impressed but not convinced, his enemies carefully searched the whole of -Archie's house and garden; it was only with very great unwillingness -that they at last decided that they must miss the supreme pleasure of -hanging him! They went away saying that they must have been deluded by -the devil or by witches; and the shepherd resolved to hang a branch of -rowan-tree (mountain-ash) by his fold, for that was well-known to have -the power to keep witches away. - -As soon as they were all on their road to England again, Archie skipped -about like a dancing fiddler. "Wife," he said, "I never knew before -that I would make such a good nurse." - -After this Archie wandered down to London, and his wild jests becoming -famous, he was made Court Jester by King Charles I. And many a time he -acted the story to the King, rocking a pretended cradle, and singing a -persuasive lullaby, to the King's intense amusement. - -Nevertheless, Archie lost his place by his boldness. These were the days -of Archbishop Laud (1637), who was hated by the Scots. One day, as the -archbishop was about to say grace before dinner, Archie asked the King's -permission to say grace instead. The King consented, and the jester's -double-meaning words were as follows:-- - -"All _praise_ to God, and little _laud_ to the devil!" - -The archbishop, in many senses a little man, had Archie dismissed in -disgrace. But, such were the chances of these uncertain times, the -archbishop was executed in the end, while the sheepstealer escaped that -fate! - - - - - *Chapter XLIII* - - *Christie's Will* - - -The resourceful Archie, whose tale we have just told, was not the only -one of the reckless Armstrongs to keep up the old freebooting habits in -the reign of Charles I. There lived at Gilnockie tower (the old -residence of the famous Johnie Armstrong) in the parish of Cannobie, a -notorious Willie Armstrong, known as Christie's Will. Like Archie, he -more than once owed his life to his ready wit. He was shut up in -Jedburgh jail when the Earl of Traquair, Lord High Treasurer, paid the -prison an official visit. When he asked Will the cause of his being -there, the freebooter answered:-- - -"For stealing two halters, my lord." - -Traquair was surprised, but Will afterwards owned that there was a fine -colt at the end of each halter. - -Traquair was amused and pleased by the boldness of the man, and had him -set free. - -Some little time afterwards Traquair was involved in a law-suit which -was set down to be decided by Lord Durie, who seems to have let it be -known before-hand what his opinion was upon the case. Nothing would -save Traquair's interests except that Durie must be got out of the way -before the case began. But how was it to be done? - -Christie's Will was appealed to, and merely said "Leave it to me." - -It was the judge's habit to take horseback exercise on the sands of -Leith without any attendant. One morning, whilst so riding, a -well-dressed and gentlemanly stranger, on a good horse, happened to -overtake him; a courteous greeting led to a friendly conversation, in -which the stranger proved himself so affable and entertaining that the -judge rode on by his side without suspicion. Suddenly, when they had -come to a lonely spot, Lord Durie found himself seized by this muscular -gentleman, smothered up in a big cloak, whisked off his horse and on to -the stranger's, who galloped off, mischief knows where! It was -Christie's Will, carrying out his promise. - -The judge's horse galloped home, riderless. Search was made, but the -judge could not be found. It could only be supposed that he had been -thrown off into the sea. His successor was appointed, and Lord -Traquair's case was heard and won! - -Lord Durie had languished for several months in a dreary underground -vault. I wonder if he thought of the many poor wretches he had -sentenced to a similar fate? Suddenly at midnight he was roughly -awakened, muffled up as before, and carried away again by his captor on -horseback. Next morning, by the light of the newly-risen sun, he found -himself on the very spot by the sands of Leith from which he had been -kidnapped! We will hope that every one, including his successor, was -glad when he thus came to life again. - -When the Civil War began, the Earl of Traquair was faithful to King -Charles I. Having some papers of importance that he wished to have -given into the King's own hands, he entrusted these to the bold -freebooter. Christie's Will did his errand, and received an equally -important answer. But spies at Court had given Cromwell word of the -matter, and the command was sent up to Carlisle that Will Armstrong must -be intercepted there. Not knowing his danger, Will halted in the town -to refresh his horse, then pushed forward to the bridge which crossed -the Eden on the Northern boundary of the city. Cromwell's soldiers were -waiting for him; the bridge was high and narrow, the broad Eden waters -were swirling in high flood. - -Christie's Will, without one second's hesitation, spurred his horse over -the parapet. He sank ... he came up ... he sank ... he came up ... he -sank ... he came up, this time at the very bank. He cut his heavy, -dripping cloak from his shoulders; relieved of the weight, his horse -struggled to the land. Away went Will, away went the troopers after -him. It was a hard race to the river Esk, and this also Will had to -swim. But now he was in Scotland, and his friends were at hand; gaily -Will turned to his pursuers, who dared not cross the water; "Good -friends," cried he, "come over and drink with me!" But they showed him -their backs, and their horses's tails, and he saw no more of them. - -Such were the exploits of Christie's Will; he was the last of the -free-booters, but he certainly knew how to live up to their boldest -traditions. - - - - - *Chapter XLIV* - - *Northumberland at the time of the Civil War* - - -During the stormy days of King Charles I., the Borders, and especially -Northumberland, saw many stirring scenes. It must be remembered that -shortly before the Long Parliament was elected, King Charles almost came -to war with the Scottish Presbyterians, because they would not obey the -harsh rule of Archbishop Laud. The Scots raised an army under the lead -of shrewd general Alexander Leslie, the "old, little, crooked soldier," -of great experience, trained by the great Gustavus of Sweden. In 1639 -Charles sent ships up to the Forth, in reply to which Leslie marched his -army to threaten the border. The old quarrel between the two countries -began to blaze up again. King Charles led an army to the border and was -received with splendid applause at Newcastle. Many joined his army, and -shouted with joy at the thought of meeting the Scots in battle. But -they were an untrained disorderly crew, who fired their guns off at -random and kept no military order whatever. Gallant Leslie marched his -men down to Duns Law, in South Berwickshire, and was ready to fight. -But King Charles would not trust his army that length; he made terms -with his opponents, promising them the reforms they set their hearts -upon, and the two armies melted away like school-boys at the end of the -term. - -Things were soon as bad as before. Lord Conway was sent by the King to -put Newcastle into a strong defensive state. His greatest difficulty -was to get money for the purpose, for the King's quarrel with his -various Parliaments had deprived him of supplies. The badly paid troops -mutinied, and the ring-leader was shot. Very soon the Scottish army came -across the Tweed, the Highlanders armed with bows and arrows. - -They pitched their camp on Heddon Law, and soon proved to the country -folk that they had not come for plunder, but would pay for all they -wanted to eat. This re-assured the country people, who had no real -quarrel with the Scots, and even became most friendly to them. - -With Lord Conway it was otherwise; he was the King's officer, and was -bound to offer resistance. His opinion was that if once the Scots -crossed the Tyne, and attacked Newcastle from the south or Gateshead -side, they were sure of victory. Accordingly, leaving a strong garrison -to protect the town, he marched out with two thousand or more foot and -fully one thousand horse to command the important ford across the Tyne -at Newburn, a place five or six miles due west of Newcastle. It is -interesting to remember that here also the Romans had had -fortifications, along the line of the wall, and the very spot where the -Scots and English fought may well have been the scene of contests -between the Roman Legions and the wild Picts. - -The English arrived first, on the south bank of the river, and threw up -earth-works hastily. Very soon they saw the Scots march into Newburn -village, on the north bank, where they employed themselves by hauling -their cannon up to the church tower. Remarkable cannon they were, made -out of bar-iron hooped together with cord and wet, raw hides! But they -were not required to carry any distance, the foe was only on the other -side of the Tyne. All the morning the enemies looked at one another -across the river, each hesitating to fire the first shot of the war. At -last an English officer shot a Scotch officer, and the fight began. The -Scots were on the higher ground, and their cannon, rough as they were, -sent heavy shot on to the English. Then when the river tide went down, -the Scots rushed across the ford, and the battle was soon won, the royal -standard being taken. English runaways rushed through the woods and -into Newcastle, crying, "Fly for your lives, naked devils have destroyed -us!" Whether they referred to kilted Highlanders is uncertain. Anyway, -Leslie and his Scots entered Newcastle in triumph, but were afterwards -bought off with a payment of 60,000 and recrossed the Tweed into -Scotland. - -This was in 1641, a year in which King Charles was quarrelling bitterly -with his Long Parliament, though the actual civil war in England did not -begin till 1642. Early in 1642 it was decided that so important a town -as Newcastle ought to be put in a stronger state of defence. - -William Cavendish, Earl of Newcastle, was made governor of the town, but -he was much hindered in his plans by lack of money. King Charles, -however, promoted him from Earl to Marquis of Newcastle, and the lack of -funds he made up as best he was able. However, the Governor of Holy -Island, off the Northumberland shore, found himself left for sixteen -months without any pay! He wrote to the King's treasury a protest in -verse, beginning:-- - - "_The great commander o' the Cormorants,_ - _The geese and ganders of these hallowed lands,_ - _Where Lindisfarne and Holy Island stands,_ - _These worthless lines sends to your worthy hands._" - - -The allusion in the first two lines is to the fact that Holy Island and -the Farne Islands were then, and are still to-day, so thinly peopled -that sea-birds gather there in large numbers, adding greatly to the wild -beauties of these islets and rocks. - -In January 1644 a serious struggle began. Leslie and his soldiers -crossed the Tweed at Berwick bridge and again entered Northumberland. -General Bayly marched his men from Kelso across the frozen river and -joined Leslie at Alnwick. Warkworth Castle, though it contained cannon -and provisions, surrendered at once. The Scottish general gravely told -Bemerton, the governor, that if he had learnt to fight as well as he had -learnt to dance his castle could never have been taken! The country -districts of Northumberland had no quarrel with the Scots, and it was -soon evident that the real fight would be at Newcastle, bravely held by -the Marquis and by the Mayor, Sir John Marley. - -The Scottish "murthering pieces," as the cannon were called, were -brought down by sea, and the obstinate conflict began. Despite the -terrible weather of a very rough February, frequent skirmishes took -place, while the Scots closed nearer and nearer round the gallantly -defended town. Leslie soon found that the defences had been put into -good order; the ditch round the town was dug deep, and close to the -walls; the walls themselves were strongly underpinned. The battlements -were strengthened by stone and lime, but the top stones were loosened so -as to slip if the enemy attempted to mount them. Every cannon was -placed carefully, to the best advantage. - -[Illustration: _The Storming of Newcastle_] - -But the Marquis of Newcastle was called southward by the needs of his -King. With him were his thousand brave "White coats," so called because -they wore white coats which they promised to dye in the blood of the -enemy. But they met the terrible Ironsides at Marston Moor, and in a -conflict of furious bravery on both sides, all of the gallant thousand -except thirty were slain on the field of battle. - -This was in July of 1644, but it did not affect the siege of Newcastle, -which still dragged obstinately on, under the skilful guidance of the -dauntless Mayor. By October, Sir John Marley was so buoyed up by his -success that he sent a letter to General Leslie to ask if he was still -alive! This the Scots took to be an insult, and a grand assault was -begun. The Scots were furious, and the defence was desperate. The roar -of the cannon and the rattle of the musketry were succeeded, as the -assault got nearer and nearer to its aim, by the clashing of swords and -the clanging of pikes. At last, the regiments of Loudoun and Buccleugh -succeeded in forcing their way into the town. In vain the defenders -made their last gallant charge; their cause was now hopeless, and soon -the market-place was filled with fugitives, who flung down their arms -and cried aloud for quarter at the hands of the triumphant Scots. - -In these days the defender was often made to feel the anger of the -victors, who in the flush and cruelty of victory avenged their dead, -only too terribly, upon the losing side. Not so at Newcastle. -Prominent in its day, it stands out because of the mercy of the Scottish -conquerors as much as for the heroism of its defence. In this, the last -great struggle on English ground between Scots and English, it is -pleasing indeed to recall facts that redound to the high honour of both -parties. - - - - - *Chapter XLV* - - *Montrose and Lesly* - - -James Graham, the great Marquis of Montrose who at first sided with the -Scottish Covenanters against Charles I., was so out of sympathy with the -extreme turn which affairs took later against that unhappy monarch that -he went over to the King's side. Gathering the Highland Clans under his -standard, he marched Southward and defeated the Covenanters in a series -of brilliantly fought battles. He occupied Edinburgh, and laid great -plans to complete the conquest of Scotland by subduing the Borderland. - -If the Borders had remained in their old fighting state no doubt many a -Border chief would have joined Montrose's army and aided his bold plans. -But, unfortunately for King Charles, the Borders had been tamed and -disarmed since the union of England and Scotland under James I. Only a -few adventurous spirits like Christie's Will remained as examples of the -old wild days. - -The remnant of the army of the Covenanters was commanded by the stern -General David Lesly (not the Alexander Leslie who figures in the -preceding chapter), and was somewhere in the Border district. Gay -Gallant Montrose did not bother as to exactly where this army was; he -despised it too heartily. He himself was at Selkirk, while his army was -encamped on the neighbouring plain of Philiphaugh. - -Montrose was busy writing a cheering message to King Charles to the -effect that he had now no enemy left in Scotland who could offer an -effective resistance to his arms. Little did he think that General -Lesly was gradually creeping nearer, nearer, and was now actually within -four miles of his army. With the advantage of a thick Scotch mist, -Lesly's men actually burst upon Montrose's infantry without a single -scout having seen them to give warning of their approach! In such -confusion, Montrose's men had no chance whatever. - -The Marquis galloped up, only to find his soldiers hopelessly defeated -and great numbers slain. There was nothing left but for those to escape -who could. The Marquis succeeded in cutting his way through, and -gathered his troops to fight again later on; but his efforts were doomed -to failure. - -A popular ditty of these days, sung to a stirring tune, was called -"Lesly's March." Sir Walter Scott seems to regard this as wholly -serious, and ranks it as a Covenanter song. It appears to me, however, -that many of the lines have a very sarcastic flavour; no doubt the -Covenanters did really think that - - "There's none in the right but we, - Of the old Scottish nation"; - -but they would probably have phrased it a little less baldly. To me it -appears as if this song were the work of an onlooker and not a partisan; -one ready to see the faults of both sides, and very much inclined to -hold back his final opinion till he saw which was going to win. But let -the March speak for itself. - - - *LESLY'S MARCH* - - March! march: - Why the de'il do ye na march? - Stand to your arms, my lads, - Fight in good order; - Front about, ye musketeers all, - Till ye come to the English Border; - Stand till 't, and fight like men, - True gospel to maintain. - The parliament's blythe to see us a' coming! - When to the kirk we come, - We'll purge it ilka room, - Frae popish relics, and a' sic innovation, - That a' the world may see, - There's nane in the right but we, - Of the auld Scottish nation. - - -A truly partisan ballad of the day describes the battle of Philiphaugh -and exults in the defeat of Montrose, "our cruel enemy," it calls him. -As a ballad it has no great poetic merit; the very sober Covenanters -probably regarded ballad-making as a frivolity. But it describes rather -graphically how an "aged father," from the country-side, led Lesly's -army very cautiously and wisely to the very tents of the foe. These -details are no doubt accurate; though the ballad-writer (whoever he was) -displays his ignorance of other matters by making the old soldier say -that he was at the battle of Solway Moss (which took place one hundred -years before) and at that of Dunbar, which was not fought till five -years later! - -The following are the opening verses of the ballad, giving an idea of -its plain, straightforward style:-- - - On Philiphaugh a fray began, - At Hairhead-wood it ended; - The Scots out o'er the Graemes they ran, - Sae merrily they bended; - - Sir David frae the Border came, - Wi' heart an' hand came he; - Wi' him three thousand bonny Scots, - To bear him company. - - Wi' him three thousand valiant men, - A noble sight to see! - A cloud o' mist them weel conceal'd, - As close as e'er might be. - - When they came to the Shaw burn, - Said he, "Sae weel we frame. - I think it is convenient - That we should sing a psalm." - - -It is not necessary to quote more of it, but it may be remarked that in -place of the last line as given here, the _unregenerate_ substituted, - - "That we should take a dram." - -In point of actual fact, _both_ versions are probably true! - - - - - *Chapter XLVI* - - *The Death of Montrose* - - -During the imprisonment of King Charles I., at a time when active war on -his behalf might do the unhappy monarch more harm than good, the gallant -Montrose had retired to France. His bright military fame, his courteous -manners, and manly bearing made him friends everywhere, and when he -visited Germany the Emperor conferred on him the rank of Marshal. -Hearing of the execution of Charles I., Montrose at once placed himself -at the disposal of Charles II., now a fugitive in Holland. This prince -named him Captain General of Scotland, and the daring hero set out for -the Orkney Islands with about five hundred paid soldiers, mostly -adventurous Germans and Dutchmen. Only a reckless spirit like Montrose -would have undertaken so wild a commission. - -Scotland was heartily sick of war, and learnt with consternation of the -arrival of this firebrand. Lesly was sent forward with four thousand -men to attack Montrose's five hundred! Colonel Strachan led the -advanced guard, which fell unexpectedly upon the invading army, and, -after a brief, fierce struggle, totally defeated it. - -Montrose, disguised as a peasant, entrusted his life to one he believed -to be his friend, M'Leod, Laird of Assaint. But this unworthy man -betrayed him to his bitterest enemy, General Lesly. Thus, at last, this -brilliant commander was in the hands of the bitter Covenanters, into -whose hearts his brilliant victories had once spread such terror. Their -treatment of him is a black stain upon their memory. For days he was -led about in the peasant's disguise, which he had put on; he was carted -through the streets of Edinburgh, accompanied by such insults that the -populace cried shame upon his captors. - -When tried before the Scottish Parliament for treason, he made a most -eloquent defence, one of the most notable of his assertions being that -he had never stained his victories by slaughtering his foes in cold -blood after the battle. In this he was far above his enemies, who had -disgraced their victory of Philiphaugh by many an execution, and who -were now bent upon taking the life of Montrose himself. The sentence -against him was probably decided before his defence had been heard; it -ran thus:-- - -"That James Graham should next day be carried to Edinburgh cross and -there hanged on a gibbet 30 feet high for the space of three hours; then -to be taken down, his head to be struck off on a scaffold and affixed to -the prison; his arms and legs to be stuck up on the four chief towns of -the Kingdom, his body to be buried in the place set aside for common -criminals." - -To this sentence the great Marquis haughtily replied that he would -rather have his head so placed than his picture in the King's -bedchamber, and that he wished he had limbs enough to be dispersed into -all the cities of Christendom, to prove his dying attachment to his -king. And in the one evening of life that still remained to him, this -accomplished and fearless nobleman employed his time in turning these -loyal sentiments into verse. - -Despite the fact that he triumphed undaunted over all the mean -inventions of their malice, his enemies persisted to the end. - -The executioner tied mockingly round his neck the book that had been -published describing his victories; Montrose thanked him, saying that he -wore it with more pride than he had ever worn the garter of honour. He -uttered a short prayer; then asking them what more indignities they had -prepared for him, he patiently and with unbroken spirit yielded his life -to the hangman, at the too early age of thirty-eight. - -Whatever opinions we may have as to the rights and wrongs of the -quarrel, this brutal killing of a gallant soldier and accomplished -gentleman can only rank as a hideous blot upon all concerned in it. -Every insult hurled at Montrose has returned in the verdict of time with -redoubled force against the malice of those who stooped to such -vindictiveness. The execution of a soldier who has violated no rule of -war is at any time a thing that revolts the human conscience, and a -sentence hoarse with the vile taunts of its utterers has so far lost all -semblance of justice that it is needless to argue upon it. - -In the verdict of history, the great Marquis of Montrose, whether right -or wrong in his political views, lived and died like a man of honour. - -The ballad of the "Gallant Grahams," written about this time, reflects -very sincerely and touchingly the devotion and affection surrounding the -great Marquis, accompanied by the very Scottish feeling that in addition -to his own personal power and genius, he was also the head of the great -Border family of Grahams. - - - *THE GALLANT GRAHAMS* - - Now, fare thee well, sweet Ennerdale![#] - Baith kith and countrie I bid adieu; - For I maun away, and I may not stay, - To some uncouth land which I never knew. - -[#] A corruption of Endrickdale. The principal and most ancient -possessions of the Montrose family lie along the water of Endrick, in -Dumbartonshire. - - To wear the blue I think it best, - Of all the colours that I see; - And I'll wear it for the gallant Grahams, - That are banished from their countrie. - - I have no gold, I have no land, - I have no pearl nor precious stane; - But I wald sell my silken snood, - To see the gallant Grahams come hame. - - In Wallace days, when they began, - Sir John the Graham[#] did bear the gree - Through all the lands of Scotland wide: - He was lord of the south countrie. - -[#] The faithful friend and adherent of the immortal Wallace slain at -the battle of Falkirk. - - And so was seen full many a time; - For the summer flowers did never spring, - But every Graham, in armour bright, - Would then appear before the king. - - They were all drest in armour sheen, - Upon the pleasant banks of Tay; - Before a king they might be seen, - These gallant Grahams in their array. - - At the Goukhead our camp we set, - Our leaguer down there for to lay; - And, in the bonny summer light, - We rode our white horse and our gray. - - Our false commander sold our king, - Unto his deadly enemie, - Who was the traitor, Cromwell, then; - So I care not what they do with me. - - They have betray'd our noble prince, - And banished him from his royal crown;' - But the gallant Grahams have ta'en in hand - For to command those traitors down. - - In Glen-Prosen[#] we rendezvous'd, - March'd to Glenshie by night and day. - And took the town of Aberdeen, - And met the Campbells in their array. - -[#] Glen-Prosen is in Angusshire, usually called Forfarshire. The -Glenshee road, over the Grampians, is the highest road in Great Britain. - - Five thousand men, in armour strong, - Did meet the gallant Grahams that day - At Inverlochie, where war began, - And scarce two thousand men were they. - - Gallant Montrose, that chieftan bold, - Courageous in the best degree, - Did for the king fight well that day;-- - The Lord preserve his majestie! - - Then woe to Strachan, and Ilacket baith! - And, Lesly, ill death may thou die! - For ye have betray'd the gallant Grahams, - Who aye were true to majestie. - - And the Laird of Assaint has seized Montrose, - And had him into Edinburgh town; - And frae his body taken the head, - And quarter'd him upon a trone, - - And Huntly's[#] gone the self-same way, - And our noble king is also gone; - He suffer'd death for our nation, - Our mourning tears can ne'er be done. - -[#] The Marquis of Huntly, one of the few Scottish nobles who never -wavered in his devotion to King Charles I., was beheaded by the sentence -of the Parliament of Scotland. - - But our brave young king is now come home, - King Charles the Second in degree; - The Lord send peace into his time, - And God preserve his majestie! - - -The ballad-writer's reference to the "coming home" of Charles II. -probably means his signing of the Covenant and placing himself entirely -at the mercy of the violent bigots who had killed his most faithful -servant, Montrose. To this was Charles reduced by the desperate nature -of his fortunes. But this course of action entirely severed the -Scottish Covenanters from the English Puritans, and admirers of the -gallant Montrose can take a grim pleasure in the fact that his -arch-enemy, General Lesly, was most disastrously defeated by Cromwell at -the battle of Dunbar. - - - - - *Chapter XLVII* - - *The Borderers and the Jacobites* - - -During the Jacobite Rising, many of the Border chiefs took up arms in -the Stuart cause. Two of these, Lord Derwentwater and Viscount Kenmure, -were beheaded on Tower Hill for their part in the unsuccessful rising of -1715, and another, Lord Nithsdale, was only saved from the same fate by -the courage of his wife. - -This brave woman travelled in the depth of winter from Scotland, but -when she reached York the snow was so deep that the stage coach could go -no further. She continued her journey alone, though the snow was above -the horse's knees, and by good luck she reached London and the Tower in -safety, where, by bribing the guards, she managed to see her husband. - -She then resolved to petition the King for his life, and she herself -tells in a letter to her sister how she waited in the ante-room to see -the King (George I.), and how she threw herself at his feet to present -the petition. The King tried to get away from her, but she seized hold -of his coat, and was dragged on her knees along the floor. This scene -produced no result, and as other efforts to procure Nithsdale's release -also failed, the Countess determined to save him by a stratagem. She -again bribed the guards to let her in, telling them she had joyful news -for her husband about the petition. She dressed him in woman's clothes, -which she had smuggled in for the occasion, and painted his face, and -brought him out, speaking to him as to the woman friend who had -accompanied her, but who had already left the prison, calling him "Mrs -Betty," and asking him for the love of God to go as quickly as he could -to her lodging and fetch her maid, as she wished to go and present her -final petition for the release. - -All went well, and Nithsdale escaped to France; but the King was highly -incensed and declared that the Countess cost him more trouble than any -woman in Europe. - -Her adventures were not yet over, however. In spite of the fact that -the King had wished for her arrest, she travelled to Scotland to fetch -her son, and the valuable papers which she had taken the precaution to -bury underground on her departure for London. - -She was successful in this second journey, and, after concealing herself -and her son, until no further search was made for them, this noble and -enterprising woman escaped to France and joined her husband. They -afterwards went to Rome, where they lived happily for many years. - -In an old ballad called "Lord Nithsdale's Dream," he is described as -dreaming in the Tower the night before his execution, after having said -farewell to his beloved wife. - - "Farewell to thee, Winifred, pride of thy kind, - Sole ray in my darkness, sole joy in my pain." - -He listens for the last sound of her footfall, and catches the last -glimpse of her robe at the door, and then all joy and gladness depart -out of his life, and he prays alone in his dungeon, thinking of the -dreadful dawn that awaits him. - -He falls asleep and dreams that he is a frolicsome boy again, playing -amongst the bracken on the braes of the Nith, bathing in its waters and -treading joyfully the green heather. Or again he is riding to the hunt -on his gallant grey steed, with a plume in his bonnet and a star on his -breast, chasing the red deer and the wild mountain roe. - -The vision changes, and he dreams that he is telling his love to -Winifred, and swearing to be faithful to her, watching the red blushes -rise on her cheeks at his words of love, and hearing her sweet voice -replying. - -Again he is riding at the head of his gallant band. - - "For the pibroch was heard on the hills far away, - And the clans were all gathered from mountain and glen. - For the darling of Scotland, their exile adored, - They raised the loud slogan--they rushed to the strife; - Unfurl'd was the banner, unsheathed was the sword, - For the cause of their heart, that was dearer than life." - - -And now the darksome morn has come, the priest is standing by his side, -saying the prayers for the dead. He hears the muffled drum and the bells -tolling his death knell; the block is prepared, the headsman comes; and -the victim is led bare-headed from his cell. - -Waking, he turns on his straw pallet, and sees, by the pale, misty light -of a taper, the form of his wife. - - "'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!" softly she said, - "Arouse thee and follow, be bold, never fear, - There was danger ahead, but my errand has sped, - I promised to save thee, and lo! I am here!" - -[Illustration: "_'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!_"] - -Then she puts woman's garb upon him, and together they pass the -unsuspecting guards and weary sentinels. - - * * * * * - -When the peasantry on the Nithsdale estates heard of their Lord's escape -their joy was unbounded. - -One of the songs published and sung everywhere at the time, begins:-- - - "What news to me, carlin'? - What news to me?" - "What news!" quo' the carlin', - The best that God can gie." - - -The speaker asks if the true king has come to his own, and the carlin' -answers. - - "Our ain Lord Nithsdale - Will soon be 'mang us here. - - -Then the speaker says:-- - - "Brush me my coat, carlin', - Brush me my shoon; - I'll awa and meet Lord Nithsdale, - When he comes to our town." - - -"Alack-a-day," says the carlin'. "He has escaped to France, with scarce -a penny." - -"Then," says the first speaker, "we'll sell our corn and everything we -have and send the money to our lord, and we'll make the pipers blow and -lads and maidens dance, and we'll all be glad and joyful and play 'The -Stuarts back again,' and make the Whigs go mad." - - * * * * * - -Lord Derwentwater's fate was not so happy as that of Lord Nithsdale, -though Lady Derwentwater made a desperate effort to save him. - -It was she indeed who had urged him to throw in his lot with the -Stuarts, saying that it was not good that he should hide his head when -other gentlemen were mustering for the cause. - -The peasantry still think that Lady Derwentwater sits on her ruined -tower lamenting the evil counsel she gave her husband, and they hasten -by in fear when they see her lamp-light flickering. - -Derwentwater is described in the old ballads, as "a bonny lord," with -hair of gold, and kind love dwelling in his hawk-like eyes. - -He passionately loved his beautiful home in Tynedale, the foundations of -which may still be seen. The wooded glen below the castle, with the -little burn running through it, spanned by a grey bridge is romantically -beautiful. - -His "Farewell" to all this beauty is pathetic. - - "Farewell to pleasant Ditson Hall, - My father's ancient seat; - A stranger now must call thee his, - Which gars[#] my heart to greet.[#] - Farewell each kindly well-known face, - My heart has held so dear: - My tenants now must leave their lands, - Or hold their lives in fear. - -[#] makes. -[#] weep. - - No more along the banks of Tyne, - I'll rove in autumn grey; - No more I'll hear, at early dawn, - The lav'rocks[#] wake the day: - Then fare thee well, brave Witherington, - And Forster ever true. - Dear Shaftsbury and Errington, - Receive my last adieu. - -[#] larks. - - And fare thee well, George Collingwood, - Since fate has put us down, - If thou and I have lost our lives, - Our King has lost his crown. - Farewell, farewell, my lady dear, - Ill, ill thou counsell'dst me: - I never more may see thy babe - That smiles upon thy knee. - - And fare thee well, my bonny grey steed, - That carried me aye so free; - I wish I had been asleep in my bed, - The last time I mounted thee. - The warning bell now bids me cease; - My troubles nearly o'er; - Yon sun that rises from the sea, - Shall rise on me no more. - - Albeit that here in London town - It is my fate to die, - O carry me to Northumberland, - In my father's grave to lie: - There chant my solemn requiem - In Hexham's holy towers, - And let six maids of fair Tynedale - Scatter my grave with flowers. - - And when the head that wears the crown, - Shall be laid low like mine, - Some honest hearts may then lament - For Radcliff's fallen line. - Farewell to pleasant Ditson Hall, - My father's ancient seat; - A stranger now must call thee his, - Which gars my heart to greet." - - -Before his death, Earl Derwentwater signed a paper acknowledging "King -James the Third" as his sovereign, and saying that he hoped his death -would contribute to the service of his King. - -He is said to have looked closely at the block, and to have asked the -executioner to chip off a rough place that might hurt his neck. Then, -pulling off his coat and waistcoat, he tried if the block would fit his -head, and told the executioner that when he had repeated "Lord Jesus -receive my soul" for the third time, he was to do his office, which the -executioner accordingly did at one blow. - -History tells that Derwentwater was brave and open-hearted and generous, -and that his fate drew tears from the spectators, and was a great -misfortune to his country. He was kind to the people on his estates, to -the poor, the widow and the orphan. - -His request to be buried with his ancestors was refused, and he was -interred at St Giles, Holborn, but his corpse was afterwards removed and -carried secretly to Northumberland, where it was deposited in Dilston -Chapel. The aurora borealis, which appeared remarkably vivid on the -night of his execution, was long called in that part of the country -"Lord Derwentwater's Lights." - -Immediately after Derwentwater's execution, Lord Kenmure also suffered -death. After his execution, a letter was found in his pocket addressed -to the Pretender, by the title of King James, saying that he died in his -faithful service, and asking him to provide for his wife and children. - -The following ballad describes his rising in the Stuart cause-- - - "O Kenmure's on and awa', Willie, - O Kenmure's on and awa'; - And Kenmure's lord's the bravest lord - That ever Galloway saw. - Success to Kenmure's band, Willie! - Success to Kenmure's band! - There's no a heart that fears a Whig, - That rides by Kenmure's hand. - - His lady's cheek was red, Willie, - His lady's cheek was red, - When she saw his steely jupes[#] put on, - Which smell'd o' deadly feud. - Here's Kenmure's health in wine, Willie, - Here's Kenmure's health in wine; - There ne'er was a coward o' Kenmure's blude, - Nor yet o' Gordon's line. - -[#] armour. - - There's a rose in Kenmure's cap, Willie, - There's a rose in Kenmure's cap, - He'll steep it red in ruddie heart's blade, - Afore the battle drap. - Here's him that's far awa', Willie, - Here's him that's far awa', - And here's the flower that I lo'e best, - The rose that's like the snaw. - - O Kenmure's lads are men, Willie, - O Kenmure's lads are men, - Their hearts and swords are metal true, - And that their foes shall ken. - They'll live, or die wi' fame, Willie, - They'll live, or die wi' fame, - And soon wi' sound o' victorie - May Kenmure's lord come hame." - - - - - *Chapter XLVIII* - - *The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall* - - -If you stand upon Rose Hill, which rises from the banks of the river -Irthing just where Northumberland meets Cumberland, you have lying -around you one of the finest wild prospects in the United Kingdom. Hills -to the north, stretching away into Scotland; hills to the east, broken -into picturesque valleys, especially the great gap through which rushes -the young Tyne; hills to the south, dominated by the powerful head of -Cross Fell, a great sprawling mountain, not a peaked one, the highest -stretch of which is nearly three thousand feet above sea level. - -But while drinking in the glories of the distances, the eye will note -with curiosity a strange-looking but picturesque hill only a couple of -miles to the South-east, with a long rocky ridge at its top deeply cut -into or "nicked" in nine different places, this giving it a very wild -appearance. It is one of these hills which tempts the keen observer to -go on and explore it. If we cut direct to it, over the fields, it is -rough going, but the view is good all the way. And there are four -special objects of interest, all close together; the rushing Tipalt -river, Thirlwall Castle, the Roman wall, and the Nine Nicks. - -Thirlwall Castle rises tall, square, and stern, with a dark fir-wood -behind it at the foot of the hill, where a bend in the river makes a -natural moat. Approaching it from Rose Hill, it looks as if the -building were still nearly complete, but the south side has almost -entirely fallen away and all the floors and the roof are out. Edward I. -slept in this Castle when it was newly built, in 1306; but now it is -grass-grown and moss-grown, and its three bare walls rise gaunt and grim -to the sky. It is entirely built out of stones with Roman chisel marks, -taken from the great Roman wall, which unfortunately was once regarded -as a handy stone-quarry for anyone to take from. - -The name "Thirlwall" means "Drill-wall," and marks the spot as that at -which the wild Northern tribes first "drilled" or broke through the -wall. The name was, of course, given to the place long before this -castle was built. - -To mount from Thirlwall Castle to the top of the Nine Nicks is an easy -enough task for any vigorous person. It is just a fine healthy scramble. -When at the top, it becomes evident that some sort of fortification once -existed there. In point of fact this was the important Roman station -called "Magna" which stood at about the middle of the Roman Wall. The -wall ran from sea to sea, that is to say, from the mouth of the Tyne to -the Solway. Thus it was nearly eighty miles long, and a very elaborate -structure indeed. - -It consisted of three distinct portions:-- - -1. The main stone wall, with a ditch to the north of it. - -2. An earth-work to the south of this, consisting of either two or -three ramparts about seventy feet apart, with a ditch between. - -8. Stations, Castles and Watch-towers. Sometimes these were to the -north of the wall, sometimes in the middle, sometimes south, according -to the nature of the country. - -The height of the main wall was from sixteen to twenty feet, including -battlements. It was six to nine feet thick. Fancy a powerful military -wall of about eighteen feet high stretching nearly eighty miles right -across England! It hardly seems possible that the Romans could -undertake such a work. The square strong stones were carefully selected -and often brought from quarries at a distance. These stones flanked the -outsides of the wall, and in between was strong concrete which was -poured in while in liquid. - -The second wall was of earth and stones, and, of course, lower than the -first. Then there was a castle every mile, some of which can still be -clearly traced, and a "station," about every four miles, of which -several interesting ruins remain. There was a road eighteen feet wide -between the two walls. - -Those who have the energy to toil on for a full dozen miles of rough -walking, along the wall, eastward from Thirlwall, will be rewarded by -some of the most romantic scenes in Britain. They will see the wall at -its best. They will pass Whinshields, the highest point in the wall, -1230 feet above sea level. The wild Northumbrian lakes will lie at -their feet; if the day is fine, the Solway will be seen glistening, -thirty miles to the west; and on the east the eye follows the Tyne -almost to the sea. The Pennine Ridge bars the view twenty miles to the -south, while on the North the High Cheviot is clear and strong, thirty -miles away. - -Passing Whinshields, it is not far to Borcovicus (often called -Housteads) where lie the remains of a large Roman Station, wonderful -remains, showing the whole outline with startling clearness. This -station covered five acres, and here was quartered a cohort of the -Tungrian infantry, consisting of a thousand brave soldiers, servants of -Imperial Rome. - -But, after all, nothing is so impressive as the remains of the wall -itself. Stand at the top either of Whinshields or of the Nine Nicks, -and try to imagine what it looked like in Roman days. Eastward along -the Tyne valley and westward along the Irthing valley ran this wonderful -work, this powerful girdle of stone. The very spot was chosen with -great judgment, for these valleys gave the Romans a district protected -by the bleak hills, where they could live and where they could keep -cattle and grow grain. But the hilly nature of the ground must have -added to the difficulty of the builders. The wall had to run up steep -hill sides and cling to the edge of cliffs, and precipices; it had to be -carried by bridges over roaring torrents, and when it reached low-lying -ground it had to avoid the treacherous swamps and morasses. And yet, -despite every obstacle, the great wall ran on its direct way, as strong -and persistent as the great people who built it. - -It withstood the shock of war, it was not flung down by soldiers -marching against it. But to the people who wanted to build castles or -houses or farms, or even to mend roads, the wall offered a mass of -material ready to hand, and it suffered not from man's energy so much as -from his laziness. Century after century it was robbed of its stones; -to-day a series of long grass-grown mounds, a few feet high, running -across the meadows, are nearly all that remain of one of the most -wonderful pieces of building that was ever erected in Great Britain. -Even today, in its decay, it is one of the most romantic features of a -highly romantic district. - - - - - *Chapter XLIX* - - *In Wild Northumberland To-day* - - -These tales of the Borders would hardly be complete without a few -concluding words about the great romantic charm which still invests the -Borderline. Let us, for example, make a brief survey of some of the -haunting spots in wild Northumberland. We will pass over such towns as -Warkworth, Alnwick, Alnmouth; beautiful as they are, they have moved -with the times and are too modern to be more than mentioned here. But -in a place like Holy Island we feel the call of the old days, and the -charm that was theirs. This Island was the scene of the first efforts -of Christianity to curb the wild and warlike Northumbrians; St Aidan, -and St Cuthbert, both men of remarkable genius and great influence, -taught there lessons of peace and justice without which every warlike -state would descend into mere savagery. The island is about two miles -square, and at low tide it is easy to walk across the sands to or from -the mainland of Northumberland. The distance is two and a half miles, -and it is necessary to take off shoes and stockings, for the water on -the sands will often be six inches deep. A row of posts marks the way, -and some of them have ladders, reaching up to a barrel on the top, so -that any caught by the tide can find a safe harbour wherein they will -suffer nothing more serious than a long wait! The island is inhabited -by fishing folk, living simple healthy lives. There are fine rocks and -splendid sands; beautiful flowers and lovely shells. The seabirds are -wonderful. The ruins of the old Cathedral and castle are very -interesting, it is a delightful old-world place, out of the rush and -hurry of modern life. - -Retracing our steps to the mainland, and proceeding westward for a dozen -or so miles as the crow flies, we reach the River Till, and the field of -Flodden. Here we are near to the big wild wall of the Cheviot hills, -and to keep on the English side of the border we need to turn due south. -It is then about thirty miles of rough walking through these grandly -rugged hills before we come to the field of Otterburn. - -But we realise in that walk how it was that the district produced and -still produces a hardy race of hunters and sheep-farmers, and why it is -that the towns and farms nestle in the valleys, so that the Borderers, -when they meant to say, "Rouse the neighbourhood," used the phrase, -"Raise the _water_" (meaning, of course, the houses along the -waterside). Further south, still going among splendid shaggy hills, we -reach the North Tyne River, and soon afterwards some highly interesting -Roman remains, including the arches of a fine bridge over the river at -the Roman Station of Cilurnum, near Chollerford. This is on the Roman -Wall, which has already been described under the heading of Thirlwall. -A few miles to the west would bring us to the picturesque but -little-known Northumberland Lakes, where the wild swans nest. If we -continue south and south-west we can follow the beautiful valleys of the -Allan or the South Tyne. This is a district of hills, roads, and -castles; the domain of the fated Lord Derwentwater was near here. For -beauty the whole of this neighbourhood would be hard to beat; yet it is -too little known. - -If we still go south, the scenery grows wilder and wilder as we approach -the huge mountain of Cross Fell. We may cross into south-east Cumberland -and visit the quaint old town of Alston, one of the highest towns in -England. Here were once the royal silver mines, when English coins were -made from Alston silver. Lead is chiefly mined there now, and the mines -are worth a visit. Near Cross Fell also is a rough road called the -"Maiden Way," and an old legend says it was made by women, who carried -the stones in their aprons! The western slope of the Fell is famous for -a specially violent wind called the "Helm wind," which rages there at -certain seasons. It is just as if it were rushing fiercely down the -hill, with a roaring noise and strength enough to overturn a horse and -cart, and to beat the grass and grain till it is black! But though it -does a deal of damage it is very exhilarating, making people feel merry -in spite of themselves. And on Cross Fell slopes can be seen the -beautiful River Tees, which can be followed to its grand waterfalls of -the the Cauldron and the High Force. In the first the water dashes on -to huge rocks, and is thrown back on itself, roaring, foaming, and -fighting; in the second, it tumbles sheer down a dark and noble cliff. -And everywhere on the heights there are splendid views. - -In making any such excursions as the ones here outlined, into the -out-of-the-way parts of Northumberland and the Borders, we find an added -pleasure in the character of the people. The Borderers are still a -grand race; big men, vigorous, honest, courteous, hospitable, free from -all that is mean and small. In some districts you can hear "thou" and -"thee" still used, and meet old men who have never seen a railway. One -dear old farmer, a real picture of a simple honest man, hearing I had -come from London, asked me if the London men had got their hay-crop in -yet! One typical Northumbrian, of great natural intelligence, bearing a -name famous on the Borders, is station-master at a local station that -stands in a wood, and between trains, studies bird and wild-flower till -he has made himself a most interesting naturalist. A stranger who has -lost his way will find these courteous folk ready to walk a mile or two -with him, out of their own way, just to set him right; and he who is -tired and hungry will be invited to step in and eat, and perhaps find -himself introduced to all the family and treated like an honoured guest; -then, not a penny of payment taken, they will set him on his way with a -bunch of the best flowers from the garden! For hearts on the Border are -very human and warm. So that in due time he who knows the Borderers -will delight to hear the unmistakeable Northumbrian or the pronounced -Border accent. And he will say to himself: Splendid is the Border -scenery, and stirring are the Border ballads, but best of all are the -Border men. - - - - - * * * * * * * * - - - - - TOLD THROUGH THE AGES - -Legends of Greece and Rome -Favourite Greek Myths -Stories of Robin Hood and his Merry Outlaws -Stories of King Arthur and his Knights -Stories from Herodotus -Stories from Wagner -Britain Long Ago -Stories from Scottish History -Stories from Greek Tragedy -Stories from Dickens -Stories from the Earthly Paradise -Stories from the neid -The Book of Rustem -Stories from Chaucer -Stories from the Old Testament -Stories from the Odyssey -Stories from the Iliad -Told by the Northmen -Stories from Don Quixote -The Story of Roland -Stories from Thucydides -The Story of Hereward -Stories from the Faerie Queene -Cuchulain: The Hound of Ulster -Stories from Xenophon -Old Greek Nature Stories -Stories from Shakespeare -Stories from Dante -Famous Voyages of the Great Discoverers -The Story of Napoleon -Stories of Pendennis and the Charterhouse -Sir Guy of Warwick -Heroes of the Middle Ages -The Story of the Crusades -The Story of Nelson -Stories from George Eliot -Froissart's Chronicles -Shakespeare's Stories of the English Kings -Heroes of Modern Europe -The Story of King Robert the Bruce -Stories of the Scottish Border -The Story of the French Revolution -The Story of Lord Kitchener -Stories of the Saints -The Story of St Elizabeth of Hungary -In Feudal Times -The High Deeds of Finn -Early English Travel and Discovery -Legends of Ancient Egypt -The Story of the Renaissance -Boyhood Stories of Famous Men -Stories from French History -Stories from English History -Famous English Books and their Stories -Women of the Classics -In the Days of the Guilds -Science through the Ages - -_Other volumes in active preparation_ - - - - - - -*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER -*** - - - - -A Word from Project Gutenberg - - -We will update this book if we find any errors. - -This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/38845 - -Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one -owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and -you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission -and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the -General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and -distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works to protect the -Project Gutenberg(tm) concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a -registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, -unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything -for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may -use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative -works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and -printed and given away - you may do practically _anything_ with public -domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, -especially commercial redistribution. - - - -The Full Project Gutenberg License - - -_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._ - -To protect the Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or -any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project -Gutenberg(tm) License available with this file or online at -http://www.gutenberg.org/license. - - -Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg(tm) -electronic works - - -*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg(tm) -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the -terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all -copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in your possession. If -you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the -terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or -entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. - -*1.B.* "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things -that you can do with most Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works even -without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph -1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement -and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic -works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of -Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works. Nearly all the individual works -in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an -individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are -located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you -from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating -derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project -Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the -Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting free access to electronic -works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg(tm) works in compliance with -the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg(tm) name -associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this -agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full -Project Gutenberg(tm) License when you share it without charge with -others. - - -*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in -a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check -the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement -before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or -creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project -Gutenberg(tm) work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning -the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United -States. - -*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with - almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away - or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License - included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org - -*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is -derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating -that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can -be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying -any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a -work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on -the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs -1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the -Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or -1.E.9. - -*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is -posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and -distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and -any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg(tm) License for all works posted -with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of -this work. - -*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project -Gutenberg(tm) License terms from this work, or any files containing a -part of this work or any other work associated with Project -Gutenberg(tm). - -*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg(tm) License. - -*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any -word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or -distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work in a format other than -"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version -posted on the official Project Gutenberg(tm) web site -(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or -expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a -means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original -"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include -the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg(tm) works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works -provided that - - - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg(tm) works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - - - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg(tm) - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) - works. - - - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - - - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) works. - - -*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael -Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark. Contact the -Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below. - -*1.F.* - -*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection. -Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works, and the -medium on which they may be stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but -not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription -errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a -defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer -codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. - -*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg(tm) trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. -YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, -BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN -PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND -ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR -ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES -EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. - -*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with -your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with -the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a -refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity -providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to -receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy -is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further -opportunities to fix the problem. - -*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER -WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO -WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. -If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the -law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be -interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by -the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any -provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. - -*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in accordance -with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, -promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works, -harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, -that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do -or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg(tm) -work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any -Project Gutenberg(tm) work, and (c) any Defect you cause. - - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg(tm) - - -Project Gutenberg(tm) is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers -including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists -because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from -people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg(tm)'s -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection will remain -freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and -permanent future for Project Gutenberg(tm) and future generations. To -learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and -how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the -Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org . - - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive -Foundation - - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state -of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue -Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is -64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at -http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the -Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the -full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. -S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered -throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 -North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email -business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact -information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page -at http://www.pglaf.org - -For additional contact information: - - Dr. Gregory B. Newby - Chief Executive and Director - gbnewby@pglaf.org - - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation - - -Project Gutenberg(tm) depends upon and cannot survive without wide -spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where -we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state -visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any -statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside -the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways -including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, -please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate - - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic -works. - - -Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg(tm) -concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared -with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project -Gutenberg(tm) eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg(tm) eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless -a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks -in compliance with any particular paper edition. - -Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's eBook -number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII, -compressed (zipped), HTML and others. - -Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over -the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed. -_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving -new filenames and etext numbers. - -Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: - - http://www.gutenberg.org - -This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg(tm), -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. diff --git a/38845-8.zip b/38845-8.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index d80d9c3..0000000 --- a/38845-8.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-h.zip b/38845-h.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index b45954a..0000000 --- a/38845-h.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-h/38845-h.html b/38845-h/38845-h.htm index 3840e9b..8c3c2c8 100644 --- a/38845-h/38845-h.html +++ b/38845-h/38845-h.htm @@ -434,40 +434,10 @@ pre { font-family: monospace; font-size: 0.9em; white-space: pre-w <meta content="EpubMaker 0.3.20a7 by Marcello Perathoner <webmaster@gutenberg.org>" name="generator" /> </head> <body> +<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 38845 ***</div> <div class="document" id="stories-of-the-scottish-border"> <h1 class="center document-title level-1 pfirst title"><span class="x-large">STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER</span></h1> -<!-- this is the default PG-RST stylesheet --> -<!-- figure and image styles for non-image formats --> -<!-- default transition --> -<!-- default attribution --> -<!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- --> -<div class="clearpage"> -</div> -<!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- --> -<div class="align-None container language-en pgheader" id="pg-header" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> -<p class="noindent pfirst"><span>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with -almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or -re-use it under the terms of the </span><a class="reference internal" href="#project-gutenberg-license">Project Gutenberg License</a><span> -included with this eBook or online at -</span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/license">http://www.gutenberg.org/license</a><span>.</span></p> -<p class="noindent pnext"></p> -<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"> -</div> -<div class="align-None container" id="pg-machine-header"> -<p class="noindent pfirst"><span>Title: Stories of the Scottish Border -<br /> -<br />Author: Mr and Mrs William Platt -<br /> -<br />Release Date: July 17, 2013 [EBook #38845] -<br /> -<br />Language: English -<br /> -<br />Character set encoding: UTF-8</span></p> -</div> -<div class="vspace" style="height: 2em"> -</div> -<p class="noindent pfirst" id="pg-start-line"><span>*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK </span><span>STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER</span><span> ***</span></p> <div class="vspace" style="height: 4em"> </div> <p class="noindent pfirst" id="pg-produced-by"><span>Produced by Al Haines.</span></p> @@ -10665,346 +10635,6 @@ Border ballads, but best of all are the Border men.</span></p> <!-- -*- encoding: utf-8 -*- --> <div class="backmatter"> </div> -<p class="pfirst" id="pg-end-line"><span>*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK </span><span>STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER</span><span> ***</span></p> -<div class="cleardoublepage"> -</div> -<div class="language-en level-2 pgfooter section" id="a-word-from-project-gutenberg" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> -<span id="pg-footer"></span><h2 class="level-2 pfirst section-title title"><span>A Word from Project Gutenberg</span></h2> -<p class="pfirst"><span>We will update this book if we find any errors.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>This book can be found under: </span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/38845"><span>http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/38845</span></a></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one -owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and -you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without -permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set -forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to -copying and distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to -protect the Project Gutenberg™ concept and trademark. Project -Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge -for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you do not -charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is -very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as -creation of derivative works, reports, performances and research. -They may be modified and printed and given away – you may do -practically </span><em class="italics">anything</em><span> with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is -subject to the trademark license, especially commercial -redistribution.</span></p> -<div class="level-3 section" id="the-full-project-gutenberg-license"> -<span id="project-gutenberg-license"></span><h3 class="level-3 pfirst section-title title"><span>The Full Project Gutenberg License</span></h3> -<p class="pfirst"><em class="italics">Please read this before you distribute or use this work.</em></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project -Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at -</span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/license">http://www.gutenberg.org/license</a><span>.</span></p> -<div class="level-4 section" id="section-1-general-terms-of-use-redistributing-project-gutenberg-electronic-works"> -<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title"><span>Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works</span></h4> -<p class="pfirst"><strong class="bold">1.A.</strong><span> By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by -the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person -or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.B.</strong><span> “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement -and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic -works. See paragraph 1.E below.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.C.</strong><span> The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the -Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is in the public domain in the United -States and you are located in the United States, we do not claim a -right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting free -access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ works -in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project -Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily comply with -the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the same format -with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when you share it -without charge with others.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.D.</strong><span> The copyright laws of the place where you are located also -govern what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most -countries are in a constant state of change. If you are outside the -United States, check the laws of your country in addition to the terms -of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country outside the United States.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.</strong><span> Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.1.</strong><span> The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work -on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the -phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</span></p> -<blockquote> -<div> -<p class="pfirst"><span>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with -almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or -re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included -with this eBook or online at </span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a></p> -</div> -</blockquote> -<p class="pfirst"><strong class="bold">1.E.2.</strong><span> If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is -derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating -that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work -can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without -paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing -access to a work with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with -or appearing on the work, you must comply either with the requirements -of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of -the work and the Project Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in -paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.3.</strong><span> If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is -posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and -distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and -any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works posted -with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of -this work.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.4.</strong><span> Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project -Gutenberg™ License terms from this work, or any files containing a -part of this work or any other work associated with Project -Gutenberg™.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.5.</strong><span> Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute -this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg™ License.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.6.</strong><span> You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other -than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ web site -(</span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a><span>), you must, at no additional cost, fee or -expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a -means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original -“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include -the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.7.</strong><span> Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.E.8.</strong><span> You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided -that</span></p> -<ul class="open"> -<li><p class="first pfirst"><span>You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from -the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you -already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to -the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to -donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 -days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally -required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments -should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, -“Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation.”</span></p> -</li> -<li><p class="first pfirst"><span>You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies -you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he -does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ -License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all -copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue -all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ -works.</span></p> -</li> -<li><p class="first pfirst"><span>You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of -any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the -electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of -receipt of the work.</span></p> -</li> -<li><p class="first pfirst"><span>You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free -distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.</span></p> -</li> -</ul> -<p class="pfirst"><strong class="bold">1.E.9.</strong><span> If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and -Michael Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact -the Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.</strong></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.1.</strong><span> Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend -considerable effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe -and proofread public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg™ -collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ electronic -works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain -“Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or -corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual -property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a -computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by -your equipment.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.2.</strong><span> LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES – Except for the -“Right of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the -Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the -Project Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a -Project Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.3.</strong><span> LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND – If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.4.</strong><span> Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set -forth in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS,’ WITH -NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.5.</strong><span> Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><strong class="bold">1.F.6.</strong><span> INDEMNITY – You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, -the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance -with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any -Defect you cause.</span></p> -</div> -<div class="level-4 section" id="section-2-information-about-the-mission-of-project-gutenberg"> -<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title"><span>Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™</span></h4> -<p class="pfirst"><span>Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will remain -freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To -learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and -how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the -Foundation web page at </span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.pglaf.org">http://www.pglaf.org</a><span> .</span></p> -</div> -<div class="level-4 section" id="section-3-information-about-the-project-gutenberg-literary-archive-foundation"> -<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title"><span>Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</span></h4> -<p class="pfirst"><span>The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at -</span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf">http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf</a><span> . Contributions to the -Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to -the full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. -S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are -scattered throughout numerous locations. Its business office is -located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) -596-1887, email </span><a class="reference external" href="mailto:business@pglaf.org">business@pglaf.org</a><span>. Email contact links and up to date -contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and -official page at </span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.pglaf.org">http://www.pglaf.org</a></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>For additional contact information:</span></p> -<blockquote> -<div> -<div class="line-block outermost"> -<div class="line"><span>Dr. Gregory B. Newby</span></div> -<div class="line"><span>Chief Executive and Director</span></div> -<div class="line"><a class="reference external" href="mailto:gbnewby@pglaf.org">gbnewby@pglaf.org</a></div> -</div> -</div> -</blockquote> -</div> -<div class="level-4 section" id="section-4-information-about-donations-to-the-project-gutenberg-literary-archive-foundation"> -<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title"><span>Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</span></h4> -<p class="pfirst"><span>Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread -public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing -the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely -distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of -equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to -$5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status -with the IRS.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit </span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate">http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate</a></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: </span><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate">http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate</a></p> -</div> -<div class="level-4 section" id="section-5-general-information-about-project-gutenberg-electronic-works"> -<h4 class="level-4 pfirst section-title title"><span>Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works.</span></h4> -<p class="pfirst"><span>Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg™ -concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared -with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project -Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the -U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's -eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII, -compressed (zipped), HTML and others.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Corrected </span><em class="italics">editions</em><span> of our eBooks replace the old file and take over -the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is -renamed. </span><em class="italics">Versions</em><span> based on separate sources are treated as new -eBooks receiving new filenames and etext numbers.</span></p> -<p class="pnext"><span>Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search -facility:</span></p> -<blockquote> -<div> -<p class="pfirst"><a class="reference external" href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a></p> -</div> -</blockquote> -<p class="pfirst"><span>This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg™, including -how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive -Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe -to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</span></p> -</div> -</div> -</div> -</div> +<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 38845 ***</div> </body> </html> diff --git a/38845-rst.zip b/38845-rst.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 1ef4667..0000000 --- a/38845-rst.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/38845-rst.rst b/38845-rst/38845-rst.rst deleted file mode 100644 index 326387b..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/38845-rst.rst +++ /dev/null @@ -1,10246 +0,0 @@ -.. -*- encoding: utf-8 -*-
-
-.. meta::
- :PG.Id: 38845
- :PG.Title: Stories of the Scottish Border
- :PG.Released: 2013-07-17
- :PG.Rights: Public Domain
- :PG.Producer: Al Haines
- :DC.Creator: Mr and Mrs William Platt
- :MARCREL.ill: \M. Meredith Williams
- :DC.Title: Stories of the Scottish Border
- :DC.Language: en
- :DC.Created: 1910
- :coverpage: images/img-cover.jpg
-
-==============================
-STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER
-==============================
-
-.. clearpage::
-
-.. pgheader::
-
-.. container:: frontispiece
-
- .. vspace:: 2
-
- .. _`The Rookhope Ride.`:
-
- .. figure:: images/img-front.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *The Rookhope Ride*
-
- *The Rookhope Ride*
-
- .. vspace:: 4
-
-.. container:: titlepage center white-space-pre-line
-
- .. class:: x-large
-
- STORIES OF THE
- SCOTTISH BORDER
-
- .. vspace:: 2
-
- .. class:: medium
-
- BY
-
- .. class:: LARGE
-
- Mr and Mrs WILLIAM PLATT
-
- .. vspace:: 3
-
- .. class:: center large
-
- WITH SIXTEEN FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS BY
- M. MEREDITH WILLIAMS
-
- .. vspace:: 3
-
- .. class:: medium
-
- GEORGE G. HARRAP & CO. LTD.
- LONDON BOMBAY SYDNEY
-
- .. vspace:: 4
-
-.. container:: verso center white-space-pre-line
-
- .. class:: small
-
- *First published December 1910*
- *by* GEORGE G. HARRAP & COMPANY
- *39-41 Parker Street, Kingsway, London, W.C.2
- Reprinted: December 1916; March 1919;
- April 1929*
-
- .. vspace:: 3
-
- .. class:: small
-
- *Printed in Great Britain by Turnbull & Spears, Edinburgh*
-
- .. vspace:: 4
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Contents
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: noindent white-space-pre-line
-
-`INTRODUCTION`_
-
-.. class:: noindent white-space-pre-line
-
-I. `THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS`_
-II. `A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER`_
-III. `WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US`_
-
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-CHAP.
-
-.. class:: noindent white-space-pre-line
-
-I. `Bamburgh and its Coast`_
-II. `Athelstan at Vinheath`_
-III. `Monks and Minstrels`_
-IV. `Sir Patrick Spens`_
-V. `Auld Maitland`_
-VI. `The Mystery of the Eildons`_
-VII. `Black Agnes of Dunbar`_
-VIII. `The Young Tamlane`_
-IX. `The Gay Goss-Hawk`_
-X. `The Corbies`_
-XI. `Otterbourne and Chevy Chase`_
-XII. `The Douglas Clan`_
-XIII. `Alnwick Castle and the Percies`_
-XIV. `Hexham and Queen Margaret`_
-XV. `Fair Helen of Kirkconnell`_
-XVI. `Johnie of Breadislee`_
-XVII. `Katharine Janfarie`_
-XVIII. `By Lauder Bridge`_
-XIX. `The Battle of Flodden Field`_
-XX. `After Flodden`_
-XXI. `Graeme and Bewick`_
-XXII. `The Song of the Outlaw Murray`_
-XXIII. `Johnie Armstrong`_
-XXIV. `The Lament of the Border Widow`_
-XXV. `The Raid of the Kers`_
-XXVI. `Merrie Carlisle`_
-XXVII. `Kinmont Willie`_
-XXVIII. `Dick o' the Cow`_
-XXIX. `The Lochmaben Harper`_
-XXX. `The Rookhope Ride`_
-XXXI. `Barthram's Dirge`_
-XXXII. `Queen Mary and the Borders`_
-XXXIII. `The Raid of the Reidswire`_
-XXXIV. `Jock o' the Side`_
-XXXV. `Hobbie Noble`_
-XXXVI. `The Laird o' Logie`_
-XXXVII. `Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead`_
-XXXVIII. `Muckle-Mou'd Meg`_
-XXXIX. `The Dowie Dens of Yarrow`_
-XL. `Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland`_
-XLI. `Gilderoy`_
-XLII. `Archie Armstrong's Oath`_
-XLIII. `Christie's Will`_
-XLIV. `Northumberland at the Time of the Civil War`_
-XLV. `Montrose and Lesly`_
-XLVI. `The Death of Montrose`_
-XLVII. `The Borderers and the Jacobites`_
-XLVIII. `The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall`_
-XLIX. `In Wild Northumberland To-Day`_
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Illustrations
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Rookhope Ride.`_ . . . . . . Frontispiece
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`Egil at Vinheath`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Siege of Maitland Castle`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`Black Agnes`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Twa Corbies`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`Johnie of Breadislee.`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`Flodden Field`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`"Tell Us All—Oh, Tell Us True!"`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Border Widow`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Escape of Kinmont Willie`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`Queen Mary crossing the Solway`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`"A Boon, a Boon, my Noble Liege!"`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`"She Kissed his Cheek, She Kaim'd his Hair"`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`The Storming of Newcastle`_
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent
-
-`"'Tis I, 'Tis thy Winifred!"`_
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. class:: italics
-
- | In liquid murmurs Yarrow sings
- | Her reminiscent tune
- | Of bygone Autumn, bygone Springs,
- | And many a leafy June.
-
- | No more the morning beacons gleam
- | Upon the silent hills;
- | The far back years are years of dream—
- | Now peace the valley fills.
-
- | No more the reivers down the vale
- | On raid and foray ride;
- | No more is heard the widow's wail
- | O'er those who fighting died.
-
- | When morning damns with all its joys
- | Then from the meadows rise
- | A hundred throbbing hearts to voice
- | Their anthems to the skies.
-
- | When noontide sleeps where brackens wave,
- | Ere shadows yet grow long,
- | No sound awakes the echoes save
- | The Yarrow's pensive song.
-
- | And when the eve, with calm delight,
- | Betokens night is nigh,
- | Beneath the first star's tender light
- | Is heard the owlet's cry.
-
- | While Yarrow's liquid cadence swells
- | By meadow, moor, and hill,
- | At morn or noon or eve there dwells
- | A mournful memory still.
-
-.. class:: no-italics
-
- | W. CUTHBERTSON.
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`INTRODUCTION`:
-.. _`THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS`:
-
-.. class:: center x-large bold
-
- Stories of
- The Scottish Border
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Introduction
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- I.—THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The district called the Border is one of the
-most interesting in Great Britain. It consists
-of that part of England that is nearest Scotland,
-and that part of Scotland that is nearest England,
-mainly the counties of Northumberland, Cumberland,
-Berwickshire, Roxburghshire, and Dumfriesshire.
-
-The country is very picturesque and highly romantic.
-It abounds in great rolling, breezy hills, with swift
-streamlets or "burns" running down their sides to
-swell the rushing rivers. No part of our island has more
-beautiful valleys than those of the Border.
-
-This bold, rough district, well adapted to defence, and
-situated also just where the island of Great Britain is
-almost at its narrowest, became, after many a struggle,
-the boundary between England and Scotland. The
-character of the country was suited to the rearing of
-hardy Moorland sheep and cattle; its inhabitants therefore
-were a tough, open-air race of men, strong, strapping
-fellows, fearless riders, always ready for an adventure,
-especially if it meant a fight.
-
-In those days of Border strife there was hardly such a
-thing as international justice, that is to say, the people of
-one nation were not very particular as to what they did
-to people of another nation; therefore these bold, hardy
-Border men, Englishmen and Scot alike, were fond of
-creeping across the boundary to steal the cattle of their
-neighbours. Men devoted to such raids were called
-"Freebooters" or "Mosstroopers," the name "Moss"
-being given in the North Country to boggy tracts that
-lie about the hill-sides.
-
-So it happened that the Border was in a perpetual
-state of petty warfare, conducted, it is true, with a
-certain amount of good-will and a rough approach to
-chivalry, and with the concurrence of the powerful
-Border nobles of both nations, who often played an
-important part therein. At times these raids developed
-into important warlike expeditions, when a fierce noble,
-or even a king, had some reckless game to play. Hence,
-among the ballads which give us so vivid an account
-of Border strife, we find descriptions not only of the
-minor doings of picturesque sheep-stealers, but also
-of pitched battles such as Chevy Chase and Homildon Hill.
-
-The union of England and Scotland in 1603 naturally
-put an end to all the former excuses for raiding, and
-therefore terminated the true Freebooter period. After
-this, despite one or two belated attempts, such as Elliot's
-big raid in 1611, sheep-stealing ceased to be looked upon
-as an honourable calling, and became mere thieving.
-The men who would have raided one another's farms
-in 1602 became friendly neighbours after the Border
-Commission of 1605. There had been little malice in
-their former freebooting. Both sides were of one race;
-and they had the pleasure of finding that their lands
-went up greatly in value in consequence of the Border peace.
-
-To-day, the Border presents scenes of peaceful
-cattle-farming. But Romance is still in the air, hangs about
-the fine, breezy moorlands and beautiful dales, and is
-seen clearly in the faces of the healthy Border-folk. A
-holiday at any Border farm would prove a most
-enjoyable one. There are wonderful Roman remains, for
-here it was that the Romans built their wall; there are
-castles of the Border barons; the views are wide and
-grand; the river-valleys are unmatched for beauty,
-and delightful wild flowers are plentiful, chief among
-which are fox-gloves, the giant wild Canterbury Bells,
-the handsome North Country wild geranium, several
-interesting kinds of wild orchids, and a variety of others
-too numerous to mention. Last, but not least, it is
-often possible in the evenings to see the farmers' sons
-engaged in friendly wrestling in the meadows, when
-we can realise that these great manly fellows are of the
-same vigorous race that kept the Borders lively a few
-centuries ago.
-
-.. vspace:: 3
-
-.. _`A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER`:
-
-.. class:: center medium
-
- II.—A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Before dealing in detail with the stirring stories of
-Border history and legend, to retell which is the purpose
-of this book, we will first inquire—What is it that
-settles exactly the position of the border-line between
-two countries? To find the answer we must think
-what happens when a country is invaded.
-
-If the invaders are stronger than the people whom they
-attack, they go on thrusting back their foes till these
-reach some strong position where, by the aid of mountain,
-river, or marsh, they are able, at any rate for a time,
-to hold their own. Thus, a border-line is always
-determined by some natural feature of the country which
-gives the defenders an advantage.
-
-The attackers will not always operate from the same
-locality, and the defenders will not always fall back in
-the same direction; the two sides, also, will vary in
-power from time to time. For these reasons a border-line,
-especially in the old fighting days, was often altered.
-
-When the Romans invaded Britain they gradually
-conquered the southern part of it, but they could not
-subdue the wilder north; one of their boundary lines
-was drawn from the Solway to the Tyne; then they
-fought their way further north and their next definite
-boundary was a line running from the Forth to the Clyde.
-Along each of these boundaries they built a great wall,
-and to this day parts of these Roman walls remain.
-But it is worth noting that neither of these wall
-border-lines stands upon the present border, one being
-all in England and the other all in Scotland.
-
-When the Romans left Britain, called back to defend
-their own native land from invasion, there followed a
-brief period for which we have no definite record of
-events in this island. This is the period of King Arthur,
-and none can say how much is true in the Arthurian
-legends.
-
-But history begins to become clear again about the
-time that the Angles came in their ships across the
-North Sea, bent on conquest. They landed on all the
-natural harbours of the east coast, driving the Britons
-back and taking the land for themselves. The fact that
-they landed on the East and drove the Britons westward,
-leads us to think that sooner or later a boundary
-would have been formed dividing the island into the east
-side (for the Angles) and the west side (for the Britons).
-
-Now that is exactly what did happen. The border-lines
-were nowhere like the present ones. The northern
-kingdom of the Angles reached to the Forth, where these
-people founded Edinburgh (Edwin's burgh). On the
-west the Britons had sway in Cornwall (Corn-Walles),
-Wales, Cumbria (which stretched from the Mersey to
-the Solway), and Strathclyde (from the Solway to the
-Clyde). North of the Forth was the country of the Picts;
-while the Scots were a race recently come from Ireland,
-and they only owned what we now call Argyleshire, and
-the islands lying near to it. Not one inch of the present
-Border was at that day in the border-line!
-
-Of the various races that lay round about where the
-Border now is, the Northumbrians seemed at first to be
-the strongest. The capital of their kingdom was
-Bamburgh, a place still famous for its castle, though
-to-day it is not important enough to have a railway
-station! But it still looks very picturesque on the wild
-coast, with the Farne Islands, the first seat of
-Northumbrian Christianity, in the near distance.
-
-Ambition had much to do with the downfall of
-Northumbria. The famous King Eadbert would not rest
-content till he had scaled Dumbarton, the capital of
-Strathclyde. This was to his career what the march
-to Moscow was to Napoleon's, for, though Eadbert got
-safely to Dumbarton (756) his army was cut to pieces
-in getting back again. The Northumbrians seem to
-have lost some of their northern lands, for they moved
-their capital further south, to the old Roman city of
-Corbridge which stood on the Tyne just where the
-delightful country town of that name stands to-day.
-
-In 844 a king of the Scots, named Kenneth MacAlpin,
-became (we don't quite know how) king of the Picts also,
-joining two strong races under one ruler, and thus was
-powerful enough to give great trouble to the weakened
-kingdom of Northumbria. He several times led his army
-through Lothian, the district belonging to the Angles
-between the Forth and the Tweed, but was never quite
-able to conquer it. It is important to remember that
-up to that date Lothian had never belonged to Scotland.
-The appearance of the Danes added to the confusion
-of those restless days. For some few years it was
-doubtful whether Scot, Dane, or Angle would get the best of it
-in Northumbria. But at last the genius of Athelstan of
-Wessex revived the power of the Angles over the whole
-of that large part of the island which they had settled,
-right up to the Forth itself. Edinburgh was still English
-in 957, and the border-line was still very far from the
-present one. But there was no longer a king of
-Northumbria; only an earl, who was subject to the will
-of the West-Saxon kings.
-
-This fact of the dominance of the West Saxons, whose
-capital was far to the south at Winchester, must have
-added to the weakness of the Northumbrian border.
-By the year 963 the Scots had conquered Edinburgh,
-and it was now never again to return to English rule.
-Before very long the whole of Lothian had passed under
-Scottish control; but it was not yet held to be part of
-Scotland. Nor must it be thought that this conquest
-of Lothian fixed the border-line in its present position,
-for the king of the Scots was at that time ruler over
-Cumberland, which had never yet been English and was
-all that was left of the old British kingdom of Cumbria.
-
-Frontier wars with varying successes between Scot,
-Angle, and Dane mark the stormy history of this time.
-The power of Cnut held back the Scotch attempts upon
-Nothumberland; but during a lull in the wars the grand-son
-of the Scottish king married the sister of Earl Siward,
-and received as her dowry twelve towns in the valley
-of the Tyne, an astonishingly imprudent arrangement.
-
-At the time of the battle of Hastings, the earldom of
-Northumberland was so far distant from Winchester
-as to be somewhat out of the control of the King of
-England; the power of the Scottish kings threatened it;
-they held twelve towns in Tynedale, and Cumberland
-was a part of Scotland. The Northumbrians refused to
-accept William the Conqueror as their king; and had
-they been able to make good their refusal, they must
-sooner or later have been conquered by the Scots, and
-the border-line between England and Scotland would
-then most probably have been formed by the Tees, the
-mountain boundary of Westmoreland, and Morecambe Bay.
-
-But William was not a king to be played with. He
-reduced Northumberland to subjection and carried his
-army into Scotland as far as the river Tay, where he
-forced the King of Scotland to admit that he, William,
-was his overlord.
-
-Notwithstanding this humiliation, when King William
-returned to Winchester, the Scots several times went
-back to their favourite amusement of raiding unhappy
-Northumberland.
-
-One of these invasions took place in the reign of
-William Rufus (1093), who went north in person. He
-doubtless recognised the fact that owing to the Scots
-possessing Cumberland they were in the strong position
-of being able to attack Northumberland on two sides.
-He took Cumberland by force of arms, and thus for the
-first time it became a part of England (the word
-"Cumberland" means the land of the Cumbrians or
-Welsh, a Saxon form of the Welsh word Cymry).
-
-Rufus rebuilt the strong fortress of Carlisle to defend
-his new border at its weakest corner. For the most part
-this border is excellently protected by the natural
-rampart of the wild Cheviot Hills, and is in every way as
-good a border as could be devised. It runs in a fairly
-straight line from south-west to north-east, across a
-narrow part of the island.
-
-But although this border-line proved to be a
-permanent one, it must not be thought that it remained
-undisputed. The times were rough, and hardy fighting
-folk lived on the Border. They had many grounds for
-quarrel, and took advantage of them all. For one thing,
-the exact boundary of North Cumberland was never
-quite defined till 1552; up to which year there was a
-tract of land between the rivers Esk and Sark, which was
-claimed by both countries, and therefore called the
-"Debateable Land." Then the Scots maintained that
-they were overlords of Northumberland, while the
-English kings cherished the notion that they were
-overlords of the whole island of Britain, and the wild spirits
-on both sides were always ready to fight.
-
-Out of this fighting spirit sprung the stirring history
-of the Border, which forms the theme of the deathless
-Ballads, the stories of which it is now our purpose to
-retell.
-
-.. vspace:: 3
-
-.. _`WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US`:
-
-.. class:: center medium
-
- III.—WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Many a name holds a meaning wrapt up within itself
-like a nut in its shell. For instance, "Edinburgh"
-is a Saxon name—Edwin's burgh—and the word tells
-us that this noble city, though now the capital of
-Scotland, was originally founded by and belonged to
-a Saxon king of Northumbria. The Highlanders, in
-their own Gaelic language, called it Dunedin. This has
-the same signification as Edinburgh, but, like most
-Gaelic names, it is arranged in the reverse order to that
-in which an English name is generally put together.
-"Dun" means burgh, "Edin" is Edwin. This is the
-same Dun that we have in "Dundee," which means
-the burgh on the Tay, and might be translated as
-"Tayburgh." "Dumbarton" means the burgh of the
-Britons, and teaches us another notable lesson, namely,
-how far north in the old times the British influence
-extended. For "British" in this case means
-"Welsh." Nowadays we associate the Welsh with Wales only.
-Formerly there must have been a numerous colony of
-Welsh in Scotland, as the name "Dumbarton" testifies,
-as also many Scottish family names. The great name
-of Wallace itself, for instance, suggests such an origin,
-for "Wallace" is merely a corrupt form of the word
-"Welsh," and proves that the great national hero was
-of Welsh extraction. Then "Cumberland"—Cymry
-land—means the land of the Welsh, or Cymry, as they
-call themselves. The county of Cumberland did not
-really belong to the English till the time of William
-Rufus. The first syllable of "Carlisle" denotes a Celtic
-fortified town, and must be compared with the first
-syllable of "Carnarvon."
-
-The presence of the Roman wall is shown in many
-names in Northumberland, such as "Wallsend,"
-"Walltown," "Wallridge," "Heddon-on-the-Wall,"
-"Wallhouses," and "Thirlwall."
-
-For a very interesting instance of what a name tells
-us we may leave the Border for a moment and consider
-why the northernmost part of Scotland is called
-"Sutherland." It must have been so named by people
-living in the Orkney and Shetland isles, of a different
-race from the Scotch—that is, Norse settlers in those
-islands.
-
-With regard to surnames, how many stop to think
-that "Oliphant" is merely a form of "elephant," and
-was originally an allusion to a big, burly ancestor?
-"Grant," which is the same as "grand," must also have
-been once applied to one who was a giant in size. The
-Frazers somehow got their name from the French word
-for a strawberry, fraise. The odd-looking
-"Scrymgeour" means simply a scrimmager or skirmisher.
-"Turnbull" recalls one who turned the bull at a
-bull-baiting. The well-known "Gladstains" or "Gladstone"
-has nothing to do with "glad," but is from "glede,"
-an old word for the kite, and commemorates some stone
-where these birds frequented. "Buccleuch" is from
-the killing of a buck in a cleugh or ravine.
-
-The Christian names of the Borderers are full of
-life and local colour, and differ much from those of
-Southern England. "Barthram" is the northern form
-of "Bertram," "Nigel" of "Neil," "Jellon" of
-"Julian," "Ringan" of "Ninian." It was the general
-custom to abbreviate Christian names or use them in
-the diminutive form, as is constantly the practice in
-these Border ballads. "Hobbie" stands for "Halbert,"
-a fine old name which must not be confused with
-"Albert." "Dandie" or "Dandrie" is "Andrew,"
-"Eckie" is "Hector," "Lammie" is "Lambert,"
-"Lennie" is "Leonard." "Adam" becomes, in the
-familiar form, "Aicky," "Christian" becomes "Christy,"
-"Gilbert" becomes "Gibby."
-
-Another peculiarity of the ballads is the regular
-recurrence of such phrases as "the Laird's Jock,"
-"the Laird's Wat," "Ringan's Wat," etc. These
-expressions mean, "John the son of the Laird,"
-"Walter the son of the Laird," "Walter the son of
-Ringan or Ninian."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Bamburgh and its Coast`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter I
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Bamburgh and its Coast
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The little town of Bamburgh has two striking
-features—the great castle upon its stern rock,
-and the wild coast-line at its feet where dash
-the storms of the North Sea.
-
-To-day it is not important enough to have a railway
-station of its own; yet once it was the capital of the
-great Saxon kingdom of Northumbria. Its original
-name was Bebbanburgh, so called after Queen Bebba;
-of its Saxon fortress hardly a trace remains, the present
-building being partly the old Norman castle, with repairs
-and additions of a later date. The ancient pile has a
-strength, dignity, and grandeur which accords well with
-its truly noble situation.
-
-The North Saxons in choosing such a spot for their
-capital showed a very evident desire to keep in touch
-with the sea. Over the sea they had come; and over
-the sea would come both friends and enemies. Many a
-meeting of both friend and foe has taken place at
-Bamburgh!
-
-Perhaps the fiercest of the enemies was Ragnar of the
-hairy-breeches, a famous viking who plundered, ravaged,
-and burnt without mercy. These vikings, powerful
-men and fearless sea-rovers, were a standing terror to
-Northumbria. Men with frames and muscles strong as
-iron; at home both on the sea and on the battle-field;
-fair-haired, blue-eyed men, guarded by helmet, breast-plate,
-and shield, armed with heavy weapons, because
-at that date the art of the smith was not equal to making
-them sharp, light, and strong at once. So these mighty
-warriors hewed their way through the field of battle
-with great strokes, and when their foes fled in terror, the
-vikings took back to their ships all the treasure they
-could find, and away they went across the sea again.
-But with all their fierceness they loved poetry (wild
-war-poetry, most of it) and they loved their strong,
-brave women.
-
-Ragnar was a thorough viking. He loved fighting,
-and his handsome wife, and the battle songs he made.
-But the Saxons had no cause to love him, and when his
-ship ran aground near Jarrow, they bound him and cast
-him into a pit of snakes, and watched him slowly die.
-The viking had no fear of death. He sang as he lay
-there, of his life and his deeds—of the great banquets he
-had given to the wolves and the vultures and the fierce
-battles he had won, spreading the terrors of his name
-from the Orkneys to the Mediterranean; of his beautiful
-wife and strong sons, and of how they would avenge
-him; and of how Woden, the lord of all warriors, was
-calling him to his Hall.
-
-Many a battle has been fought on that wild coast since
-Ragnar died; much history has been made thereabouts,
-and many legends have attached themselves to
-Bamburgh. Like most famous places, it had its own special
-dragon, the "Laidly Worm" or loathsome serpent of the
-ancient ballad.
-
- | "For seven miles east, and seven miles west,
- | And seven miles north and south,
- | No blade of grass or corn would grow,
- | So venomous was her mouth!"
- |
-
-And yet, when the gallant knight gave her "kisses
-three," she changed at once into a beautiful lady!
-
-But despite its castle, its battles, and its legends,
-Bamburgh slowly declined in importance. As the
-capital of Northumbria it had been one of the chief towns
-in England. But the gallant Northumbria of the Saxons
-was more open to enemies than any other part of the
-country; Cumbrians were on the west and Scots on the
-north, and this was of all Saxon kingdoms the most
-exposed to the ravages of the Danes. From the capital
-of a kingdom it became the capital of a county
-(Bamburghshire), returning two members to Parliament in the
-reign of Edward I.; but it grew of less and still less
-importance, till at last it was known only to the student
-of history. It shared this fate with Lindisfarne, called
-Holy Island, once the Canterbury of the North, on
-whose rocky shores still stand the ruins of the fine
-Norman cathedral which took the place of the old
-Saxon one. Lindisfarne and Bamburgh—neighbours,
-divided only by a narrow belt of sea—two names that
-conjure up vivid pictures of romantic history. Yet
-suddenly, early in the nineteenth century, the great
-deed of a splendid heroine lent new glory to the wild,
-sea-girt town.
-
-Grace Darling was born at Bamburgh in 1817, in a
-cottage on the south side of the village street, which can
-still be seen to-day. Her father became keeper of the
-lighthouse on the Langstone, a rocky islet five miles
-from the coast, guarding ships from the dangerous
-Farne Islands, a group of iron-bound rocks where
-seabirds dwell. In the early morning of September 7, 1838,
-during the raging of a most terrible storm, she heard
-the crash of a ship dashed upon the rocks, and anguished
-cries; as soon as dawn enabled them to see, the girl and
-her father made out the dark outline of the wreck, and
-the miserable forms of the mariners crouching on rocks
-from which the rising tide would sweep them inevitably
-to death. With superb heroism Grace and her father
-pushed their small boat into the furious waters, and after
-strenuous and dauntless efforts, always at the peril of
-their own lives, they saved the whole ship's company,
-nine souls in all. So fierce was the storm that it was
-three days before a boat dared take them from the
-Langstone to the mainland.
-
-The roar of approbation which greeted her from the
-whole country found her as modest as she was brave.
-But for all her courage, this noble girl was not strong.
-She died four years later, and lies buried at Bamburgh,
-within sound of the sea. And the Langstone is known
-to-day as "Grace Darling's Island," and the tomb of the
-brave girl rouses sweeter memories than the frowning
-fortress of Bamburgh.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Athelstan at Vinheath`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter II
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Athelstan at Vinheath
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Famous among the old Norse sea-rovers was
-Egil, son of Skallagrim. In the course of his
-many voyages, he visited all the lands between
-the White Sea and the Bay of Biscay, and when at last
-he settled down in his Iceland home, where he lived on
-till well past the age of eighty, he loved to gather his
-children and grandchildren around him by the fireside
-during the long Icelandic winter, and to tell the story
-of his adventures. He was a true Norseman, fond of the
-sea and the fight, fond of his wife and children, fond of
-song, at which he was highly skilled. His songs and his
-stories of adventure were listened to with eagerness, and
-they were repeated after him, and were at last written
-down, probably between one hundred and fifty and two
-hundred years after his death. Books were scarce in
-those days, and stories were treasured and faithfully
-re-told. So this story of Egil was probably written out
-very much in the simple, vigorous style in which the old
-warrior would have told it to his grandchildren, as they
-listened to him with wide-open, wondering eyes. And
-as the old man had taken part in an early battle between
-Saxon-English and Scots, upon the Border, we have here
-a fine picture of how fights were fought in the reign of
-King Athelstan.
-
-Egil was speaking to Icelandic children who knew
-little about England, so he began by telling how in the
-days when Harold Fairhair was king of Norway, Alfred
-the Great was the first supreme king over all England.
-When Alfred died he was succeeded by his son Edward,
-who was followed by Athelstan the Victorious. In
-Egil's day Athelstan was young and had but just been
-made king, and many chieftains, who had kept quiet
-before, now thought that the time had come when they
-could do as they pleased again. But Athelstan meant
-to show them that he too could rule England strongly
-and wisely.
-
-These were the days of brute force, and the king had
-first to get an army together. Besides his own English
-folk, many roving Norsemen came to take his pay, and
-among the number were Egil and his elder brother
-Thorolf, with their men. They saw the king himself,
-who received them well. Athelstan was a good Christian,
-known as the Faithful, and he desired that Thorolf and
-Egil should submit to be marked with the Cross, that they
-might take their place by his Christian soldiers without
-quarrel. This they agreed to, and the king gave them
-command over three hundred men. Now Olaf the Red
-was king in Scotland. His father was a Scot, but his
-mother was a Dane of the family of Ragnar
-with-the-hairy-breeches, that savage old viking.
-Northumberland, which in those days extended to the Humber, and
-included York as its chief city, was half-full of Danes,
-and King Olaf wished to claim it for his own, and add
-it to Scotland.
-
-Athelstan had set Earl Alfgeir and Earl Gudrek to rule
-Northumberland and defend it from the Scots. But
-Olaf of Scotland came south with his mighty host;
-there was a fierce battle; Earl Gudrek was slain and Earl
-Alfgeir fled. When Athelstan heard of the triumph of
-Olaf, he began at once to march northward with all
-the men he could get together; but he was yet young,
-and some of the treacherous earls, hearing that Olaf
-had so far been victor, deserted King Athelstan. Chief
-among these traitors were Earl Hring and Earl Adils, who
-should have been in the very front of the English army,
-but who basely went over to the Scots. Thus Olaf's
-host became exceeding great, greater by far than the
-English army.
-
-Then Athelstan called together his captains and his
-counsellors; Egil was there, and heard all the grave
-talk as to what should be done. At last a plan
-was made that all thought good, and this is what
-followed.
-
-First, messengers were sent to King Olaf, saying that
-King Athelstan would meet him in fair fight at Vinheath
-by Vinwood, in Northumberland, where he would mark
-out the field of battle with rods of hazel. He who won
-the battle should be king over all England. The armies
-should meet a week hence, and whichever was first
-on the ground should wait a week for the other. King
-Olaf should bide quiet, and not harry the land till the
-battle was ended. North of the heath was a town;
-there King Olaf stayed, for there he could best get
-provisions for his army. But some of his men he sent
-to the heath, to view it.
-
-The hazel-poles were already set up on the large level
-plain. A river was on one side, and a wood was on the
-other. And where river and wood were nearest to one
-another, there King Athelstan's tents were pitched.
-
-Many tents there were, but the front line of tents
-stood high, so that the Scots could not see how many
-were behind. Every third tent was empty, but many
-men were sleeping on the grass in the open, so that the
-Scots might think that the English had a large army
-there. Every day more English troops came in, and
-when the time was come that was fixed for the battle,
-English envoys went to the King of the Scots asking if
-there need be the great fight and bloodshed that
-threatened; if Olaf would go peaceably home, Athelstan
-would give him a shilling of silver for every plough that
-ploughed in England. The Scots took counsel together
-and said they must have more than this. Then the
-messengers begged a three days' truce to consider this.
-On the third day they came again, saying that King
-Athelstan would give what he offered before and also to
-the Scottish army a silver shilling for every freeman
-soldier, a silver mark for every lesser officer, a gold
-mark for every captain, and five gold marks for every
-earl. But the Scots asked not only for this, but also
-for Northumberland to be yielded to them. Then the
-English messengers answered that Scottish messengers
-must ride back with them, to take the answer from
-Athelstan himself.
-
-Now the truth is this: that the Scottish king had
-taken Athelstan by such surprise that he needed time
-to get his men together; all these messages were but a
-trick to gain time till the king should come up himself
-with all the men he could gather. When, therefore, the
-messengers rode up to King Athelstan, he had but just
-arrived on the scene of battle. And when he heard the
-message he said: "Tell King Olaf this, that I will give
-him leave to return to Scotland safely if only he give
-back all he has unjustly taken from this land, and if he
-own himself my under-king, holding Scotland for me and
-at my behest."
-
-This proud answer made the Scottish messengers at
-once see what had been going on. So they hastened
-back to their king to tell him how they had been received
-and what the meaning of it was.
-
-When the Scots found that the English had thus
-outwitted them, they took counsel together in some anger.
-Earl Adils, he who had deserted the English, said that he
-and his brother, Earl Hring, would that very night make
-a surprise attack; if it succeeded, well and good; if
-not, then they could easily withdraw, and the main
-battle could begin in the morning. This the King of
-Scots held to be good advice.
-
-So the two traitor earls and their men moved
-southward under cover of the darkness. But Thorolf the
-Norseman was used to the ways of war, and his sentries
-were alert and blew a great war-blast on their horns.
-And thus the fight began.
-
-Thorolf was armed with a massy halberd that stood
-taller than a man; broad was its blade and thick its
-socket, and it ended in a four-edged spike. He had a
-strong sword by his side and a big, heavy shield on his
-left arm; he had a helmet but no shirt of mail. His
-brother Egil was armed in much the same way.
-The Norsemen's standard was borne by Thorfid the
-strong.
-
-Next to the Norsemen, in the first rank also, was the
-division led by Earl Alfgeir, he who had once before fled
-from the Scots. King Athelstan gave him this chance
-to redeem himself. Now when the first onslaught of the
-Scots took place, Earl Adils came against Earl Alfgeir,
-while Earl Hring came against the Norsemen.
-
-And now the battle began. The two traitor earls
-urged on their men, who charged with spirit. The fight
-was fierce, and soon Alfgeir gave ground; this made
-the foe press on the fiercer, and before long Alfgeir was
-in full flight. He avoided the town where Athelstan
-was, and fled night and day to the coast, where he took
-ship out of the country he had served so ill.
-
-Adils did not dare to pursue him far, for fear of being
-himself cut off from his friends. So he returned to help
-his brother Hring against the Norsemen. Thorolf, like
-a true general, saw the danger of this, and at once told
-Egil to turn aside with half their force to prevent Adils
-from joining his brother. The Norsemen fought a grand
-fight, but were badly outnumbered, and the battle
-seemed to be going against them. Then Thorolf became
-furious. Disdainful of life, he cast his shield behind his
-back, grasped his great halberd with both hands, and
-sprang forward, hacking down all who opposed him.
-Straight for Hring's standard he went, nothing could stop
-him. He slew the standard-bearer, cut through the
-standard-pole, and with a mighty stroke thrust his
-halberd right through the body of Hring, the traitor
-earl, and lifted him up in the air that all might see that
-he was slain. Then Adils and the rest of the men fled
-to the wood, and thus ended the first part of the fight.
-More was to come on the morrow.
-
-At dawn next day King Athelstan came forward
-with his main army. He had heard of the great deeds of
-the brothers Thorolf and Egil; most courteously he
-thanked them, and said that he would always reckon
-them as his friends. Then with his captains he made
-his plans for the battle. Egil he put in command of the
-front ranks of his men, and Thorolf he set aside to face
-those of the Scots who might charge the English in loose
-array.
-
-.. _`Egil at Vinheath`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-028.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: Egil at Vinheath
-
- Egil at Vinheath
-
-"For this is the way of the Scots," he said; "they
-dash to and fro, rush forward and hither and thither,
-and are dangerous except to a commander who is both
-wary and bold."
-
-Egil said, "I would rather that Thorolf and I were
-near together"; but Thorolf answered, "As the king
-commands, so will we do."
-
-The battle began, and soon waged furiously. Thorolf
-and his men pressed forward along the woodside, hoping
-to take the enemy on the flank. Now, unknown to him,
-Adils and his followers were hiding among the trees,
-and of a sudden Adils sprang out and smote him down.
-Thorfid, too, the brave standard-bearer, was pressed
-back, but rallied the men, who fought desperately.
-
-The Scots had raised a great shout at the fall of
-Thorolf, and this was heard by Egil, who, when he saw
-the standard forced back, feared that his brother was
-dead, for Thorolf had never drawn back from any foe.
-So with a fierce cry Egil hacked his way through to that
-part of the field, and when he learnt the truth from
-his men, he never rested till he had slain Adils with
-his own hand.
-
-The followers of Adils then fled, and Egil and the
-Norsemen hewed their way through the flank of the Scottish
-force towards the place where King Olaf's standard
-was. Noting this, King Athelstan, that wary general,
-caused his own standard to be set forward and all his
-army to attack at once. Fierce and furious was the
-fight, and great was the slaughter. King Olaf was slain,
-with great numbers of his men, and the rest fled in
-confusion. The English victory was complete.
-
-As soon as Athelstan saw that victory was his, he left
-the pursuit to his captains and hastened to the town to
-make his arrangements. Egil pursued far and fiercely,
-and when at last he came back to the battlefield
-his first thought was for his dead brother. Worn out
-though he was, he would take no rest until he had buried
-the warrior with full honours, with his arms and his
-raiment; and before the sad farewell was said Egil
-clasped a gold bracelet on both of Thorolf's wrists to
-show his deep love. Then they buried the hero deep
-and put a high cairn of stones over him.
-
-Then one last tribute Egil paid to his brother, the
-greatest of them all. Among these old Norse warriors
-there existed a great love of song; the great fighters
-strove also to be great song-makers, and Egil was famous
-above most for this power. The Norsemen's poems had
-not rhymes like ours; they had short vigorous lines, and
-in each pair of lines three of the important words had to
-begin with the same letter. Wild strong chants they were.
-This is the song that Egil sang at the burial of his
-brother, Thorolf Skallagrimsson:—
-
- | "The halberd of the hero
- | Hewed down the foe before him;
- | Then in the brunt of battle
- | Was spilt brave Thorolf's blood.
- | The grass is green on Vinheath
- | Where sleeps my great-souled brother;
- | But death, in doubled sorrow,
- | Our doleful hearts must bear."
- |
-
-When Egil got to the town he found the king and his
-army making merry over their victory at a huge feast.
-The courteous king saw Egil and bade him come and sit
-near to him. The king watched the burly Norseman,
-who was tall, with broad shoulders, a powerful head and
-mighty strength; but now his head was bent forward,
-and he kept his sword across his knees, and now and
-again half drew it and then clashed it back into its
-scabbard like a man who fights with heavy thoughts.
-He ate little and drank less. Then King Athelstan,
-watchful and courteous, took a gold ring from his arm,
-and placing it on his sword-point, handed it thus to
-where Egil sat. At this mark of honour the Norseman's
-face grew brighter. Then the king sent round his own
-horn for Egil to drink; so he drank to the king and sang
-a verse of wild poetry in his praise, made on the spur
-of the moment; and with this the king was much pleased.
-
-Then the king sent also for two chests full of silver,
-and said to Egil:—
-
-"These chests carry to thy father; it is fitting that
-King Athelstan make him some gift for the loss of his
-son. And do thou stay with me long, and I will give
-thee honour and dignity."
-
-Thus the great king in kindness and courtesy did what
-he could to soothe the grief of the warrior; and Egil
-stayed the winter with Athelstan, but when the summer
-came he wished to go back to his own people. But he
-had much respect for King Athelstan, and ere he bade
-him farewell he made a long poem to his glory.
-
-
-*From the Song of Egil Skallagrimsson, to the Glory of
-King Athelstan.*
-
- | "See how the kingly warrior,
- | Land-warder, battle-wakener,
- | Smites even to the earth
- | The earls who rise against him!
- | Glad is now Northumberland,
- | This the king she needed,
- | Wise and bold of race and blood,
- | Dauntless in the battle-field!"
- |
-
-Many were the verses of this stirring song; and after
-each came the refrain:—
-
- | "Scottish hills where reindeer roam
- | Own the rule of Athelstan!"
- |
-
-The king gave Egil two heavy gold rings and a
-handsome cloak that he himself had worn; then the Norseman
-sailed away, for always near to his heart was the
-welfare of his dead brother's wife and child. Yea, for the
-rest of his long life he loved this child even as he loved
-his own.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Monks and Minstrels`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter III
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Monks and Minstrels
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The wild Borderland was the scene of the labours
-of many ol the first great Christian leaders.
-Where the arts of war were so much practised,
-it was needful that the arts of peace should flourish also.
-Great was the influence, even in the wildest times, of
-these able, serious, devoted leaders of early religious
-thought, men like Ninian and Kentigern.
-
-Christianity first came into Britain in Roman times,
-and some of the Britons were converted. After the
-Romans quitted the country, King Arthur was the
-leader of the Christian Britons, and he is said to have
-fought with the pagan Britons, the pagan Picts, the
-pagan Saxons, who had begun their invasions, and the
-disorderly soldiers of various races, probably pagans
-whom the Romans left behind along the wall.
-
-In due time the fight developed into a struggle between
-Christian Britons and pagan Saxons, and then the Saxons
-themselves began to accept the new religion. Oswald,
-a Northumbrian prince, had in a time of peril hidden in
-the island of Iona, to where the great Irishman Columba
-had come from Ireland as a missionary. When Oswald
-returned to power he summoned to his kingdom Aidan,
-a high-minded Christian teacher, whom he made first
-bishop of Lindisfarne (Holy Island). Aidan being a
-Celt, had to do his work through interpreters, but he
-did it well, and laid the foundations of Christianity
-and learning in Northumbria. Cuthbert was another
-famous missionary. Rising from shepherd-boy to bishop,
-he impressed both king and peasant by the dignified
-simplicity and sincerity of his life. His place of
-meditation was a sea-girt rock by Lindisfarne, lonely and
-picturesque, and still called after his name. A curious
-fossil, with the mark of a cross, is plentiful there, and
-goes by the name of St Cuthbert's beads. Other famous
-teachers were Wilfrid of York, who founded the churches
-of Hexham and Ripon; Boisil, who founded Melrose,
-and Biscop, who founded Jarrow.
-
-But perhaps the most celebrated of all was Bede,
-the "Venerable Bede," who lived at Jarrow and wrote
-forty-five learned books on all subjects, including music,
-astronomy, and medicine. All the scholars in England
-flocked to hear his teachings, and he was justly called
-"the father of English learning." He it was who first
-introduced into England the art of making glass.
-
-His last work was to translate the Gospel of St John
-into Northumbrian English. This was in the year 735.
-Being too ill to hold a pen, he dictated to his favourite
-pupil. "Write quickly," he said, for he felt that he was
-dying. "It is finished," answered the lad, and the old
-man's heart was satisfied. In a faint, brave voice he
-chanted the *Gloria*, and so died singing.
-
-In those days there was, of course, no such thing as
-printing. Every manuscript was written and rewritten,
-carefully, by hand, and treasured as a sacred possession
-in the seats of learning. So proud were they of their
-manuscripts that they beautified them with illustrations
-in colour. Many of these manuscripts have, of course,
-been destroyed; for instance, the Danes in 875 burnt
-the priceless library of Bishop Acca at Hexham, destroying
-in one day the treasured collection of a lifetime;
-but many remain to show the love of learning which
-existed even then. Bishop Edfrid, who lived in the little
-rocky island of Lindisfarne, made a copy of the Gospels,
-which is looked upon with wonder even to-day. Strings
-of beautiful birds and quaint animals are drawn upon
-his pages; evangelists with mantles of purple and tunics
-of blue, pink, or green. With the writing clear and
-beautiful, the decorations showing the greatest care and
-devotion, this manuscript of one thousand two hundred
-years ago has been the delight of thousands, and comes
-down to us to witness to the loving care of the scholars
-of old in the days before printing was known.
-
-Great as was their love of beautiful manuscripts, they
-had an equally noble passion for grand buildings. A
-superb monument of simple dignity and religious
-grandeur is the Norman Cathedral at Durham, commenced
-by Bishop Carilef in 1093, and finished by Bishop
-Flambard in 1128. Occupying a wonderful position at
-the top of a wooded hill, around which flows the
-beautiful river Wear, Durham Cathedral is in itself one
-of the noblest buildings in the world. While the Church
-in those troublous times kept thus a storehouse of
-learning for serious scholars, other methods kept the
-people informed of the more stirring events of their day.
-
-In the old days, when no newspapers existed to tell
-people the news, when books were scarce and history
-was not taught to every lad as a part of his training, the
-ballad-writer and the wandering minstrel played a very
-important part. Ballads, sometimes really fine pieces of
-poetry, sometimes a mere halting troop of lame lines,
-were made upon every occasion of local or general
-interest. They were sung to simple and often beautiful
-tunes or chants. The best of the minstrels were welcome
-to the halls of the nobles, and even to the king himself;
-the poorest of them sang on the village green. The
-ballads were learnt and repeated by the folk of the
-country-side; some were in later times printed on loose
-sheets, but at first they were handed on from mouth to
-mouth. Alterations and errors often crept in; mistakes
-due to a sameness of sound. For instance, in the old
-ballad of *Mary Ambree*, a soldier is referred to as "Sir
-John Major," probably meaning Sergeant-major. In
-one of the versions of the battle of Chevy Chase, Henry
-Percy was said to have been killed there, whereas he
-really lived on to be slain at Shrewsbury. But, despite
-such occasional blunders, the ballads on the whole throw
-a vivid light on the manners and customs of the old days,
-as well as being usually stirring and sometimes strikingly
-noble and pathetic pieces of poetry. They deal as a rule
-rather with the side currents than with the main stream
-of history; but they express themselves with such
-homely force and directness that they bring home to us
-with wonderful clearness the character of the vigorous
-manly men with whose doings they are chiefly concerned.
-
-During the last one hundred and fifty years many able
-men have laboured to collect old ballads, writing them
-down from the mouths of the country-folk and printing
-them in books with notes of explanation. One of the
-earliest thus to collect ballads seriously was Bishop
-Percy; the best known is Sir Walter Scott, of whose
-interest in the subject Lockhart, his biographer, writes
-very pleasantly.
-
-Prefaced to many of the stirring tales in this present
-book are lines from the old Border ballads from which
-they are taken. It is to be hoped that readers will be
-tempted sooner or later to read the rest of these fine
-ballads for themselves.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Sir Patrick Spens`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter IV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Sir Patrick Spens
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "The king sits in Dunfermline town
- | Drinking the blood-red wine;
- | 'O where shall I get a well-skilled skipper
- | To sail this new ship of mine?'"
- |
-
-Almost every collection of Scottish songs
-contains this picturesque old ballad, which refers
-to a very remote time in Scottish history,
-probably the end of the thirteenth century. King
-Alexander III. of Scotland died in 1285; he had the
-bitter grief of seeing all his children die before him. His
-daughter Margaret had been married to Eric, King of
-Norway, and she left a daughter also called Margaret,
-and known as the "Maid of Norway." This maid was
-now heiress to the Scottish throne, and it is natural
-to suppose that the lonely king should wish her to
-return to Scotland, and should send a richly appointed
-ship to fetch her back. And although there is no
-strictly historical record of such an expedition, the truth
-of the ballad is made more probable by the fact that it
-opens in the fine old town of Dunfermline.
-
-Dunfermline was a favourite residence of Alexander,
-who was killed in its neighbourhood by a fall from his
-horse, and was buried in the abbey there, the ruins of
-which beautiful structure still remain.
-
-In this ballad the king is feasting at Dunfermline
-town, and calls for a skilful mariner to sail his new ship.
-An old knight at the king's right hand answers that the
-best sailor who ever sailed the sea is Sir Patrick Spens.
-So the king writes a letter, sealing it with his own hand,
-and sends it to Sir Patrick, commanding him to sail
-away to Norway over the white sea-foam and bring
-home the maid.
-
-Now every good sailor dreaded the rough Northern
-seas in winter, so though the brave Sir Patrick laughed
-aloud when he began to read, he wept blinding tears
-before he had ended. "Who has done this deed?"
-he cried; "who has told the king of me and urged him
-to send us out at this time of the year to sail on the
-stormy sea? Yet, wind, wet, hail, or sleet, we must
-set out, for 'tis we who must fetch home the maid."
-
-So they set sail on a Monday morning, and reached
-Norway on a Wednesday. History tells us that Eric
-of Norway was very unwilling to part with his daughter.
-This probably accounts for the fact that the old ballad
-tells us that the Scotsmen had only been there a
-fortnight when the lords of Norway began to say that Sir
-Patrick and his men were spending the gold of their
-king and queen. "Ye lie," cried Sir Patrick, "loudly
-I hear ye lie, for I brought with me over the sea enough
-red gold and white money to supply the wants of my
-men. Make ready, make ready, my merry men; we
-will sail at daybreak." "Alack," quoth the men, "a
-deadly storm is brewing. Yesterday evening the new
-moon was seen carrying the old moon in her arms; we
-shall certainly come to harm if we go to sea."
-
-Barely had they sailed three leagues when the sky
-darkened, the wind blew loudly, and the sea grew
-boisterous. Soon they were in the midst of a terrible
-storm. The anger of the sea was far more dreadful
-than the anger of the lords of Norway. The anchors
-broke away, the topmasts snapped, and the waves came
-over the broken ship, tearing her sides asunder. "O
-where shall I get a good sailor to take the helm while
-I climb the tall topmast to see if I can espy land?" "That
-I fear ye never will," cried a sailor as he took
-the helm, and scarcely had Sir Patrick gone a step when
-a plank started in the ship's side and the water came
-pouring in.
-
-"Fetch a web of silken cloth, and fetch a web of
-twine," cried Sir Patrick, "and cast them down to our
-ship's side!" For it was the custom in those days, when
-a leak could not be reached from inside the vessel,
-to cast down some closely woven stuff in the hope that
-the suction of the water would drag it across the leak
-and stop thus the fatal inrush of water. Alas! all their
-efforts failed. Then the ballad-writer says somewhat
-grimly of the dandies among the Scottish lords that
-whereas at first they grumbled to see the water spoil their
-fine cork-heeled shoes, when the storm had done its
-fatal work the sea was "above their hats"!
-
- | "And many was the feather bed
- | That fluttered on the foam;
- | And many was the gude lord's son
- | That never mair came home!
-
- | The ladyes wrang their fingers white;
- | The maidens tore their hair,
- | A' for the sake of their true loves;
- | For them they'll see nae mair.
-
- | O lang, lang may the ladyes sit,
- | Wi' their fans into their hand,
- | Before they see Sir Patrick Spens
- | Come sailing to the strand!
-
- | And lang, lang may the maidens sit,
- | With their goud kaims[#] in their hair,
- | A' waiting for their ain dear loves!
- | For them they'll see nae mair.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Golden combs.
-
-..
-
- | O forty miles off Aberdeen,
- | 'Tis fifty fathoms deep,
- | And there lies gude Sir Patrick Spens,
- | Wi' the Scots lords at his feet."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Auld Maitland`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter V
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Auld Maitland
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "'Wha holds this house?' young Edward cried,
- | 'Or wha gives it o'er to me?'
- | ''Tis I will keep my good old house,
- | While my house will keep me!'"
- |
-
-The story of Auld Maitland is said to be taken
-from a very old ballad, and known chiefly to
-the people who lived in the neighbourhood of
-Ettrick Forest. The old folks there would while away
-the long winter evenings by singing of the deeds of their
-ancestors, and the ballad of *Auld Maitland*, as thus
-chanted, was written down by the mother of James Hogg,
-the "Ettrick Shepherd."
-
-The castle of Thirlestane stood on the river Leader,
-and still, in its restored form, deserves its name of "the
-darksome house." It may have often withstood the
-English during the Baliol wars, and hatred of the
-English and of Edward I. is expressed with extreme
-virulence throughout the poem. Here is the story:—
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-There lived in the south country a king named
-Edward, who wore the crown unworthily for fifty years.
-This king had a nephew, strong in blood and bone,
-who bore the same hateful name. One day the young
-man came before the king, and kneeling low, he said,
-"A boon, a boon I crave of thee, my good uncle. Oft
-have I wished to take part in our long wars in fair
-Scotland. Grant me fifteen hundred chosen strong men
-to ride there with me."
-
-"Certainly thou shalt have them, and more, and I
-myself, though old and grey, will see thy host arrayed
-for battle."
-
-King Edward sent hither and thither, and assembled
-fifteen hundred men on Tyne side, and three times as many
-at North Berwick, all bound for battle. They marched
-up the banks of Tweed, burning the Merse and Teviotdale,
-and up and down the Lammermoor Hills, until they came
-to the darksome house called, by some, "Leader-Town."
-
-"Who holds this house?" cried young Edward,
-"or who gives it over to me?" He was answered, as
-proudly, by a grey-haired knight: "I hold my house
-of Scotland's king, who pays me in meat and fee, and
-I will hold it as long as it will stand together."
-
-Thereupon the English brought up their sows[#] to
-the wall with many a heavy sound, but the soldiers on
-the wall cast down blazing pitch and tar barrels, to
-consume the formidable machine. They also threw
-down stones and beams and darts from their springalds,[#]
-and slew many of the English.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] A military engine framed of wood, covered with hides and mounted
-on wheels, so that, being rolled forward to the foot of the wall, it
-served as a shed to defend the miners underneath it and their
-battering-rams from the stones and arrows of the soldiers above.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Large crossbows worked by machinery.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-Fifteen days they besieged the castle of Auld Maitland,
-but left him at the end of that time unhurt within his
-stone stronghold.
-
-.. _`The Siege of Maitland Castle`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-042.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *The Siege of Maitland Castle*
-
- *The Siege of Maitland Castle*
-
-They loaded fifteen ships with as much spoil as they
-could carry away from the district around, and claimed
-that now they had conquered Scotland with buckler, bow,
-and brand. So they sailed away to France to meet the old
-King Edward, who was burning every castle, tower, and
-town that he met with. They came at last to the town
-of Billop-Grace, where Auld Maitland's three sons were
-at school.
-
-Edward had quartered the arms of Scotland with
-his own. "See'st thou what I see?" said the eldest
-son to the youngest; "if that be true that yonder
-standard says, then are we all three fatherless, and
-Scotland conquered up and down. Never will we bow
-to the conquerer. Let us go, my two brothers, and
-try our chance in an adventure?" Thereupon they
-saddled two black horses and a grey, and rode before
-day-dawn to King Edward's army. Arrived there,
-they hovered round, and Maitland begged to be allowed
-to carry the king's standard, the Golden Dragon.
-
-"Where wast thou born and bred, and in what
-country?" demanded the knight who bore the banner.
-"I was born in the north of England," answered
-Maitland; "my father was a knight and my mother a lady,
-and I myself am a squire of high renown, and may well
-carry the banner of a king." "Never had the son of an
-Englishmen such an eye or brow," answered the knight;
-"thou art more like Auld Maitland than any man I
-have ever seen; yet God grant that such a gloomy
-brow I never see again; he slew and wounded many
-of our men."
-
-At the mention of his father's name Maitland's anger
-burst out, and lifting up a gilded dagger that hung low
-by his knee, he struck fiercely at the standard-bearer,
-and, catching hold of the corner of the standard, rode
-swiftly away with it, crying to his brothers, "Is it not
-time to flee?" "Ay, by my sooth," they both shouted,
-"we will bear you company." So they rode off at hot
-speed, the pursuers following. The youngest Maitland,
-turning round in the path, drew his brand and killed
-fifteen of the foremost, and the rest fell back. Then he
-dug his spurs into the sides of his faithful grey, until
-both the sides ran blood. "Thou must carry me away,
-or my life lies in pledge," he cried.
-
-About daybreak the brothers arrived at their uncle's
-castle, who, seeing the three Scottish lads with pursuers
-riding hard at their heels, ordered the portcullis to be
-drawn up and the drawbridge let down, for that they
-should lodge with him that night in spite of all England.
-
-When the three came inside the gate, they leapt down
-from their horses, and taking three long spears in their
-hands, they fought till it was full daylight, killing and
-wounding many of the Englishmen round the drawbridge.
-Some of the dead were carted away in waggons,
-and stones were heaped upon the rest as they lay in
-the gutter.
-
-King Edward proclaimed at his pavilion door that
-three lads of France, disguised, and with false words,
-had come and stolen away the standard, and had slain
-his men in their lawful attempt to regain it.
-
-"It ill befits a crowned king to lie," said the youngest
-Maitland, "and he shall be reproved for it before I
-taste meat or drink."
-
-Straightway he went before King Edward, and,
-kneeling low, begged leave to speak a word with him.
-"Man, thou shalt have leave to speak, even though
-thou shouldst speak all day," answered the king.
-
-"Ye said," spoke the youngest Maitland, "that three
-young lads of France had stolen away the standard with
-a false tale, and slain many men. But we are not lads of
-France, and never have pretended to be; we are three
-lads of fair Scotland, and the sons of Auld Maitland, nor
-are there men in all your host dare fight us three to three."
-
-"Now, by my sooth," said the young Edward, who
-stood by, "Ye shall be well fitted, for Percy shall fight
-with the eldest, and Egbert Lunn with thee, and William
-of Lancaster with the other, and the surviving brother
-shall fight with me. Remember, Percy, how oft the
-Scot has cowered before thee; I will give thee a rig of
-land for every drop of Maitland blood."
-
-So they set to, and the eldest Maitland clanked
-Percy over the head and wounded him so deeply that
-the best blood of his body ran down his hair. "I have
-slain one," shouted Maitland to his brothers; "slay
-ye the other two, and that will be good company, and
-if the two shall slay ye both, ye shall get no help from
-me."[#]
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] According to the laws of chivalry,
-having slain his own man, he
-could, if he pleased, come to the assistance of the others.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-But Egbert Lunn was like a baited bear and had
-seen many battles, and when Maitland saw that his
-youngest brother was having the worst of it, he could
-not restrain himself longer, and shouting, "I am no
-king; my word shall not stand," he struck Egbert
-over the head and slew him. "Now I have slain two;
-slay ye one for good company," he cried; "neither
-shall ye get any help from me even if the one shall
-slay ye both." So the two brothers slew the third,
-and hung him over the drawbridge for all the host
-to see.
-
-Then they rode and ran, but still got not away,
-but hovered round, boasting: "We be three lads of
-fair Scotland that fain would see some fighting."
-
-When young Edward heard this, he cried wrathfully,
-"I'll take yon lad and bind him, and bring him bound
-to thee."
-
-"Now God forbid that ever thou shouldst try that,"
-said the king; "we have lost three worthy leaders;
-wouldst thou be the fourth? Never again would I be
-happy if thou wert to hang on yonder drawbridge."
-
-But Edward struck fiercely at Maitland, cleaving his
-stout helmet and biting right near his brain. When
-Maitland saw his own blood flowing he threw away his
-weapon, and springing angrily at young Edward's
-throat, he swung him thrice about and flung him on
-the ground, holding him there though he was of great
-strength.
-
-"Now let him up," cried King Edward, "let him
-come to me, and for thy deed thou shalt have three
-earldoms."
-
-"Nay," replied Maitland, "never shall it be said
-in France or in Scotland that Edward once lay under
-me and got up again," and with that he pierced him
-through the heart and hung him over the drawbridge
-with the other three.
-
-"Now take from me my bed of feathers," said the
-king, "make me a bed of straw. Would that I had
-not lived to see the day that makes my heart so sad."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Mystery of the Eildons`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter VI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Mystery of the Eildons
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "Before their eyes the Wizard lay
- | As if he had not been dead a day.
- | His hoary beard in silver roll'd,
- | He seemed some seventy winters old.
- | High and majestic was his look,
- | At which the fellest friends had shook,
- | And all unruffled was his face;
- | They trusted his soul had gotten grace."
- | SCOTT: *Lay of the Last Minstrel.*
- |
-
-Just above Melrose, the ruined abbey of which
-is one of the beauties of Scotland, there rises a
-striking mass of three hills known as "the triple
-Eildons." They rise very high above the surrounding
-land, and are steep enough to need a very hard scramble
-to mount to the very summit; but once at the top the
-view is wonderful indeed. On a fine day the Tweed
-can be seen winding in and out most picturesquely,
-till it loses itself in the low distant haze of the North Sea,
-thirty miles away. But even grander is the view of the
-entire line of the Cheviots, like a huge wall, fifty miles
-long, seen to immense advantage from Eildon, which
-towers over the rich valleys of Tweed and Teviot that
-lie between. One of the legends of the triple Eildons
-is that King Arthur lies sleeping beneath them, some
-day to awaken. Tradition says that he fought a great
-battle near here, by Gala Water, in the Vale of Woe.
-
-However that may be, it is certain that at the foot of
-Eildon lie many famous dead. In Melrose Abbey lies
-the heart of Robert Bruce, and also the body of the
-strong King Alexander II., he who first subdued and
-made obedient the wild tribes of Argyle. Here, too,
-is buried the brave Douglas who died so gallantly on the
-field of Otterbourne; and also of another brave Douglas
-who got his death wound at Poictiers.
-
-Sir Walter Scott, who did more than any other man
-to spread all over the world the knowledge of Scotland,
-Scottish history, Scottish romance, and Scottish character,
-lies buried on the southern side of Eildon, in the rival
-abbey of Dryburgh. But Melrose can claim a man who
-in his day was an object of the deepest wonder and
-terror—Michael Scott, the famous wizard of the
-thirteenth century, he who brought the learning of
-Aristotle to expound to Western Europe, he whom
-Dante described as learned in every deep spell of the
-magic arts. Perhaps he was only a scientist, born before
-his time; yet even to-day old folk in the country
-remember that it was he who is said to have cleft the
-head of Eildon Hill into three!
-
-One of the many strange tales told of Michael Scott is
-this:—
-
-They say that the lord of Morpeth, in Northumberland,
-promised the great wizard a rich reward if he
-would only make the sea roll up the valley of the
-pretty river Wansbeck till it reached Morpeth, so that
-vessels could sail up to the town. The distance is
-seven miles, and the wizard, declaring the matter a
-most simple one, prepared his magic spell. He then
-said that if a certain man would run from the sea to the
-town, and on no account look back, whatever he heard,
-the desire of the lord would be satisfied. The man no
-sooner started to run than he heard the waters following
-him. Faster and faster he went, and faster and faster
-came the ocean, dashing and roaring, never overtaking
-him, but always so near his heels as to fill him with
-ever greater and greater terror.
-
-Before he had finished the third mile he was in such
-a state of alarm that he could not resist the impulse
-to see what was happening. He turned round, and
-the spell was broken; the waters had followed him
-thus far, but would come no further. Even the best of
-wizards will fail when his instructions are not obeyed.
-
-So says the story. People are free to believe it or
-not, as they please. It is certain that the sea runs
-nearly three miles up the Wansbeck valley, and there
-stops; but many people think that that is explained
-by the natural rise of the land!
-
-The story of how Michael Scott came to divide the
-Eildon Hill into three runs as follows:—
-
-The wizard had one very active little demon, who was
-always bothering his master to give him something to
-do. First Michael commanded him to put a barrier
-across the Tweed at Kelso, thinking to keep him quiet
-for at least a week; it was done in a single night, and
-again the demon demanded work. Then Michael set
-him to divide Eildon into three; this also was done in a
-night, and again the demon came clamouring for
-employment. So in despair the wizard ordered him to
-make ropes out of sea-sand! This, of course, is
-impossible, as the sand will not hold together. But if you
-go down to the shore on the south-east coast of Scotland
-on a dark and stormy night, you can still hear what
-sounds like the demon moaning and groaning over his
-impossible task; and there is certainly a barrier across
-the Tweed at Kelso, and the Eildon Hill is certainly
-divided into three! So you may believe as much as
-you please of this story.
-
-Another tale that is told of the magic powers of this
-famous man relates that he was once chosen to go as
-ambassador from the King of Scotland to the King
-of France on urgent business. Instead of going, as is
-usual in such cases, with a number of followers, he
-conjured up a demon shaped like a huge black horse,
-and rode away over the sea. When half-way across
-the North Sea the horse said to his rider:—
-
-"What do the old women of Scotland say at
-bed-time?" Had the magician fallen into the trap and
-named a prayer, the demon would have disappeared
-and the wizard would have been drowned! But Michael
-Scott merely commanded his steed to go on quickly
-and not to talk. Very soon he came to Paris, tied his
-horse to the gate of the French king's palace, and boldly
-entered and stated his business. The French king
-sneered at an ambassador who was not followed by a
-train of knights, and began at once to refuse all he
-asked. "Wait a moment, your Majesty," said Michael,
-"till you have seen my horse stamp three times."
-
-At the first stamp the ground so shook that every
-steeple in Paris rocked, making all the bells ring loudly;
-at the second stamp the king heard behind him a loud
-crash that made him leap three feet in the air; looking
-round, he saw that three of the towers of his palace had
-fallen; the horse raised his foot to stamp a third time,
-but the king was so terrified that he shouted hastily
-that he would grant all that Michael asked if only he
-would keep his horse from stamping!
-
-Whether this tale is true or not, Michael Scott was
-certainly one of the ambassadors sent to bring back
-the Maid of Norway to Scotland on the death of King
-Alexander III. He wrote many learned books, and
-possessed many others; and they say that when he
-was buried at Melrose many of these same magic books
-were buried with him.
-
-To this romantic district of the Eildons belonged True
-Thomas, Thomas the Rhymer, or Thomas of Ercildoune,
-as he was variously called, who was held in awe by
-Border-folks as a prophet. The ruins of his tower are
-still shown by the pretty river Leader, just about two
-miles above the spot where it joins the Tweed. The
-Rhymer seems to have died a few years before 1300;
-but despite the passing of six centuries he is still
-remembered. The story of how he gained his prophetic
-powers is quite worth hearing, whether we believe it
-or not.
-
-The tale goes that Thomas was on Huntlie bank, near
-the Eildon Hills, when he saw a wonderful lady approaching
-him. She was dressed in grass-green silk, with a
-mantle of fine velvet, and the noble horse on which
-she rode had silver bells in its mane. Thomas was so
-surprised at this remarkable sight that when the lady
-came near he dropped on his knee and pulled off his cap,
-and cried out, reverently, that she must be the Queen
-of Heaven. But she answered that she was Queen of
-fair Elfland, and dared him, with a witching glance,
-to kiss her lips. The bold and gallant Thomas did not
-need a second invitation, and promptly kissed the fairy,
-when she seized upon him and fled away with him swifter
-than the wind.
-
-Soon all living land was left behind, and they came to
-a wild place where three roads met. One was a narrow
-path, beset with thorns and briers; and this the fairy
-said was the road of righteousness, which very few
-people ever troubled to find. Another was a broad and
-attractive road, which was the way of sinners; whilst
-the third, a pretty winding road, led to Elfland, and
-thither they went together.
-
-Soon there was neither sun nor moon to lighten the
-way, and Thomas and his companion waded through
-rivers above the knee. The sea moaned and roared
-in the dread darkness, and Thomas somehow found that
-they waded oft through streams of red blood—blood that
-had been shed on earth. Then they came to a beautiful
-garden, and the Elfland queen gave Thomas an apple
-to eat, saying:—
-
-"Take this for thy wages, true Thomas; it will
-give thee the tongue that can never lie." Poor Thomas
-turned pale at the thought of such a gift. "Let my
-tongue be my own!" he pleaded; "how shall I buy
-or sell in any market, flatter a prince, or compliment
-a lady, if you give me such a tongue!"
-
-But the Elfland queen would take no denial, and
-Thomas had to do her behest, wherefore for the rest of
-his life Thomas carried with him this gift of truthfulness.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Black Agnes of Dunbar`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter VII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Black Agnes of Dunbar
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The fortress of Dunbar was always a very
-important one to the Scots. It commanded the
-coast road from England across the Border to
-Edinburgh, not only one of the best routes in itself,
-but one which had the additional advantage to the
-English that by following it they could keep in touch
-with their ships. So it is not surprising that many
-stirring events in history took place at this historic
-town.
-
-King Edward I. of England won a very important
-victory at Dunbar during his first invasion of Scotland,
-and to the place which had witnessed the triumph of the
-father, his son, Edward II., fled for safety after his
-defeat at Bannockburn, taking ship thence back to
-England. In the time of Mary Queen of Scots the
-fortress was held by Earl Bothwell; from here he
-consented to the surrender of poor Mary, and here he
-rested in safety before his final flight to Scandinavia.
-Oliver Cromwell fought and won at Dunbar his desperate
-battle with the Scottish Presbyterians, the fate of which
-for some time hung in the balance. Cromwell
-considered the place so valuable that he had new harbour
-works made there, and a portion of his work, forming
-part of the east pier of the present much larger harbour,
-is still to be seen.
-
-The last time that Dunbar resounded to the march
-of an army bent on immediate fight was in 1745, when
-the boastful English general, Sir John Cope, landed
-here to engage the Highland followers of Prince Charles
-Edward (called the "Young Pretender"). Prince
-Charlie was at Edinburgh, and Dunbar Castle
-commanded the road into England. Cope asserted that the
-Highlanders would run away at the mere sight of his
-army. He marched westward, but was surprised in the
-early morning by his enemies when near Prestonpans.
-In less than ten minutes it was the unprepared English
-who were flying in disorder, utterly routed.
-
-The foregoing is but a brief outline of the stormy
-history of those grey and ruined battlements
-overlooking the bleak North Sea at the southernmost point
-of entrance to the noble Firth of Forth. The mention
-of these stirring incidents, however, will serve to show
-what a very important place Dunbar was, and that it
-was necessary to Scottish safety that a strong hand
-should have charge of its fortress. We are now to see
-how at one of the most critical hours a woman was to
-hold command, and to hold it worthily.
-
-Early in the reign of King Edward III. of England
-Scottish affairs were in some confusion. King Robert
-Bruce had lately died, leaving a son, King David II.,
-then only five years old. That great leader and friend
-of Bruce, Randolph, Earl of Moray, was appointed
-Guardian of Scotland, but he too soon died. Edward
-III., anxious to interfere in Scottish affairs, agreed
-to help Edward Balliol to make himself king of the
-Scots. So an English army was again in Scotland, and
-one of the places they were keenest to take was the
-fortress of Dunbar.
-
-.. _`Black Agnes`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-054.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *Black Agnes*
-
- *Black Agnes*
-
-The castle was a very strong one. It was built on a
-chain of great rocks that stretched out to sea, and could
-only be reached from land by one road, which was, of
-course, strictly guarded. The lord of the castle was the
-Earl of March (the word March in those days meant a
-border-land), but he was away with the Scottish army,
-and his wife was in charge of the castle. She was the
-daughter of that brave Earl of Moray, Guardian of
-Scotland, who has just been mentioned. The English
-army was led by an experienced general, the Earl of
-Salisbury, and he probably thought that he would not
-have much trouble in overcoming "Black Agnes,"
-as the dark-haired countess was called.
-
-He soon discovered that she was of heroic mould,
-however, for though he himself led the storming-parties,
-she on her side, urging on her men in person, hurled back
-his every attack. The Lady Agnes was quite fearless,
-and treated the siege as if it were a pastime to be enjoyed.
-When the English, with machines made for the purpose,
-hurled heavy stones against the walls, Black Agnes
-would call one of her maidens with a napkin to wipe off
-the dust that they made! The biggest of all the English
-war-machines was called a sow, and when it was brought
-to the walls the countess cried out in rough jest that it
-was surrounded by little pigs. At the same moment
-a mass of rock, which she had caused to be loosened,
-was hurled by her men on to the English, crushing their
-sow and many soldiers with it.
-
-At last there seemed a chance for the English. Near
-midnight a Scot came into their camp, saying that he
-was ready to betray the castle for a reward. The Earl
-of Salisbury and some chosen knights rode carefully
-forward, and found the gate open and the portcullis
-raised, as the man had promised. But for all that, they
-doubted if Black Agnes could so far relax her vigilance;
-wherefore instead of the earl entering first, he sent
-forward a retainer. His caution was soon justified,
-for no sooner had this man passed the gate than the
-portcullis fell. It was a trick to capture the earl,
-but the Scots were disappointed this time.
-
-The gallant English lord was loud in admiration of
-the brave Scottish lady who was thus defying him.
-Once when examining the defences with a lieutenant,
-an arrow struck his companion dead. "The countess's
-love-arrows pierce to the heart," said Salisbury, on his
-return to the camp. Despite the courtly manner in
-which the well-bred baron referred to the lady, however,
-he did not relax his efforts to overcome her.
-
-Salisbury's land forces had now surrounded the
-castle on the land side, while his ships at sea completed
-the blockade. The garrison was threatened with
-starvation. Greater and greater became the privations
-of the heroic defenders. The countess, no less brave
-than ever, hoped on, though ground for hope grew less
-and less. She could not bring herself to think of defeat,
-and her brave, bright face still gave courage and
-inspiration to all.
-
-Meantime the story of the struggle and difficulties of
-the defenders was raising up helpers, and Sir Alexander
-Ramsay of Dalhousie got ready a light vessel filled with
-provisions and manned by forty brave Scots, who only
-waited for a dark night to make the attempt to steal
-past the English fleet. They lay hidden by the Bass
-Rock, a lofty islet at the mouth of the Firth of Forth,
-some seven or eight miles from Dunbar, until one
-starless night they stole very cautiously down the wild
-coast-line of Haddingtonshire, sometimes all but bumping
-into an English vessel in the dark. Fortune favours the
-brave, and despite dangers and difficulties they got
-safely at last to the castle, whose distant light had been
-their guide. Be sure Black Agnes welcomed them!
-This proved to be the turning-point of the long siege.
-With fresh hope, the garrison made a sudden sally on the
-English, driving back their advance guard, and after
-five months of fierce but fruitless attempts, Salisbury
-was compelled to withdraw his forces and admit defeat.
-Nevertheless, the English were gallant enough to sing
-their praises of this Scottish heroine; their minstrels
-made songs in her honour, in one of which Salisbury
-is made to say:—
-
- | "Came I early, came I late,
- | I found Black Agnes at the gate."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Young Tamlane`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter VIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Young Tamlane
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "He's ta'en her by the milk-white hand,
- | Among the leaves so green."
- |
-
-This tale belongs to the romantic side of the
-Border minstrelsy, and illustrates some of the
-common superstitions of olden times concerning
-elves and fairies. The scene is laid in the Selkirk
-or Ettrick Forest, a mountainous tract covered with
-the remains of the old Caledonian Forest. About a
-mile above Selkirk is a plain called Carterhaugh, and
-here may still be seen those fairy rings of which it was
-believed that anyone sleeping upon one will wake in a
-fairy city. And here was, and perhaps still is, an ancient
-well. The ballad opens by telling how all young maids
-were forbidden to come or go by way of Carterhaugh,
-"for young Tamlane (or Thomalin) is there," and
-every one going by Carterhaugh is obliged to leave him
-something in pledge. But the Lady Janet, the fairest
-of the Selkirk lasses, was obstinate, and declared that
-she would come or go to Carterhaugh, as she pleased,
-"and ask no leave of him," since the land there belonged
-to her by hereditary right. She kilted her green mantle
-above her knee, and braided her yellow hair above her
-brow, and off she went to Carterhaugh. When she got
-to the well, she found the steed of the elfin knight
-Tamlane standing there, but he himself was away.
-
- | "She hadna pu'd a red, red rose,
- | A rose but barely three;
- | Till up and starts a wee, wee man
- | At Lady Janet's knee.
-
- | Says—'Why pu' ye the rose, Janet?
- | What gars (makes) ye break the tree?
- | Or why come ye to Carterhaugh,
- | Withouten leave of me?'
-
- | Says—'Carterhaugh it is mine ain;
- | My daddy gave it me:
- | I'll come and gang to Carterhaugh,
- | And ask nae leave o' thee.'"
- |
-
-But Tamlane took her by the hand and worked upon
-her his spells, which no maiden might resist, however
-proud she might be.
-
-When she came back to her father's hall, she looked
-pale and wan; and it seemed that she had some sore
-sickness. She ceased to take any pleasure in combing
-her yellow hair, and everything she ate seemed like to
-be her death. When her ladies played at ball, she, once
-the strongest player, was now the faintest. One day
-her father spoke out, and said he, "Full well I know that
-you must have some lover." She said:—
-
- | "'If my love were an earthly knight,
- | As he's an elfin grey,
- | I wouldna give my own true love
- | For no lord that ye hae.'"
- |
-
-Then she prinked herself, and preened herself, all by the
-light of the moon alone, and went away to Carterhaugh,
-to speak with Tamlane. When she got to the well, she
-found the steed standing, but Tamlane was away. She
-had barely pulled a double rose, when up started the elf.
-
-"Why pull ye the rose, Janet?" says he; "why
-pull ye the rose within this garden green?" "The truth
-ye'll tell me, Tamlane; were ye ever in holy chapel, or
-received into the Christian Church?" "The truth I'll
-tell thee, Janet; a knight was my father, and a lady
-was my mother, like your own parents. Randolph,
-Earl Moray, was my sire; Dunbar, Earl March, is thine.
-We loved when we were children, which yet you may
-remember. When I was a boy just turned nine, my
-uncle sent for me to hunt, and hawk, and ride with him,
-and keep him company. There came a wind out of the
-north, a deep sleep came over me, and I fell from my
-horse. The queen of the fairies took me off to yon
-green hill, and now I'm a fairy, lithe and limber. In
-Fairyland we know neither sickness nor pain. We
-quit our body, or repair unto them, when we please.
-We can inhabit, earth, or air, as we will. Our shapes and
-size we can convert to either large or small. We sleep
-in rose-buds, revel in the stream, wanton lightly on the
-wind, or glide on a sunbeam. I would never tire, Janet,
-to dwell in Elfland, were it not that every seven years
-a tithe is paid to hell, and I am so fair of flesh, I fear
-'twill be myself. If you dare to win your true love,
-you have no time to lose. To-night is Hallowe'en, and
-the fairy folk ride. If you would win your true love,
-bide at Miles Cross." Miles Cross is about half a mile
-from Carterhaugh, and Janet asked how she should know
-Tamlane among so many unearthly knights. "The
-first company that passes by, let them go. The next
-company that passes by, let them go. The third
-company that passes by, I'll be one of those. First
-let pass the black steed, Janet, then let pass the
-brown; but grip the milk-white steed, and pull down
-the rider—
-
- | "For I ride on the milk-white steed,
- | And aye nearest the town;
- | Because I was a christened knight,
- | They gave me that renown."
- |
-
-Tamlane went on to explain that his fairy comrades
-would make every effort to disgust her with her captive.
-They would turn him in her very arms into an adder;
-they would change him into a burning faggot, into a
-red-hot iron goad, but she must hold him fast. In order
-to remove the enchantment, she must dip him in a
-churn of milk, and then in a barrel of water. She must
-still persevere, for they would shape him in her arms
-into a badger, eel, dove, swan, and, last of all, into a
-naked man, but
-
- | "Cast your green mantle over me,
- | I'll be myself again."
- |
-
-So fair Janet in her green mantle went that gloomy
-night to Miles Cross. The heavens were black, the
-place was inexpressibly dreary, a north wind raged;
-but there she stood, eagerly wishing to embrace her
-lover. Between the hours of twelve and one she heard
-strange eldrich sounds and the ringing of elfin bridles,
-which gladdened her heart. The oaten pipes of the
-faires grew shrill, the hemlock blew clear. The fairies
-cannot bear solemn sounds or sober thoughts; they
-sing like skylarks, inspired by love and joy. Fair Janet
-stood upon the dreary heath, and the sounds waxed
-louder as the fairy train came riding on. Will o' the
-Wisp shone out as a twinkling light before them, and
-soon she saw the fairy bands passing. She let the black
-steed go by, and then the brown. But she gripped fast
-the milk-white steed, and pulled down the rider. Then
-up rose an eldrich cry, "He's won among us all!" As
-Janet grasped him in her arms the fairies changed
-him into a newt, an adder, and many other fantastic
-and terrifying shapes. She held him fast in every
-shape. They turned him at last into a naked man in
-her arms, but she wrapped him in her green mantle.
-At last her stedfast courage was rewarded, she redeemed
-the fairies' captive, and by so doing won his true love!
-Then up spoke the Queen of Fairies, "She that has
-borrowed young Tamlane has got a stately groom!
-She's taken the bonniest knight in all my company!
-But had I known, Tamlane," said the fairy queen,
-"had I known that a lady would borrow thee, I would
-have taken out thy two grey eyes, and put in wooden
-eyes. I would have taken out thy heart of flesh, Tamlane,
-and put in a heart of stone. I would have paid my
-tithe seven times to hell ere I would have let her win
-you away."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Gay Goss-Hawk`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter IX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Gay Goss-Hawk
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-In the opening lines of this old ballad Lord William
-is talking to the goss-hawk, who tells his master
-that he is looking pale and thin, and seeks to know
-che cause.
-
- | "O waly, waly, my gay goss-hawk,
- | Gin your feathering be sheen!"
- | "And waly, waly, my master dear,
- | Gin ye look pale and lean!
-
- | O have ye tint[#] at tournament
- | Your sword, or yet your spear?
- | Or mourn ye for the Southern lass,
- | Whom ye may not win near?"
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] lost
-
-..
-
- | "I have not tint at tournament
- | My sword, nor yet my spear;
- | But sair[#] I mourn for my true love,
- | Wi' mony a bitter tear.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] sore
-
-..
-
- | But weel's me on ye, my gay goss-hawk,
- | Ye can baith speak and flee;
- | Ye sall carry a letter to my love,
- | Bring an answer back to me."
-
- | "But how sall I your true love find,
- | Or how suld I her know?
- | I bear a tongue ne'er wi' her spake,
- | An eye that ne'er her saw."
-
- | "O weel sall ye my true love ken,
- | Sae sune[#] as ye her see;
- | For, of a' the flowers of fair England,
- | The fairest flower is she.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] soon.
-
-..
-
- | The red that's on my true love's cheek
- | Is like blood-drops on the snaw;
- | The white that is on her breast bare,
- | Like the down o' the white sea-maw.
-
- | And even at my love's bour-door
- | There grows a flowering birk;[#]
- | And ye maun sit and sing thereon
- | As she gangs to the kirk.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] birch.
-
-..
-
- | And four-and-twenty fair ladyes
- | Will to the Mass repair;
- | But weel may ye my ladye ken,
- | The fairest ladye there."
-
- | Lord William has written a love-letter,
- | Put it under his pinion grey;
- | An' he is awa' to Southern land
- | As fast as wings can gae.
-
- | And even at the ladye's bour[#]
- | There grew a flowering birk;
- | And he sat down and sung thereon
- | As she gaed to the kirk.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] bower.
-
-..
-
- | And weel he kent that ladye fair
- | Amang her maidens free,
- | For the flower that springs in May morning
- | Was not sae sweet as she.
-
- | He lighted at the ladye's yate[#]
- | And sat him on a pin,[#]
- | And sang fu' sweet the notes o' love,
- | Till a' was cosh[#] within.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] gate.
-[#] pine.
-[#] quiet.
-
-..
-
- | And first he sang a low low note,
- | And syne[#] he sang a clear;
- | And aye the o'erword[#] o' the sang
- | Was—"Your love can no win here."
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] then.
-[#] refrain.
-
-..
-
- | "Feast on, feast on, my maidens a',
- | The wine flows you amang,
- | While I gang to my shot-window
- | And hear yon bonnie bird's sang.
-
- | Sing on, sing on, my bonny bird,
- | The sang ye sung yestreen,
- | For weel I ken, by your sweet singing
- | Ye are frae my true love sen."[#]
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] sent.
-
-..
-
- | O first he sang a merry song,
- | And syne he sang a grave;
- | And syne he picked his feathers grey,
- | To her the letter gave.
-
- | "Have there a letter from Lord William;
- | He says he's sent ye three;
- | He canna wait your love langer,
- | But for your sake he'll die."
-
- | "Gae bid him bake his bridal bread,
- | And brew his bridal ale;
- | And I shall meet him in Mary's Kirk,
- | Lang, lang ere it be stale."
-
- | The lady's gane to her chamber,
- | And a moanfu' woman was she;
- | As gin[#] she had taken a sudden brash[#]
- | And were about to die.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] if
-[#] illness.
-
-..
-
- | "A boon, a boon, my father dear,
- | A boon I beg of thee!"
- | "Ask not that haughty Scottish lord,
- | For him ye ne'er shall see.
-
- | But for your honest asking else,
- | Weel granted it shall be."
- | "Then, gin I die in Southern land,
- | In Scotland gar[#] bury me.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] cause
-
-..
-
- | And the first kirk that ye come to,
- | Ye's gar the mass be sung;
- | And the next kirk that ye come to
- | Ye's gar the bells be rung.
-
- | And when ye come to St Mary's Kirk,
- | Ye's tarry there till night."
- | And so her father pledged his word,
- | And so his promise plight.
-
- | She has ta'en her to her bigly bower
- | As fast as she could fare;
- | And she has drank a sleepy draught,
- | That she had mixed wi' care.
-
- | And pale, pale grew her rosy cheek,
- | That was sae bright of blee,[#]
- | And she seemed to be as surely dead
- | As any one could be.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] bloom.
-
-..
-
- | Then spake her cruel step-minnie,[#]
- | "Tak ye the burning lead,
- | And drap a drap on her bosome,
- | To try if she be dead."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] mother.
-
-..
-
- | They took a drap o' boiling lead,
- | They drapped it on her breast;
- | "Alas! alas!" her father cried,
- | "She's dead without the priest."
-
- | She neither chattered with her teeth,
- | Nor shivered with her chin;
- | "Alas! alas!" her father cried,
- | "There is nae breath within."
-
- | Then up arose her seven brethren,
- | And hewed to her a bier;
- | They hewed it frae the solid aik,[#]
- | Laid it o'er wi' silver clear.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] oak.
-
-..
-
- | Then up and gat her seven sisters,
- | And sewed to her a kell,[#]
- | And every steek[#] that they put in
- | Sewed to a siller bell.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] shroud.
-[#] stitch.
-
-..
-
- | The first Scots kirk that they cam to,
- | They garred the bells be rung;
- | The next Scots kirk that they cam to,
- | They garred fhe mass be sung.
-
- | But when they cam to St Mary's Kirk,
- | There stude spearmen all on a row;
- | And up and started Lord William,
- | The chieftaine amang them a'.
-
- | "Set down, set down the bier," he said,
- | "Let me look her upon;"
- | But as soon as Lord William touched her hand,
- | Her colour began to come.
-
- | She brightened like the lily flower,
- | Till her pale colour was gone;
- | With rosy cheek, and ruby lip,
- | She smiled her love upon.
-
- | "A morsel of your bread, my lord,
- | And one glass of your wine;
- | For I have fasted these three lang days,
- | All for your sake and mine.
-
- | Gae hame, gae hame, my seven bauld brothers,
- | Gae hame and blaw your horn!
- | I trow[#] ye wad hae gi'en me the skaith,[#]
- | But I've gi'en you the scorn.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] reckon.
-[#] harm.
-
-..
-
- | Commend me to my grey father,
- | That wished my soul gude rest;
- | But wae be to my cruel step-dame,
- | Garred burn me on the breast."
-
- | "Ah! woe to you, you light woman!
- | And ill death may ye die!
- | For we left father and sisters at hame,
- | Breaking their hearts for thee."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Corbies`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter X
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Corbies
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Two ancient songs have come down to us in which
-the principal speakers are supposed to be
-Corbies, carrion-crows or ravens, birds which
-feed on the flesh of the dead. In both songs the birds
-discuss a dead knight upon whose rich body they wish
-to feed. But deep interest lies in the fact that the two
-song-writers present entirely different views of the case.
-One appeals to our feelings with a beautiful and touching
-picture of devotion, the knight's companions proving
-true to him in death. The other is far more grim, and
-causes us to shudder at the utter loneliness of the dead
-man, deserted by all those who in life were beholden to
-his friendship. Both are powerful and striking examples
-of ancient vigour and directness.
-
-.. class:: center large
-
- THE TWA CORBIES
-
-..
-
- | As I was walking all alane,
- | I heard twa corbies making a mane;[#]
- | The tane unto the t'other say,
- | "Where sall we gang and dine to-day?"—
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] moan.
-
-..
-
- | "In behint yon auld fail dyke,
- | I wot there lies a new-slain knight;
- | And naebody kens that he lies there,
- | But his hawk, his hound, and lady fair.
-
- | His hound is to the hunting gane,
- | His hawk, to fetch the wild-fowl hame,
- | His lady's ta'en another mate,
- | Sa we may mak our dinner sweet.
-
- | Ye'll sit on his white hause-bane,[#]
- | And I'll pick out his bonny blue een:
- | Wi' ae lock o' his gowden hair,
- | We'll theek[#] our nest when it grows bare.[#]
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] neck.
-[#] thatch.
-[#] Variant reading—"We'll theek our nest—it's a' blawn hare."
-
-..
-
- | Mony a one for him makes mane,
- | But nane sall ken where he is gane;
- | O'er his white banes, when they are bare,
- | The wind sall blaw for evermair."
-
-.. _`The Twa Corbies`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-070.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: The Twa Corbies
-
- The Twa Corbies
-
-.. vspace:: 3
-
-.. class:: center large
-
- THE THREE RAVENS
-
-..
-
- | There were three ravens sat on a tre,
- | They were as black as they might be:
-
- | The one of them said to his mate,
- | "Where shall we our breakfast take?"—
-
- | "Downe in yonder greene field,
- | There lies a knight slain under his shield;
-
- | "His hounds they lie downe at his feete,
- | So well they their master keepe;
-
- | "His hawkes they flie so eagerlie,
- | There's no fowle dare come him nie.
-
- | "Down there comes a fallow doe,
- | As great with yong as she might goe.
-
- | "She lift up his bloudy hed,
- | And kist his wounds that were so red.
-
- | "She got him up upon her backe,
- | And carried him to earthen lake.
-
- | "She buried him before the prime,
- | She was dead her selfe ere even song time.
-
- | "God send every gentleman,
- | Such hawkes, such houndes, and such a leman."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Otterbourne and Chevy Chase`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Otterbourne and Chevy Chase
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "It fell about the Lammas-tide,
- | When moor-men win their hay,
- | The doughty Douglas bound him to ride
- | Into England, to drive a prey."
- |
-
-The ballads of *Otterbourne* and *Chevy Chase*
-record the Scottish and English versions of a
-most stubborn Border battle. Whichever of the
-two contains the greater amount of truth, it is clear that
-the day was a bloody one, and that, moreover, it was
-fought on both sides with a chivalrous admiration for
-the powers of the other which is characteristic of those
-strife-loving days. Sir Philip Sidney wrote of it: "I
-never heard the old song of Percy and Douglas, that I
-found not my heart moved more than with a trumpet."
-
-The ballad of *Chevy Chase* is of later date than its
-rival, and it contains certainly one misstatement of
-historical fact, since Hotspur outlived the fight at Chevy
-Chase (1388) and was slain some fifteen years later at the
-battle of Shrewsbury (1403).
-
-The Scottish version of the battle of Otterbourne tells
-us that it was about the Lammas-tide or haymaking time
-of the year 1388 when the brave Earl of Douglas, with his
-brother, the Earl of Murray, made a foray into England,
-with a gay band of Gordons, Graemes, and Lindsays. He
-burned Tynedale and half of Bamborough and Otterdale,
-and marching up to Newcastle, rode round about the
-castle, crying, "Who is lord of this castle, and who is
-its lady?"
-
-Then up spake proud Lord Percy, known as *Hotspur*,
-and said, "I am the lord of this castle, and my wife is the
-gay lady of it."
-
-"That pleases me well," answered Douglas, "yet, ere I
-cross the Border hills, one of us shall die."
-
-Then Percy took his long spear, shod with metal, and
-rode right furiously at the Douglas; but his lady, looking
-from the castle wall, grew pale as she saw her proud
-lord go down before the Scottish spear.
-
-"Had we two been alone, with never an eye to see, I
-would have slain thee, but thy lance I will carry with
-me," said Douglas, and, to complete the disgrace, this
-lance bore attached to it the Percy pennon.
-
-"Go then to Otterbourne," said Percy, "and wait
-there for me, and if I come not before the end of three
-days, call me a false knight."
-
-"Otterbourne is a pleasant and a bonny place,"
-answered Douglas; "but though the deer run wild among
-the hills and dales, and the birds fly wild from tree to
-tree, yet is there neither bread nor kale nor aught else to
-feed me and my men. Yet will I wait thee at Otterbourne
-to give thee welcome, and if thou come not in
-three days' time, false lord, will I call thee!"
-
-"By the might of Our Lady, I will come," cried the
-proud Percy. "And I," answered Douglas, "plight thee
-my troth that I will meet thee there."
-
-So Douglas and his men encamped at Otterbourne,
-and sent out their horses to pasture.
-
-But before the peep of dawn, up spake a little page:
-"Waken ye, waken ye, my good lord; the Percy is upon
-us!" "Ye lie, ye lie," shouted Douglas; "yesterday,
-Percy had not men enough to fight us. But if thou lie
-not, the finest bower in Otterbourne shall be thy reward,
-and if what thou sayest prove false, thou shalt be hanged
-on the highest tree in Otterbourne. Yet I have dreamed
-a dreary dream; I dreamed that a dead man won a battle
-and that I was that dead man."
-
-So Douglas belted on his good broadsword, and ran to
-the field, but forgot his helmet, and Percy and the Douglas
-fought with their swords together till the blood ran down
-like rain, and the Douglas fell, wounded on the brow.
-
-Then he called to him his little foot-page and told him
-to run quickly and bring to him his sister's son, Sir Hugh
-Montgomery.
-
-"My good nephew," said Douglas, "the death of one
-matters not; last night I dreamed a dreary dream, but
-yet I know the day is thine. My wound is deep; take
-thou the vanguard; bury me in the bracken high that
-grows on yonder lea, and let no man living know that a
-Scot lies there. And know that I am glad to die in battle,
-like my good forefathers, and not on a bed of sickness."
-
-Montgomery lifted up his noble lord, while his eyes
-wept salt tears, and hid him in the bracken bush that his
-followers might not see, and before daylight the Scots
-slew many a gallant Englishman. The good Gordons
-steeped hose and shoes in the blood of the English; the
-Lindsays flew about like fire till the battle was ended, and
-Percy and Montgomery fought till the blood ran down
-between them.
-
-"Now, yield thee, yield thee, Percy," cried Sir Hugh,
-"or I vow I will lay thee low!"
-
-"Since it must be so," quoth Earl Percy, "to whom
-shall I yield?"
-
-"Thou shalt not yield to me or to any lord, but to the
-bracken bush that grows on yonder lea!"
-
-"I will not yield to briar or bracken bush, but I would
-yield to Lord Douglas or to Sir Hugh Montgomery, if he
-were here."
-
-Then Montgomery made himself known, and as soon
-as Percy knew that it was Montgomery, he struck the
-point of his sword into the ground, and Montgomery, who
-was a courteous knight, took him up by the hand.
-
-This deed was done at Otterbourne at daybreak, where
-Earl Douglas was buried by the bracken bush, and
-Percy led captive into Scotland, and it is said that
-Hotspur, for his ransom, built for Montgomery the castle of
-Penoon, in Ayrshire.
-
-But the English version of these stirring events can
-also claim to be heard; the ballad upon it is called *Chevy
-Chase*, which means the Chase on the Cheviots; and so
-popular was this ballad that its name was given to a boys'
-game, which is so called even to this day. It tells how
-the Percy, from his castle in Northumberland, vowed that
-within three days he would hunt on the mountains of
-Cheviot in spite of the doughty Douglas and his men, and
-that he would kill and carry away the fattest deer in
-Cheviot.
-
-"By my faith," said Douglas, when he heard of the
-boast, "but I will hinder his hunting."
-
-Percy left Bamborough Castle with a mighty company,
-no less than fifteen hundred bold archers chosen out of
-three shires.
-
-The foray began on a Monday morning in the high
-Cheviot Hills, and many a child yet unborn was to rue the
-day.
-
-The drivers went through the woods and raised the deer,
-and the bowmen shot them with their broad arrows. Then
-the wild deer rushed through the woods, only to be met
-and killed by the greyhounds, and before noontide a
-hundred fat deer lay dead. The bugles sounded, "A
-mort!" and on all sides Percy and his men assembled
-to see the cutting up of the venison.
-
-Said Percy: "The Douglas promised to meet me
-here this day, yet right well did I know that he would
-fail." But a Northumberland squire saw the doughty
-Douglas coming with a mighty company, with spear
-and batter-axe and sword. Never were men hardier of
-heart and hand seen in Christendom—two thousand
-spearmen born along the banks of the Tweed and Teviotdale.
-Then said Lord Percy: "Now leave off the cutting of the
-deer, and take good heed to your bows, for never had ye
-more need of them since ye were born."
-
-Earl Douglas rode before his men, his armour glittering
-like a burning coal, and never was such a bold baron.
-"Tell me whose men ye are," said he, "and who gave ye
-leave to hunt in Cheviot without word asked of me?"
-
-Then answered Lord Percy, "We will not tell thee
-whose men we are, and we will hunt here in spite of thee.
-We have killed the fattest harts in Cheviot and will
-carry them away."
-
-"By my troth," said Douglas, "one of us shall die this
-day. Yet it were great pity to kill all these guiltless
-men. Thou, Percy, art a lord of land, and I am called
-an earl in my country; let our men stand by, and we will
-fight together."
-
-"Now a curse on his crown, who says nay to that,"
-cried Lord Percy. "By my troth, Douglas, thou shalt
-never see the day either in England, Scotland, or France,
-when I fear to meet one, man to man."
-
-Then spoke Richard Witherington, a squire of Northumberland.
-"Never shall this be told in England, to the
-shame of good King Harry the Fourth. I wot ye be two
-great lords, and I but a poor squire, yet would I never
-stand and look on while my captain fought. While I
-can wield a weapon, I will not fail, both heart and
-hand."
-
-So the English with good heart bent their bows, and
-slew seven score spearmen with the first arrows they shot.
-
-Earl Douglas stayed on the field, but that he was a
-good captain was truly seen, for he wrought great woe
-and mischief. He parted his host in three like a proud
-chieftain, and they came in on every side with their
-mighty spears, wounding the English archers and slaying
-many a brave man.
-
-Then the English pulled out their brands, and it was a
-heavy sight to see the bright swords light on the helmets,
-striking through the rich mail, and the cloth of many folds
-under it, and laying many low.
-
-At last the Douglas and the Percy met and fought with
-swords of Milan steel till the blood spurted like rain and
-hail from their helmets.
-
-"Hold thee, Percy," said Douglas, "and I will bring
-thee to James, our Scottish king, where thou shalt have an
-earl's wages and free ransom, for thou art the manfullest
-man that ever yet I conquered fighting in the field."
-
-"Nay, then," said Lord Percy. "I told thee before
-that never would I yield to any man of woman born."
-
-With that there came an arrow hastily from a mighty
-man, and struck Earl Douglas through the breast bone,
-and never more did he speak a word but only this:
-"Fight, my merry men, while ye may—my life's days are
-done."
-
-Then Percy leaned on his hand, and when he saw the
-Douglas die, he said, "Woe is me. I would have parted
-with my land for three years to have saved thy life, for a
-better man of heart and hand was not in all the north
-country."
-
-But Sir Hugh Montgomery, a Scottish knight, when
-he saw the Douglas done to death, grasped a spear and
-rode through a hundred archers, never slackening his
-pace till he came to Lord Percy, whom he set upon,
-sending his mighty spear clean through his body, so that
-a man might see a long cloth-yard and more at the other
-side. There were no two better captains in Christendom
-than were that day slain.
-
-When one of the Northumberland archers saw this,
-he drew an arrow to his bow and set upon Montgomery,
-until the swan feathers of his arrows were wet with his
-heart's blood.
-
-Not one man gave way, but still they stood hewing at
-each other, while they were able.
-
-This battle began in Cheviot, an hour before noon, nor
-was it half done at evensong, but they fought on by
-moonlight though many had scarce the strength to stand.
-Of fifteen hundred English archers only fifty-three
-remained, and of two thousand Scottish spearmen only
-fifty-five remained, all the rest being slain in Cheviot.
-
-With Lord Percy were slain, Sir John of Agerstone,
-Sir Roger the gentle Hartly, Sir William the bold Heron,
-Sir George the worthy Lovel, a renowned knight, and Sir
-Ralph the rich Rugby. Woe was it that Witherington
-was slain, for when both his legs were hewn in two he
-kneeled and fought on his knees.
-
-With the brave Douglas were slain Sir Hugh Montgomery,
-and worthy Sir Davy Liddle, that was his sister's
-son; Sir Charles, a Murray who refused to flee, and Sir
-Hugh Maxwell. On the morrow they made biers of birch
-and grey hazel, and many widows bore weeping from the
-field the bodies of their dead husbands. Well may
-Teviotdale and Northumberland wail and moan for two
-such great captains.
-
-Word came to James the Scottish king at Edinburgh,
-that the brave Douglas, Lieutenant of the Marches, lay
-slain in Cheviot, and he wept and wrung his hands, and
-said, "Alas! Woe is me; there will never be such another
-captain in Scotland."
-
-Word came also to London, to Harry the Fourth, that
-Lord Percy, Lieutenant of the Marches, lay slain in
-Cheviot. "God have mercy on his soul," said King
-Harry; "I have a hundred captains in England as good
-as he, yet I wager my life that his death shall be well
-avenged"; and this vow he kept, at the Battle of
-Homildon Hill, where he beat down six and thirty Scottish
-knights on one day.
-
-But so real to the Borderers was their grief over their
-dead that the ballad ends with a quaint but heartfelt
-appeal to the Prince of Peace:—
-
- | "Jesus Christ our ills abate,
- | And to His bliss us bring!
- | Thus was the hunting of the Cheviot;
- | God send us all good ending!"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Douglas Clan`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Douglas Clan
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The Douglas clan was at one time the strongest
-of all the great Scotch families on the Border;
-they were wild and proud and recklessly brave,
-and no account of the Borders would be complete
-without the broad details of their tragic history.
-
-The first to raise the fame of the family to the highest
-place in honour was the brave Sir James Douglas, the
-friend of Bruce, and, after Bruce himself, the greatest
-hero among the Scots of that stormy period. He was a
-powerful, black-haired man with a dark complexion, and
-was called by the English "The Black Douglas." So
-great was the terror of his name that English mothers
-on the Border, when their children were naughty, would
-tell them that the Black Douglas would get them, or if
-they were fretful they would comfort them with the
-assurance—
-
- | "Hush ye, hush ye, little pet ye,
- | Hush ye, hush ye, do not fret ye,
- | The Black Douglas shall not get ye."
- |
-
-Sir Walter Scott relates how, when the garrison of
-Roxburgh Castle were making merry at Shrovetide, the
-castle was surprised by the Douglas, who mounted to
-the ramparts where a woman was crooning the refrain
-to her babe. "You are not so sure of that," he said,
-laying his hand upon her shoulder. It is pleasant to
-read that on this occasion the Black Douglas did not
-turn out so black as he was painted, and beyond her
-fright the woman came to no harm at the hands of Sir
-James and his followers.
-
-At one time the English had seized the Douglas
-castle in Lanarkshire, and Sir James and his men
-disguised themselves and came to church on Palm
-Sunday, when the English soldiers were worshipping there.
-Suddenly in the midst of the service Douglas dropped his
-cloak and drew his sword and shouted: "A Douglas! a
-Douglas!"
-
-The English soldiers were taken by surprise, and were
-killed before they could recover themselves. This deed
-brought Douglas great fame, but after all it was hardly a
-fair fight.
-
-In 1327, when Edward III. was only fifteen years old,
-Douglas led a raid into Northumberland and Durham
-which did the English much damage. Edward came
-after them with an English army, and the Scots, being
-outnumbered, were compelled to dodge up and down
-in order to avoid a pitched battle. But in one bold
-night attack, Douglas and five hundred of the Scots
-penetrated to the king's tent, and almost succeeded in
-taking him prisoner. Failing in this, they returned
-unharmed to their own country, and shortly afterwards,
-at the Treaty of Northampton in 1328, King Edward
-III. agreed to acknowledge Robert Bruce as King of Scotland,
-and the long war between Scotland and England ended.
-
-A year later Bruce died, but after a romantic custom of
-that day he bequeathed his heart to his gallant friend,
-Sir James Douglas. Douglas had this heart enclosed in
-a silver casket and carried it hung about his neck. The
-war with England being over, this restless knight sought
-adventures in Spain, fighting against the Saracen
-followers of Mahomet. In one fierce battle, he and his
-men were surrounded by their enemies. Douglas,
-probably realising that this was his last fight, took the
-casket and flung it into the midst of his foes, crying:
-"Go first in fight, as thou wert used to do; Douglas will
-follow thee or die!" He then rushed desperately after
-it, fighting his way on till at last his dead body fell on
-this dearly prized relic, which he guarded to the end.
-The casket lies buried in the Abbey of Melrose, but
-Douglas's body was laid in his own church.
-
-Of the bold Earl Douglas who fought and died at
-Otterbourne the tale is told in our last chapter. We
-may pass on to another famous Douglas, this time a
-heroine, who lived in the reign of James I. of Scotland
-(quite a different king from James I. of England).
-When James was only twelve years old, he was taken
-prisoner by Henry IV. of England, and kept captive till
-he was thirty. But he was given an education fit for a
-king, and in England he met the lady he devotedly
-loved, Lady Joan Beaufort, daughter of the Earl of
-Somerset. He addressed a beautiful poem to her and
-married her, and these two always most dearly loved one
-another. When at last his long captivity came to an
-end, he got back to Scotland to find the kingdom in
-disorder, and the nobles defying the law and acting as they
-pleased. James, a strong and able king, set his strength
-against their strength, and gradually got his whole
-kingdom into order and ruled with wisdom and justice.
-
-But in these days it was impossible to be firm without
-sternness, and James made enemies. When he was staying
-at Perth one Christmas-time, these enemies, led by a
-bold villain called Sir Robert Graham, secretly encircled
-the house where he was staying. The unarmed king
-only heard of their presence when they were advancing,
-fully armed, to his room. He tore up a plank in the
-floor, seeking thus to find a hiding-place. The enemies
-were almost at the door, and it was necessary to delay
-their entrance, for one minute might save his life. All
-the bars of the door had been removed beforehand, but
-a brave heroine, Kate Douglas, thrust her arm through
-the staples. The villains were angered to find the door
-barred against them, and hurled their weight upon it.
-
-The Douglas heroine stood there, her pale face set
-hard, without a cry, as the crash broke the bone of her
-brave strong arm, and the would-be murderers staggered
-in. But alas! the sacrifice of Kate Douglas availed
-nothing except to place her name upon the immortal
-roll of the heroes of the ages, for after a brief search the
-murderers found the king and slew him.
-
-The queen, who had loved James with the utmost
-devotion, found her love give added fierceness to her
-hate against his murderers. They were all tracked down,
-and she caused them to die with terrible tortures, the
-cruellest of which she reserved for Graham. Thus did
-great King James's "milk-white dove" revenge the
-slaying of the husband she loved dearer than life itself.
-
-Till this time it had seemed as if the Douglases were
-devoted to the good of Scotland. But in those wild,
-reckless times qualities that were strong for good could
-also be strong for evil.
-
-When James I. of Scotland was murdered, his young
-son was only six years old. This meant that for many
-years there would be no strong king able to cope with
-the lawless spirit of the nobles, strongest among whom
-were the proud, bold Douglases.
-
-The lawlessness of the times is well shown by an act
-of foul treachery committed by Sir William Crichton,
-Governor of Edinburgh, and an enemy of the Douglas
-family. He invited one of the earls to dinner at the
-castle, and while there had him seized and beheaded.
-It is said that a bull's head was placed on the dish in
-front of Douglas, this being a sign that he was to be
-killed. The people called this "Douglas's black dinner,"
-and sang of the wicked deed in sorrowful verse:—
-
- | "Edinburgh Castle, town and tower
- | God grant thou sink for sin!
- | And even for that black dinner
- | Earl Douglas got therein."
- |
-
-But the new King James found, before he was twenty
-years old, that the Douglases themselves could act with
-equal cruelty and lawlessness.
-
-The king was fond of a brave young soldier named
-Maclellan, who, having some quarrel with Earl Douglas,
-was thrown by him into a dungeon in his castle. So
-the king wrote a letter to Douglas, saying he must set
-Maclellan free, and sent this letter by Maclellan's uncle,
-Sir Patrick Gray. When Douglas saw Gray riding up to
-his castle, he at once guessed the errand. So he came
-out as though he were delighted to see him, and insisted
-on his sitting down and having dinner with him, before
-the king's letter was opened and discussed. But the
-treacherous earl had given secret orders that Maclellan
-should be beheaded while they were dining, so that after
-dinner was over, and the letter was read, he could say
-that this had been done before he had seen the king's
-message.
-
-Gray dared not show his anger, for fear he too should
-be killed. He mounted his swift horse and rode away,
-but the moment he was outside the castle walls he shook
-his mailed fist at Douglas and cried out—
-
-"Treacherous earl, disgrace to knighthood, some day
-you shall pay for this black, base deed!"
-
-Douglas mounted his men, and they pursued Gray
-almost to the gates of Edinburgh; but he rode for his
-life, and faster than they.
-
-When Douglas and the king next met there was a
-stormy scene. The earl was so proud and wilful that
-he would not bend to any of the king's wishes or heed
-the king's anger in the least. So King James, mad with
-rage, stabbed the reckless earl with his dagger, and Sir
-Patrick Gray, seeing this, struck him a death-blow with
-his axe.
-
-The king was in Stirling Castle, a powerful fortress at
-the top of a steep hill, when the new earl, the younger
-brother of the murdered man, rode up with six hundred
-followers, and burnt and plundered the town before the
-king's very eyes, and added to the insult by publicly
-declaring that King James II. was a law-breaker.
-
-For three years the quarrel went on between the king
-and the Douglases, but it was then evident that there
-could be no peace between them. So at last the king's
-army attacked the collected forces of the strong Douglas
-family at a place on the Borders then called Arkinholm,
-where the picturesque little town of Langholm now stands.
-Here the beautiful river Esk receives the water of two
-smaller streams, and so it was a good place to make a
-stand for a fight. The battle was long and desperate;
-three brothers of the bold black Douglases were there, and
-they withstood the king's men till the rivers ran red;
-but their cause was hopeless. One was slain in battle;
-one was taken and executed; one escaped into England;
-and the power of the Black Douglases was gone.
-
-Thus it was that the strongest and most famous family
-of the Borders was broken up, because its proud leaders
-dared to dictate to the king himself.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Alnwick Castle and the Percies`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Alnwick Castle and the Percies
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The castle of Alnwick stands on a hill on the
-south bank of the river Alne; being protected
-on one side by the river and on another by a
-deep gorge, it stands in a strong natural position. There
-are traces of earthworks that seem to show that the
-spot was fortified in the old British days, but the earliest
-fact which we know certainly is that there was a Saxon
-fortress here, held by a Gilbert Tyson, when William
-the Conqueror claimed England. Tyson hastened south
-to fight on Harold's side, and was killed at the battle
-of Hastings.
-
-The fortress seems to have got into the hands of a
-Norman knight, Ivo de Vesci, who married the
-grand-daughter of Gilbert Tyson. King Malcolm of Scotland
-was killed in front of it, in 1093, with three thousand of
-his men. De Vesci's son-in-law was probably the knight
-who rebuilt the castle in the Norman style, some portions
-of which still remain.
-
-In 1174, William the Lion, King of Scotland, who
-had claimed Northumberland as his own, attacked
-the castles of Wark and of Alnwick. Wark was
-defended by a gallant knight named Roger de Stuteville.
-William's brave men tried in vain to force their way
-through the portcullis, but were beaten back. Then
-William ordered up his *perière*, a machine made for
-hurling stones. "This," said the king, "will soon
-smash down the gate for us!" With great expectations
-the machine was set in motion, but it acted so badly
-that it threw the stones on to William's own men, and
-nearly killed one of his best knights! William raved in
-his fury, and swore he would rather have been captured
-in fair fight than be made to look so foolish in the eyes of
-his enemies. He gave word to burn the castle, but the
-wind was in the wrong quarter and blew back the flames.
-So he had to give up the siege. Stuteville, like a gallant
-enemy, told his men not to shout taunts and jeers at the
-departing Scots. But instead they blew trumpets and
-horns, and sang songs, and called out a very loud and
-hearty "Good-bye."
-
-Shortly afterwards, William came before Alnwick, and
-it was then De Vesci's turn. It was Saturday morning on
-a hot July day, and the Scottish king's knights
-flatteringly told him that the English were bound to give way
-to him, and Northumberland would be his. The king
-was dining in front of the castle, with no helmet on, when
-suddenly a part of the English army made a surprise
-attack. The bold king leapt on to his grey charger, and
-unhorsed the first knight he met. So quick and brave
-were the Scots that they had almost defeated the English
-when an English foot-soldier stabbed the king's horse
-with his lance, and it fell, bringing William down to the
-ground and pinning him there. This turned the course
-of battle; the Scots were beaten back, and William
-taken prisoner.
-
-In was in 1309 that the great Percy family first
-obtained possession of Alnwick and its domain. Henry
-Percy purchased it from Anthony Bek, Bishop of Durham,
-who had somehow obtained power over it, and the brave
-De Vesci family disappear. About this date Northumberland
-was in a miserable condition; it was the reign
-of the feeble Edward II., and Bruce had invaded the
-four northernmost counties of England, and was exacting
-tribute from them. The English were safe only within
-their fortresses.
-
-However, the brave Sir Thomas Gray, who held
-Norham Castle, did much to uphold the falling honour
-of England, and Henry Percy almost rebuilt the castle
-of Alnwick, which in his son's time successfully withstood
-a siege. But at last peace was restored by the Treaty of
-Northampton in 1328, by the terms of which the English
-king renounced all claim to Scotland.
-
-The Percy family were of Norman origin, deriving
-their name from a Norman village. William de Percy
-crossed to England just after the battle of Hastings, and
-received grants of land in Yorkshire. Agnes de Percy
-married Jocelin, Count of Louvain, and their son Henry
-took his mother's surname. From that year onward, the
-the Christian name of Henry was always given to the
-eldest son; there were fourteen Henry Percies!
-
-Even in these wild times the Percies were distinguished
-by the boldness of their spirits. One of the Counts of
-Louvain, grandfather of the first Henry Percy, shocked
-the men of his day by hanging some of his enemies with
-the church bell-ropes. It was not the hanging that was
-objected to—hanging was common enough; but the use
-of church-ropes for the purpose was thought very
-wicked!
-
-After they had rebuilt Alnwick Castle and settled down
-there, the Percies soon established their power in the
-North. At the coronation of Richard II., in 1377, a
-Henry Percy was Marshal of England, and he was then
-made Earl of Northumberland. His son, "Hotspur,"
-was the most famous of all the Percies. In their time, the
-battles of Otterbourne and Homildon Hill were fought.
-But they rebelled against Henry IV. and Hotspur was
-killed at the battle of Shrewsbury (1403), while his father
-was slain a few years later at Bramham Moor, his head
-set up on London Bridge, and quarters of his body on the
-gates of Berwick, Newcastle, Lincoln, and London, to
-discourage others from following in his footsteps!
-
-Henry, son of "Hotspur," was the second earl. He
-repaired and added to the castle and was present at the
-battle of Agincourt. It was not the habit of the Percies
-to die in their beds, and this one was killed in the Wars
-of the Roses, at the first battle of St Albans, in 1455.
-
-The fact of their having taken the losing Lancastrian
-side in these wars kept the family under a cloud for a
-number of years. One of them deserted Richard III. on
-Bosworth field in 1485; one of them was beheaded at
-York in 1572, for taking part in the "Rising of the
-North"; one of them was found shot in his bed in 1585,
-and another died in the Tower in 1632. So that the
-family could hardly be said to be quieting down.
-
-They sided with Parliament during the Civil War, but
-later on they favoured the Restoration. At last there
-came a time when there were no male heirs left in this
-great line, but only a daughter, Elizabeth. She married
-the Duke of Somerset, and had thirteen children, the
-eldest surviving of whom was created Earl of Northumberland
-in 1748. But he died the year after, leaving only
-a daughter, who had married a very able baronet, to
-whom was given the title of Duke of Northumberland
-in 1766. He very wisely took the surname of Percy,
-and again restored the castle of Alnwick, putting the
-family estates and affairs in good order. So that the
-Percies of Alnwick Castle are Dukes of Northumberland
-to this day.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Hexham and Queen Margaret`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XIV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Hexham and Queen Margaret
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The town of Hexham stands on the south bank
-of the Tyne, rising gradually up the hill and
-presenting a most picturesque appearance.
-About two miles above Hexham the North and the
-South Tyne meet, and the combined river is broad
-and noble, and the hills around Hexham give
-strength and beauty to the scene. The commanding
-appearance and central position of the priory church
-adds its note of dignity, and the total effect of the town
-is very pleasing to the eye.
-
-There is no doubt that from very early times there was
-a town in this fine natural position. The burial-grounds
-of primitive races have been discovered here, with stone
-and bronze implements. The Romans had a town here
-of some importance, although it was four miles south of
-their great wall. A Roman tombstone was discovered
-here, nine feet by three and a half feet, showing a Roman
-officer on horseback, overthrowing in fierce fight a
-savage and scowling foe. This fine relic is set up in the
-church, and is not the only thing to see there. The
-original church upon this spot was built in 674, in the
-reign of King Egfrid of Northumbria. Wilfrid, the
-very able and influential Bishop of York, was the
-man who presided at the building of it, and there
-were bishops at Hexham for a couple of centuries. In
-875 the Danes ruthlessly burnt the town; and nearly
-one thousand years later, in 1832, there was found buried
-in the ground a bronze vessel containing about nine
-thousand Saxon coins of the eighth and ninth century,
-evidently buried to protect this treasure from the
-invaders. Those who buried them were probably slain
-before they had time to dig them up again. There was a
-legend of another treasure hidden between Hexham and
-Corbridge, and King John came to Hexham in 1201 to
-search for it. He returned in 1208 and in 1212, but found
-nothing. Time passed, and this tale of hidden treasure
-ceased even to be local gossip, but in 1735 by accident it
-was found.
-
-The present handsome priory church must have been
-built about the time of King John's visits to Hexham.
-It is a noble building, well worth a visit. In 1725, when
-some work was being done in the church, a wonderful
-discovery was made. It was found that there was an
-old Saxon crypt, a narrow vault with several passages,
-underneath the church! This was so carefully hidden
-that it was evidently intended as a place of refuge in
-danger. It was built of Roman stones, several of which
-have Roman inscriptions.
-
-The Scots several times attacked Hexham. Once
-Sir William Wallace came there with his army, but he
-would not let his Scots damage the church, so that
-Hexham, on the whole, had a less stormy life than many
-of the Border towns, although in 1537, when Henry
-VIII. caused the monastery to be suppressed, the prior and
-five of the leading monks were hanged before the gates
-as a gentle reminder that they were to live there no
-longer.
-
-But by far the most stirring event in Hexham's history
-was the battle which raged there in 1464. The Wars of
-the Roses do not form a pleasing episode in English
-history. They were pitiless, and treachery was mingled
-with bloodshed; desertions and executions were the
-accompaniment of every battle. Edward IV. was coldly
-cruel and unscrupulous, one of the blackest figures of a
-black time. But romance centres round Queen Margaret,
-the dauntless and resourceful wife of the feeble King
-Henry VI., with whom Edward disputed the throne.
-She it was who, making up for her husband's weakness,
-urged ever bravely and hopefully the cause of her son.
-Thus she pressed on to the very end, till that son, worthy
-of his heroic mother, proudly answered the taunts of his
-base enemies, even though in their power, preferring
-speedy death to any lessening of his tragic dignity, and
-dying before the eyes of the successful and exultant
-Edward.
-
-In this fierce drama, Hexham was but an episode.
-The Lancastrians had scattered after their heavy defeat
-at Towton. Margaret in person had begged a little help
-of the King of Scotland, a little more of the King of
-France. The Borderland was favourable to her, and
-she gathered her forces together there, King Henry
-VI. staying in Alnwick Castle.
-
-Lord Montague, brother to the powerful but crafty
-Earl of Warwick, was warden of the East Marches for
-Edward, and he hastily collected the Yorkist forces. He
-was swift, able, and unscrupulous. He attacked a small
-body of Lancastrians on Hedgeley Moor, only ten miles
-from Alnwick, and defeated them, killing their leader,
-Sir Ralph Percy, son of Hotspur. As this gallant man
-died he consoled himself by saying, "I have saved the
-bird in my bosom," by which poetical phrase he meant
-that he had saved his honour by being true to his queen.
-In May the greater battle of Hexham was fought. King
-Henry was there in person, with the dauntless Queen
-Margaret and her son, and their brave general, the
-Duke of Somerset. They marched out of Hexham to
-attack Lord Montague; the battle began by the village
-of Linnels, on the south side of the Devil's Water, a
-stream that runs into the Tyne. The fight was
-desperate, for both sides knew that no quarter would
-be given. It is said by some that the Scots, having
-no interest in the war, deserted Margaret; anyway, bit
-by bit the Lancastrians were forced back, to the very
-streets of Hexham itself, two miles away. In these
-narrow streets, in the quarter that is still called Battle
-Hill, the last desperate fighters on the side of the Red
-Rose made their final and unavailing stand.
-
-At last the remnant fled, and no doubt many a
-Hexham maid and dame, at the risk of her own life or
-limb, hid that day some devoted follower of Margaret.
-
-The gallant Duke of Somerset was taken prisoner, and
-there and then was brought to the block in the
-market-place and beheaded. The cruel Montague had not the
-true soldier's respect for a brave enemy, whose blood thus
-mingled with that of his men. Other nobles were taken
-as prisoners to Newcastle, but Edward also was devoid
-of mercy, and all perished.
-
-.. _`The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-094.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham*
-
- *The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham*
-
-Till the last moment the queen hoped on. She was
-not daunted by scenes of strife and bloodshed. When
-defeat was an accomplished fact, she and her young son
-fled to the Dipton Woods, where they fell into the hands
-of rough men, some say a party of Yorkist stragglers.
-Whilst these men were eagerly dividing and quarrelling
-over the queen's jewels, she and the prince slipped away.
-Deeper into the dangerous woods they had to go, for
-worse than robbers were hunting for them around
-Hexham. Suddenly an outlaw stood in their path with
-drawn sword. Even after that day of stir and terror
-Margaret's courage did not fail her. She boldly declared
-to the man that she was the Queen of England, and with
-her was her only son. Now, if he chose to betray them
-he could do so; but if he had that natural nobility that
-hailed gladly great chances to do great deeds, now was his
-time to prove himself a man, and to save the ill-fated
-prince and his queen.
-
-The robber bowed before her as though she were on
-her throne, and as if the trees were her army around her.
-He swore to die a hundred deaths rather than betray his
-rightful sovereign and her prince. He honourably kept
-his word; and through his safe guidance and steady
-devotion, both queen and prince were able to join King
-Henry in Scotland, to which place he had safely escaped.
-
-Thus the bandit of Hexham proved himself to be a
-truer man than either Lord Montague, or Warwick, the
-King-maker, or King Edward IV. of England.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Fair Helen of Kirkconnell`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Fair Helen of Kirkconnell
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Very simple, very touching, is the story of fair
-Helen of Kirkconnell. This beautiful maiden
-had two lovers, one rich, one poor. Her friends
-favoured the rich one, she loved the poor one. She and
-her chosen lover used to meet secretly in the romantic
-churchyard of Kirkconnell, by the side of the river
-Kirtle. Learning this, the rejected lover crept up one
-evening, with his carbine, to shoot his luckier rival;
-Helen saw him at the moment of firing, and threw herself
-forward to receive the shot in her bosom, and so save her
-lover's life at the cost of her own.
-
-The ballad describing the grief of her lover is one of
-the most beautiful and touching pieces of poetry in
-existence, and must be given here entire.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- FAIR HELEN
-
-..
-
- | I wish I were where Helen lies;
- | Night and day on me she cries;
- | O that I were where Helen lies,
- | On fair Kirkconnell Lee!
-
- | Curst be the heart that thought the thought,
- | And curst the hand that shot the shot,
- | When in my arms burd Helen dropt,
- | And died to succour me.
-
- | O think ye not my heart was sair,
- | When my love dropt and spak nae mair!
- | There did she swoon wi' meikle care,
- | On fair Kirkconnell Lee.
-
- | As I went down the water-side,
- | None but my foe to be my guide,
- | None but my foe to be my guide,
- | On fair Kirkconnell Lee!
-
- | I lighted down my sword to draw,
- | I hacked him in pieces sma',
- | I hacked him in pieces sma',
- | For her sake that died for me.
-
- | O Helen fair beyond compare,
- | I'll make a garland of thy hair,
- | Shall bind my heart for evermair,
- | Until the day I die.
-
- | O that I were where Helen lies,
- | Night and day on me she cries;
- | Out of my bed she bids me rise,
- | Says, "Haste and come to me!"
-
- | O Helen fair! O Helen chaste!
- | If I were with thee, I were blest,
- | Where thou lies low, and takes thy rest,
- | On fair Kirkconnell Lee.
-
- | O that my grave were growing green,
- | A winding sheet drawn ower my een,
- | And I in Helen's arms were lying,
- | On fair Kirkconnell Lee!
-
- | I wish I were where Helen lies!
- | Night and day on me she cries,
- | And I am weary of the skies,
- | For her sake that died for me.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Johnie of Breadislee`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XVI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Johnie of Breadislee
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Johnie of Breadislee, outlaw and deer-stealer,
-was one of the "broken men," as they were
-called, the Ishmaels of the Border. Johnie rose
-up one May morning, and called for water to wash his
-hands. He ordered to be unleashed his good grey dogs,
-that were bound with iron chains. When his mother
-heard that he had called for the dogs, she wrung her hands.
-"O Johnie!" she cried, "for my blessing, do not go to
-the greenwood to-day. Ye have enough of good wheat
-bread, enough blood-red wine, therefore, Johnie, I pray,
-stir not from home for any venison." But despite his
-mother's tears, Johnie busked up his good bent bow, and
-his arrows, and went off to Durrisdeer to hunt down the
-dun deer. As he came by Merriemass he espied a deer
-lying beneath a bush of furze. Johnie let fly an arrow,
-and the deer leapt as the pitiless shaft found its mark,
-and between the water and the brae his good hounds
-"laid her pride." So Johnie cut up the venison, giving
-the liver and lungs to his faithful hounds, as if they had
-been earl's sons. With such zest did they eat and drink
-that Johnie and the dogs fell asleep, as if they had been
-dead. Then as they lay, there came by a silly old man,
-and, as soon as he saw the poachers, he ran away to
-Hislinton, where the Seven Foresters were. "What
-news?" they asked. "What news bring ye, ye
-grey-headed carle?" "I bring no news," said the grey-headed
-carle, "save what my eyes did see. As I came
-down by Merrimass among the stunted trees, the bonniest
-child I ever saw lay asleep among his dogs. The shirt
-upon his back was of fine Holland, his doubtlet, over that,
-was of Lincoln twine, his buttons were of the good gold,
-the mouths of his good grey hounds were dyed with blood."
-
-Now Johnie, like many another free-hearted outlaw,
-was a well-liked man. So the chief forester said, "If
-this be Johnie of Breadislee we will draw no nearer." But
-this was not the spirit of his men. Quoth the sixth
-Forester, "If it indeed be he, rather let us slay
-him." Cautiously they went through the thicket, and when they
-saw their man, asleep and helpless, they shot a flight
-of arrows. Johnie sprang up, sore wounded on the knee.
-The seventh forester cried out, "The next flight will
-kill him," but little chance did the outlaw give them for
-such an easy victory. He set his back against an oak
-and propped his wounded leg upon a stone; with bow
-or with sword he was a better man by far than any of his
-foes.
-
-In the short, sharp fight that followed, he killed six of
-the foresters, some with arrow, and some with steel;
-and when the seventh turned to flee, Johnie seized him
-from behind and threw him on to the ground with a force
-that broke three of his ribs. Then he laid him on his
-steed, and bade him carry the tidings home.
-
-.. _`Johnie of Breadislee.`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-100.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *Johnie of Breadislee*
-
- *Johnie of Breadislee*
-
-But Johnie himself was hurt to death. "Is there no
-bonnie singing bird," he cried, "that can fly to my
-mother's bower and tell her to fetch Johnie away?" A
-starling flew to his mother's window sill, and sang and
-whistled, and the burden of its tune was ever the same.
-"Johnie tarries long." So the men made a litter from
-rods of the hazel bush and of the thorn and fetched
-Johnie away. Then his old mother's tears flowed fast,
-and she said, "Ye would not be warned, my son Johnie,
-to bide away from the hunting. Oft have I brought to
-Breadislee the less or greater gear, but never what grieved
-my heart so sorely. But woe betide that silly old
-grey-headed carle! An ill death shall he die! The highest
-tree in Merriemass shall be his reward."
-
- | "Now Johnie's gude bent bow is brake,
- | And his gude grey dogs are slain,
- | And his body lies dead in Durrisdeer,
- | And his hunting it is done."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Katharine Janfarie`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XVII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Katharine Janfarie
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-This ballad is evidently the original of Sir
-Walter Scott's "Lochinvar," though Sir
-Walter reversed the names of the two leading
-male characters. In "Katharine Janfarie"
-Lochinvar plays the part of the craven bridegroom.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
- | There was a may,[#] and a weel-far'd may,
- | Lived high up in yon glen;
- | Her name was Katharine Janfarie,
- | She was courted by mony men.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] maiden.
-
-..
-
- | Up there came Lord Lauderdale,
- | Up frae the Lowland Border,
- | And he has come to court this may,
- | A' mounted in good order.
-
- | He told na her father, he told na her mother,
- | And he told na ane o' her kin,
- | But he whispered the bonnie lassie hersell,
- | And has her favour won.
-
- | But out there cam Lord Lochinvar,
- | Out frae the English Border,
- | All for to court this bonny may,
- | Weel mounted, and in order.
-
- | He told her father, he told her mother,
- | And a' the lave[#] o' her kin;
- | But he told na the bonny may hersell,
- | Till on her wedding e'en.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] rest.
-
-..
-
- | She sent to the Lord o' Lauderdale,
- | Gin[#] he wad come and see,
- | And he has sent back word again,
- | Weel answered he suld[#] be.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] if.
-[#] should.
-
-..
-
- | And he has sent a messenger
- | Right quickly through the land,
- | And raised mony an armed man
- | To be at his command.
-
- | The bride looked out at a high window,
- | Beneath baith dale and down,
- | And she was aware of her first true love,
- | With riders mony a one.
-
- | She scoffed him, and scorned him,
- | Upon her wedding-day;
- | And said, "It was the Fairy Court,
- | To see him in array!
-
- | "O come ye here to fight, young lord,
- | Or come ye here to play?
- | Or come ye here to drink good wine,
- | Upon the wedding-day?"
-
- | "I come na here to fight," he said,
- | "I come na here to play,
- | I'll but lead a dance wi' the bonny bride,
- | And mount, and go my way."
-
- | It is a glass of the blood-red wine
- | Was filled up them between,
- | And aye she drank to Lauderdale,
- | Wha[#] her true love had been.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] who.
-
-..
-
- | He's taen[#] her by the milk-white hand,
- | And by the grass-green sleeve;
- | He's mounted her hie behind himsell,
- | At her kinsmen speired[#] na leave.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] taken.
-[#] asked.
-
-..
-
- | "Now take your bride, Lord Lochinvar!
- | Now take her if ye may!
- | But if you take your bride again,
- | We'll call it but foul play."
-
- | There were four-and-twenty bonnie boys,
- | A' clad in the Johnstone grey;
- | They said they would take the bride again,
- | By the strong hand, if they may.
-
- | Some o' them were right willing men,
- | But they were na willing a';
- | And four-and-twenty Leader lads
- | Bid them mount and ride awa'.
-
- | Then whingers flew frae gentles' sides,
- | And swords flew frae the shea's,[#]
- | And red and rosy was the blood
- | Ran down the lily braes.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] sheathes.
-
-..
-
- | The blood ran down by Caddon bank,
- | And down by Caddon brae,
- | And, sighing, said the bonnie bride—
- | "O wae's me for foul play."
-
- | My blessing on your heart, sweet thing!
- | Wae to your wilfu' will!
- | There's mony a gallant gentleman
- | Whae's bluid ye have garred[#] to spill.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] caused.
-
-..
-
- | Now a' the lords of fair England,
- | And that dwell by the English Border,
- | Come never here to seek a wife,
- | For fear of sic[#] disorder.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] such.
-
-..
-
- | They'll track ye up, and settle ye bye,
- | Till on your wedding-day;
- | Then gie ye frogs instead of fish,
- | And play ye foul foul play.
-
-.. vspace:: 3
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- LOCHINVAR
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-In Sir Walter Scott's poem, Lochinvar is the hero,
-and the story has a happier ending. The song was
-supposed to have been sung to James IV. by Lady
-Heron at Holyrood shortly before the fatal battle of
-Flodden.
-
- | O young Lochinvar has come out of the west,
- | Through all the wide border his steel was the best;
- | And save his good broadsword, he weapons had none,
- | He rode all unarmed, and he rode all alone,
- | So faithful in love, and so dauntless in war,
- | There never was knight like the young Lochinvar.
-
- | He staid not for brake, and he stopped not for stone,
- | He swam the Eske river where ford there was none,
- | But ere he alighted at Netherby gate,
- | The bride had consented, the gallant came late;
- | For a laggard in love, and a dastard in war,
- | Was to wed the fair Ellen of brave Lochinvar.
-
- | So boldly he entered the Netherby Hall,
- | Among bride's men, and kinsmen, and brothers, and all,
- | Then spoke the bride's father, his hand on his sword
- | (For the poor craven bridegroom said never a word),
- | "O come ye in peace here, or come ye in war,
- | Or to dance at our bridal, young Lord Lochinvar?"
-
- | "I long wooed your daughter, my suit you denied;
- | Love swells like the Solway, but ebbs like its tide,
- | And now am I come, with this lost love of mine,
- | To lead but one measure, drink one cup of wine,
- | There are maidens in Scotland, more lovely by far,
- | That would gladly be bride to the young Lochinvar."
-
- | The bride kissed the goblet; the knight took it up,
- | He quaffed off the wine, and he threw down the cup.
- | She looked down to blush, and she looked up to sigh,
- | With a smile on her lips, and a tear in her eye.
- | He took her soft hand, ere her mother could bar,
- | "Now tread we a measure!" said young Lochinvar.
-
- | So stately her form, and so lovely her face,
- | That never a hall such a galliard did grace;
- | While her brother did fret, and her father did fume,
- | And the bridgroom stood dangling his bonnet and plume,
- | And the bride-maidens whispered, "'Twere better by far,
- | To have matched our fair cousin with young Lochinvar."
-
- | One touch to her hand, and one word in her ear,
- | When they reached the hall-door, and the charger stood near;
- | So light to the croupe the fair lady he swung,
- | So light to the saddle before her he sprung!
- | "She is won! we have gone over bank, bush, and scaur;
- | They'll have fleet steeds that follow," quoth young Lochinvar.
-
- | There was mounting 'mong Graemes of the Netherby clan;
- | Fosters, Fenwicks, and Musgraves, they rode and they ran,
- | There was racing and chasing, on Cannobie Lee,
- | But the lost bride of Netherby ne'er did they see.
- | So daring in love, and so dauntless in war,
- | Have ye e'er heard of gallant like young Lochinvar?
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`By Lauder Bridge`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XVIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- By Lauder Bridge
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The Ancient Royal Burgh of Lauder, a quaint
-little border town with hardly more than one
-street, is on the banks of the river Leader, on
-the high road between Edinburgh and Kelso. It stands
-very picturesquely, among the bold hills and fine woods
-of Berwickshire, and the valley is called Lauderdale,
-extending to where the Leader joins the Tweed, just
-below Melrose. Peacefully beautiful is the spot; and
-yet it was once the scene of a harsh, grim tragedy.
-
-It was in the reign of King James III. of Scotland,
-who offended his subjects in two particulars.
-
-First, to get wealth for himself, he mixed brass and lead
-with his silver money, and put it into circulation as pure
-silver; next, he chose favourites from the common people,
-and set these above the proud noblemen of Scotland.
-
-This latter would not have been so bad a fault if the
-king had always chosen wisely; but, as often in such
-cases, he was led by flatterers rather than by worthy men.
-
-In 1482 the king declared war against England, and,
-as in these warlike days the nobles were the leaders
-of the army, this brought the discontented lords
-together.
-
-When the Scottish army reached Lauder in their
-southward march, the proud nobles met in Lauder
-church; all were angry with the king, yet each was
-afraid to make the first move. So Lord Gray told them
-a mocking fable.
-
-"Do you remember," said he, "how all the mice got
-together and agreed that it would be a splendid thing if a
-bell were hung round the cat's neck, so that wherever
-she went she could be heard; the only difficulty was
-to find a mouse to bell the cat!"
-
-These warlike nobles did not like to be spoken of
-as if they were mice, and it roused them to deeper rage.
-
-Then out spoke Archibald Douglas, Earl of Angus, the
-head of the younger branch of the Douglas family.
-"Trust me, I'll bell the cat!"
-
-There was a knock at the door; Cochrane, the architect,
-whom the nobles said had been a mason, but was now the
-king's chief favourite, entered, dressed in black velvet,
-with a heavy chain of gold round his neck, a horn of gold
-tipped with precious stones, and all his attire of the
-costliest. Angus caught the chain in his hands and said,
-"A rope would suit that neck better!"
-
-Then the nobles laid violent hands on all the king's
-low-born favourites and hanged them by the bridge of
-Lauder, in front of the king's very eyes! Cochrane
-was proud and brave to the last. He said that as the
-king had made him an earl he should be hanged with a
-rope made of silk; little did the nobles care for his
-protests, the halter of a horse was in their opinion good
-enough for him.
-
-From this time onward the headstrong Earl of
-Angus was known by the nick-name of "Bell-the-Cat." It
-may be taken for granted that neither he nor
-the nobles who supported him would have dared to
-act so arrogantly and violently unless they felt quite
-sure that the king had not the power to punish them.
-He returned sullenly to Edinburgh, more the captive
-of the nobles than their master.
-
-A parliament appointed the Duke of Albany lieutenant-general
-of the kingdom, but he in turn soon lost favour,
-for he was suspected of too great a friendship for Edward
-IV., King of England, and fled for safety to France,
-giving James another chance to govern his kingdom for
-himself.
-
-This weak and unhappy monarch, however, was not
-destined to have much peace. Before very long,
-another quarrel with his nobles led to their taking up
-arms with a view of deposing him and placing his son on
-the throne. The king and his nobles met in battle near
-Stirling, but, at the very beginning of the fight, James
-was thrown from his horse and stabbed by a soldier,
-whose name remained unknown. Thus died this weak
-but amiable and unfortunate king.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Battle of Flodden Field`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XIX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Battle of Flodden Field
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-One of the most tragic episodes in the History
-of the Borders was the battle of Flodden Field,
-when the flower of the Scottish nobility fell
-around their sovereign, James IV., while fighting against
-the English under Surrey.
-
-The causes of the war were many. Henry of England
-refused to give up the jewels which had been promised
-as the dowry of his sister Margaret on her marriage with
-James IV.
-
-The Lord High Admiral of England, Sir Edmund
-Howard, had attacked and taken two Scottish ships, and
-slain their captain, Sir Andrew Barton. James, who
-was fond of Barton, demanded redress, but Henry
-insolently replied that kings should not quarrel about
-pirates.
-
-But the immediate cause was the friendship between
-France and Scotland. Henry was preparing for war
-with France, and James stood by his ally, declaring that
-if Henry warred with France, he would lead an army
-into England. The Queen of France sent James a
-turquoise ring, asking him to carry out his threat to
-serve her interests.
-
-James had been warned that his action would have
-terrible consequences. A man appeared to him at
-Linlithgow, clad in a long blue gown, with bare head, and
-carrying a pikestaff, and having told the king that his
-dead mother had sent him to warn him not to go to
-war against England, he disappeared as suddenly as he
-had come.
-
-Also at the dead of night a voice had been heard
-proclaiming aloud at the market Cross in Edinburgh the
-names of those who, within forty days, would be no more.
-It was thought at the time that these happenings were
-instigated by Queen Margaret, but the king still
-persisted in his policy, and led his army across the Border,
-in spite of the warnings of his counsellors and his queen.
-
-A fine description of his army is given by Sir Walter
-Scott, when Lord Marmion watches the scene from
-Blackford Hill.
-
-
- | "Thousand pavilions, white as snow,
- | Spread all the Borough-moor below,
- | Upland, and dale, and down:—
- | A thousand, did I say? I ween,
- | Thousands and thousands, there were seen,
- | That chequer'd all the heath between
- | The streamlet and the town;
- | In crossing ranks extending far,
- | Forming a camp irregular;
- | Oft giving way, where still there stood
- | Some relics of the old oak wood,
- | That darkly huge did intervene,
- | And tamed the glaring white with green,
- | In these extended lines there lay,
- | A martial kingdom's vast array.
-
- | For from Hebudes, dark with rain,
- | To eastern Lodon's fertile plain,
- | And from the southern Redswire edge,
- | To farthest Rosse's rocky ledge,
- | From west to east, from south to north,
- | Scotland sent all her warriors forth,
- | Marmion might hear the mingled hum,
- | Of myriads up the mountain come;
- | The horses' tramp, and tingling clank,
- | Where chiefs reviewed their vassal rank,
- | And charger's shrilling neigh;
- | And see the shifting lines advance
- | Whilst frequent flash'd, from shield and lance,
- | The sun's reflected ray.
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | They saw, slow rolling on the plain,
- | Full many a baggage-cart and wain,
- | And dire artillery's clumsy car.
- | By sluggish oxen tugg'd to war;
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | Nor mark'd they less, where in the air
- | A thousand streamers flaunted fair,
- | Various in shape, device, and hue,
- | Green, sanguine, purple, red, and blue,
- | Broad, narrow, swallow-tailed, and square,
- | Scroll, pennon, pensil, bandrol,[#] there
- | O'er the pavilions flew.
- | Highest and midmost, was descried
- | The royal banner floating wide;
- | The staff, a pine-tree, strong and straight,
- | Pitch'd deeply in a massive stone,
- | Which still in memory is shown,
- | Yet bent beneath the standard's weight.
- | Whene'er the western breeze unroll'd,
- | With toil, the huge and cumbrous fold,
- | And gave to view the dazzling field,
- | Where, in proud Scotland's royal shield,
- | The ruddy lion ramp'd in gold."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Each feudal ensign intimated the rank of those who displayed
-them.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Marmion wondered that with such a glorious army at
-his back anyone should try to dissuade James from
-battle, yet Sir David Lindesay of the Mount answered
-him,
-
- | "'twere good
- | That Kings would think withal,
- | When peace and wealth their land has bless'd,
- | 'Tis better to sit still at rest,
- | Than rise, perchance to fall."
- |
-
-Men-at-arms were there, sheathed in plate armour,
-with battle-axe and spear, and mounted on Flemish
-steeds. Young knights and squires practised their
-chargers on the plain. Hardy burghers marched on
-foot, armed with long pikes and two-handed swords and
-bright bucklers.
-
-The yeoman, too, was on foot, dressed in steel-jack
-quilted well with iron, and bearing at his back,
-provisions for forty days. He seemed sad of cheer, and
-loth to leave his humble cottage, wondering who would
-till the land during his absence.
-
-There, too, was the Borderer:—
-
- | "bred to war,
- | He knew the battle's din afar,
- | And joy'd to hear it swell.
- | His peaceful day was slothful ease,
- | Nor harp nor pipe his ear could please
- | Like the loud slogan yell."
-
-for
-
- | "War's the Borderer's game,
- | Their gain, their glory, their delight,
- | To sleep the day, maraud the night,
- | O'er mountain, moss, and moor."
-
-.. _`Flodden Field`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-116.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *Flodden Field*
-
- *Flodden Field*
-
-There, too, were the Celts, with savage eyes looking
-out wildly through red and sable hair, with sinewy
-frames and legs bare above the knees, their chiefs known
-by the eagle's plumage. They wore the skin of the red
-deer, a graceful bonnet, and a plaid hung from the
-shoulders, and carried as weapons a broadsword, a
-dagger, and quivers, bows, and shafts.
-
-The Isles-men, too, were there, carrying the ancient
-Danish battle-axe. While the army was mustering
-together, James feasted the chiefs in Holyrood Palace,
-for at dawn they were to march southward.
-
- | "Well loved that splendid monarch aye
- | The banquet and the song,
- | By day the tourney, and by night
- | The merry dance, traced fast and light,
- | The maskers quaint, the pageant bright,
- | The revel loud and long.
- | This feast outshone his banquets past;
- | It was his blithest and his last."
-
- | And hazel was his eagle eye,
- | And auburn of the darkest dye,
- | His short curl'd beard and hair.
- | Light was his footstep in the dance,
- | And firm his stirrup in the lists;
- | And oh! he had that merry glance,
- | That seldom lady's heart resists."
- |
-
-Yet no fair lady was as dear to James as his own
-Queen Margaret, who sat alone in the tower of Linlithgow
-weeping for the war against her native country, and for
-the danger of her lord.
-
-On the morrow, James marched south, crossed the
-Tweed, and encamped on the banks of the Till, near
-Twisel Bridge. The Scottish army moved down the side
-of the Tweed to Flodden Hill taking Norham Castle, and
-the Border towns of Etal, Wark, and Ford. Much time
-was wasted in these petty enterprises, time which should
-have been spent in marching to Newcastle before the
-English were prepared to offer resistance. When the
-castle of Ford was stormed, Lady Heron, wife of Sir
-William Heron, then a prisoner in Scotland, was taken,
-and this beautiful and artful woman induced James to
-idle away his time until all chance was lost of defeating
-the enemy.
-
-The army suffered severely from want of provisions,
-and many of the Highlanders and Isles-men returned
-home, many who had come only for booty, deserted,
-and the numbers were reduced to about thirty
-thousand.
-
-Meanwhile, the Earl of Surrey had raised twenty-six
-thousand men, and received other enforcements as he
-came north from Durham. He therefore challenged
-James to fight, and charged him with violating the
-treaty of peace between the two kingdoms.
-
-The Scottish nobles were unwilling to fight, and said it
-was impossible to remain in a country so plundered;
-also, if fight the king must, he would fight to much
-greater advantage in his own country, to whose welfare
-the loss of this battle would be fatal; while he had
-sufficiently indicated his honour by crossing the Border.
-
-James would not listen to the counsel of his nobles,
-though even the aged Earl of Angus expostulated with
-him. To this old warrior he angrily said, "Angus, if you
-are afraid, you may go home," at which insult the aged
-Earl burst into tears.
-
-The English army crossed the Till by Twisel Bridge
-and pressed on while the Scottish army stood idly by,
-the Scottish nobles in vain entreating the king to attack
-the English while they were crossing.
-
-When the English army had drawn up in order of
-battle on the left bank of the river, the Scots, setting fire
-to their temporary huts, came down the ridge of Flodden.
-The clouds of smoke from the burning huts were driven
-into the face of the English, so that the Scots had got to
-within a quarter of a mile of them before they perceived
-them.
-
- | "No martial shout, nor minstrel tone,
- | Announced their march; their tread alone,
- | At times one warning trumpet blown,
- | At times a stifled hum,
- | Told England, from his mountain-throne,
- | King James did rushing come:
- | Scarce could they hear or see their foes
- | Until at weapon-point they close."
- |
-
-With clanging blows and arrows that fell like rain, with
-yelling and clamour and sword-sway and lance-thrust,
-the battle continued until the evening, and when even
-fell, the Scots still fought in an unbroken ring round their
-king. But when darkness came, and Surrey withdrew
-his men, the flower of Scotland's chivalry had fallen, and
-the king lay dead on the field.
-
- | "Afar, the royal standard flies,
- | And round it toils and bleeds and dies.
- | Our Caledonian pride!"
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | But yet, though thick the shafts as now,
- | Though charging knights like whirlwinds go,
- | Though billmen ply the ghastly bow,
- | Unbroken was the ring.
- | The stubborn spearmen still made good
- | Their dark impenetrable wood,
- | Each stepping where his comrade stood
- | The instant that he fell.
- | No thought was there of dastard flight:
- | Link'd in the serried phalanx tight,
- | Groom fought like noble, squire like knight,
- | As fearlessly and well;
- | Till utter darkness closed her wing
- | O'er their thin host and wounded King.
- | Then skilful Surrey's sage commands
- | Led back from strife his shattered bands;
- | And from the charge they drew,
- | As mountain-waves, from wasted lands,
- | Sweep back to ocean blue.
- | Then did their loss his foemen know;
- | Their King, their lords, their mightiest low,
- | They melted from the field as snow,
- | When streams are swoln and south winds blow
- | Dissolves in silent dew.
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | Still from the sire the son shall hear
- | Of the stern fight and carnage drear
- | Of Flodden's fatal field,
- | Where shiver'd was fair Scotland's spear,
- | And broken was her shield!
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | And well in death his trusty brand,
- | Firm clench'd within his manly hand
- | Beseem'd the Monarch slain."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`After Flodden`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- After Flodden
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-So deeply did the tragic result of Flodden touch
-the hearts of the Scottish people that no Scot
-could for many a long day hear it mentioned
-without a heart-thrill.
-
-Many are the songs written about it, the most famous
-perhaps, being the "Flowers of the Forest," written
-two centuries later, though partly founded upon an older
-and almost forgotten song.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- THE FLOWERS OF THE FOREST
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
- | I've heard them lilting, at our ewe-milking,
- | Lasses a' lilting, before dawn o' day;
- | But now they are moaning on ilka green loaning[#]
- | The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] a broad grassy lane used as milking-ground.
-
-..
-
- | At bughts, in the morning, nae blythe lads are scorning;[#]
- | The lasses are lonely, and dowie, and wae;
- | Wae daffing,[#] nae gabbing,[#] but sighing and sabbing;
- | Ilk ane lifts her leglin,[#] and hies her away.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] rallying.
-[#] joking.
-[#] chatting.
-[#] milking-pail.
-
-..
-
- | In hair'st, at the shearing, nae youths now are jeering,
- | The bandsters[#] are runkled,[#] and lyart[#] or gray;
- | At fair, or at preaching, nae wooing, nae fleeching;[#]
- | The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] sheaf-binders.
-[#] wrinkled.
-[#] inclining to grey.
-[#] coaxing.
-
-..
-
- | At e'en, in the gloaming, nae younkers are roaming
- | 'Bout stacks with the lasses at bogle to play;
- | But ilk maid sits dreary, lamenting her deary—
- | The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away.
-
- | Dool and wae for the order, sent our lads to the Border!
- | The English, for ance, by guile wan the day:
- | The Flowers of the Forest, that fought aye the foremost,
- | The prime of our land, are cauld in the clay.
-
- | We'll hear nae mair lilting at the ewe-milking;
- | Women and bairns are heartless and wae:
- | Sighing and moaning on ilka green loaning—
- | The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away.
- | JEAN ELLIOT (1727-1805).
- |
-
-The following poem also gives eloquent and touching
-expression to the deep gloom which descended upon
-the Border after the fatal battle, and tells of the despair
-felt in almost every Ettrick home:—
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- SELKIRK AFTER FLODDEN
-
-.. class:: center
-
- (A WIDOW'S DIRGE, OCTOBER 1513)
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
- | It's but a month the morn
- | Sin' a' was peace and plenty;
- | Oor hairst was halflins shorn,
- | Eident men and lasses denty.
- | But noo it's a' distress—
- | Never mair a merry meetin ';
- | For half the bairns are faitherless,
- | And a' the women greetin'.
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | Miles and miles round Selkirk toun,
- | Where forest flow'rs are fairest,
- | Ilka lassie's stricken doun,
- | Wi' the fate that fa's the sairest.
- | A' the lads they used to meet
- | By Ettrick braes or Yarrow
- | Lyin' thrammelt head and feet
- | In Brankstone's deadly barrow!
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | Frae every cleuch and clan
- | The best o' the braid Border
- | Rose like a single man
- | To meet the royal order.
- | Oor Burgh toun itsel'
- | Sent its seventy doun the glen;
- | Ask Fletcher[#] how they fell,
- | Bravely fechtin', ane to ten!
- | O Flodden Field!
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] This was the man who brought an English flag back to Selkirk
-from Flodden. Four brothers of that name are said to have perished
-in the battle.
-
-..
-
- | Round about their gallant king,
- | For country and for croun,
- | Stude the dauntless Border ring,
- | Till the last was hackit doun.
- | I blame na what has been—
- | They maun fa' that canna flee—
- | But oh, to see what I hae seen,
- | To see what now I see!
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | The souters a' fu' croose,
- | O'er their leather and their lingle,
- | Wi' their shoon in ilka hoose,
- | Sat contentit round the ingle.
- | Noo there's naething left but dool,—
- | Never mair their work will cheer them;
- | In Flodden's bluidy pool
- | They'll neither wait nor wear them!
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | Whar the weavers used to meet,
- | In ilka bieldy corner,
- | Noo there's nane in a' the street,
- | Savin' here and there a mourner,
- | Walkin' lonely as a wraith,
- | Or if she meet anither,
- | Just a word below their braith
- | O' some slauchtered son or brither!
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | There stands the gudeman's loom
- | That used tae gang sae cheerie,
- | Untentit noo, and toom,
- | Makin' a' the hoose sae eerie,
- | Till the sicht I canna dree;
- | For the shuttles lyin' dumb
- | Speak the loudlier to me
- | O' him that wunna come.
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | Sae at nicht I cover't o'er,
- | Just to haud it frae my een,
- | But I haena yet the pow'r
- | To forget what it has been;
- | And I listen through the hoose
- | For the chappin o' the lay,
- | Till the scrapin' o' a moose
- | Tak's my very braith away.
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | Then I turn to sister Jean,
- | And my airms aboot her twine,
- | And I kiss her sleepless een,
- | For her heart's as sair as mine,—
- | A heart ance fu' o' fun,
- | And hands that ne'er were idle,
- | Wi' a' her cleedin' spun
- | Against her Jamie's bridal.
- | O Flodden Field!
-
- | Noo we've naether hands nor hairt—
- | In oor grief the wark's forgotten,
- | Though it's wantit every airt,
- | And the craps are lyin' rotten.
- | War's awsome blast's gane bye,
- | And left a land forlorn;
- | In daith's dool hairst they lie,
- | The shearers and the shorn.
- | O Flodden Field.
-
- | Wi' winter creepin' near us,
- | When the nichts are drear and lang,
- | Nane to help us, nane to hear us,
- | On the weary gate we gang!
- | Lord o' the quick an' deed,
- | Sin' oor ain we canna see,
- | In mercy mak gude speed,
- | And bring us whar they be,
- | Far, far, frae Flodden Field!
- | "J. B. Selkirk" (JAMES B. BROWN).
- | *By permission of W. Cuthbertson, Esq.*
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Another lyric, relating to the fatal battle of Flodden,
-refers to the gallantry of the Souters, or shoemakers of
-Selkirk, who, to the number of eighty, and headed by
-their town-clerk, joined the army as it entered England.
-They distinguished themselves greatly, and few returned.
-The "yellow and green" are the liveries of the house
-of Home, taxed by some with being the cause of the
-defeat.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- THE SOUTERS OF SELKIRK
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-..
-
- | Up wi' the Souters of Selkirk,
- | And doun wi' the Earl of Home;
- | And up wi' a' the braw lads
- | That sew the single-soled shoon.
-
- | Fye upon yellow and yellow,
- | And fye upon yellow and green,
- | But up wi' the true blue and scarlet,
- | And up wi' the single-soled sheen.
-
- | Up wi' the Souters of Selkirk,
- | For they are baith trusty and leal;
- | And up wi' the men o' the Forest,
- | And doun wi' the Merse to the deil.
- |
-
-In Aytoun's "Lays of the Scottish Cavaliers," the
-following well-known poem tells how the news of the
-disaster at Flodden Field was received in Edinburgh:—
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- EDINBURGH AFTER FLODDEN
-
-.. class:: center
-
- \I
-
-..
-
- | News of battle! news of battle!
- | Hark! 'tis ringing down the street:
- | And the archways and the pavement
- | Bear the clang of hurrying feet.
- | News of battle! Who hath brought it?
- | News of triumph! Who should bring
- | Tidings from our noble army,
- | Greetings from our gallant King?
- | All last night we watched the beacons
- | Blazing on the hills afar,
- | Each one bearing, as it kindled,
- | Message of the opened war.
- | All night long the northern streamers
- | Shot across the trembling sky:
- | Fearful lights that never beckon
- | Save when kings or heroes die.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- II
-
-..
-
- | News of battle! Who hath brought it?
- | All are thronging to the gate;
- | "Warder—warder! open quickly!
- | Man—is this a time to wait?"
- | And the heavy gates are opened;
- | Then a murmur long and loud,
- | And a cry of fear and wonder
- | Bursts from out the bending crowd.
- | For they see in battered harness
- | Only one hard-stricken man;
- | And his weary steed is wounded,
- | And his cheek is pale and wan.
- | Spearless hangs a bloody banner
- | In his weak and drooping hand—
- | God! can that be Randolph Murray,
- | Captain of the city band?
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- III
-
-..
-
- | Round him crush the people, crying,
- | "Tell us all—oh, tell us true!
- | Where are they who went to battle,
- | Randolph Murray, sworn to you?
- | Where are they, our brothers—children?
- | Have they met the English foe?
- | Why art thou alone, unfollowed?
- | Is it weal, or is it woe?"
- | Like a corpse the grisly warrior
- | Looks from out his helm of steel;
- | But no word he speaks in answer—
- | Only with his armèd heel
- | Chides his weary steed, and onward
- | Up the city streets they ride;
- | Fathers, sisters, mothers, children,
- | Shrieking, praying by his side.
- | "By the God that made thee, Randolph!
- | Tell us what mischance hath come."
- | Then he lifts his riven banner,
- | And the asker's voice is dumb.
-
-.. _`"Tell us all—oh, tell us true!"`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-126.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: "*Tell us all—oh, tell us true!*"
-
- "*Tell us all—oh, tell us true!*"
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- IV
-
-..
-
- | The elders of the city
- | Have met within their hall—
- | The men whom good King James had charged
- | To watch the tower and wall.
- | "Your hands are weak with age," he said,
- | "Your hearts are stout and true;
- | So bide ye in the maiden town,
- | While others fight for you.
- | My trumpet from the Border-side
- | Shall send a blast so clear,
- | That all who wait within the gate
- | That stirring sound may hear.
- | Or, if it be the will of Heaven
- | That back I never come,
- | And if, instead of Scottish shout,
- | Ye hear the English drum,
- | Then let the warning bells ring out,
- | Then gird you to the fray,
- | Then man the walls like burghers stout,
- | And fight while fight you may.
- | 'Twere better that in fiery flame
- | The roofs should thunder down,
- | Than that the foot of foreign foe
- | Should trample in the town!"
-
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- \V
-
-..
-
- | Then in came Randolph Murray,
- | His step was slow and weak,
- | And, as he doffed his dinted helm,
- | The tears ran down his cheek:
- | They fell upon his corslet
- | And on his mailed hand,
- | As he gazed around him wistfully,
- | Leaning sorely on his brand.
- | And none who then beheld him
- | But straight were smote with fear,
- | For a bolder and a sterner man
- | Had never couched a spear.
- | They knew so sad a messenger
- | Some ghastly news must bring;
- | And all of them were fathers,
- | And their sons were with the King.
-
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- VI
-
-..
-
- | And up then rose the Provost—
- | A brave old man was he,
- | Of ancient name, and knightly fame,
- | And chivalrous degree.
- | He ruled our city like a Lord
- | Who brooked no equal here,
- | And ever for the townsmen's rights
- | Stood up 'gainst prince and peer.
- | And he had seen the Scottish host
- | March from the Borough muir,
- | With music-storm and clamorous shout,
- | And all the din that thunders out
- | When youth's of victory sure.
- | But yet a dearer thought had he;—
- | For, with a father's pride,
- | He saw his last remaining son
- | Go forth by Randolph's side,
- | With casque on head and spur on heel,
- | All keen to do and dare;
- | And proudly did that gallant boy
- | Dunedin's banner bear.
- | Oh! woeful now was the old man's look,
- | And he spake right heavily—
- | "Now, Randolph, tell thy tidings,
- | However sharp they be!
- | Woe is written on thy visage,
- | Death is looking from thy face;
- | Speak! though it be of overthrow—
- | It cannot be disgrace!"
-
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- VII
-
-..
-
- | Right bitter was the agony
- | That wrung that soldier proud;
- | Thrice did he strive to answer,
- | And thrice he groaned aloud.
- | Then he gave the riven banner
- | To the old man's shaking hand,
- | Saying—"That is all I bring ye
- | From the bravest of the land!
- | Ay! ye may look upon it—
- | It was guarded well and long,
- | By your brothers and your children,
- | By the valiant and the strong.
- | One by one they fell around it,
- | As the archers laid them low,
- | Grimly dying, still unconquered,
- | With their faces to the foe.
- | Ay! ye may well look upon it—
- | There is more than honour there,
- | Else, be sure, I had not brought it
- | From the field of dark despair.
- | Never yet was royal banner
- | Steeped in such a costly dye;
- | It hath lain upon a bosom
- | Where no other shroud shall lie.
- | Sirs! I charge you, keep it holy;
- | Keep it as a sacred thing,
- | For the stain ye see upon it
- | Was the life-blood of your King!"
-
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- VIII
-
-..
-
- | Woe and woe and lamentation!
- | What a piteous cry was there!
- | Widows, maidens, mothers, children,
- | Shrieking, sobbing in despair!
- | Through the streets the death-word rushes,
- | Spreading terror, sweeping on.
- | "Jesu Christ! our King has fallen—
- | O Great God, King James is gone!
- | Holy mother Mary, shield us,
- | Thou who erst did lose thy Son!
- | O the blackest day for Scotland
- | That she ever knew before!
- | O our King—the good, the noble,
- | Shall we see him never more?
- | Woe to us, and woe to Scotland!
- | O our sons, our sons and men!
- | Surely some have 'scaped the Southron,
- | Surely some will come again!"
- |
-
-Randolph Murray describes how the monarch lies
-dead on the field with his nobles round him.
-
- | "All so thick they lay together,
- | When the stars lit up the sky,
- | That I knew not who were stricken,
- | Or who yet remained to die."
- |
-
-A hollow knell is rung and the miserere is sung,
-and all is terror and disorder until the Provost rouses
-them.
-
- | "If our King be taken from us,
- | We are left to guard his son.
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | Up! and haste ye through the city,
- | Stir the burghers stout and true!
- | Gather all our scattered people,
- | Fling the banner out once more—
- | Randolph Murray! do thou bear it,
- | As it erst was borne before:
- | Never Scottish heart will leave it,
- | When they see their monarch's gore!"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Graeme and Bewick`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Graeme and Bewick
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Good Lord Graeme and Sir Robert Bewick were
-friends. They met one day in Carlisle, and
-went arm in arm to the wine, and, as was too
-oft the custom of these days, they stayed and drank till
-they were both merry. Good Lord Graeme took up the
-cup. "Sir Robert, and here's to thee!" he said, "and
-here's to our two sons at home, for they like us best in
-our own country."
-
-"O were your son a lad like mine," answered Bewick,
-boastfully, "and learnt some books that he could read,
-they might be two brothers in arms, and lord it over the
-Borderside.
-
- | 'But your son's a lad, and he's but bad,
- | And billie[#] to my son he cannot be.'
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Comrade, or brother-in-arms.
-
-..
-
-You sent him to school, and he would not learn; you
-bought him books, and he would not read!"
-
-Lord Graeme called angrily for the reckoning. "My
-blessing shall he never earn," said he, "till I see how his
-arm can defend his head." He threw down a crown,
-and went to the stable, took his horse, and rode home.
-"Welcome, my old father," said his son, Christie Graeme,
-"but where were ye so long from home?" "I have
-been at Carlisle town, and a shamed man I am by thee,"
-answered his father with a black look; "I have been at
-Carlisle town, where Sir Robert Bewick met me. He
-says you are but a bad, wild youth, and can never be
-billie to his boy. I sent you to the school, and you would
-not learn. I bought you books, and you would not read;
-therefore you shall never have my blessing till I see
-you save your head in fight with young Bewick." "Now
-God forbid, my old father, that ever such a thing should
-be! Billie Bewick was my master, and I his scholar, in
-spite of the pains he wasted in teaching me." "O hold
-thy tongue, thou foolish lad! If thou dost not soon end
-this quarrel, there's my glove, I'll fight with thee myself."
-
-Then Christie Graeme stooped low. "Father, put on
-your glove again, the wind has blown it from your hand."
-
- | "What's that, thou sayst, thou limmer loon?
- | How darest thou stand to speak to me?
- | If thou do not end this quarrel soon,
- | There's my right hand, thou'lt fight with me!"
- |
-
-Then went Christie to his chamber, to consider what
-should happen. Should he fight with his own father, or
-with his brother-in-arms, Bewick?
-
- | "If I should kill my billie dear,
- | God's blessing I shall never win;
- | But if I strike at my auld father,
- | I think 'twould be a mortal sin.
- | But if I kill my billie dear
- | It is God's will, so let it be;
- | But I make a vow, ere I go from home,
- | That I shall be the next man's die."
-
-He put a good old jack or quilted doublet on his back,
-and on his head he put a cap of steel, and well did he
-become them with his sword and buckler by his side!
-
-Now young Bewick had taken his father's sword under
-his arm, and walked about his father's close. He looked
-between himself and the sun, to see some approaching
-object, and was aware of a man in bright armour, riding
-that way most hastily.
-
- | "O who is yon, that comes this way,
- | So hastily that hither came?
- | I think it be my brother dear,
- | I think it be young Christie Graeme.
- | Your welcome here, my billie dear,
- | And thrice you're welcome unto me."
- |
-
-Christie explained that he was come to fight, that his
-father had been to Carlisle, and had met with the elder
-Bewick. He retailed what had passed, "and so I'll never
-earn my father's blessing, till he sees how my arm can
-guard my head in fight against thee."
-
- | "O God forbid, my billie dear,
- | That ever such a thing should be!
- | We'll take three men on either side,
- | And see if we can our fathers agree."
- |
-
-Christie shook his head. He knew that it was useless.
-"O hold thy tongue, billie Bewick. If thou'rt a man, as
-I'm sure thou art, come over the dyke and fight with me."
-
-"But I have no harness, billie, as I see you have."
-
-"As little harness as is on your back shall be on mine."
-
-With that Christie threw off his coat of mail and cap of
-steel, stuck his spear into the ground, and tied his horse
-up to a tree. Bewick threw off his cloak, and cast aside
-his psalter book. He laid his hand upon the dyke, and
-vaulted over. The two fought for two long hours. The
-sweat dropped fast from them both, but not a drop of
-blood could be seen to satisfy the requirements of honour.
-At last Graeme hit Bewick under the left breast, and he
-fell to the ground wounded mortally.
-
- | "Rise up, rise up, now, billie dear,
- | Arise and speak three words to me!
- | Whether thou's gotten thy deadly wound,
- | Or if God and good leeching[#] may succour thee?"
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Doctoring.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-Bewick groaned. "Get to horse, billie Graeme, and
-get thee hence speedily. Get thee out of this country—that
-none may know who has done this." "O have I
-slain thee, billie Bewick? But I made a vow, ere I
-came from home, that I would be the next man to
-die!" Thereupon he pitched his sword hilt downwards into a
-mole-hill, took a run of some three and twenty feet, and
-on his own sword's point he fell to the ground dead.
-
-Then up came Sir Robert Bewick. "Rise up, my
-son," he said, "for I think you have got the victory."
-
-"O hold your tongue, my father dear. Let me be
-spared your prideful talking. You might have drunken
-your wine in peace, and let me and my billie be! Go
-dig a grave, both wide and deep, and a grave to hold us
-both; but lay Christie Graeme on the sunny side, for
-full sure I know that the victory was to him."
-
-"Alas," cried old Bewick, "I've lost the liveliest
-lad that ever was born unto my name." "Alas," quoth
-good Lord Graeme, "my loss is the greater.
-
- | 'I've lost my hopes, I've lost my joy,
- | I've lost the key, but and the lock;
- | I durst have ridden the world around,
- | Had Christie Graeme been at my back!'"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Song of the Outlaw Murray`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Song of the Outlaw Murray
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "Word is gone to our noble king,
- | In Edinburgh where that he lay,
- | That there was an Outlaw in Ettrick Forest
- | Counted him nought, nor all his Court so gay."
- |
-
-The King mentioned in the ballad is supposed
-to have been either James IV. or James V.
-This places the date somewhere in the early
-part of the sixteenth century.
-
-The Outlaw Murray and his lady kept royal state in
-Ettrick Forest. Here he lived with five hundred men,
-all gaily clad in livery of Lincoln green. His castle,
-built of lime and stone, stood fair and pleasantly in the
-midst of the Forest, surrounded by pine trees under
-which wandered many a hart and hind, many a doe and
-roe and other wild creatures. In the forefront of the
-castle stood two unicorns, with the picture of a knight
-and lady with green holly above their brows.
-
-The King in Edinburgh heard of all this royal state
-and that the Outlaw in Ettrick Forest cared nought for
-the King of Scotland and his court.
-
-"I make a vow," said the King, "that either I shall be
-King of Ettrick Forest, or the Outlaw shall be King of
-Scotland."
-
-Then up spoke Lord Hamilton to the noble King, "my
-sovereign prince, take counsel of your nobles and of me.
-I counsel ye to send to the fine Outlaw and see if he will
-come and be your man and hold the Forest in fee from
-you. If he refuse, we will conquer both him and his
-lands, throw his castle down, and make a widow of his
-gay lady."
-
-Then the King called to him James Boyd, son of the
-Earl of Arran, and when Boyd came and knelt before him,
-"Welcome, James Boyd," said the noble King; "you
-must go for me to Ettrick Forest where bides yonder
-Outlaw, ask him of whom he holds his lands, and who is
-his master, and desire him to come and be my man, and
-hold the Forest free from me. I will give him safe
-warrant to and from Edinburgh, and if he refuse we will
-conquer him and his lands, and throw down his castle,
-and make a widow of his gay lady; and hang his merry
-men pair by pair wherever we see them."
-
-James Boyd took leave of the King and went blithely
-on his way, until he came to the fair Ettrick Forest, the
-first view of which he got coming down Birkendale Brae.
-He saw the doe and roe, the hart and hind and wild
-beasts in plenty, and heard blows ringing boldly, and
-arrows whizzing near by him.
-
-He saw, too, the fair castle, the like of which he had
-never seen before, with the two gay unicorns on the
-forefront, and the picture of the knight and lady with the
-green holly above their brow.
-
-Then he spied the five hundred men, all clad in livery
-of Lincoln green, and shooting with their bows on
-Newark Lee. In the midst of them was a knight armed
-from head to foot, mounted on a milk-white steed, with
-bended bow, all fine to look upon; whom Boyd knew
-at once to be the Outlaw himself.
-
-"God save thee, brave Outlaw Murray, thy lady, and
-all thy chivalry!"
-
-"Marry, thou art welcome, gentleman; thou seemst
-to be a King's messenger."
-
-"The King of Scotland sent me here, good Outlaw,
-to know of whom you hold your lands, and who is your
-master."
-
-"These lands are *mine*. I know no King in
-Christendom. I won this Forest from the English when
-neither the King nor his knights were there to see."
-
-"The King desires that you come to Edinburgh, and
-hold the Forest then of him. If you refuse, he will
-conquer your lands and you, and he has vowed to throw
-down your castle, make a widow of your gay lady, and
-hang your knights pair by pair wherever he finds them."
-
-"Ay, by my troth! I should indeed be far behind.
-Before the King should get my fair native land, many of
-his nobles would be cold, and their ladies right weary."
-
-Then spoke the lady of the Outlaw, fair of face.
-"That an Outlaw should come before the King without
-my consent makes me fear much that there is treason.
-Bid him be good to his lords at home, for my lord shall
-ne'er see Edinburgh."
-
-James Boyd took leave of the bold Outlaw and went
-back to Edinburgh, and when he came to the King, knelt
-lowly on his knee.
-
-"Welcome, James Boyd," said the noble King, "of
-whom is Ettrick Forest held?"
-
-"Ettrick Forest is the fairest forest that ever man
-saw. There are doe and roe and hart and hind and wild
-beasts in plenty; there's a fine castle of lime and stone
-standing there pleasantly, and in the forefront of the
-castle two unicorns all fine to see, with a picture of a
-knight and a lady, and the green holly above their
-brows. There the Outlaw keeps a royal company—five
-hundred merry men, all gaily clad in Lincoln green, and
-the Outlaw and his lady in purple. Surely they live
-right royally. He says that the forest is his own, that
-he won it from the English, and that as he won it, so will
-he keep it against all the Kings in Christendom."
-
-"Go warn me Perthshire and Angus," cried the
-King, "go warn Fife up and down and the three Lothians,
-and harness my own horse, for I will myself to Ettrick
-Forest."
-
-When the Outlaw heard that the King was coming to
-his country to conquer him and his lands:
-
-"I make a vow," said he. "I make a vow, and that
-truly, that the King's coming shall be a dear one."
-
-Then he called messengers and sent them in haste
-hither and thither.
-
-"One of you go to Halliday, Laird of Corehead, my
-sister's son. Tell him to come quickly to my aid, for that
-the King comes to Ettrick Forest, and we shall all be
-landless."
-
-"What news? What news, man, from thy master?"
-said Halliday.
-
-"No news thou carest to hear; I come seeking your
-aid; the King is his mortal enemy."
-
-"By my troth, I am sorry for that; if Murray lose
-fair Ettrick Forest, the King will take Moffatdale from
-me. I'll meet him with five hundred men, and more if
-need be, and before he gets to Ettrick Forest, we will all
-die on Newark Lee."
-
-Another messenger went from the Outlaw to Andrew
-Murray of Cockpool, his dear cousin, to desire him to
-come and help him with all the power he could get together.
-
-"It is hard," said Andrew Murray, "very hard to go
-against a crowned King and put my lands in jeopardy;
-but if I come not by day I shall be there at night."
-
-A messenger went also to Sir James Murray of
-Traquair.
-
-"What news? What news, man, from your master
-to me?" said James Murray.
-
-"What need I tell? Well ye know that the King is
-his mortal enemy and that he is coming to Ettrick Forest
-to make ye all landless men."
-
-"By my troth," said James Murray, "with yonder
-Outlaw will I live and die; the King has long ago given
-away my lands, so matters can be no worse for me."
-
-So the King came on with five thousand men through
-Caddon Ford. They saw the dark forest before them
-and thought it awesome to look upon, and Lord Hamilton
-begged that the King should take counsel of his nobles
-and should desire the Outlaw to meet him at Permanscore
-with four of his company and that the King should
-go there also accompanied by five Earls. "If he refuse
-to do that, we'll conquer both him and his lands; there
-shall never a Murray after him hold lands free in Ettrick
-Forest."
-
-The Laird of Buckscleuth, a man stalwart and stern,
-thought it beneath the state and dignity of a King to
-go and meet an Outlaw. "The man that lives in yonder
-forest, lives by robbery and felony! wherefore, ride on,
-my liege; we will follow thee with fire and sword; or if
-your courtier lords fall back, our Borderers will make the
-onset."
-
-But the King spoke forth, casting a wily glance
-around. "Thou mayest hold *thy* tongue, Sir Walter
-Scott, nor speak more of robbery and felony, for if every
-honest man had his own cattle thy clan would be a poor
-one."
-
-The King then called to him a gentleman, a royal
-banner-bearer, James Hoppringle of Torsonse by name,
-who came and knelt before him. "Welcome, James
-Pringle of Torsonse, ye must take a message for me; go to
-yonder Outlaw Murray, where he bideth so boldly; bid
-him meet me at Permanscore with four of his company,
-I myself will come to him with five Earls. If he
-refuse, bid him look for no favour from me. There shall
-never a Murray after him have free land in Ettrick Forest."
-
-So James Pringle came before the Outlaw. "Welcome
-James Pringle of Torsonse! What message bringst thou
-from the King to me?"
-
-"He bids ye meet him at Permanscore, with four of
-your company, and he will go there himself with no more
-than five Earls. If you refuse, he will cast down your
-bonny castle, make a widow of your gay lady, and loose
-on you the bloodhound Borderers to harry you with fire
-and sword. Never shall a Murray after you hold free
-land in Ettrick Forest."
-
-"It goes hard with me," said the Outlaw; "judge if it
-go not very hard. I mind not the losing of myself, but
-when I think of my offspring after me, my merry men's
-lives, my widow's tears, that is the pang that pinches
-me. Yonder castle will be right dreary when I am laid
-in bloody earth. Auld Halliday, young Halliday, ye
-two shall go with me, with Andrew and James Murray."
-
-When they came before the King they fell on their
-knees. "Mercy, mercy, noble King, for His sake who
-died on the Cross."
-
-"Such mercy shall ye have; ye shall be hanged on the
-gallows."
-
-"May God forbid, and may your mercy be better than
-that, else, when ye come to the port of Edinburgh, ye
-shall be thinly guarded. These lands of fair Ettrick
-Forest I won from the Southrons, and as I won them
-so will I keep them, against all the Kings in
-Christendom."
-
-The nobles round the King thought it a pity that he
-should die.
-
-"Grant me mercy, sovereign prince, and extend me
-favour. If thou wilt make me Sheriff of Ettrick Forest,
-and my offspring after me, I will give thee the keys of
-my castle, and the blessing of my gay lady."
-
-"If thou wilt give me thy castle keys and the blessing
-of thy gay lady, I'll make thee Sheriff of Ettrick Forest
-as long as the trees grow upward, and never shalt thou
-forfeit it, if thou be not a traitor to the King."
-
-"But Prince, what shall become of my men? When
-I go back they will call me traitor. I had rather lose
-both life and land than be rebuked by my merry-men."
-
-"I will pardon them all if they amend their lives.
-Name thy lands where they lie, and I will render them
-back to thee."
-
-"Philiphaugh and Lewinhope are mine by right,
-Newark, Foulshiells and Tinnies I won by my bow and
-arrow. I have farms at Newark Lee and Hangingshaw
-which are mine by birth, and I have many farms in the
-Forest whose names I do not know." Thereupon he
-gave the King the key of his castle, with the blessing of
-his fair lady, and the King made him Sheriff of Ettrick
-Forest for as long as the trees should grow upward,
-never to be forfeited while he and his descendants
-remained faithful to the King. Much of this land belongs
-to Murray's heirs, even to this day.
-
- | "Wha ever heard in, in ony times,
- | Sicken an outlaw in his degré,
- | Sic favour got befor a King,
- | As did the Outlaw Murray of the Foreste free?"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Johnie Armstrong`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Johnie Armstrong
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "When Johnie came before the King,
- | With all his men so brave to see,
- | The King he moved his bonnet to him;
- | He knew he was a King as well as he."
- |
-
-In 1529 James V. visited the Border country to
-execute justice on the wild freebooters.
-Of these the chief was Johnie Armstrong of
-Gilnockie, who levied blackmail for many miles round his
-residence at the Hollows, and spread the terror of his
-name as far as Newcastle. Acting on the evil counsel
-of false friends, Johnie presented himself before the
-King in all the pomp of Border chivalry.
-
-According to the old ballad the King wrote with his
-own hand a loving letter to Johnie Armstrong, Laird of
-Gilnockie, bidding him come and speak with him speedily.
-Whereupon the Elliots and Armstrongs convened a
-meeting, to which they came in gallant company, and
-decided to ride out to meet the King and bring him to
-Gilnockie.
-
-"Make ready rabbits and capon and venison in
-plenty," said Johnie, "and we'll welcome home our
-royal King to dine at Gilnockie."
-
-So they ran out their horses on Langholm Down, and
-broke their spears, and the ladies, looking from their
-high windows, cried "God send our men safe home again."
-
-When Johnie came before the King with all his brave
-fellows, the King took off his bonnet to him as to an
-equal.
-
-"My name is Johnie Armstrong," said the freebooter,
-"your subject, my liege; let me find grace for my loyal
-men and me."
-
-But the King cried, "Away with thee, thou traitor,
-out of my sight! Never have I granted a traitor's life,
-nor will I now begin with thee!"
-
-"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a
-bonnie gift—four-and-twenty milk-white steeds, newly
-foaled—I'll give thee four-and-twenty milk-white steeds
-that prance and neigh at a spear, and as much English
-gold as four of their broad backs are able to bear."
-
-"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight!
-Never have I granted a traitor's life, nor will I now begin
-with thee!"
-
-"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a
-bonnie gift—four-and-twenty mills that are working all
-the year round for me—four-and-twenty mills that shall
-go for thee all the year round, and as much good red
-wheat as all their happers are able to bear."
-
-"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight!
-Never have I granted a traitor's life, nor will I now begin
-with thee!"
-
-"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a
-great gift—four-and-twenty sisters' sons shall fight for
-thee though all should flee."
-
-"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight!
-Never have I granted a traitor's life, nor will I now begin
-with thee!"
-
-"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a
-brave gift. All between here and Newcastle town shall
-pay thee yearly rent."
-
-"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight!
-Never have I granted a traitor's life, nor will I now begin
-with thee!"
-
-"Ye lie, calling me traitor; ye lie now, King, although
-ye be King and Prince. Well dare I say it, that all my
-life I have loved naught but honesty, a fleet horse, a
-fair woman, and two bonny dogs to kill a deer; yet had
-I lived for another hundred years, England should have
-still found me meal and malt and plenty of beef and
-mutton. Never would a Scot's wife have been able to
-say that I robbed her of aught. But surely it is great
-folly to seek for hot water beneath cold ice. I have asked
-grace of a graceless King, but there is none for me and
-my men. But had I known before I came how unkind
-thou wouldst prove to me, I would have kept the Borderside
-in spite of thee and thy nobles. How glad would be
-England's King if he but knew that I was taken, for once
-I slew his sister's son and broke a tree over his breastbone."
-
-Now Johnie had a girdle round his waist embroidered
-and spangled with burning gold, very beautiful to look
-upon, and from his hat hung down nine tassels, each
-worth three hundred pounds. "What wants that
-knave that a King should have, but the sword of honour
-and the crown?" cried the King.
-
-"Where did ye get those tassels, Johnie, that shine
-so bravely above your brow?"
-
-"I got them fighting in the field where thou darest
-not be," replied Johnie. "And had I now my horse and
-good harness, and were I riding as I am used to do, this
-meeting between us should have been told these hundred
-years. God be with thee, my brother Christy, long shalt
-thou live Laird of Mangertown on the Border-side ere thou
-see thy brother ride by again. God be with *thee*, my son
-Christy, where thou sitst on thy nurse's knee; thou'lt
-ne'er be a better man than thy father, though thou live
-a hundred years. Farewell, bonnie Hall of Gilnockie,
-standing strong on Eskside; if I had lived but seven
-more years, I would have gilded thee round about."
-
-Then Johnie Armstrong was slain by the King's orders
-at Carlinrigg with all his gallant company, and Scotland's
-heart was sad to see the death of so many brave men,
-who had saved their country from the Englishmen.
-None were so brave as they, and while Johnie lived on
-the Border-side no Englishman durst come near his
-stronghold.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Lament of the Border Widow`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXIV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Lament of the Border Widow
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-How King James V. of Scotland, in 1529,
-set forth to strike terror into the Border
-freebooters, has been already told in the
-account of Johnie Armstrong. A less celebrated
-moss-trooper, Cockburne of Henderland, was hanged
-by the pitiless King over the gate of his own tower.
-The wife of Cockburne loved him most dearly, and when
-she found the King would show no mercy, fled away
-to the rocks behind the castle whilst the cruel sentence
-was carried out. She sat by a roaring torrent of the
-Henderland burn, the noise of which in her ears drowned
-the savage shouts of the King's soldiers. The beautiful
-song which describes the grief of this loving woman is
-one of the gems of ancient poetry, and is here printed
-entire.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- THE LAMENT OF THE BORDER WIDOW
-
-..
-
- | My love he built me a bonny bower,
- | And clad it a' wi' lilye flower,
- | A brawer bower ye ne'er did see,
- | Than my true love he built for me.
-
- | There came a man by middle day,
- | He spied his sport, and went away;
- | And brought the King that very night,
- | Who brake my bower, and slew my knight.
-
- | He slew my knight to me sae dear;
- | He slew my knight, and took his gear;
- | My servants all for life did flee,
- | And left me in extremitie.
-
- | I sew'd his sheet, making my moan;
- | I watch'd the corpse, myself alone;
- | I watch'd his body, night and day;
- | No living creature came that way.
-
- | I took his body on my back,
- | And whiles I gaed, and whiles I sat;
- | I digg'd a grave, and laid him in,
- | And happ'd him with the sod sae green.
-
- | But think na ye my heart was sair,
- | When I laid the moul' on his yellow hair;
- | O think na ye my heart was wae,
- | When I turn'd about, away to gae?
-
- | Nae living man I'll love again,
- | Since that my lovely knight was slain,
- | Wi' ae lock of his yellow hair,
- | I'll chain my heart for evermair.
-
-.. _`The Border Widow`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-148.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: "*I sew'd his sheet, making my moan; I watch'd the corpse, myself alone.*"
-
- "*I sew'd his sheet, making my moan; I watch'd the corpse, myself alone.*"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Raid of the Kers`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Raid of the Kers
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The spirited ballad that describes this raid is
-quite modern, since it was written by Hogg,
-"the Ettrick Shepherd," in 1830. But the
-rash raid it describes took place in 1549. The Kers were
-an important Border family, the leaders of whom
-afterwards became Earls of Roxburgh. Sir Andrew Ker was
-warden of the Border at the time of the raid, but he
-proved that it took place without his consent. The
-Kers were all left-handed men, and puzzled their enemies
-by their left-handed swordsmanship. Even to-day in
-some parts of the borders a left-handed man is called
-"Ker-handed."
-
-On a fine September evening Tam Ker rode out, with
-fifty in his company. They were armed for a fight and
-their swords were keen; they rode by the Maiden Crags
-and down the Osway burn, going carefully till the
-daylight closed, for they were soon in Northumberland.
-Their bold plan was to get down the valley of the Coquet
-even as far as Rothbury where Withrington, the
-English warden, kept a magnificent herd of cattle.
-They had one castle to pass, that of Biddleston, which
-had been held by the Selby family since the reign of
-Henry III., and still belongs to them to this day.
-Biddleston Castle guarded the Allanton or Alwinton ford,
-where the Alwin stream enters the Coquet. So they
-sent the reckless Mark Ker first, to scout along by the
-ford, and told him to set up marks on the cairns to show
-his progress. Having nothing else to mark with, he
-tore the shirt off his back, and left strips of it on the
-cairns. At the ford a sentry challenged him, and he
-answered that he had a message for Withrington.
-The sentry demanded his sealed warrant, and the Scot
-drew his sword. They fought bravely and long before
-the Englishman was killed, and the Scot marvelled that
-a common soldier should so withstand him, for he was
-the best swordsman of his race. On he galloped, on
-and on, till he met a comely maiden, and addressing
-her he tried to imitate the Northumberland speech,
-saying that he had lost his way. She told him at once
-that she knew he was a Scot, but so also was she. She
-had been taken captive, but word had came by an
-English spy that the Kers were out upon a raid, and
-while the English had set a hundred soldiers to guard
-their cattle she had slipped away to warn the Scots and
-to return with them. Being a gallant after the manner
-of that day, he sprang from his horse, kissed her, and
-invited her to mount his saddle even if he had to run
-beside till he could capture another steed. But an
-English soldier came up and warned him roughly off the
-road. Mark Ker had been brought up to answer rough
-words with rougher blows; out leapt his sword, and he
-cut the rude words short by slashing the man's head off.
-Then he disguised the maid in the dead man's clothes,
-and they retraced their steps that he might warn his
-companions. They very soon came upon them, and all
-together hid in the lowest dell of the Larbottle burn while
-they made their plans. Tam Ker, with twenty of the
-men, was to draw off the English, while Mark with
-thirty others slipped round and drove off the cattle
-unperceived. This was done, and till after midnight,
-Tam, aided by the darkness and by the difficulties of
-the wild locality, held the English at bay.
-
-Then he heard the bugle signal, and knew that Mark
-was well on the road with the beasts, and that he must
-follow quickly. But Withrington also guessed what the
-signal meant, and pursued with all the speed he knew.
-Mark had not long crossed the ford at Biddleston before
-the English were on him. First Mark and Withrington
-fought in single combat, hand to hand, all their men
-watching eagerly; it was still very dark, but the
-clash of sword against sword lit the air with sparks.
-Withrington was badly wounded, but Mark was killed.
-With desperate shouts the Scots fell upon the English;
-then up came Tam and his men from behind to help the
-Scots, but the Captain of Biddleston had also been
-awakened, and galloped down with his men to aid the
-English. Tam smote his head off with his sword, but
-the horse galloped on with his headless body right into
-the ranks of the Scots. They thought it must be a demon
-and began to scatter in full flight to the Border. Tam
-was slain, trying to follow them, and his men, seeing that
-they had work enough to gallop for their lives, slew
-the cattle they could no longer hope to steal. On and
-on the hard-pressed remnant spurred their weary horses.
-It was daylight now, and the English along the road
-shot arrows at them as they galloped past. Out of
-fifty-one hardy, healthy Kers who had started forth
-in the raid, only seventeen, weary and wounded, saw
-their homes again.
-
-And back in the south country, the comely Scottish
-maiden lay dead across the breast of the gallant Mark,
-their hearts' blood mingling in a common stream. Small
-wonder that a Scot should make a ballad of the story
-and that Borderers should sing it even to this day.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Merrie Carlisle`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXVI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Merrie Carlisle
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The city of Carlisle stands in the midst of a
-beautiful and fertile district with pleasant but
-not too steep hills around. In the old days an
-easy water-supply was a first essential, and at Carlisle
-three rivers meet, the Caldew and the Petterill running
-here into the broad stream of the Eden. These
-three rivers almost enclose the ground upon which
-the city is built, so that it is most probable that
-there was an ancient British settlement upon so
-advantageous a site, before the Roman invasion. Our
-earliest record, however, goes back no further than
-Roman days, and it is certain there was then a Roman
-city here called *Luguvallium* (the trench of the legion).
-Even to-day, when new gas-pipes are being laid in the
-ground, it is by no means rare to dig up Roman relics.
-The long Roman name became gradually corrupted into
-"Luel," or "Liel," and the Britons added their word
-"Caer," which means a city, hence "Caer-luel"—an
-earlier form of the modern Carlisle. The Roman city
-stood, as might be expected, by the great Roman wall,
-guarding the spot where the wall crossed the river Eden.
-And visitors may see to-day that the centre of Carlisle
-consists of a market-place with two main streets leading
-therefrom, the usual plan in cities of Roman origin.
-
-Carlisle was destined to have a stormy history. Draw
-a line from the Solway eastward, straight through
-Carlisle, and it will be seen that here the mainland of
-Britain is about at its narrowest, hardly so much as
-seventy miles wide, as the crow flies. Note, too, that the
-wild hills of the Pennines and the Cheviots fill in most
-of this narrow district, and that the mainland of Scotland
-strikes sharply off to the west. It is plain from these
-facts that Carlisle commands the main road between
-Scotland and England, and they provide the reason why
-at the present day seven different railways, most of them
-important ones, run their trains into Carlisle station.
-The very same reason was responsible for the fact
-that in the good old times no English town was more
-often burnt down by enemies than "Merrie Carlisle."
-
-Even in Roman days, during the reign of Nero, Carlisle
-was burnt down at least once by the wild Picts, who
-were brave enough to venture against the well-armed
-troops of Rome. After the Romans left Britain this
-town was one of the strongholds of King Arthur; to
-be sure, nothing very definite is known about this
-romantic king, but the old ballads tell us that he was
-victorious over Gauls, Dacians, Spaniards, and Romans.
-This sounds very unlikely to those who do not realise
-that when Rome called home her best men for her own
-defence she may have left behind many rough soldiers,
-of various nations, to guard the wall. Although we know
-nothing about King Arthur save what is vague and
-legendary, we do know that the Roman legions were
-recruited from all the provinces of the empire.
-Cumberland had many connexions with King Arthur; within
-twenty miles of Carlisle, near Penrith, is a big round
-hill called "King Arthur's Table"; while nearer still,
-on the Penrith and Carlisle road, is shown the spot where
-stood Tearne-Wadling Lake and Castle, where King
-Arthur was bewitched and taken prisoner by the "foul,
-discourteous knight," only to be released provided one
-of his men would consent to marry the hideous lady
-with hair like serpents! When at last Sir Gawaine
-married this hag for his King's sake, she, of course,
-changed at once into a beautiful young woman! This
-does not sound very convincing, it is true, but in the old
-days many tales just as unlikely were told of famous men.
-At any rate the ballad begins with the lilting line:—
-
- | "King Arthur lives in merrie Carleile,"
-
-and all that concerns us at the moment is that perhaps
-he really did live there, and did do some very real fighting
-along the debateable line of the wall.
-
-We next learn of Carlisle that King Egfrid of
-Northumbria rebuilt the city about the year 675,
-wherefore we can only suppose that it had suffered its
-somewhat usual fate, perhaps at the hands of that savage
-Saxon warrior called The Burner. But in any case,
-Carlisle never belonged to the Northumbrians for any
-considerable space of time, but was the capital of the
-Celtic or Welsh kingdom of Cumbria, from which the
-present name of Cumberland is derived.
-
-In 875 the Danes had a turn at pillaging and harrying
-Carlisle, which was again in sorry plight. Both Cumbria
-and Northumbria were faring very badly in the struggle
-between the various kingdoms which then divided up
-Britain, and for a while it looked as if the energetic
-kings of the Scots would annex both these northern
-dominions. But the coming of the strong-handed
-Normans altered all this; and by far the most noteworthy
-event in the history of Carlisle was the fact that
-during 1092 and 1093 William Rufus seized Cumberland,
-and for the first time added it definitely to England.
-
-Recognising at once the strength and value of Carlisle,
-Rufus caused a strong Norman castle to be built where the
-old Roman fort used to stand. To-day, despite the many
-rough adventures which have befallen this northern city,
-there yet remain portions of William Rufus's castle,
-side by side with fragments of the old Roman walls.
-Many of the modern buildings put up in King George's
-day are crumbling, but the old Norman and Roman
-remains are firm as a rock!
-
-The castle was strengthened by King Henry I., but
-this did not prevent its seizure in 1135 by King David
-of Scotland, who added to it in turn. The Scots held the
-keep till 1157, when it was retaken by Henry II., but a
-few years later, in 1173, William the Lion, King of
-Scotland, besieged it, and for the next fifty years it
-changed hands several times, according to the fortunes
-of war. It is significant that a main street in the
-northern part of Carlisle is called "Scotch Street,"
-while another in the southern part is called "English
-Street!"
-
-Edward I. held a parliament here after defeating
-Wallace at Falkirk; and it was from Carlisle that this
-English King conducted his later operations against
-Scotland. It is a pathetic picture, that of this stern
-warrior in his old age, on his last march, trying to carry
-out his pet scheme of uniting the entire island under
-one rule. He was so ill that he had to be carried in a
-litter as far as Carlisle. Finding himself again so near
-the border, he felt the old fire glow within him, and sprang
-upon his horse—but at Burgh-on-Sands, on the shore of
-the Solway, whence he could view the goal of his
-ambition, the brave King died.
-
-During the next thirty years Carlisle was frequently
-attacked by the Scots, but they were usually defeated.
-In 1337, however, they partly, and in 1345 almost
-entirely burnt it down. Again in 1380 they burnt part
-of what had been rebuilt! Had there been fire insurance
-in these wild days, the premiums in Carlisle would have
-been heavy!
-
-After the Wars of the Roses, the city seemed to settle
-down somewhat, and was chiefly known on the Border as
-the place where Scottish freebooters were hanged if
-caught. In one of the Border villages there is a famous
-churchyard where of old only the graves of women and
-children were to be seen. The explanation was given to
-a passing traveller by an old woman, who said that the
-men were all buried "in merrie Carlisle," meaning, that
-is, that they had all been hanged there!
-
-In 1537 there was a rising in England known as the
-"Pilgrimage of Grace," in opposition to the savage policy
-of Henry's minister, Thomas Cromwell, and no less than
-eighty thousand insurgents are said to have attacked
-Carlisle; but after much fighting the rebels were
-defeated and seventy-four of their leaders were executed
-on the city walls.
-
-When Mary Queen of Scots was imprisoned in Carlisle
-in 1568 it was vainly besieged by a force that sought to
-rescue her; but less than thirty years afterwards, in 1596,
-by a bold stroke of daring, Lord Scott of Buccleuch
-succeeded in surprising the castle and in liberating the
-well-known freebooter, "Kinmont Willie."
-
-When King James united England and Scotland, the
-troubles of Carlisle might have been thought to be over.
-But in the civil war between King and Parliament it was
-again a storm centre, and was held alternately by each
-of the parties.
-
-The last warlike operations against this much-besieged
-city were undertaken in 1745, when it was first
-taken by Prince Charlie, who made a triumphal entry
-without any serious fighting, and afterwards retaken
-almost as easily by the cruel Duke of Cumberland,
-whose entry into the place was followed, as usual, by a
-series of executions.
-
-Among those who suffered was Sir A. Primrose, a
-gallant ancestor of the present Lord Rosebery. The
-victims were executed, with the cruelties of the old law
-against treason, on the celebrated Gallows Hill, at
-Harraby, and were buried in nameless graves in the
-Kirkyard of St Cuthbert's. Passing down the Botchergate
-(the London Road), past the site of the old Roman
-cemetery, the wayfarer may see Gallows Hill rise where
-a deep cut has been made to avoid a steep rise in the road.
-It was just outside the boundary of old Carlisle, and
-executions were witnessed from the walls, by men and
-women alike. Climb the hill—it is worth while. The
-little river Petteril sparkles at our feet; the view, fresh
-and green, stretches away nobly to the Pennines and the
-Border Hills. Keep a warm thought in your heart for
-all the gallant fellows who met death bravely in this
-place.
-
-No history of Carlisle could omit to mention the
-Cathedral. English cathedrals are shaped like a cross
-lying on the ground; the long stem of the cross is the
-*nave* of the cathedral; the two arms are the *transepts*;
-and the upper end that continues the main stem is the
-*choir*. Where choir, nave and transepts meet, the *tower*
-rises. But unlike every other English cathedral, that of
-Carlisle has height and width, but is too short in length,
-two-thirds of the nave having been hurled down by the
-Scots!
-
-Every cathedral has its history written in its stones,
-for those who know how to read it. That of Carlisle
-shows a stormy history, stormier than any other. It
-is not a peaceful building carried out very much in one
-style and undisturbed. It is a building full of signs of
-disturbance, the builders of which were interrupted in
-their plans by war and frequently had their building
-seriously damaged by their enemies. It is a mixture of
-styles, a mass of re-buildings and afterthoughts, but for
-that very reason it is a fitting symbol of the
-much-harassed city. With all its signs of storm and stress
-it has much beauty, and possesses the finest window in
-all England, one of the finest in the world. Just outside
-the Cathedral is a noble stretch of the old West Wall of
-the city, which gives a vivid idea of its strength in the
-old days.
-
-The bishops of Carlisle live at Rose Castle, five miles
-south of the Cathedral. This has been their residence
-for over six hundred years. No doubt they thought it
-advisable not to live in the "merrie city"!
-
-In this castle King Edward I. stayed. It was once
-partly burnt by Bruce, and again partly by the Puritans,
-but this is a comparatively clean record for such a district!
-In 1745 Captain Macdonald and his Scots came down
-to besiege it, but hearing that the bishop's baby daughter
-was about to be christened, the gallant captain would not
-let warfare spoil so peaceful a ceremony, and not only
-withdrew his men, but also left a white cockade behind
-him as a sign that the place was not to be molested. In
-all this he showed that true courtesy that always marks
-the real Highland gentleman.
-
-Standing to-day in this bustling, breezy, pleasant little
-city, it is not easy to realise the wild scenes it has
-witnessed. The charming rivers that hem it in show
-no traces of the bloodshed of the past. Yet here have
-contended painted Pict and war-trained Roman; here
-the most skilful leaders of the Celts, Saxons, and Danes
-have led their brave and sturdy men to battle; here
-Norman knight has fought with hardy Scot, and fierce
-Border factions have wrangled and sought speedy
-justice; Puritan has fought Cavalier, and Jacobite
-has faced Hanoverian; kings, generals, and warriors of
-many centuries have found a fitting meeting-place before
-or behind the walls of Carlisle.
-
-An open, airy, quaint city. There is not very much
-that is old in it, for the old was not allowed to stand long
-enough! But on the top of its principal hill the tall
-truncated Cathedral presents a picturesque figure, and
-if we stand there or by the castle the eye commands fine,
-ancient walls and very delightful distances. It is a
-place of lingering memories, and if these are chiefly
-of strife and bloodshed we do not forget that to the
-Border folk the city was "Merrie Carlisle."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Kinmont Willie`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXVII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Kinmont Willie
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "O have ye not heard of the false Sakelde,
- | O have ye not heard of the keen Lord Scroope,
- | How they have taken bold Kinmont Willie
- | On Haribee to hang him oop?"
- |
-
-The story of this famous freebooter, William
-Armstrong of Kinmonth, belongs to the time
-of Queen Elizabeth, when Lord Scroope was
-Warden of the Western Marches, and Mr Sakelde of
-Corby Castle was his Deputy.
-
-Kinmont Willie was a descendant of the famous Johnie
-Armstrong of Gilnockie, and his capture was a violation
-of the existing truce between Scroope and Buccleuch,
-the Keeper of Liddesdale. Elizabeth was indignant at
-Buccleuch's action in rescuing Willie, and as the Scots
-at that time were very anxious not to offend her,
-Buccleuch was sent to England and came before the
-Queen, who asked him how he dared to undertake such
-an adventure. "What is it," answered he, "that a
-man dare not do?"
-
-"With ten thousand such men," said Elizabeth, turning
-to a lord-in-waiting, "our brother of Scotland might
-shake the firmest throne of Europe."
-
-The ballad tells of the capture of Kinmont Willie,
-and how the false Sakelde and his men treacherously
-seized him.
-
-They bound his legs beneath his horse, and tied his
-hands behind his back, and with five men on each side
-to guard him, brought him over Liddel ford and through
-Carlisle sands to Carlisle castle.
-
-When he arrived there, Willie addressed his captor in
-these words:
-
-"My hands are tied, but my tongue is free. Who will
-avow this deed or answer for it to bold Buccleuch?"
-
-"Hold thy tongue, thou rank robber! Never a Scot
-shall set thee free. Ye shall take farewell of me before
-ye cross my castle gate," said Scroope.
-
-"Fear ye not that, my lord," answers Willie, "for by
-the faith of my body, never did I yet lodge in a hostelry
-but that I paid my reckoning before I went."
-
-Word was sent to Branksome Hall to the Keeper of
-Liddesdale that Lord Scroope had captured Kinmont
-Willie, whereupon the Keeper smote the table with
-his hand till the red wine sprang on high, "A curse on my
-head," he cried, "if I be not avenged of Lord Scroope. Is
-my helmet a widow's cap, or my lance a twig from a
-willow-tree, or my fist a lady's lily hand, that an English
-lord should appraise me so lightly? Have they taken
-Kinmont Willie in spite of the truce, and forgotten that
-the bold Buccleuch is Keeper on the Scottish side?
-Have they taken Kinmont Willie so fearlessly, and
-forgotten that the bold Buccleuch can back a steed and
-wield a weapon? Were there but war between the lands,
-then would I slight Carlisle Castle though it were built of
-marble; I would set it on fire and drench it with English
-blood. But since there is peace and not war, I'll set the
-Kinmont free yet never harm English lad or lass!"
-
-So Buccleuch called forty bold Marchmen, all of his
-own name and kin except one, Sir Gilbert Elliot, Laird of
-Stobs. They came spur on heel and armour on shoulder,
-with gloves of green and feathers of blue. Five and five
-came first with hunting-horns and bugles; five and five
-more came with Buccleuch like Warden's men arrayed
-for battle; five and five came like a gang of masons,
-carrying long high ladders; and five and five came like
-broken men, and so they reached Woodhouselee.
-
-When they had crossed to the English side, the first
-man they met was the false Sakelde.
-
-"Where are ye going, ye keen hunters?" quoth Sakelde.
-
-"We go to hunt an English stag that has trespassed
-on Scottish ground."
-
-"Where are ye going, ye martial men?"
-
-"We go to catch a rank robber that has broken faith
-with the bold Buccleuch."
-
-"Where are ye going, ye mason lads, with all these
-long high ladders?"
-
-"We go to harry a corbie's nest not far from here."
-
-"Where are ye going, ye broken men?" said false Sakelde.
-
-But Dickie of Dryhope, leader of the broken men, had
-never a word of learning, and answered nothing.
-
-"Why trespass ye on the English side? Stand! ye
-raw-footed outlaws!"
-
-Never a word yet said Dickie, but for answer ran his
-lance clean through the body of the false Sakelde.
-
-On then they went to Carlisle town, crossing the Eden
-at Staneshaw-bank, nor lost they either horse or man,
-though the water was high in flood.
-
-When they reached Staneshaw-bank the wind was rising,
-and the Laird ordered them to leave there their horses
-for fear they should stamp and neigh. The wind blew
-loudly enough then, but when they came beneath the
-castle wall there was wind and rain and flying sleet. On
-they crept on their knees and held their breath till they
-placed the ladders against the wall. Buccleuch himself
-mounted first, took the watchman by the throat and
-flung him down upon the leads. "Thou hadst gone on
-the other side," said he, "had there not been peace
-between our lands."
-
-.. _`The Escape of Kinmont Willie`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-162.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *The Escape of Kinmont Willie*
-
- *The Escape of Kinmont Willie*
-
-"Sound out the trumpets!" quoth he; "let's wake
-up Lord Scroope!" Then loud blew the Warden's
-trumpet to the tune of "O wha dare meddle wi' me?"
-
-To work they went speedily, and cut a hole through
-the lead, gaining thus the castle hall.
-
-Those inside thought the castle had been taken by
-King James and all his men, yet it was only twenty Scots
-and ten that had put a thousand in such a stir. They
-hammered and banged at the bars until they came to
-the inner prison, where lay Kinmont Willie.
-
-"Do ye sleep or wake, Kinmont Willie, on the morn
-when ye shall die?"
-
-"O I sleep lightly and wake often; it's long since sleep
-was frightened from me. Give my service to my wife
-and bairns and all good fellows that enquire after me."
-
-Red Rowan, the strongest man in Teviotdale, lifted
-him up. "Stay now, Red Rowan, till I take farewell of
-Lord Scroope. Farewell, farewell, my good Lord
-Scroope," he cried. "I will pay ye for my lodging
-when first we meet on the Border."
-
-With shout and cry Red Rowan bore him on his
-shoulders down the long ladder, the irons clanking at
-every stride.
-
-"Many a time," said Kinmont Willie, "have I ridden
-a horse both wild and unruly, but never have my legs
-bestrode a rougher beast than Red Rowan. Many a
-time have I pricked a horse over the furrows, but never
-since I backed a steed have I worn such cumbrous spurs."
-
-Scarcely had they won the Staneshaw-bank when all
-the bells in Carlisle were ringing and Lord Scroope was
-after them with a thousand men on horse and on foot.
-But—
-
- | "Buccleuch has turn'd to Eden water
- | Even where it flowed frae bank to brim,
- | And he has plunged in wi' a' his band,
- | And safely swam them through the stream.
-
- | He turn'd him on the other side,
- | And at Lord Scroope his glove flung he—
- | 'If ye like na my visit to merry England,
- | In fair Scotland come visit me!'
-
- | All sore astonished stood Lord Scroope,
- | He stood as still as rock of stane;
- | He scarcely dared to trew[#] his eyes,
- | When through the water they had gane.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Trust
-
-..
-
- | 'He is either himsell a devil frae hell,
- | Or else his mother a witch maun be;
- | I wadna have ridden that wan water,
- | For a' the gowd[#] in Christentie.'"
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Gold
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Dick o' the Cow`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXVIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Dick o' the Cow
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "Fair Johnie Armstrong to Willie did say
- | 'Billie, a-riding we will gae.'"
- |
-
-The ballad of this name, a popular one in
-Liddesdale, relates, like that of Kinmont
-Willie, to the time when Lord Scroope was
-Warden of the West Marches and Governor of Carlisle.
-Dick o' the Cow seems to have been his fool or jester.
-Dickie, some years after the events described in the
-ballad, fell a victim to the vengeance of the Armstrongs.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-There had been no raids from Liddesdale for a
-considerable time, and no riding, and the horses had all
-grown so fat that they dare scarcely stir out of the stall.
-Then fair Johnie Armstrong said to his brother Willie,
-"Brother, we will go a-riding. We have long been at
-feud with England, and perhaps we shall find some spoil."
-
-So they rode to Hulton Hall and round about it, but
-the laird, a wise man, had left neither goods nor cattle
-outside to steal, except six sheep in a meadow. Said
-Johnie, "I'd rather die in England than take those
-six sheep to Liddesdale."
-
-"But who was that man we last met as we came over
-the hill?"
-
-"Oh, he is an innocent fool, and men call him Dick o'
-the Cow."
-
-"That fool has three good cows of his own, as good
-as there are in Cumberland. Betide me life or death,
-they shall go to Liddesdale with me!"
-
-So they came to the house of the poor fool, broke down
-his thick wall, loosed his three cows, and took also three
-coverlets from his wife's bed.
-
-In the morning at daylight when the loss was
-discovered, there were loud lamentations. "Hold thy
-tongue, wife," said Dickie, "and stop thy crying. I'll
-bring thee back three cows for each one that thou hast
-lost."
-
-So Dickie went to Lord Scroope. "Hold thy tongue,
-fool," said Scroope. "I have no time for jesting."
-
-"A shame on your jesting, my lord!" said Dickie,
-"jesting agrees not with me. Liddesdale was in my
-house last night and has taken my three cows. I can
-no longer dwell in Cumberland as your poor faithful fool,
-unless you give me leave to steal in Liddesdale."
-
-"I give thee leave, fool!" said Scroope; "but thou
-speakest against me and my honour unless thou give me
-thy hand and pledge that thou wilt steal from none but
-those who stole from thee."
-
-"There is my right hand and pledge! May my head
-hang on Haribee, and may I never again cross Carlisle
-sands if I steal from any man who stole not from me.",
-
-Dickie joyfully took leave of his lord and master,
-and went and bought a bridle and a pair of new spurs
-which he packed up in the thigh of his breeches, then he
-came on as fast as he could to Pudding-burn house, where
-were thirty-three Armstrongs.
-
-"O what has come to me now?" said Dickie, "what
-great trouble is this? For here is but one innocent
-fool against thirty-three Armstrongs?" Yet he went
-courteously up to the Hall board.
-
-"Well may ye be, my good Laird's Jock, but the devil
-bless all your company. I'm come to complain of your
-man, Johnie Armstrong, and of his brother Willie, that
-they came to my house last night and took away my
-three cows."
-
-Quoth fair Johnie Armstrong, "We'll hang him."
-
-"Nay," said Willie, "we'll slay him."
-
-But up spoke another young Armstrong, "We'll give
-him a thrashing and let him go."
-
-Then up spoke the good Laird's Jock, the best fellow
-in all the company, "Sit down a while, Dickie, and we'll
-give thee a bit of thine own cow's thigh."
-
-Dickie's heart was so sore that he could not eat a bit,
-but he went and lay down in an old peat-house where he
-thought to sleep the night, and all the prayers the poor
-fool prayed were, "I wish I had amends for my three
-good cows."
-
-Now it was the custom of Pudding-burn house and of
-the house of Mangerton, whose laird was chief of the
-Armstrong clan, that any who came not to the table at
-the first summons got no more meat till the next meal, so
-some of the lads, hungry and weary, had thrown the key
-of the stable above the door-head. Dickie took good
-notice of that to turn it to his own account, went into
-the stable where stood thirty-three horses and tied thirty
-of them with St Mary's knot, tight to their stalls.
-
-Of the remaining three, Dickie took two, which
-belonged to Johnie and Willie Armstrong, and the one
-belonging to the Laird's Jock he left loose in the stable.
-Leaping on one, he took the other along with him, and
-rode off as fast as he could.
-
-When day came, there were great shouts and cries.
-
-"Who has done this," quoth the good Laird's Jock;
-"see that ye tell me the truth."
-
-"It is Dickie that has been in the stable last night,
-and has taken the horses."
-
-"Ye never would listen to me," said the good Laird's
-Jock, "though I told ye true tales. Ye would never
-stay out of England but would steal everything, till ye
-were crooked and blind."
-
-"Lend me thy bay," said fair Johnie; "he is the only
-horse loose in the stable, and I'll either fetch back Dick
-o' the Cow, or he shall die."
-
-"Lend thee my bay!" said Jock; "he is worth gold
-and good money. Dick o' the Cow has taken two horses;
-I would not ye make them three."
-
-Johnie, however, took the Laird's steel jacket on his
-back, and a two-handed sword by his side, and a steel
-cap on his head, and galloped after Dickie, who was
-barely three miles from the town when Johnie overtook
-him on Cannobie Lee, on the borders of Liddesdale.
-
-"Abide, abide, thou traitor thief!" cried Armstrong;
-"the day is come that thou shalt die!"
-
-Dickie looked over his left shoulder and said, "Johnie,
-hast thou no more in thy company? There is a preacher
-in our chapel who teaches all the livelong day, and when
-day is gone and night has come, there are only three words
-I remember—the first and second are Faith and
-Conscience—the third is 'Ne'er let a traitor free.' What faith
-and conscience was thine, Johnie, when thou tookest away
-my three cows? And when thou hadst taken them
-away, thou wast not satisfied. Thou sentest thy brother
-Willie, and took away three coverlets off my wife's bed!"
-
-Then Johnie let his spear fall low by his side, and
-thought he would have killed Dickie, but the powers
-above were stronger than he, and he only succeeded in
-running through the fool's jerkin. Dickie out with his
-sword and ran after him, and when he could not get at
-him with the blade, he felled him with the butt-end over
-the eye, felled Johnie Armstrong, the finest man in the
-south country. "Gramercy," said Dickie, "I had but
-two horses, thou hast made them three!"—and he took
-Johnie's steel jacket off his back and his two-handed
-sword, and his steel cap. "Farewell, Johnie," said he,
-"I'll tell my master I met thee."
-
-When Johnie wakened out of his swoon, he was a sad
-man. "Art thou gone, Dickie?" he said. "Then the
-shame and woe are left with me. Art thou gone? Then,
-Dickie, the devil go in thy company, for if I live to be a
-hundred, I'll never again fight with a fool."
-
-Dickie came home to the good Lord Scroope as fast as
-he could. "Now, Dickie, I'll neither eat nor drink till
-thou art hanged on high." "Shame speed the liars, my
-lord," said Dickie, "this was not the promise ye made
-me, for I would never have gone to Liddesdale to steal
-if I had not got leave from thee." "But why did ye steal
-the Laird's Jock's horse? Ye might have lived long in
-Cumberland before the Laird's Jock had stolen from thee."
-
-"Indeed, I knew ye lied, my lord. I won the horse from
-fair Johnie Armstrong hand to hand on Cannobie Lee.
-There is the jacket that was on his back, and the
-two-handed sword that hung by his side, and the steel cap that
-was on his head. I brought all these tokens to show thee."
-
-"If that be true that thou tellest me (and I think thou
-durst not lie) I'll give thee fifteen pounds for the horse, all
-told out in the lap of thy cloak; I'll give thee one of my
-best milk cows to maintain thy wife and three children,
-and they will be as good as any two of thine would be."
-
-"Shame speed the liars, my lord!" said Dickie.
-"Do ye think aye to make a fool of me? I'll either have
-twenty pounds for the horse or else I'll take him to
-Mortan fair."
-
-So Scroope gave him twenty pounds for the horse, all
-in gold and good money, and one of his best milk cows to
-maintain his wife and three children.
-
-Then Dickie rode as fast as he could through Carlisle
-town, and the first man he met was my lord's brother,
-Ralph Scroope, Bailiff of Glozenburrie.
-
-"Well be ye met, Ralph Scroope!" said Dickie.
-
-"Welcome, my brother's fool!" said Ralph. "Where
-did ye get Johnie Armstrong's horse?"
-
-"Where did I get him? I stole him," said Dickie.
-
-"Wilt thou sell me the bonny horse?"
-
-"Ay, if thou count out the money in the lap of my
-cloak, for never a penny will I trust thee."
-
-"I'll give thee ten pounds for the horse and count it
-into the lap of thy cloak, and one of my best milk cows to
-maintain thy wife and three children."
-
-"Shame speed the liars, my lord! Do ye think aye
-to make a fool of me? I'll either have twenty pounds
-for the horse, or I'll take him to Mortan fair."
-
-So Ralph gave him twenty pounds for the horse, all in
-gold and good money, and one of his milk cows to
-maintain his wife and three children.
-
-Then Dickie leaped and laughed, and cried, "May the
-neck of the third horse be broken if either of the two were
-better than he!"
-
-So he came home to his wife and ye may judge how
-the poor fool had succeeded. For her three stolen
-coverlets he gave her two score English pounds, and two cows
-as good as her own three. "And here," said he, "is a
-white-footed nag that I reckon will carry us both. But
-if I stay longer in Cumberland the Armstrongs will
-hang me." So Dickie took leave of his lord and went to
-live at Burgh under Stanmuir.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Lochmaben Harper`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXIX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Lochmaben Harper
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The castle of Lochmaben is said to have been
-the residence of Robert Bruce while Lord
-of Allandale. Hence, as a royal fortress, the
-keeping of it was always granted to some powerful lord.
-There is extant a grant giving to one of these, Robert
-Lauder, the office of Captain and Keeper of Lochmaben
-Castle for seven years, and among his perquisites were
-"lands stolen from the King"!
-
-The inhabitants of four small villages near the castle
-have each still to this day a right to a small piece of
-ground. These people are descendants of Robert
-Bruce's retainers, to whom he assigned these portions
-of land in reward for faithful service, and there are still
-to be found some families (*e.g.* the Richardsons of
-Lochmaben) who hold their lands direct from the times of
-Bruce without a break.
-
- | "O heard ye na o' the silly blind Harper,
- | How long he lived in Lochmaben town?
- | And how he wad gang to fair England,
- | To steal the Lord Warden's Wanton Brown?
-
- | But first he gaed to his gude wyfe,
- | Wi' a' the haste that he could thole[#]
- | 'This wark,' quo' he, 'will ne'er gae well
- | Without a mare that has a foal.'
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Suffer.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Quoth his wife, "Thou hast a good grey mare that
-can jump both high and low; so set thee on her
-back and leave the foal at home with me." Away
-went the Harper to England as fast as he might, and
-when he came to Carlisle gate, who should be there
-but the Warden himself?
-
- | "'Come into my hall, thou silly blind Harper,
- | And of thy harping let me hear!'
- | 'O, by my sooth,' quo' the silly blind Harper,
- | 'I wad rather hae stabling for my mare."
-
- | The Warden looked o'er his left shoulder,
- | And said unto his stable groom—
- | 'Gae take the silly blind Harper's mare,
- | And tie her beside my Wanton Brown.'"
- |
-
-So the Harper harped and sang, the lordlings danced,
-and so sweet was the music that the groom forgot all
-about the stable door. Still the Harper harped on till
-all the nobles were fast asleep, when he quickly took off
-his shoes, crept softly down the stair, and hied with
-light tread to the stable door, which he opened and
-entered. He found there three-and-thirty steeds. He
-took a colt's halter which he had hidden in his hose,
-slipped it over Wanton Brown, tied it to the grey mare's
-tail, and turned them both loose at the castle gate.
-
-Away they went over moor and moss and dale, and the
-mare never let Wanton rest a moment, but kept him
-galloping home to her foal. So swift of foot was she, and
-knew her way so well, that she reached Lochmaben a
-good three hours before daybreak.
-
-When she came to the Harper's door, she neighed and
-snorted. "Rise up," shouted the Harper's wife, "thou
-lazy lass, and let in thy master and his mare." The lass
-rose up, put on her clothes and looked through the
-lock-hole. "By my sooth," cried she, "our mare has got a
-fine brown foal!"
-
-"Hold thy tongue, thou foolish wench, the light is
-dazzling thine eyes. I'll wager all I have against a groat
-that it's bigger than ever our foal will be."
-
-Still in merry Carlisle the Harper harped to high and
-low, and nought could they do but listen to him until
-day-dawn. But when it was daylight they discovered
-that Wanton Brown was gone and also the poor blind
-Harper's mare.
-
-"Alas! alas!" cried the cunning old Harper,
-"alas that I came here; in Scotland I have lost a brown
-colt foal and in England they have stolen my good grey
-mare."
-
-"Cease thy lamenting, thou silly blind Harper, and go
-on harping; we'll pay thee well for the loss of thy colt
-foal and thou shalt have a far better mare." So the
-harper harped and sang, and so sweet were his harpings
-that he was paid for the foal he never had lost and
-three times over for the gray mare.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Rookhope Ride`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Rookhope Ride
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-This Durham border song is supposed to be
-spoken by a Weardale man, who begins by
-denouncing the inhabitants of the Tyne valley,
-"and all their companies there about" as false thieves,
-
- | "minded to do mischief
- | And at their stealing stands not out."
- |
-
-It must be confessed that the Tynedale men had an
-unenviable reputation. They were such lawless
-desperadoes, so addicted to rapine, that during more than
-two centuries the merchants of Newcastle regularly
-refused to take an apprentice born in that district. The
-date is December 1572. The rebel Earl of Northumberland,
-who had taken up arms for Mary Queen of Scots,
-and for the old religion, had been betrayed by the Scots
-and beheaded at York. Owing to this rebellion there
-was great confusion in the northern counties, hence the
-time was well chosen by the "limmer thieves" of
-Tynedale to make a predatory raid on their neighbours.
-They gathered together the stoutest men of arms and the
-best in gear, a hundred or more in number, and in the
-forenoon, about eleven o'clock, they came into a
-"bye-fell" and stopped for a meal—the last which some of
-them would eat. When they had eaten, they chose their
-captains, Harry Corbyl, Simon Fell, and Martin Ridley.
-Then they rode on over the moss, "with many a brank
-and whew," saying to one another that they were men
-enough,
-
- | "For Weardale-men have a journey ta'en,
- | They are so far out o'er yon fell,
- | That some of them's with the two earls,
- | And others fast in Bernard castell.
-
- | There we shall get gear enough,
- | For there is nane but women at hame;
- | The sorrowful fend that they can make.
- | Is loudly cries as they were slain."
- |
-
-They came in at Rookhope Head, which is the top of
-a rocky valley, about five miles long, at the end of which
-Rookhope Burn empties itself into the river Wear. This
-valley is as wild and open to-day as it was then. In some
-four hours they gathered together about six hundred
-sheep and they were engaged in "shifting" the horses,
-when the hue and cry was raised by one Rowley, whose
-horse they tried to take. He was the first man to see
-them. The cry spread rapidly down Rookhope burn
-and through Weardale, and word came to the bailiff's
-house at the East-gate. He was out, but his wife had
-his horse saddled and sent it to him, together with his
-sword, spear, and jacket quilted with iron plates, the
-sort of harness worn by the moss-troopers and other
-light horsemen of the time. The bailiff had already
-heard the bad news, and was sorely troubled thereby.
-His own brother had been attacked three days before by
-marauders, and lay sick with nineteen wounds. Yet the
-bailiff shrank not at all, but hied fast after the
-sheep-stealers, with as many of the neighbours as he could
-gather to bear him company.
-
-The pursuers overtook the thieves in Nuketon Cleugh,
-and gave them all the fighting they wanted. Not one
-of them ever thought to see his wife again. They bore
-three banners against the Weardale men, "as if the world
-had been all their own." The fray lasted only an hour,
-but many a tall man lay weaponless and sore wounded
-before that hour was done, and four of the Northumbrian
-prickers were slain, including Harry Corbyl whom they
-had chosen to be their captain. Eleven of them were
-taken prisoners. Only one of the Weardale men fell
-but—
-
- | "These Weardale-men, they have good hearts,
- | They are as stiff as any tree;
- | For, if they'd everyone been slain,
- | Never a foot back man would flee.
-
- | And such a storm amongst them fell,
- | As I think you never heard the like;
- | For he that bears his head on high,
- | He oft-tymes falls into the dyke.
-
- | And now I do entreat you all,
- | As many as are present here,
- | To pray for the singer of this song,
- | For he sings to make blythe your cheer."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Barthram's Dirge`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Barthram's Dirge
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The story of how this ballad came to be
-preserved to us is a very interesting one. A
-Mr Surtees, who was very interested in the old
-ballads, used to give work to a poor old Scotswoman to
-weed in his garden. Finding that she had learnt ballads
-in her young days, he encouraged her to talk about
-them, and this was amongst those which she recited to
-him. She told him that it referred to a young man
-named Bertram or Barthrum, who made love to a young
-lady against the wish of her brothers. The cruel
-brothers slew him, but the lady had him buried at the
-very spot where he was wont to come to visit her in the
-days of their love. Sir Walter Scott thinks that perhaps
-Barthram was an Englishman and the lady was Scottish,
-and that the anger of the lady's brothers against him
-was partly on that account.
-
-It must be remembered that in those stormy days,
-when Border rivalry was keen, and all the Border
-chiefs, on both sides, were men of war-like mould,
-intermarriage between the two races was punishable by
-Border law. Each side felt equally that such mixed
-marriages would sooner or later produce a race that
-was neither loyal English nor loyal Scotch. A spirit of
-aloofness and rivalry was deliberately encouraged, right
-up to the time of the union of the two countries under
-one king.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- BARTHRAM'S DIRGE
-
-..
-
- | They shot him dead at the Nine-Stone Rig,
- | Beside the Headless Cross,
- | And they left him lying in his blood,
- | Upon the moor and moss.
- |
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- |
- | They made a bier of the broken bough,
- | The sauch and the aspin gray,
- | And they bore him to the Lady Chapel,
- | And waked him there all day.
-
- | A lady came to that lonely bower,
- | And threw her robes aside,
- | She tore her long yellow hair,
- | And knelt at Barthram's side.
-
- | She bathed him in the Lady-Well,
- | His wounds so deep and sair,
- | And she plaited a garland for his breast,
- | And a garland for his hair.
-
- | They rowed him in a lily-sheet,
- | And bare him to his earth,
- | And the Gray Friars sung the dead man's mass,
- | As they pass'd the Chapel Garth.
-
- | They buried him at the mirk midnight,
- | When the dew fell cold and still,
- | When the aspin gray forgot to play,
- | And the mist clung to the hill.
-
- | They dug his grave but a bare foot deep,
- | By the edge of the Ninestone Burn,
- | And they covered him o'er with the heather-flower,
- | The moss and the Lady fern.
-
- | A Gray Friar staid upon the grave,
- | And sang till the morning tide,
- | And a friar shall sing for Barthram's soul,
- | While the Headless Cross shall bide.[#]
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Mr Surtees observes, on this passage, that in the return made by
-the commissioners, on the dissolution of Newminster Abbey, there is
-an item of a Chauntery, for one priest to sing daily *ad crucem lapideam*.
-Probably many of these crosses had the like expiatory solemnities for
-persons slain there. They certainly did bury, in former days, near the
-Ninestone Burn, for Sir Walter Scott found there, lying among the
-heather, a small monumental cross, with initials, which he reverently
-placed upright.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Queen Mary and the Borders`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Queen Mary and the Borders
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The brief reign of Mary, Queen of Scots, was so
-crowded with incident that she was left with
-little time to visit the disturbed borderland of
-her kingdom. None-the-less her few visits to this district
-were fraught with important consequences. In 1565, when
-she married her cousin Lord Darnley, the head of the
-Douglas faction and a Roman Catholic, the Protestant
-nobles took up arms. In her very honeymoon she headed
-her soldiers, pursued the rebels to Dumfries, entered
-the town with a pistol in each hand, and laughed heartily
-at the fun of making her enemies "skip like rabbits"
-over the Border. She was only twenty-two years old—a
-fearless, dashing, attractive woman, with a clever
-head, a strong will, and a wild and lawless disposition.
-
-In the next year she again visited the Border, but on a
-very different errand. Mary had developed an extreme
-fancy for that bold Border Lord, the Earl of Bothwell,
-whose Castle of Hermitage commanded the picturesque
-and important valley of the Liddel. The Queen had
-given him authority to control the fierce Borderers; and
-when the earl was riding out he met the most lawless
-of them, Jock Elliot, of whom the couplet—
-
- | "My name is little Jock Elliot
- | And who dare meddle wi' me?"
-
-Bothwell fired straight at Elliot with his pistol, wounding
-him in the leg. Elliot aimed a mighty blow at Bothwell
-with his two-handed sword, giving the earl so sore a
-wound that he was glad enough to gallop home while
-there was yet time to save his life.
-
-Mary was holding solemn court at Jedburgh when
-she heard of her favourite's danger. She straightway
-took horse and rode to Hermitage, a hard cross-country
-ride of twenty miles, through a district infested with
-reckless men. When she galloped back to Jedburgh, she
-was in high fever and nearly died. Later on, in the
-misery of her long imprisonment, she often said,
-"Would I had died at Jedburgh!" Years later, a
-broken piece of a silver spur was found at Queensmire,
-on this difficult and dangerous road, just where Queen
-Mary's horse was said to have come to grief.
-
-Yet another time Queen Mary came to the Border,
-this time to cross it—after her imprisonment at Lochleven,
-her escape, and the disastrous rout of her followers
-at Langside. Daring and resourceful as ever, she fled
-across the Solway in an open boat; Scotland had failed
-her, she sought the protection of England. She landed
-at Cockermouth, and was led to Carlisle by Sir
-R. Lowther, and kept there, in reality a prisoner, while
-Elizabeth was musing of the dangers of the position.
-The Earls of Northumberland and Westmoreland took
-up Mary's cause and attempted to rescue her, but the
-Warden of Carlisle, Lord Scroope, defended the town
-successfully against the two earls, and they were soon
-in flight, eastward for their very lives. After this
-attempt at rescue Mary was, for greater safety, sent
-down to Bolton Castle in Yorkshire.
-
-.. _`Queen Mary crossing the Solway`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-180.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: Queen Mary crossing the Solway
-
- Queen Mary crossing the Solway
-
-Leonard Dacre, a member of the powerful Cumberland
-family of the Dacres, seems to have played a treacherous
-part, first promising the earls his help, and then betraying
-them to Elizabeth. He seized Nawarth Castle, which
-properly belonged to his young niece, and collected
-together three thousand men to the old Border war-cry,
-"A Red Bull, a Red Bull!" (probably the nickname of
-some fierce red-haired Celtic champion). The defeated
-earls came to Nawarth for shelter, and Dacre refused to
-harbour them. But by this time Elizabeth was
-convinced of Dacre's treason, and ordered Lord Hudson,
-the Governor of Berwick, to arrest him.
-
-Hudson appears to have marched by rather a round-about
-way, for Dacre met him at Geltbridge, on the
-west of Nawarth. A bridge is always a good point of
-vantage for meeting an enemy, especially when the river
-runs, as the Gelt does, through a deep and wooded gorge.
-The enemy has only a narrow way by which to approach,
-and no doubt Dacre posted his archers behind the trees
-and among the great rocks. The fight was a desperate
-one, but Hudson's men prevailed and pursued their foes
-far up the hill of Gelt, scuffling fiercely among the forest
-trees and dyeing a deeper hue the red sandstone cliffs
-and quarries.
-
-All the rebels who could escape fled across the Border
-to Scotland, where the Borderers, who were till then
-their enemies, received them with that open and fair
-hospitality which was one of their many great qualities.
-Elizabeth demanded that the leading noblemen should
-be given up to her; but although the Scottish Regent,
-Murray, made a pretence of trying to secure the Earl of
-Westmoreland, the Scots had too much sense of honour
-to allow him to proceed.
-
-The Earl of Northumberland, was however betrayed
-to the Scottish Regent by Hector Armstrong of Harelaw;
-but this the gallant Borderers held to be shameful, and
-Armstrong was a ruined man from that day forth.
-
-Two years later, this Earl was actually sold to Elizabeth
-and beheaded at York. Thus ended this small rebellion,
-called in history the Rising of the North, but which is
-known locally in Cumberland as Dacre's Raid.
-
-There is a little stream which rushes down a deep and
-beautiful glade to join the river Gelt above Geltbridge;
-this stream is known as "Hellbeck," and villagers tell
-us that the reason for this name is that it was stained
-with blood for two whole days after some battle that
-took place there. This battle is probably the one spoken
-of here.
-
-A wicket gate by Geltbridge leads us to the path
-through Gelt woods. The noble gorge is deeply cleft
-through the grand red sandstone rocks. Below roars and
-dashes the impetuous river; the path winds, sometimes
-high, sometimes low, through wonderful weeds, carpeted
-with beautiful mosses, gemmed with delightful flowers.
-On one of the rocks is an inscription carved by a Roman
-soldier, over fifteen hundred years ago. Follow the river,
-up, up, till the little Hellbeck is seen trickling down from
-the east; cross the little bridge and follow the streamlet
-on its opposite bank, along a path so little trod as to be
-scarcely visible; wander among ferns along one of the
-loneliest glens in the whole of Britain, passing the great
-railway bridge (*under* if the stream be low or *over* if it be
-high) till you join the main road again. There is no spot
-more beautiful or more peaceful. Yet this is the Hellbeck
-where men fought and hacked, and slashed and slew,
-among these woods, up and down these steep hillsides.
-These old trees, when young, have felt warm blood at
-their roots; and all because of a young, wild wilful
-queen, who fascinated men's hearts then, and the
-memory of whom fascinates them still.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Raid of the Reidswire`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Raid of the Reidswire
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "To deal with proud men is but pain,
- | For either must ye fight or flee,
- | Or else no answer make again,
- | But play the beast, and let them be."
- |
-
-Reidswire, the name of a place about ten miles
-from Jedburgh, means the Red Swire. Swire
-is an old northern term for the descent of a
-hill, and the epithet red may refer to the colour of the
-heath.
-
-The affair about which we are to tell took place on the
-7th of July 1575, at a meeting held, on a day of truce,
-by the Wardens of the Marches, for redressing wrongs and
-adjusting difficulties which could not be prevented from
-arising upon the Border. The Scottish Warden was Sir
-John Carmichael, and among his following were the
-Armstrongs and Elliots, Douglas of Cavers (a descendant
-of the Douglas who fell at Otterbourne), Cranstoun, whose
-ferocious motto was "Ye shall want ere I want,"
-Gladstain, "good at need," and the ancient head of the
-Rutherfoords, called in tradition the Cock of Hunthill,
-"with his nine sons him about." The English Warden
-was the haughty Sir John Forster, and he had full fifteen
-hundred men with him, chiefly Northumbrians, Tynedale,
-and Reedsdale men, who looked with scorn upon the
-much smaller array of their hereditary foes.
-
-The meeting, however, began meekly enough, with
-merriment and jests. Such Border meetings of truce,
-though they might wind up in blood, as was to happen
-now, always began as occasions of marketing and
-revelry. Both parties came fully armed to such a
-tryst, yet intermixed in mutual sports and familiar
-intercourse,
-
- | "Some gaed to drink, and some stood still,
- | And some to cards and dice them sped."
- |
-
-The Scots planted their pavilions or tents and feared
-no ill, even when they saw five hundred Fenwicks (a
-powerful Northumbrian clan) "marching in a flock." The
-clerk began to call the rolls, and to deal with one
-complaint after another for the loss of cows or ewes or
-other property. In the course of the proceedings an
-accusation was raised against an English freebooter
-named Farnstein, at the instance of a Scotch complainant.
-A "true bill" was found against the man, which means
-that he ought to be handed over to justice. But the
-English Warden alleged that he had fled, and could not
-be found. Carmichael, considering this as a pretext to
-avoid making compensation for the felony, bade the
-Northumbrians speak out plainly, and "cloke no cause
-for ill nor good." Upon this Sir John Forster, a proud
-and insolent man, "began to reckon kin and blood,"
-by which picturesque phrase the ballad probably means
-that he swiftly added up his forces. Then he drew
-himself up, backed by his Dalesmen, all fingering their bows,
-and with insulting expressions against Carmichael's kin
-he bade him "match with his equals." The men of
-Tynedale, who only wanted a pretext for a quarrel, drew
-their bows and let off a flight of arrows among the Scots.
-The more moderate men on both sides at first tried to
-quell the tumult, but in vain. The fight was bound to
-come.
-
- | "Then there was naught but bow and spear,
- | And every man pulled out a brand."
- |
-
-The English showed their usual dexterity with the bow.
-The Scots, for some reason, never took to this weapon;
-they had fire-arms, pistolets, and the like. The terrible
-cloth-yard arrows "from tackles flew," and the old
-proverb bade fair to justify itself, that every English archer
-carried twenty-four Scots under his belt—an allusion to
-his bundle of shafts. Success seemed certain for the
-English side; some of the foremost men among the Scots
-fell, and even Carmichael was thrown to the ground and
-was within an ace of being made a prisoner. The air
-resounded with the rallying cries of the English, the
-names of their captains, "A Shaftoe! A Shaftoe!" "A
-Fenwick! A Fenwick!" The Scots had little
-harness among them, only a few had the jack which
-served them as a defence for the body. Nevertheless,
-they laid about them sturdily, with "dints full dour,"
-and there was many a cracked crown. Then suddenly a
-shout was heard. "Jedburgh's here!" A body of
-Jedburgh burgesses appear to have arrived just in the nick
-of time to add to the outnumbered force of Scots. They
-probably wore armour and what were called "white
-hats," that is steel caps. Meanwhile, the English, too
-confident of easy victory, instead of slaying more Scots
-and turning the repulse into a rout, thought only to
-plunder the unhappy merchants, who, trusting to the
-truce which had been proclaimed, had attached
-themselves to the meeting. Had it not been for the English
-greed, the Scots would have been defeated. As it was,
-the Tynedale men, throwing themselves on the merchants'
-packs, fell into disorder, their adversaries recovered from
-their surprise, and the timely arrival of the Jedburgh men
-turned the tables. A short, sharp bout ended in the
-triumph of the Scots and the Northumbrians fled,
-"Down ower the brae, like clogged bees." The Scots
-took many prisoners, amongst whom were the English
-Warden, and his son-in-law, Sir Francis Russell; but the
-most gallant soldier taken that day was that courteous
-knight, Sir Cuthbert Collingwood, to whose family
-Admiral Collingwood belonged. Several of those
-"Fenwicks fierce," who had turned up five hundred
-strong at the commencement of the fray, had the
-mortification of being carried off in triumph by their
-enemies. All these prisoners were sent to the Earl of
-Morton, Regent of Scotland, who detained them at
-Dalkeith for some days, until the bitter feeling natural
-after such an affair had died down, at any rate in part,
-and by this prudent precaution the Regent is thought to
-have probably averted a war between the two kingdoms.
-He ultimately permitted them to return to their own
-country, parting from them with great expressions of
-regard. The interest taken in the matter by Queen
-Elizabeth, and the representations of her Ambassador
-at Edinburgh, no doubt had something to do with this
-happy issue.
-
-It will probably occur to the careful reader of this
-book as somewhat strange to find the ruling powers of
-England and Scotland both so set upon peace; but it
-must be remembered that at this period in the reign
-of Queen Elizabeth the heir-apparent to the English
-throne was the young James VI., King of Scotland,
-who would naturally not wish for any quarrel with
-the country which he hoped later on to rule.
-Elizabeth, on the other hand, had Mary Queen of Scots as
-her prisoner, and did not wish in any further way
-to strain the already delicate relations between the
-two countries.
-
-The Carmichael mentioned in this ballad, known in full
-as Sir John Carmichael of Edrom, Scottish Warden of the
-Middle Marches, was afterwards murdered by one of the
-wild Armstrongs, who is said to have composed, the
-night before his execution, the following manly and
-pathetic "Good-night." The third and fourth lines
-show clearly the disrepute into which this once honoured
-clan was falling; the seventh and eighth lines could only
-have been written by one who, despite his faults, had
-the true gallant instincts deep in his blood.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center
-
- ARMSTRONG'S GOOD-NIGHT
-
-..
-
- | "This night is my departing night,
- | For here nae langer must I stay;
- | There's neither friend nor foe o' mine,
- | But wishes me away.
-
- | What I have done thro' lack of wit,
- | I never, never can recall;
- | I hope ye're a' my friends as yet;
- | Good-night and joy be with you all!"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Jock o' the Side`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXIV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Jock o' the Side
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "He is well kend, John of the Syde,
- | A greater thief did never ryde."
- |
-
-The subject of this ballad bears some resemblance
-to Kinmont Willie, and such adventures were
-not uncommon in those turbulent times. The
-events we are to relate originated in a raid ridden by the
-famous Liddesdale spearmen (the hardiest of the Scotch
-moss-troopers) upon English ground.
-
-"They had better hae staid at home," for the outcome
-was that one of their best men, Michael of Winfield, was
-killed, and Jock o' the Side, nephew to the Laird of
-Mangerton, was taken prisoner, and promptly lodged in
-Newcastle Jail. When the news reached Jock's mother
-she kilted her coats up to her knee, and ran down the
-water with the tears falling in torrents from her eyes.
-She ran to Mangerton House, on the banks of the Liddel,
-and told her brother, the good old lord, the bad news.
-"Michael is killed, and they have taken my son John." "Never
-fear, sister," quoth Mangerton, "I have eighty-three
-yokes of oxen, my barns, my byres, my folds are all
-filled, I'll part with them all ere Johnie shall die." Then
-he thought out his plan. "Three men I'll send to set him
-free, all harnessed in the best steel; the English loons
-shall feel the weight of their broad swords. The Laird's
-Jock shall be one, the Laird's Wat two, and Hobbie
-Noble, thou must be the third. Thy coat is blue, and
-since England banished thee thou hast been true to
-me." Now this Hobbie was an Englishman, born in Bewcastledale,
-the wildest district in Cumberland. Like numerous
-other English outlaws, he had made his own country too
-hot to hold him; his misdeeds had banished him to
-Liddesdale, and he was now in high favour with the Laird
-of Mangerton. The Laird gave the dauntless three
-orders to reverse the shoes of their horses, so that anyone
-crossing their trail might think they were proceeding in a
-contrary direction. He also warned them not to seem
-gentlemen, but to look like corn-carriers; not to show
-their good armour, nor appear like men of war, but to
-be arrayed as country lads, with halter and cart-collar
-on each mare. So Hobbie mounted his grey, Jack his
-lively bay, and Wat his white horse, and they rode for
-Tyne water. When they reached the Tyne they lighted
-down at a ford, and by the moonlight they cut a tree,
-with fifteen nogs on each side, to serve them as a scaling
-ladder, to climb Newcastle wall with. However, when
-they came to Newcastle town and alighted at the wall,
-their tree proved three ells too short, and there was
-nothing for it but to force the gates. At the gate a proud
-porter attempted to withstand them. The Armstrongs
-wrung his neck, took his life and his keys at once, and
-cast his body behind the wall. Soon they reached the
-jail, and called to the prisoner,
-
- | "Sleeps thou, wakes thou, Jock o' the Side,
- | Or art thou weary of thy thrall?"
- |
-
-Jock answered dolefully, "Often I wake, nay,
-sleep seldom comes to me—but who's this knows my
-name so well?" Then out and spoke the Laird's
-Jock, his cousin and namesake, "Now fear ye not,
-my billie!" quoth he; "for here are the Laird's Jock,
-the Laird's Wat, and Hobbie Noble the Englishman
-come to set you free." Jock o' the Side did not think it
-possible that they could effect his release. "Now hold
-thy tongue, my good cousin," said he. "This cannot be—
-
- | 'For if all Liddesdale were here the night,
- | The morn's the day that I must die.'
-
-They have laid full fifteen stone of Spanish iron on me,
-I am fast bound with locks and keys in this dark and
-dreary dungeon." But the Laird's Jock replied. "Fear
-not that; faint heart never won fair lady. Work thou
-within, we'll work without, and I'll be sworn we'll set
-thee free." They loosed the first strong door without a
-key, the next chained door they split to flinders. The
-Laird's Jock got the prisoner on his back, irons and all,
-and brought him down the stairs with no small speed
-and joy. Hobbie Noble offered to bear some of his
-weight, but the Laird's Jock said that he was lighter than
-a flea. When they had all gone out at the gates, the
-prisoner was set on horseback, and they all joked
-wantonly. "O Jock," they cried, "you ride like a
-winsome lady, with your feet all on one side." The night
-was wet, but they did not mind. They hied them on full
-merrily until they came to the ford at Cholerford, above
-Hexham. There the water was running mountains
-high. They asked an old man, "Honest man, tell us in
-haste, will the water ride?" "I've lived here thirty
-years and three," replied he, "and I never saw the Tyne
-so big, nor running so like a sea." The Laird's Wat
-counselled them to halt. "We need not try it, the
-day is come we all must die!" "Poor faint-hearted
-thief!" cried the Laird's Jock. "There'll no man die
-but him that's fated; I'll guide you safely through; lift
-the prisoner behind me." With that they took to the
-water and managed to swim through. "Here we are all
-safe," said the Laird's Jock triumphantly. "Poor faint
-Wat, what think ye now?" They now saw twenty men
-pursuing them, sent from Newcastle, all English lads,
-stout and true. But when their leader saw the water he
-shook his head. "It won't ride, my lads," said he.
-Then he cried to the party of Scots: "Take the prisoner,
-but leave me my fetters." But the Laird's Jock was not
-a Scot for nothing. "I wat weel no," he shouted back,
-"I'll keep them, they'll make horse-shoes for my
-mare—for I am sure she's bought them right dear from
-thee." Then they went on their way to Liddesdale, as fast as
-they could, and did not rest until they had brought the
-rescued prisoner to his own fireside, and made him free
-of his irons.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Hobbie Noble`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Hobbie Noble
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "Keep ye weel frae the traitor Mains!
- | For gold and gear he'll sell ye a'."
- |
-
-In the ballad of "Jock o' the Side," we have seen
-Hobbie Noble act a distinguished part in the deliverance
-from captivity of Jock, cousin of the Laird of
-Mangerton, chief of the Armstrong clan. Now in the
-following ballad we shall learn how ungrateful the
-Armstrongs were for his faithful services. The Armstrongs
-were one of those outlawed or broken clans, whose hand
-was against every man, and living as they did in what
-was called the Debateable Land, on the frontier between
-Liddesdale and England, these stark cattle-lifters and
-arrant thieves levied tribute from English and Scotch
-alike. Halbert or Hobbie Noble was an Englishman, a
-Cumbrian born and bred, but his misdeeds were so great,
-they banished him never to return, and he established
-himself among the Armstrongs. From their territory he
-continued his depredations upon the English, in
-resentment of which they at length offered a bribe to the
-Armstrongs to decoy him into England under pretence of
-inviting him to join them in a foray.
-
- | "At Kershope foot the tryst was set,
- | Kershope of the lily lee,"
-
-and the name of the chief traitor and leader of the gang
-was Sim o' the Mains. Hobbie harnessed himself "both
-with the iron and with the steel," buckled spur on his
-heel and belted brand to his side, leaped upon his
-"fringed grey," and rode down the banks of the Liddel.
-As soon as he saw the others, "Well be ye met, my
-comrades five," he cried. "Now, what is your will with
-me?" They all answered, with one consent, "Thou'rt
-welcome here, brave Noble; wilt thou ride with us into
-England, and we will be thy safe warrant? If we get a
-horse worth a hundred pounds thou shalt soon be upon
-its back." But Hobbie said that he dared not ride into
-England by day, as he had a feud with the Land-Sergeant
-(an officer under the Warden, to whom was entrusted the
-arrest of delinquents).
-
- | "But will ye stay till the day gae down,
- | Until the night come o'er the ground,
- | And I'll be a guide worth any two
- | That may in Liddesdale be found?
- | Though the night be black as pitch and tar,
- | I'll guide ye o'er yon hill so high;
- | And bring ye all in safety back,
- | If ye'll be true and follow me."
- |
-
-They let him guide them over moss and moor, over hill
-and hope, and over many a down, until they came to the
-Foulbogshiel. But meanwhile word was gone to the
-Land-Sergeant, in Askerton, about seventeen miles from
-Carlisle. "The deer that you have hunted so long, is in
-Bewcastle Waste this day." The Sergeant understood
-at once. Quoth he, "Hobbie Noble is that deer! He
-carries the style full high. He has often driven our
-bloodhounds back. Now go, warn the bows of Hartlie
-Burn, see they sharpen their arrows on the wall! Warn
-Willeva and Speir Edom, take word to them that they
-meet me on the Rodric-haugh at break of day. We will
-on to Conscouthart-green, for there, I think, we'll get our
-quarry." In the meantime Hobbie had alighted and
-was sleeping in the Foulbogshiel. He dreamed that his
-horse was shot beneath him, and he himself was hard
-put to it to get away. The cocks crowed, the day
-dawned, and if Hobbie had not wakened he would have
-been taken or slain in his sleep.
-
- | "Awake, awake, my comrades five!
- | I trow here makes a full ill day;
- | Yet the worst cloak o' this company
- | I hope shall cross the Waste this day,"
-
-Thus cried he to his companions, thinking the gates were
-clear. But alas! it was not so. They were beset by
-the Land-Sergeant's men, cruel and keen, and while
-the Englishmen came before, the traitor Sim o' the Mains
-came behind. Had Noble been as masterful a champion
-as Wallace himself, he could not have won under such
-untoward circumstances. He had but a laddie's sword,
-but he did more than a laddie's deeds, for that sword
-would have cleared Conscouthart-green had it not broken
-over one of the English heads. So his treacherous
-companions delivered Hobbie up to the officers of justice;
-they bound him with his own bowstring, but what made
-his heart feel sorest of all, was that it was his own five
-who bound him. They took him on to Carlisle. They
-asked him mockingly if he knew the way. He thought
-much, but said little, though he knew it as well as they
-did. As they took him up the Carlisle streets, the old
-wives cast their windows wide, every woman whispering
-to another, "That's the man loosed Jock o' the Side." The
-poor fellow cried out, "Fie on ye, women! why
-call ye me man? It's no like a man that I'm used, but
-like a beaten hound that's been fighting in the gutter." They
-had him up through Carlisle town, and set him by a
-chimney fire, where they gave him a wheaten loaf to eat,
-and a can of beer. "Confess my lord's horse, Hobbie,"
-they said, "and to-morrow in Carlisle thou shalt not
-die." "How can I confess them," says the poor man,
-"when I never saw them." And he swore a great oath,
-by the day that he was born, that he had never had
-anything of my lord's. He had but short shrift and
-they hung him the next morning.
-
-According to the ballad, his last words were of manly
-pride:—
-
- | "Yet wad I rather be ca'd Hobbie Noble,
- | In Carlisle, where he suffers for his fault,
- | Than I'd be ca'd the traitor Mains,
- | That eats and drinks o' meal and malt."
- |
-
-Thus died the doughty Noble. It is proper to add,
-however, that the Armstrong's chief, Lord Mangerton,
-with whom Hobbie had been a favourite, took a severe
-revenge on the traitors who betrayed him. The
-contriver of the scheme, Sim o' the Mains, fled into England
-to escape the resentment of his chief, and was there caught
-by the English, and himself executed at Carlisle, two
-months after Hobbie's death in the same place! Such
-is, at least, the tradition of Liddesdale.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Laird o' Logie`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXVI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Laird o' Logie
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-In 1592, the Earl of Bothwell, Francis Stuart, failed
-in an attempt against King James VI., whom
-he tried to surprise in the palace of Falkland.
-Amongst his adherents, whom he sought about the King's
-person, was the hero of this ballad, the Laird of Logie,
-who was taken prisoner and laid in Edinburgh chapel in
-the keeping of Sir John Carmichael, the hero of the ballad
-called the "Raid of Reidswire." Carmichael was at this
-time captain of the King's Guard, and had the keeping
-of State criminals.
-
- | I will sing, if ye will hearken,
- | If ye will hearken unto me;
- | The King has ta'en a poor prisoner,
- | The wanton laird o' young Logie.
-
- | Young Logie's laid in Edinburgh chapel,
- | Carmichael's the keeper o' the key;
- | And may Margaret's lamenting sair,
- | A' for the love of young Logie.
-
- | "Lament, lament na, may Margaret,
- | And of your weeping let me be;
- | For ye maun to the King himsell,
- | To seek the life of young Logie."
-
- | May Margaret has kilted her green cleiding,[#]
- | And she has curl'd back her yellow hair—
- | "If I canna get young Logie's life,
- | Farewell to Scotland for evermair."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Clothing.
-
-..
-
- | When she came before the King,
- | She kneelit lowly on her knee—
- | "O what's the matter, may Margaret?
- | And what needs a' this courtesie?"
-
- | "A boon, a boon, my noble liege,
- | A boon, a boon, I beg o' thee!
- | And the first boon that I come to crave,
- | Is to grant me the life of young Logie."
-
-.. _`"A boon, a boon, my noble liege!"`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-198.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: "*A boon, a boon, my noble liege, A boon, a boon, I beg o' thee!*"
-
- "*A boon, a boon, my noble liege,
- A boon, a boon, I beg o' thee!*"
-
-..
-
- | "O na, O na, may Margaret,
- | Forsooth, and so it mauna be;
- | For a' the gowd o' fair Scotland
- | Shall not save the life of young Logie."
-
- | But she has stown[#] the King's redding kaim,[#]
- | Likewise the Queen her wedding knife,
- | And sent the tokens to Carmichael,
- | To cause young Logie get his life.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] Stolen.
-[#] Dressing comb.
-
-..
-
- | She sent him a purse of the red gowd,
- | Another o' the white monie;
- | She sent him a pistol for each hand,
- | And bade him shoot when he gat free.
-
- | When he came to the Tolbooth stair,
- | There he let his volley flee;
- | It made the King in his chamber start,
- | E'en in the bed where he might be.
-
- | "Gae out, gae out, my merrymen a',
- | And bid Carmichael come speak to me;
- | For I'll lay my life the pledge o' that,
- | That yon's the shot o' young Logie."
-
- | When Carmichael came before the King,
- | He fell low down upon his knee;
- | The very first word that the King spake,
- | Was—"Where's the laird of young Logie?"
-
- | Carmichael turn'd him round about
- | (I wot the tear blinded his ee),
- | "There came a token frae your grace,
- | Has ta'en away the laird frae me."
-
- | "Hast thou play'd me that, Carmichael?
- | And hast thou play'd me that?" quoth he;
- | "The morn the justice-court's to stand,
- | And Logie's place ye maun supplie."
-
- | Carmichael's awa to Margaret's bower,
- | Even as fast as he may dree—
- | "O if young Logie be within,
- | Tell him to come and speak with me!"
-
- | May Margaret turn'd her round about
- | (I wot a loud laugh laughed she),
- | "The egg is chipp'd, the bird is flown,
- | Ye'll see nae mair of young Logie."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXVII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "'Tis I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead,
- | And a harried man I think I be!
- | There's nothing left at the fair Dodhead
- | But a woeful wife and bairnies three!"
- |
-
-About Martinmas time, when Border steeds get
-corn and hay, the Captain of Bewcastle rode
-over to Tividale to forage. And first he met a
-guide high up in Hardhaughswire, and next he met a
-guide low down in Borthwick water.
-
-"What tidings, what tidings, my trusty guide?"
-"No tidings have I—yet if ye go to the fair Dodhead,
-I'll let ye see many a cow's calf." Right hastily they
-came to the fair Dodhead, loosed the cows and ransacked
-the house.
-
-Jamie Telfer's[#] heart was sore when he saw this, and
-the tears ran down his cheeks, and he pleaded with the
-Captain to give him back his gear, or else he would have
-revenge upon him. But the Captain only laughed and
-said, "Man, there's nothing in thy house but an old sword
-without a sheath that could scarcely kill a mouse."
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] The Telfers, though they had become Scotch at the time of this
-ballad, were originally a Norman family, descended from the knight
-"Taille-fer" (cut-iron), who came over with William the Conqueror.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-The sun was not up though the moon had gone down,
-and there was a sprinkling of new-fallen snow upon the
-ground when Jamie Telfer ran ten miles a-foot between
-the Dodhead and Stob's Hall. When he came to the
-tower gate he shouted aloud, and old Gibby Elliot came
-out and asked the meaning of such disturbance.
-
-"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a
-harried man am I, for nothing is left at fair Dodhead but
-a sad wife and three bairnies."
-
-"Go and seek help at Branksome Hall, for ye shall
-get none from me—seek help where ye paid blackmail,
-for, man, never did ye pay *me* any."
-
-James turned him about, his eyes blinded with tears.
-"Never shall I pay blackmail again to Elliot. My hounds
-may all run masterless, my hawks may fly as they will
-from tree to tree, and my lord may seize the lands of his
-vassal, for never shall I see again the fair Dodhead."
-
-He turned him to Tiviotside and made as fast as he
-could for Coultart cleugh, and there he shouted aloud
-until out came old Jock Grieve, and asked who it was
-that made such a noise.
-
-"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a
-harried man am I, for nothing is left at fair Dodhead
-but a weeping wife and three bairnies, and six poor calves
-stand in the stall crying aloud for their mothers."
-
-"Alack!" quoth Jock Grieve, "alack, my heart is
-sore for thee! for I married the eldest of three sisters, and
-you married the youngest."
-
-So he took out his bonny black horse, right well fed
-with corn and hay, and set Jamie Telfer on his back, to
-take his troubles to Catslockhill. When he came to
-Catslockhill he shouted aloud until out came William's
-Wat to ask what was the matter.
-
-"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a
-harried man am I. The Captain of Bewcastle has driven
-away my gear; for God's sake rise and help me."
-
-"Alas and alack," quoth William's Wat, "my heart is
-sore for thee. Never did I yet come to the fair Dodhead
-and found thy basket bare."
-
-He set his two sons on coal-black steeds, and he himself
-mounted a freckled grey, and with Jamie they rode to
-Branksome Hall, where they shouted so loud and high
-that old Buccleuch came out to ask what was the matter.
-
-"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a
-harried man am I; there is nought left at fair Dodhead
-but a weeping wife and three bairnies."
-
-"Alack," quoth the good old lord, "my heart is sorry
-for thee; go call Willie, my son, to come speedily. Go
-call up hastily the men that live by the waterside. They
-who will not ride for Telfer's cattle, let them never again
-look me in the face. Call up Wat o'Harden and his sons,
-call up Borthwick Water, Gaudilands and Allanhaugh,
-call Gilmanscleugh and Commonside; ride by the gate
-at Priesthaughswire and call the Currors of the Lee, and
-call brave Willie of Gorrinberry as ye come down the
-Hermitage slack."
-
-So the Scotts rode and ran bravely and steadily,
-shouting "Ride for Branksome," and when Willie
-looked ahead he saw the cattle being driven fast up the
-Frostylee brook, and to the plain.
-
-"Who drives yon cattle?" cried Willie Scott, "to
-make us a laughing stock?" "'Tis I, the Captain of
-Bewcastle; I will not hide my name from thee."
-
-"Let Telfer's cattle go back, or by the faith of my
-body," said Willie, "I'll ware my dame's calf-skin on
-thee."
-
-"I will not let the cattle go back neither for thy love
-nor fear; I will drive Jamie Telfer's cattle in spite of all
-your company of Scotts."
-
-"Set on them, lads!" cried Willie; "set on them
-cruelly; there will be many an empty saddle before they
-come to Ritterford."
-
-So they set to with heart and hand, and blows fell like
-hail until many were slain and many a horse ran
-masterless. But Willie was struck by a sword through the
-headpiece and fell to the ground, and auld Wat of Harden
-wept for rage when he saw that his son was slain. He
-took off his steel cap and waved it thrice, and the snow
-on the Dinlay mountain was never whiter than the locks
-of his hair.
-
-"Revenge! revenge!" he cried; "lay on them, lads.
-Willie's death shall be revenged or we will never see
-Teviotside again."
-
-The lances flew into splinters, and many another brave
-rider fell, and before the Kershope ford was reached,
-the Scots had got the victory. John of Brigham was
-slain, and John of Barlow, and thirty more of the
-Captain's men lay bleeding on the ground. The Captain
-himself was run through the right thigh and the bone
-broken, and never would woman love him again, if he
-should live a hundred years.
-
-"Take back the kye!" said he; "they are dear kye
-to some of us; never will a fair lady smile on me if I
-should live to be a hundred."
-
-Word came to the Captain's bride in her bower, that
-her lord had been taken prisoner. "I would rather have
-had a winding-sheet," said she, "and helped to put it over
-his head than that he should have been disgraced by the
-Border Scot when he led his men over Liddel."
-
-There was a wild gallant there named Watty
-Wudspurs (Madspurs) who cried, "Let us on to his
-house in Stanegirthside, if any man will ride with us!"
-
-So they came to Stanegirthside, pulled down the trees,
-burst open the door, and drove out all the Captain's kye
-before them.
-
-An old woman of the Captain's kin cried, "Who dare
-loose the Captain's kye, or answer to him and his men?"
-
-"It is I, Watty Wudspurs, that loose the kye; I will
-not hide my name from thee; and I will loose them in
-spite of him and his men."
-
-When they came to the fair Dodhead they were a
-welcome sight, for instead of his own ten milk kye Jamie
-Telfer had now got thirty-three. He paid the rescue shot
-in gold and silver, and at Willie Scott's burial, there were
-many weeping eyes.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Muckle-mou'd Meg`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXVIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Muckle-mou'd Meg
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The Scott family was very powerful on the
-Border in the days of Queen Elizabeth, the
-bravest and strongest of them being the bold
-Lord of Buccleuch. His name is often mentioned in
-Border history, and so is that of another Scott, "auld
-Wat Scott of Harden." He was a fit man for these wild
-times, being both brave and canny. He married a
-beautiful Border lass, "the Flower of Yarrow," and it is
-surprising how many able men have descended from this
-marriage. Not only did Sir Walter Scott and Robert
-Louis Stevenson claim descent from this fine old
-freebooter; his daughter Maggie married Gilbert Elliot of
-Stobs, nicknamed "Gibbie wi' the Golden Garters,"
-and from them were descended George Augustus Elliot
-(Lord Heathfield), famous for his splendid defence of
-Gibraltar, worthy of the best Border traditions, and also
-the Elliots of Minto, who have twice been Viceroys of
-India, once late in the eighteenth and once early in the
-twentieth century.
-
-But on one occasion one of the sons of Scott of Harden
-came perilously near to finding out how far his neck was
-capable of carrying the weight of his body. It was late
-in Queen Elizabeth's reign, and King James VI. of
-Scotland was extra anxious to live at peace with England,
-for he expected now very soon to be King over both
-countries. So he told his Warden, the bold Buccleuch,
-to restrain the wild Scotch freebooters; and you may
-imagine that the order was little to their liking. Young
-Willie Scott, Scott of Harden's son, quickly determined
-that cattle he must steal anyhow; he was his father's
-son, and did not his father once say, as he gazed longingly
-at a fine English haystack, "if only ye'd got four legs,
-haystack, ye would not be standing there!" So as
-Willie Scott was forbidden to steal English cattle, he
-decided to steal Scotch.
-
-Sir Gideon Murray, of Elibank Castle, was an old
-enemy of the Scott family, having once been told off to
-punish them for some audacious act of theirs. And Sir
-Gideon had some cattle that would make any Borderer's
-mouth water and his arm itch to drive them home. So
-Willie and a few boon companions started off one night
-for Elibank. But a warning voice had reached Sir
-Gideon, and Willie received a warm reception, and was
-taken prisoner. He lay in the castle dungeon all night,
-reflecting on the folly of being caught, and fully expecting
-to be hanged very early next morning, perhaps without
-even his breakfast to comfort him!
-
-But early on the fatal morning, Lady Murray startled
-her husband by asking him if he really meant to hang
-Willie Scott. He looked at her as if she were mad; of
-course, what else was there to do? Then she unfolded
-her scheme. She had a very plain-looking daughter
-known as "Muckle mou'd Meg," or Margaret with the
-extremely large mouth. Young Scott was handsome
-and of good family, and poor Meg would never again have
-such a chance of getting a good husband. Why not
-release Willie Scott, if only he would marry
-Mucklemou'd Meg?
-
-They were men of action in those days, and the priest
-was instantly sent for. Then, all being ready, the
-prisoner was brought forth. He was shown on the one
-hand the priest and the girl, and on the other hand the
-tree and the noose, and was asked to take his choice. His
-first proud feeling was that he would be mocked at if he
-married such a girl on such terms, and he walked bravely
-towards the rope. But the nearer he got to it the uglier
-it looked. He had to confess to himself that it was not
-at all a comfortable looking rope; he had a nasty feeling
-round his neck from merely looking at it, and thought it
-would probably feel worse when it got round his throat.
-Then he looked at the girl; she certainly was not as
-beautiful as his mother, the lovely Flower of Yarrow; and
-a Borderer loved a beautiful wife. But if he hanged he
-would have no wife at all! Then he suggested that he
-should have three days to think it over, but Murray said
-no, neither priest nor noose was prepared to wait, he
-must decide at once. Then he looked again at Meg and
-saw a kind glance in her eye; she felt sorry for the
-handsome young fellow. Then he knew she had a good heart,
-and that decided the matter; he went up and kissed her
-with a good grace, and the priest married them straight
-away.
-
-Afterwards he became Sir William Scott, and an
-important man on the Border. And, best of all, Meg
-proved to be a real good wife to him, and he never
-regretted the day when he elected to suffer the knot to be
-tied by the priest instead of by the hangman.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Dowie Dens of Yarrow`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XXXIX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Dowie Dens of Yarrow
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-This is one of the most famous and widely known
-of all the Border ballads, and has proved a
-source of inspiration to several poets, including
-Wordsworth, who wrote three poems upon the subject.
-The bard does not relate the full particulars, but gives
-only the barest outlines of facts, which were well known
-in his day, and still live in tradition. The story tells of a
-duel between two brothers-in-law. The very spot where
-it took place is still pointed out, a low muir on the Yarrow
-banks. The slain knight was apparently Walter Scott,
-one of the ancestors of Lord Napier. His murderer was
-his brother-in-law, John Scott. "Dowie" means
-melancholy, and "den" is a word used to describe a
-narrow, rocky valley, usually wildly beautiful.
-
-
- | Late at e'en drinking the wine,
- | And e'er they paid the lawing,
- | They set a combat them between,
- | To fight it in the dawing.[#]
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Dawn.
-
-..
-
- | "O stay at home my noble lord,
- | O stay at home my marrow.
- | My cruel brother will you betray,
- | On the dowie houms[#] of Yarrow."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Hillocks.
-
-..
-
- | "O fare ye well, my lady gay!
- | O fare ye well, my Sarah!
- | For I must go, though I ne'er return
- | From the dowie banks of Yarrow."
-
- | She kissed his cheek, she combed his hair,
- | As oft she had done before, O,
- | She belted him with his noble brand,
- | "And he's away to Yarrow."
-
- | As he gaed up the Tennies bank
- | I wot he gaed with sorrow,
- | Till down in a den he spied nine armed men,
- | On the dowie houms of Yarrow.
-
- | "O come ye here to part your land,
- | The bonnie forest thorough?
- | Or come ye here to wield your brand,
- | On the dowie houms of Yarrow?"
-
- | "I come not here to part my land,
- | And neither to beg nor borrow,
- | I come to wield my noble brand
- | On the bonnie banks of Yarrow.
-
- | "If I see all, ye're nine to ane;
- | And that's an unequal marrow;
- | Yet will I fight, while lasts my brand,
- | On the bonnie banks of Yarrow."
-
- | Four has he hurt, and five has slain,
- | On the bloody braes of Yarrow,
- | Till that stubborn knight came him behind,
- | And ran his body thorough.
-
- | "Gae hame, gae hame, good brother John,
- | And tell your sister Sarah,
- | To come and lift her leafu'[#] lord;
- | He's sleepin' sound on Yarrow."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Lawful.
-
-..
-
- | "Yestreen I dreamed a dolefu' dream,
- | I fear there will be sorrow!
- | I dreamed I pu'd the heather green,
- | Wi' my true love on Yarrow.
-
- | "O gentle wind, that bloweth south,
- | From where my love repaireth,
- | Convey a kiss from his dear mouth,
- | And tell me how he fareth!
-
- | "But in the glen strive armed men;
- | They've wrought me dole and sorrow;
- | They've slain—the comeliest knight they've slain,
- | He bleeding lies on Yarrow."
-
- | As she sped down yon high, high hill,
- | She gaed wi' dole and sorrow,
- | And in the den spied ten slain men,
- | On the dowie banks of Yarrow.
-
- | She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair,
- | She searched his wounds all thorough,
- | She kiss'd them till her lips grew red,
- | On the dowie houms of Yarrow.
-
- | "Now haud[#] your tongue, my daughter dear,
- | For a' this breeds but sorrow;
- | I'll wed ye to a better lord,
- | Than him ye lost on Yarrow."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Hold.
-
-..
-
- | "O haud your tongue, my father dear!
- | Ye mind me but of sorrow;
- | A fairer rose did never bloom
- | Than now lies cropp'd on Yarrow."
-
-.. _`"She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair"`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-210.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: "*She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair, She searched his wounds all thorough.*"
-
- "*She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair,
- She searched his wounds all thorough.*"
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XL
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "When for the lists they sought the plain
- | The stately lady's silken rein
- | Did noble Howard hold;
- | Unarmed by her side he walk'd
- | And much, in courteous phrase they talk'd
- | Of feats of arms of old.
- | Costly his garb; his Flemish ruff
- | Fell o'er his doublet, shaped of buff,
- | With satin slashed and lined;
- | Tawny his boot and gold his spur,
- | His cloak was all of Poland fur,
- | His hose with silver twined.
- | His Bilboa blade, by Marchmen felt,
- | Hung in a broad and studded belt;
- | Hence, in rude phrase, the Borderers still
- | Call'd noble Howard, Belted Will."
- | SCOTT, *Lay of the Last Minstrel*.
- |
-
-One of the many picturesque figures of Border
-history was "Belted Will," or to call him
-by his proper name and title, Lord William
-Howard, a younger son of the powerful Duke of Norfolk.
-
-His mother had died when he was an infant, and
-his father, the foremost Roman Catholic nobleman in
-England, took up the cause of Mary Queen of Scots,
-whom he wished to marry. For this treason against
-Queen Elizabeth he was beheaded in 1572, when young
-Lord William was only nine years old. At the age of
-fourteen the young lord's guardians arranged for him a
-marriage with Elizabeth Dacre, a member of a powerful
-Border family, and heiress to the Baronry of Gilsland.
-As the bride was even younger than her boy-husband,
-let us hope that they both went to school again
-immediately after the marriage!
-
-When he grew to manhood, Lord William warmly
-supported the Roman Catholic cause and was imprisoned
-by Elizabeth; but when James became King, he was
-released and restored to his estates on the Border.
-Throughout the remainder of his career he was the most
-notable man of his district. He knew how to make
-himself respected by his wild neighbours. His fame and
-power were great. He founded the fortunes of his family
-so surely that he it is who is usually thought of as the
-ancestor of the Earls of Carlisle, though his great-grandson
-was the first to hold the title.
-
-Lord William had great energy and many interests, and
-was remarkable as being an "all-round" man. He was
-equally a leader of men and a lover of books; no detail
-in the management of his estates was too small for him
-to study; he was a good husband to his wife, and a
-splendid father to his fifteen children. He selected the
-most beautiful of his several castles, that of Naworth, and
-repaired and almost rebuilt it; he took there the fine old
-oak ceiling from the ancient castle of Kirkoswald, which
-was ornamented with portraits of all the kings of England.
-Visitors to Naworth can see to-day the "hall of Belted
-Will," by kind permission of the present Earl of Carlisle.
-
-He was something of a poet and very much of an
-antiquarian. His estates were full of interesting things,
-and none knew them better than he. There were miles of
-the Roman wall, still in excellent condition; there were
-many Roman altars and inscriptions, which he copied and
-translated; quite near him, at Coome Crags, was a Roman
-quarry, which can still be seen to-day, with marks of Roman
-tools on its stones. It stands in a beautiful wood by the
-side of the lovely river Irthing. And only a little further
-on, standing on a fine cliff overlooking the river, is the old
-Roman station of Amboglanna, a fort that covered
-five and a half acres, with walls that were once five feet
-thick, the main foundations of which are still standing,
-clear enough for anyone to trace them out. It is quieter
-there to-day than it was in Roman times, or in the stirring
-days of Belted Will!
-
-It is good to think that this broad-shouldered,
-gallant, powerful nobleman, who could ride, shoot, fight
-and keep this wild district in order, was at the same time
-such a clever student and book-worm. They tell a story
-that he was once sitting in his library intent on a book
-when his men brought in a robber whom they had caught
-red-handed, and asked Lord William to try him. Belted
-Will, angry at being interrupted, cried out:—"Don't
-disturb me; hang him!" Half an hour later he rose
-and came down to try the man, but finding that he
-was already hanged he went on with his book. It is
-only fair to add that robbers in those days expected no
-mercy when caught.
-
-One of the many clever things that Lord William did
-was to have figures carved in oak to represent soldiers;
-these he placed on the top of his high towers, and deceived
-the Scots into thinking that he had a large and very
-watchful garrison! These figures can still be seen at Naworth.
-Near Naworth Castle is Lanercost Priory, where King
-Edward I. stayed on his way to Scotland. There is a
-secret passage from Naworth tower which is supposed
-to run under the river to Lanercost. No one is allowed
-to go through it, as it is considered dangerous; the
-people of the district say that the last man to do so was
-Oliver Cromwell.
-
-Visitors to Naworth to-day should certainly go on
-to Gilsland itself, the picturesque straggling little town,
-which was the head of the Baronry which Elizabeth
-Dacre brought to her boy-husband. The Irthing at
-Gilsland runs through a wonderfully beautiful gorge,
-rocky and wooded, wild and romantic. Stand on the
-venturesome stepping stones near the old church, with
-the river rushing at your very feet, and see if this is an
-exaggeration of the beauties of the scene. Right in the
-midst of the glen you can see the "Popping-stone" where
-Sir Walter Scott walked with the lady of his choice and
-asked her to marry him. Readers of "Guy Mannering"
-can see in Over Denton church near Gilsland the grave of
-Meg Merrilees, who died here at the age of ninety-eight.
-The town is also interesting for the fact that the county
-border is at Gilsland, and there is an inn so built that it
-stands in both counties, and contains a bed in which you
-can sleep with your head in Northumberland and your
-feet in Cumberland!
-
-There is a story of Belted Will that tells eloquently of
-the strength of his character. When he was released
-from prison by King James he found his estates so ruined
-by careless management that he knew that great care was
-needed to put things right again; so until he got his
-affairs into order, all the pocket-money that he would
-allow himself was twenty shillings per month!
-
-Bold William, Belted Will, gallant Lord Howard, as
-you will, died at Naworth in 1640 aged seventy-seven,
-one year after the death of his devoted wife. His
-descendants were, like himself, students and men of
-action; the present Earl of Carlisle is directly sprung
-from him, and is very proud of the fact.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Gilderoy`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Gilderoy
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-Gilderoy was a celebrated and most daring
-highwayman, who roamed far, and was well-known
-all over Scotland and indeed in London.
-His death inspired a very striking ballad, but this is
-hardly a Border Lowland ballad, but refers chiefly to
-another Border district, namely, that between the
-Lowlands and Highlands. Just as the Scottish Lowlanders
-thought the English their legitimate quarry, so the
-Highlanders in turn looked upon the Lowlanders as
-created to supply them with all they lacked. There is a
-story on record of a Highland chief who, finding his men
-had carelessly robbed another Highlander, returned the
-spoil with a handsome apology, and issued stringent
-orders that in future nothing was to be taken except in
-the Lowlands, "where all men make their prey."
-
-Among the robber clans of the Highlands, the
-MacGregors stand easily in the first rank. In a long series
-of Scottish Acts of Parliament, they are habitually
-referred to as "the wicked clan Gregor, so long continuing
-in blood, slaughter, theft, and robbery." One of their
-most famous exploits was the battle of Glenfruin, when
-they defeated their enemies, the Colquhouns, and slew
-two hundred of them. The Colquhouns appeared before
-the King at Stirling with the bloody shirts stripped off
-their dead, and the law was put in motion against the
-MacGregors more vigorously than ever. This was in
-1603. The execution of Gilderoy, as described in our
-poem, took place in 1638. His real name was Patrick
-MacGregor, and the fact that he belonged to this
-Ishmaelite clan, whose hand was directed against every
-man, and whose very name had been solemnly abolished,
-may well serve as an excuse for his career of crime.
-Gilderoy, in Gaelic, means the red-haired gillie or lad,
-and besides the name there are many other points of
-similarity between him and Rob Roy, who was the head
-of the Clan MacGregor in the following century. Both
-Gilderoy and Rob Roy were professional blackmailers,
-that is, they could be relied on never to plunder anyone
-who was prudent enough to buy them off by paying a
-fixed contribution. This is what is meant in the
-following lines of the ballad—
-
- | "All these did honestly possess
- | He never did annoy,
- | Who never failed to pay their cess
- | To my love, Gilderoy."
- |
-
-The "cess" is the blackmail, or insurance against
-robbery. The widespread reputation of Gilderoy is
-attested by the many legends of him which are printed
-in the old chap-books and "Lives of the Highwaymen." According
-to these authorities, Gilderoy once robbed
-Oliver Cromwell near Glasgow; but an even more
-romantic episode of his career was a roaming trip upon the
-continent, in the course of which he is said to have picked
-Cardinal Richelieu's pocket while he was celebrating
-mass in the King's presence, at the church of St Denis in
-Paris. He made his way even to Madrid, where he
-succeeded in carrying off the Duke of Medina-Cell's
-plate. Altogether a most notorious and dashing cateran.
-The ballad is supposed to be spoken by a young
-woman who had all her life been attached to him.
-
- | "Gilderoy was a bonnie boy,
- | Had roses to his shoon;[#]
- | His stockings were of silken soy,
- | With garters hanging down.
- | It was, I ween, a comely sight
- | To see so trim a boy;
- | He was my jo, and heart's delight,
- | My handsome Gilderoy.
- | \* \* \* \* \*
- | My Gilderoy and I were born
- | Both in one town together;
- | We scant were seven years before
- | We 'gan to love each other.
- | Our daddies and our mammies they
- | Were filled with meikle joy,
- | To think upon the bridal day
- | Of me and Gilderoy."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Shoes.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-But there intervened the spirit of adventure which
-had ever been the birthright of all of his surname,
-
- | "Oh, that he still had been content
- | With me to lead his life!
- | But ah! his manful heart was bent
- | To stir in deeds of strife;
- | And he in many a venturous deed
- | His courage bold would try;
- | And now this gars[#] my heart to bleed
- | For my dear Gilderoy."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Makes.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-No doubt those who knew Gilderoy personally would
-have agreed, as was actually said of Rob Roy, that he
-was a benevolent and humane man "in his way."
-
- | "My Gilderoy, both far and near,
- | Was feared in every town;
- | And boldly bore away the gear
- | Of many a Lowland loun,
- | For man to man durst meet him none,
- | He was so brave a boy;
- | At length with numbers he was ta'en,
- | My winsome Gilderoy."
- |
-
-He was not so fortunate as Rob Roy, who ultimately
-died peacefully in his bed. Gilderoy had lost the game,
-and he had to pay the stakes.
-
- | "Of Gilderoy so feared they were,
- | They bound him fast and strong;
- | To Edinbro' they led him there,
- | And on a gallows hung.
- | They hung him high above the rest,
- | He was so trim a boy;
- | There died the youth whom I loved best,
- | My handsome Gilderoy."
- |
-
-Thus perished one of the characteristic products of
-an age whose standards were so different from ours that
-we can hardly judge him fairly. He was banned before
-his birth, a scion of a race so indomitably and innately
-ferocious that the law attempted to extirpate them, root
-and branch. The very name of Gregor could be given
-by no clergyman at baptism, under penalty of
-deprivation and banishment. Cunning and politic neighbours
-were not slow to take advantage of the stubborn
-disposition of the MacGregors, and gradually stripped them
-of their once extensive lands in Argyle and Perthshire.
-Gilderoy might well consider that he was "an honester
-man than stood on any of their shanks," and we may be
-excused for feeling a very lively sympathy with him, and
-for echoing in our inmost hearts the exquisitely feminine
-point of view expressed by the lady composer of the
-ballad.
-
- | "If Gilderoy had done amiss,
- | He might have banished been;
- | Ah! what sore cruelty is this
- | To hang such handsome men!
- | To hang the flower of Scottish land,
- | So sweet and fair a boy!
- | No lady had so white a hand
- | As thee, my Gilderoy!
-
- | When he had yielded up his breath
- | I bare his corpse away;
- | With tears, that trickled for his death,
- | I washt his comely clay;
- | And sicker[#] in a grave sae deep
- | I laid the dear lo'ed boy;
- | And now for ever maun I weep,
- | My winsome Gilderoy."
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Safely.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Archie Armstrong's Oath`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Archie Armstrong's Oath
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-..
-
- | "And oft since then, to England's King,
- | The story he has told;
- | And aye, when he 'gan rock and sing,
- | Charlie his sides would hold."
- |
-
-Archie Armstrong lived in Eskdale, where
-he did his best to keep up the grand reputation
-of his family as being among the very boldest
-sheep-stealers of the Border. His house was at Stubholm,
-where the Wauchope stream runs into the river Esk,
-near where the picturesque town of Langholm now
-stands. Living in the reign of Charles I., after the union
-of crowns, the profession of freebooter was far less
-honourable than of old. He could not now plead that he was
-a Border soldier, fighting against his nation's enemy.
-The wild Border blood in him might cry out for the old
-adventurous career, but he could no longer hope for the
-aid of powerful Border families. When cornered, his sole
-protector would be his own wits, and woe betide him if
-they failed!
-
-Archie's house was about eight miles from the Border,
-and he could not help strolling towards the fascinating
-line and tasting the sweetness of temptation. When
-the chance came that seemed to him sufficiently safe,
-he would go home in company though he had walked out
-alone; the "company" being a good fat English sheep.
-One night a shepherd had marked him lingering about,
-and had watched him, and raised an alarm. Away went
-stout Archie at a Marathon pace; half way home he
-passed Gilnockie tower, where his ancestor bold Johnie
-Armstrong lived so gaily. "Alas!" thought Archie,
-dolefully, "he too was hanged in the end!"
-
-He got home well in front of his pursuers, but his wife
-gave him small encouragement. With typical Scottish
-dourness she remarked to him, "Ye will be ta'en this
-night and hanged i' the morning."
-
-But Archie put a braw face on it, and declared that he
-would never hang for one silly sheep. Quicker than any
-butcher he skinned and roughly trimmed the dead animal,
-throwing the rejected parts into the swift stream.
-Then rejoicing in the fact that his child was away with
-its aunt, he put the carcase carefully in the cradle and
-began rocking it and singing a lullaby to it, as if he were
-the most loving father in all the British Isles.
-
-The pursuers now rushed in, and began to accuse
-Archie triumphantly; but he rebuked them for making
-so much noise, telling them that his child was at death's
-door! As for stealing their sheep, he took a solemn oath
-that if he had done such a thing he would ask to be
-doomed to "eat the flesh this very cradle holds!"
-
-Such an oath on the Borders was a very serious matter;
-they little knew that the only flesh in the cradle was
-sheep's flesh, which Archie asked nothing better than to
-devour!
-
-Impressed but not convinced, his enemies carefully
-searched the whole of Archie's house and garden; it
-was only with very great unwillingness that they at last
-decided that they must miss the supreme pleasure of
-hanging him! They went away saying that they must
-have been deluded by the devil or by witches; and the
-shepherd resolved to hang a branch of rowan-tree
-(mountain-ash) by his fold, for that was well-known to
-have the power to keep witches away.
-
-As soon as they were all on their road to England again,
-Archie skipped about like a dancing fiddler. "Wife,"
-he said, "I never knew before that I would make such
-a good nurse."
-
-After this Archie wandered down to London, and his
-wild jests becoming famous, he was made Court Jester
-by King Charles I. And many a time he acted the story
-to the King, rocking a pretended cradle, and singing a
-persuasive lullaby, to the King's intense amusement.
-
-Nevertheless, Archie lost his place by his boldness.
-These were the days of Archbishop Laud (1637), who was
-hated by the Scots. One day, as the archbishop was
-about to say grace before dinner, Archie asked the King's
-permission to say grace instead. The King consented,
-and the jester's double-meaning words were as follows:—
-
-"All *praise* to God, and little *laud* to the devil!"
-
-The archbishop, in many senses a little man, had Archie
-dismissed in disgrace. But, such were the chances of
-these uncertain times, the archbishop was executed in the
-end, while the sheepstealer escaped that fate!
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Christie's Will`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Christie's Will
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-The resourceful Archie, whose tale we have just
-told, was not the only one of the reckless
-Armstrongs to keep up the old freebooting habits
-in the reign of Charles I. There lived at Gilnockie tower
-(the old residence of the famous Johnie Armstrong) in
-the parish of Cannobie, a notorious Willie Armstrong,
-known as Christie's Will. Like Archie, he more than
-once owed his life to his ready wit. He was shut up
-in Jedburgh jail when the Earl of Traquair, Lord High
-Treasurer, paid the prison an official visit. When he
-asked Will the cause of his being there, the freebooter
-answered:—
-
-"For stealing two halters, my lord."
-
-Traquair was surprised, but Will afterwards owned
-that there was a fine colt at the end of each halter.
-
-Traquair was amused and pleased by the boldness of
-the man, and had him set free.
-
-Some little time afterwards Traquair was involved in
-a law-suit which was set down to be decided by Lord
-Durie, who seems to have let it be known before-hand
-what his opinion was upon the case. Nothing would save
-Traquair's interests except that Durie must be got out
-of the way before the case began. But how was it to be
-done?
-
-Christie's Will was appealed to, and merely said
-"Leave it to me."
-
-It was the judge's habit to take horseback exercise on
-the sands of Leith without any attendant. One
-morning, whilst so riding, a well-dressed and gentlemanly
-stranger, on a good horse, happened to overtake him;
-a courteous greeting led to a friendly conversation, in
-which the stranger proved himself so affable and entertaining
-that the judge rode on by his side without suspicion.
-Suddenly, when they had come to a lonely spot, Lord
-Durie found himself seized by this muscular gentleman,
-smothered up in a big cloak, whisked off his horse and on
-to the stranger's, who galloped off, mischief knows where!
-It was Christie's Will, carrying out his promise.
-
-The judge's horse galloped home, riderless. Search
-was made, but the judge could not be found. It could
-only be supposed that he had been thrown off into the sea.
-His successor was appointed, and Lord Traquair's case
-was heard and won!
-
-Lord Durie had languished for several months in a
-dreary underground vault. I wonder if he thought of
-the many poor wretches he had sentenced to a similar
-fate? Suddenly at midnight he was roughly awakened,
-muffled up as before, and carried away again by his
-captor on horseback. Next morning, by the light of the
-newly-risen sun, he found himself on the very spot by
-the sands of Leith from which he had been kidnapped!
-We will hope that every one, including his successor, was
-glad when he thus came to life again.
-
-When the Civil War began, the Earl of Traquair was
-faithful to King Charles I. Having some papers of
-importance that he wished to have given into the King's
-own hands, he entrusted these to the bold freebooter.
-Christie's Will did his errand, and received an equally
-important answer. But spies at Court had given
-Cromwell word of the matter, and the command was
-sent up to Carlisle that Will Armstrong must be
-intercepted there. Not knowing his danger, Will halted in
-the town to refresh his horse, then pushed forward to
-the bridge which crossed the Eden on the Northern
-boundary of the city. Cromwell's soldiers were waiting
-for him; the bridge was high and narrow, the broad
-Eden waters were swirling in high flood.
-
-Christie's Will, without one second's hesitation, spurred
-his horse over the parapet. He sank ... he came up
-... he sank ... he came up ... he sank ... he
-came up, this time at the very bank. He cut his
-heavy, dripping cloak from his shoulders; relieved of
-the weight, his horse struggled to the land. Away went
-Will, away went the troopers after him. It was a hard
-race to the river Esk, and this also Will had to swim.
-But now he was in Scotland, and his friends were at
-hand; gaily Will turned to his pursuers, who dared not
-cross the water; "Good friends," cried he, "come over
-and drink with me!" But they showed him their backs,
-and their horses's tails, and he saw no more of them.
-
-Such were the exploits of Christie's Will; he was the
-last of the free-booters, but he certainly knew how to
-live up to their boldest traditions.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Northumberland at the time of the Civil War`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLIV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Northumberland at the time of the Civil War
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-During the stormy days of King Charles I., the
-Borders, and especially Northumberland, saw
-many stirring scenes. It must be remembered
-that shortly before the Long Parliament was elected, King
-Charles almost came to war with the Scottish Presbyterians,
-because they would not obey the harsh rule of
-Archbishop Laud. The Scots raised an army under the
-lead of shrewd general Alexander Leslie, the "old, little,
-crooked soldier," of great experience, trained by the great
-Gustavus of Sweden. In 1639 Charles sent ships up to
-the Forth, in reply to which Leslie marched his army to
-threaten the border. The old quarrel between the two
-countries began to blaze up again. King Charles led an
-army to the border and was received with splendid
-applause at Newcastle. Many joined his army, and
-shouted with joy at the thought of meeting the Scots in
-battle. But they were an untrained disorderly crew, who
-fired their guns off at random and kept no military order
-whatever. Gallant Leslie marched his men down to
-Duns Law, in South Berwickshire, and was ready to
-fight. But King Charles would not trust his army that
-length; he made terms with his opponents, promising
-them the reforms they set their hearts upon, and the two
-armies melted away like school-boys at the end of the
-term.
-
-Things were soon as bad as before. Lord Conway
-was sent by the King to put Newcastle into a strong
-defensive state. His greatest difficulty was to get money
-for the purpose, for the King's quarrel with his various
-Parliaments had deprived him of supplies. The badly
-paid troops mutinied, and the ring-leader was shot.
-Very soon the Scottish army came across the Tweed, the
-Highlanders armed with bows and arrows.
-
-They pitched their camp on Heddon Law, and soon
-proved to the country folk that they had not come for
-plunder, but would pay for all they wanted to eat. This
-re-assured the country people, who had no real quarrel
-with the Scots, and even became most friendly to them.
-
-With Lord Conway it was otherwise; he was the
-King's officer, and was bound to offer resistance. His
-opinion was that if once the Scots crossed the Tyne, and
-attacked Newcastle from the south or Gateshead side,
-they were sure of victory. Accordingly, leaving a strong
-garrison to protect the town, he marched out with two
-thousand or more foot and fully one thousand horse to
-command the important ford across the Tyne at Newburn,
-a place five or six miles due west of Newcastle. It
-is interesting to remember that here also the Romans had
-had fortifications, along the line of the wall, and the very
-spot where the Scots and English fought may well have
-been the scene of contests between the Roman Legions
-and the wild Picts.
-
-The English arrived first, on the south bank of the
-river, and threw up earth-works hastily. Very soon
-they saw the Scots march into Newburn village, on the
-north bank, where they employed themselves by hauling
-their cannon up to the church tower. Remarkable
-cannon they were, made out of bar-iron hooped together
-with cord and wet, raw hides! But they were not
-required to carry any distance, the foe was only on the
-other side of the Tyne. All the morning the enemies
-looked at one another across the river, each hesitating
-to fire the first shot of the war. At last an English
-officer shot a Scotch officer, and the fight began. The
-Scots were on the higher ground, and their cannon, rough
-as they were, sent heavy shot on to the English. Then
-when the river tide went down, the Scots rushed across
-the ford, and the battle was soon won, the royal standard
-being taken. English runaways rushed through the
-woods and into Newcastle, crying, "Fly for your lives,
-naked devils have destroyed us!" Whether they
-referred to kilted Highlanders is uncertain. Anyway,
-Leslie and his Scots entered Newcastle in triumph, but
-were afterwards bought off with a payment of £60,000
-and recrossed the Tweed into Scotland.
-
-This was in 1641, a year in which King Charles was
-quarrelling bitterly with his Long Parliament, though
-the actual civil war in England did not begin till 1642.
-Early in 1642 it was decided that so important a
-town as Newcastle ought to be put in a stronger state
-of defence.
-
-William Cavendish, Earl of Newcastle, was made
-governor of the town, but he was much hindered in his
-plans by lack of money. King Charles, however,
-promoted him from Earl to Marquis of Newcastle, and the
-lack of funds he made up as best he was able. However,
-the Governor of Holy Island, off the Northumberland
-shore, found himself left for sixteen months without any
-pay! He wrote to the King's treasury a protest in verse,
-beginning:—
-
- | "*The great commander o' the Cormorants,*
- | *The geese and ganders of these hallowed lands,*
- | *Where Lindisfarne and Holy Island stands,*
- | *These worthless lines sends to your worthy hands.*"
- |
-
-The allusion in the first two lines is to the fact that
-Holy Island and the Farne Islands were then, and are still
-to-day, so thinly peopled that sea-birds gather there in
-large numbers, adding greatly to the wild beauties of
-these islets and rocks.
-
-In January 1644 a serious struggle began. Leslie and
-his soldiers crossed the Tweed at Berwick bridge and
-again entered Northumberland. General Bayly marched
-his men from Kelso across the frozen river and joined
-Leslie at Alnwick. Warkworth Castle, though it
-contained cannon and provisions, surrendered at once. The
-Scottish general gravely told Bemerton, the governor,
-that if he had learnt to fight as well as he had learnt to
-dance his castle could never have been taken! The
-country districts of Northumberland had no quarrel with
-the Scots, and it was soon evident that the real fight
-would be at Newcastle, bravely held by the Marquis
-and by the Mayor, Sir John Marley.
-
-The Scottish "murthering pieces," as the cannon were
-called, were brought down by sea, and the obstinate
-conflict began. Despite the terrible weather of a very
-rough February, frequent skirmishes took place, while
-the Scots closed nearer and nearer round the gallantly
-defended town. Leslie soon found that the defences
-had been put into good order; the ditch round the town
-was dug deep, and close to the walls; the walls
-themselves were strongly underpinned. The battlements were
-strengthened by stone and lime, but the top stones were
-loosened so as to slip if the enemy attempted to mount
-them. Every cannon was placed carefully, to the best
-advantage.
-
-.. _`The Storming of Newcastle`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-228.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: *The Storming of Newcastle*
-
- *The Storming of Newcastle*
-
-But the Marquis of Newcastle was called southward
-by the needs of his King. With him were his thousand
-brave "White coats," so called because they wore white
-coats which they promised to dye in the blood of the
-enemy. But they met the terrible Ironsides at Marston
-Moor, and in a conflict of furious bravery on both sides,
-all of the gallant thousand except thirty were slain on
-the field of battle.
-
-This was in July of 1644, but it did not affect the siege
-of Newcastle, which still dragged obstinately on, under
-the skilful guidance of the dauntless Mayor. By
-October, Sir John Marley was so buoyed up by his success
-that he sent a letter to General Leslie to ask if he was
-still alive! This the Scots took to be an insult, and a
-grand assault was begun. The Scots were furious, and
-the defence was desperate. The roar of the cannon and
-the rattle of the musketry were succeeded, as the assault
-got nearer and nearer to its aim, by the clashing of swords
-and the clanging of pikes. At last, the regiments of
-Loudoun and Buccleugh succeeded in forcing their way
-into the town. In vain the defenders made their last
-gallant charge; their cause was now hopeless, and soon
-the market-place was filled with fugitives, who flung
-down their arms and cried aloud for quarter at the hands
-of the triumphant Scots.
-
-In these days the defender was often made to feel the
-anger of the victors, who in the flush and cruelty of
-victory avenged their dead, only too terribly, upon the
-losing side. Not so at Newcastle. Prominent in its day,
-it stands out because of the mercy of the Scottish
-conquerors as much as for the heroism of its defence. In
-this, the last great struggle on English ground between
-Scots and English, it is pleasing indeed to recall facts
-that redound to the high honour of both parties.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`Montrose and Lesly`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLV
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- Montrose and Lesly
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-James Graham, the great Marquis of Montrose
-who at first sided with the Scottish Covenanters
-against Charles I., was so out of sympathy with
-the extreme turn which affairs took later against that
-unhappy monarch that he went over to the King's side.
-Gathering the Highland Clans under his standard, he
-marched Southward and defeated the Covenanters in
-a series of brilliantly fought battles. He occupied
-Edinburgh, and laid great plans to complete the conquest of
-Scotland by subduing the Borderland.
-
-If the Borders had remained in their old fighting state
-no doubt many a Border chief would have joined
-Montrose's army and aided his bold plans. But,
-unfortunately for King Charles, the Borders had been
-tamed and disarmed since the union of England and
-Scotland under James I. Only a few adventurous spirits like
-Christie's Will remained as examples of the old wild days.
-
-The remnant of the army of the Covenanters was
-commanded by the stern General David Lesly (not the
-Alexander Leslie who figures in the preceding chapter),
-and was somewhere in the Border district. Gay Gallant
-Montrose did not bother as to exactly where this army
-was; he despised it too heartily. He himself was at
-Selkirk, while his army was encamped on the
-neighbouring plain of Philiphaugh.
-
-Montrose was busy writing a cheering message to King
-Charles to the effect that he had now no enemy left in
-Scotland who could offer an effective resistance to his
-arms. Little did he think that General Lesly was
-gradually creeping nearer, nearer, and was now actually within
-four miles of his army. With the advantage of a thick
-Scotch mist, Lesly's men actually burst upon Montrose's
-infantry without a single scout having seen them to give
-warning of their approach! In such confusion,
-Montrose's men had no chance whatever.
-
-The Marquis galloped up, only to find his soldiers
-hopelessly defeated and great numbers slain. There was
-nothing left but for those to escape who could. The
-Marquis succeeded in cutting his way through, and
-gathered his troops to fight again later on; but his
-efforts were doomed to failure.
-
-A popular ditty of these days, sung to a stirring tune,
-was called "Lesly's March." Sir Walter Scott seems to
-regard this as wholly serious, and ranks it as a Covenanter
-song. It appears to me, however, that many of the lines
-have a very sarcastic flavour; no doubt the Covenanters
-did really think that
-
- | "There's none in the right but we,
- | Of the old Scottish nation";
-
-but they would probably have phrased it a little less
-baldly. To me it appears as if this song were the work of
-an onlooker and not a partisan; one ready to see the
-faults of both sides, and very much inclined to hold back
-his final opinion till he saw which was going to win.
-But let the March speak for itself.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- LESLY'S MARCH
-
-..
-
- | March! march:
- | Why the de'il do ye na march?
- | Stand to your arms, my lads,
- | Fight in good order;
- | Front about, ye musketeers all,
- | Till ye come to the English Border;
- | Stand till 't, and fight like men,
- | True gospel to maintain.
- | The parliament's blythe to see us a' coming!
- | When to the kirk we come,
- | We'll purge it ilka room,
- | Frae popish relics, and a' sic innovation,
- | That a' the world may see,
- | There's nane in the right but we,
- | Of the auld Scottish nation.
- |
-
-A truly partisan ballad of the day describes the battle
-of Philiphaugh and exults in the defeat of Montrose,
-"our cruel enemy," it calls him. As a ballad it has no
-great poetic merit; the very sober Covenanters probably
-regarded ballad-making as a frivolity. But it describes
-rather graphically how an "aged father," from the
-country-side, led Lesly's army very cautiously and
-wisely to the very tents of the foe. These details are no
-doubt accurate; though the ballad-writer (whoever
-he was) displays his ignorance of other matters by making
-the old soldier say that he was at the battle of Solway
-Moss (which took place one hundred years before) and at
-that of Dunbar, which was not fought till five years
-later!
-
-The following are the opening verses of the ballad,
-giving an idea of its plain, straightforward style:—
-
- | On Philiphaugh a fray began,
- | At Hairhead-wood it ended;
- | The Scots out o'er the Graemes they ran,
- | Sae merrily they bended;
-
- | Sir David frae the Border came,
- | Wi' heart an' hand came he;
- | Wi' him three thousand bonny Scots,
- | To bear him company.
-
- | Wi' him three thousand valiant men,
- | A noble sight to see!
- | A cloud o' mist them weel conceal'd,
- | As close as e'er might be.
-
- | When they came to the Shaw burn,
- | Said he, "Sae weel we frame.
- | I think it is convenient
- | That we should sing a psalm."
- |
-
-It is not necessary to quote more of it, but it may be
-remarked that in place of the last line as given here, the
-*unregenerate* substituted,
-
- | "That we should take a dram."
-
-In point of actual fact, *both* versions are probably true!
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Death of Montrose`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLVI
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Death of Montrose
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-During the imprisonment of King Charles I., at
-a time when active war on his behalf might
-do the unhappy monarch more harm than good,
-the gallant Montrose had retired to France. His bright
-military fame, his courteous manners, and manly bearing
-made him friends everywhere, and when he visited
-Germany the Emperor conferred on him the rank of
-Marshal. Hearing of the execution of Charles I.,
-Montrose at once placed himself at the disposal of Charles II.,
-now a fugitive in Holland. This prince named him
-Captain General of Scotland, and the daring hero set out
-for the Orkney Islands with about five hundred paid
-soldiers, mostly adventurous Germans and Dutchmen.
-Only a reckless spirit like Montrose would have
-undertaken so wild a commission.
-
-Scotland was heartily sick of war, and learnt with
-consternation of the arrival of this firebrand. Lesly was
-sent forward with four thousand men to attack Montrose's
-five hundred! Colonel Strachan led the advanced
-guard, which fell unexpectedly upon the invading army,
-and, after a brief, fierce struggle, totally defeated it.
-
-Montrose, disguised as a peasant, entrusted his life to
-one he believed to be his friend, M'Leod, Laird of
-Assaint. But this unworthy man betrayed him to his
-bitterest enemy, General Lesly. Thus, at last, this
-brilliant commander was in the hands of the bitter
-Covenanters, into whose hearts his brilliant victories
-had once spread such terror. Their treatment of him is
-a black stain upon their memory. For days he was led
-about in the peasant's disguise, which he had put
-on; he was carted through the streets of Edinburgh,
-accompanied by such insults that the populace cried
-shame upon his captors.
-
-When tried before the Scottish Parliament for treason,
-he made a most eloquent defence, one of the most notable
-of his assertions being that he had never stained his
-victories by slaughtering his foes in cold blood after the
-battle. In this he was far above his enemies, who had
-disgraced their victory of Philiphaugh by many an
-execution, and who were now bent upon taking the life of
-Montrose himself. The sentence against him was
-probably decided before his defence had been heard; it
-ran thus:—
-
-"That James Graham should next day be carried to
-Edinburgh cross and there hanged on a gibbet 30 feet
-high for the space of three hours; then to be taken down,
-his head to be struck off on a scaffold and affixed to the
-prison; his arms and legs to be stuck up on the four
-chief towns of the Kingdom, his body to be buried
-in the place set aside for common criminals."
-
-To this sentence the great Marquis haughtily replied
-that he would rather have his head so placed than his
-picture in the King's bedchamber, and that he wished he
-had limbs enough to be dispersed into all the cities of
-Christendom, to prove his dying attachment to his king.
-And in the one evening of life that still remained to him,
-this accomplished and fearless nobleman employed his
-time in turning these loyal sentiments into verse.
-
-Despite the fact that he triumphed undaunted over all
-the mean inventions of their malice, his enemies persisted
-to the end.
-
-The executioner tied mockingly round his neck the
-book that had been published describing his victories;
-Montrose thanked him, saying that he wore it with more
-pride than he had ever worn the garter of honour. He
-uttered a short prayer; then asking them what more
-indignities they had prepared for him, he patiently and
-with unbroken spirit yielded his life to the hangman, at
-the too early age of thirty-eight.
-
-Whatever opinions we may have as to the rights and
-wrongs of the quarrel, this brutal killing of a gallant
-soldier and accomplished gentleman can only rank as a
-hideous blot upon all concerned in it. Every insult
-hurled at Montrose has returned in the verdict of time
-with redoubled force against the malice of those who
-stooped to such vindictiveness. The execution of a
-soldier who has violated no rule of war is at any time
-a thing that revolts the human conscience, and a
-sentence hoarse with the vile taunts of its utterers has so
-far lost all semblance of justice that it is needless to
-argue upon it.
-
-In the verdict of history, the great Marquis of
-Montrose, whether right or wrong in his political views,
-lived and died like a man of honour.
-
-The ballad of the "Gallant Grahams," written about
-this time, reflects very sincerely and touchingly the
-devotion and affection surrounding the great Marquis,
-accompanied by the very Scottish feeling that in
-addition to his own personal power and genius, he
-was also the head of the great Border family of Grahams.
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-.. class:: center bold
-
- THE GALLANT GRAHAMS
-
-..
-
- | Now, fare thee well, sweet Ennerdale![#]
- | Baith kith and countrie I bid adieu;
- | For I maun away, and I may not stay,
- | To some uncouth land which I never knew.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] A corruption of Endrickdale.
-The principal and most ancient
-possessions of the Montrose family lie
-along the water of Endrick, in
-Dumbartonshire.
-
-..
-
- | To wear the blue I think it best,
- | Of all the colours that I see;
- | And I'll wear it for the gallant Grahams,
- | That are banished from their countrie.
-
- | I have no gold, I have no land,
- | I have no pearl nor precious stane;
- | But I wald sell my silken snood,
- | To see the gallant Grahams come hame.
-
- | In Wallace days, when they began,
- | Sir John the Graham[#] did bear the gree
- | Through all the lands of Scotland wide:
- | He was lord of the south countrie.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] The faithful friend and adherent of the
-immortal Wallace slain at
-the battle of Falkirk.
-
-..
-
- | And so was seen full many a time;
- | For the summer flowers did never spring,
- | But every Graham, in armour bright,
- | Would then appear before the king.
-
- | They were all drest in armour sheen,
- | Upon the pleasant banks of Tay;
- | Before a king they might be seen,
- | These gallant Grahams in their array.
-
- | At the Goukhead our camp we set,
- | Our leaguer down there for to lay;
- | And, in the bonny summer light,
- | We rode our white horse and our gray.
-
- | Our false commander sold our king,
- | Unto his deadly enemie,
- | Who was the traitor, Cromwell, then;
- | So I care not what they do with me.
-
- | They have betray'd our noble prince,
- | And banished him from his royal crown;'
- | But the gallant Grahams have ta'en in hand
- | For to command those traitors down.
-
- | In Glen-Prosen[#] we rendezvous'd,
- | March'd to Glenshie by night and day.
- | And took the town of Aberdeen,
- | And met the Campbells in their array.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] Glen-Prosen is in Angusshire,
-usually called Forfarshire. The
-Glenshee road, over the Grampians,
-is the highest road in Great
-Britain.
-
-..
-
- | Five thousand men, in armour strong,
- | Did meet the gallant Grahams that day
- | At Inverlochie, where war began,
- | And scarce two thousand men were they.
-
- | Gallant Montrose, that chieftan bold,
- | Courageous in the best degree,
- | Did for the king fight well that day;—
- | The Lord preserve his majestie!
-
- | Then woe to Strachan, and Ilacket baith!
- | And, Lesly, ill death may thou die!
- | For ye have betray'd the gallant Grahams,
- | Who aye were true to majestie.
-
- | And the Laird of Assaint has seized Montrose,
- | And had him into Edinburgh town;
- | And frae his body taken the head,
- | And quarter'd him upon a trone,
-
- | And Huntly's[#] gone the self-same way,
- | And our noble king is also gone;
- | He suffer'd death for our nation,
- | Our mourning tears can ne'er be done.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] The Marquis of Huntly,
-one of the few Scottish nobles who never
-wavered in his devotion to King Charles I.,
-was beheaded by the
-sentence of the Parliament of Scotland.
-
-..
-
- | But our brave young king is now come home,
- | King Charles the Second in degree;
- | The Lord send peace into his time,
- | And God preserve his majestie!
- |
-
-The ballad-writer's reference to the "coming home"
-of Charles II. probably means his signing of the Covenant
-and placing himself entirely at the mercy of the violent
-bigots who had killed his most faithful servant, Montrose.
-To this was Charles reduced by the desperate nature of
-his fortunes. But this course of action entirely severed
-the Scottish Covenanters from the English Puritans, and
-admirers of the gallant Montrose can take a grim pleasure
-in the fact that his arch-enemy, General Lesly, was most
-disastrously defeated by Cromwell at the battle of
-Dunbar.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Borderers and the Jacobites`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLVII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Borderers and the Jacobites
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-During the Jacobite Rising, many of the Border
-chiefs took up arms in the Stuart cause. Two
-of these, Lord Derwentwater and Viscount
-Kenmure, were beheaded on Tower Hill for their part in
-the unsuccessful rising of 1715, and another, Lord
-Nithsdale, was only saved from the same fate by the
-courage of his wife.
-
-This brave woman travelled in the depth of winter
-from Scotland, but when she reached York the snow was
-so deep that the stage coach could go no further. She
-continued her journey alone, though the snow was
-above the horse's knees, and by good luck she reached
-London and the Tower in safety, where, by bribing the
-guards, she managed to see her husband.
-
-She then resolved to petition the King for his life, and
-she herself tells in a letter to her sister how she waited
-in the ante-room to see the King (George I.), and how she
-threw herself at his feet to present the petition. The
-King tried to get away from her, but she seized hold of his
-coat, and was dragged on her knees along the floor. This
-scene produced no result, and as other efforts to procure
-Nithsdale's release also failed, the Countess determined to
-save him by a stratagem. She again bribed the guards
-to let her in, telling them she had joyful news for her
-husband about the petition. She dressed him in woman's
-clothes, which she had smuggled in for the occasion, and
-painted his face, and brought him out, speaking to him
-as to the woman friend who had accompanied her, but
-who had already left the prison, calling him "Mrs Betty,"
-and asking him for the love of God to go as quickly as he
-could to her lodging and fetch her maid, as she wished
-to go and present her final petition for the release.
-
-All went well, and Nithsdale escaped to France; but
-the King was highly incensed and declared that the
-Countess cost him more trouble than any woman in Europe.
-
-Her adventures were not yet over, however. In spite
-of the fact that the King had wished for her arrest, she
-travelled to Scotland to fetch her son, and the valuable
-papers which she had taken the precaution to bury
-underground on her departure for London.
-
-She was successful in this second journey, and, after
-concealing herself and her son, until no further search
-was made for them, this noble and enterprising
-woman escaped to France and joined her husband.
-They afterwards went to Rome, where they lived
-happily for many years.
-
-In an old ballad called "Lord Nithsdale's Dream," he
-is described as dreaming in the Tower the night before
-his execution, after having said farewell to his beloved
-wife.
-
- | "Farewell to thee, Winifred, pride of thy kind,
- | Sole ray in my darkness, sole joy in my pain."
-
-He listens for the last sound of her footfall, and catches
-the last glimpse of her robe at the door, and then all
-joy and gladness depart out of his life, and he prays
-alone in his dungeon, thinking of the dreadful dawn
-that awaits him.
-
-He falls asleep and dreams that he is a frolicsome boy
-again, playing amongst the bracken on the braes of the
-Nith, bathing in its waters and treading joyfully the
-green heather. Or again he is riding to the hunt on his
-gallant grey steed, with a plume in his bonnet and a star
-on his breast, chasing the red deer and the wild mountain
-roe.
-
-The vision changes, and he dreams that he is telling
-his love to Winifred, and swearing to be faithful to
-her, watching the red blushes rise on her cheeks at his
-words of love, and hearing her sweet voice replying.
-
-Again he is riding at the head of his gallant band.
-
- | "For the pibroch was heard on the hills far away,
- | And the clans were all gathered from mountain and glen.
- | For the darling of Scotland, their exile adored,
- | They raised the loud slogan—they rushed to the strife;
- | Unfurl'd was the banner, unsheathed was the sword,
- | For the cause of their heart, that was dearer than life."
- |
-
-And now the darksome morn has come, the priest is
-standing by his side, saying the prayers for the dead.
-He hears the muffled drum and the bells tolling his death
-knell; the block is prepared, the headsman comes; and
-the victim is led bare-headed from his cell.
-
-Waking, he turns on his straw pallet, and sees, by the
-pale, misty light of a taper, the form of his wife.
-
- | "'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!" softly she said,
- | "Arouse thee and follow, be bold, never fear,
- | There was danger ahead, but my errand has sped,
- | I promised to save thee, and lo! I am here!"
-
-.. _`"'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!"`:
-
-.. figure:: images/img-242.jpg
- :align: center
- :alt: "*'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!*"
-
- "*'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!*"
-
-Then she puts woman's garb upon him, and together
-they pass the unsuspecting guards and weary sentinels.
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: center white-space-pre-line
-
- \* \* \* \* \*
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-When the peasantry on the Nithsdale estates heard of
-their Lord's escape their joy was unbounded.
-
-One of the songs published and sung everywhere at the
-time, begins:—
-
- | "What news to me, carlin'?
- | What news to me?"
- | "What news!" quo' the carlin',
- | The best that God can gie."
- |
-
-The speaker asks if the true king has come to his own,
-and the carlin' answers.
-
- | "Our ain Lord Nithsdale
- | Will soon be 'mang us here.
- |
-
-Then the speaker says:—
-
- | "Brush me my coat, carlin',
- | Brush me my shoon;
- | I'll awa and meet Lord Nithsdale,
- | When he comes to our town."
- |
-
-"Alack-a-day," says the carlin'. "He has escaped to
-France, with scarce a penny."
-
-"Then," says the first speaker, "we'll sell our corn
-and everything we have and send the money to our lord,
-and we'll make the pipers blow and lads and maidens
-dance, and we'll all be glad and joyful and play 'The
-Stuarts back again,' and make the Whigs go mad."
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: center white-space-pre-line
-
- \* \* \* \* \*
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-Lord Derwentwater's fate was not so happy as that of
-Lord Nithsdale, though Lady Derwentwater made a
-desperate effort to save him.
-
-It was she indeed who had urged him to throw in his
-lot with the Stuarts, saying that it was not good that he
-should hide his head when other gentlemen were mustering
-for the cause.
-
-The peasantry still think that Lady Derwentwater
-sits on her ruined tower lamenting the evil counsel she
-gave her husband, and they hasten by in fear when they
-see her lamp-light flickering.
-
-Derwentwater is described in the old ballads, as "a
-bonny lord," with hair of gold, and kind love dwelling
-in his hawk-like eyes.
-
-He passionately loved his beautiful home in Tynedale,
-the foundations of which may still be seen. The wooded
-glen below the castle, with the little burn running through
-it, spanned by a grey bridge is romantically beautiful.
-
-His "Farewell" to all this beauty is pathetic.
-
- | "Farewell to pleasant Ditson Hall,
- | My father's ancient seat;
- | A stranger now must call thee his,
- | Which gars[#] my heart to greet.[#]
- | Farewell each kindly well-known face,
- | My heart has held so dear:
- | My tenants now must leave their lands,
- | Or hold their lives in fear.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] makes.
-[#] weep.
-
-..
-
- | No more along the banks of Tyne,
- | I'll rove in autumn grey;
- | No more I'll hear, at early dawn,
- | The lav'rocks[#] wake the day:
- | Then fare thee well, brave Witherington,
- | And Forster ever true.
- | Dear Shaftsbury and Errington,
- | Receive my last adieu.
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
-[#] larks.
-
-..
-
- | And fare thee well, George Collingwood,
- | Since fate has put us down,
- | If thou and I have lost our lives,
- | Our King has lost his crown.
- | Farewell, farewell, my lady dear,
- | Ill, ill thou counsell'dst me:
- | I never more may see thy babe
- | That smiles upon thy knee.
-
- | And fare thee well, my bonny grey steed,
- | That carried me aye so free;
- | I wish I had been asleep in my bed,
- | The last time I mounted thee.
- | The warning bell now bids me cease;
- | My troubles nearly o'er;
- | Yon sun that rises from the sea,
- | Shall rise on me no more.
-
- | Albeit that here in London town
- | It is my fate to die,
- | O carry me to Northumberland,
- | In my father's grave to lie:
- | There chant my solemn requiem
- | In Hexham's holy towers,
- | And let six maids of fair Tynedale
- | Scatter my grave with flowers.
-
- | And when the head that wears the crown,
- | Shall be laid low like mine,
- | Some honest hearts may then lament
- | For Radcliff's fallen line.
- | Farewell to pleasant Ditson Hall,
- | My father's ancient seat;
- | A stranger now must call thee his,
- | Which gars my heart to greet."
- |
-
-Before his death, Earl Derwentwater signed a paper
-acknowledging "King James the Third" as his
-sovereign, and saying that he hoped his death would
-contribute to the service of his King.
-
-He is said to have looked closely at the block, and
-to have asked the executioner to chip off a rough place
-that might hurt his neck. Then, pulling off his coat
-and waistcoat, he tried if the block would fit his head,
-and told the executioner that when he had repeated
-"Lord Jesus receive my soul" for the third time, he
-was to do his office, which the executioner accordingly
-did at one blow.
-
-History tells that Derwentwater was brave and
-open-hearted and generous, and that his fate drew tears from
-the spectators, and was a great misfortune to his country.
-He was kind to the people on his estates, to the poor, the
-widow and the orphan.
-
-His request to be buried with his ancestors was refused,
-and he was interred at St Giles, Holborn, but his corpse
-was afterwards removed and carried secretly to
-Northumberland, where it was deposited in Dilston Chapel. The
-aurora borealis, which appeared remarkably vivid on
-the night of his execution, was long called in that part
-of the country "Lord Derwentwater's Lights."
-
-Immediately after Derwentwater's execution, Lord
-Kenmure also suffered death. After his execution, a
-letter was found in his pocket addressed to the Pretender,
-by the title of King James, saying that he died in his
-faithful service, and asking him to provide for his wife
-and children.
-
-The following ballad describes his rising in the Stuart
-cause—
-
- | "O Kenmure's on and awa', Willie,
- | O Kenmure's on and awa';
- | And Kenmure's lord's the bravest lord
- | That ever Galloway saw.
- | Success to Kenmure's band, Willie!
- | Success to Kenmure's band!
- | There's no a heart that fears a Whig,
- | That rides by Kenmure's hand.
-
- | His lady's cheek was red, Willie,
- | His lady's cheek was red,
- | When she saw his steely jupes[#] put on,
- | Which smell'd o' deadly feud.
- | Here's Kenmure's health in wine, Willie,
- | Here's Kenmure's health in wine;
- | There ne'er was a coward o' Kenmure's blude,
- | Nor yet o' Gordon's line.
-
-.. class:: noindent small white-space-pre-line
-
-[#] armour.
-
-..
-
- | There's a rose in Kenmure's cap, Willie,
- | There's a rose in Kenmure's cap,
- | He'll steep it red in ruddie heart's blade,
- | Afore the battle drap.
- | Here's him that's far awa', Willie,
- | Here's him that's far awa',
- | And here's the flower that I lo'e best,
- | The rose that's like the snaw.
-
- | O Kenmure's lads are men, Willie,
- | O Kenmure's lads are men,
- | Their hearts and swords are metal true,
- | And that their foes shall ken.
- | They'll live, or die wi' fame, Willie,
- | They'll live, or die wi' fame,
- | And soon wi' sound o' victorie
- | May Kenmure's lord come hame."
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLVIII
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-If you stand upon Rose Hill, which rises from the
-banks of the river Irthing just where Northumberland
-meets Cumberland, you have lying around you
-one of the finest wild prospects in the United Kingdom.
-Hills to the north, stretching away into Scotland; hills
-to the east, broken into picturesque valleys, especially
-the great gap through which rushes the young Tyne;
-hills to the south, dominated by the powerful head of
-Cross Fell, a great sprawling mountain, not a peaked one,
-the highest stretch of which is nearly three thousand feet
-above sea level.
-
-But while drinking in the glories of the distances, the
-eye will note with curiosity a strange-looking but
-picturesque hill only a couple of miles to the South-east,
-with a long rocky ridge at its top deeply cut into or
-"nicked" in nine different places, this giving it a very
-wild appearance. It is one of these hills which tempts
-the keen observer to go on and explore it. If we cut
-direct to it, over the fields, it is rough going, but the view
-is good all the way. And there are four special objects of
-interest, all close together; the rushing Tipalt river,
-Thirlwall Castle, the Roman wall, and the Nine Nicks.
-
-Thirlwall Castle rises tall, square, and stern, with a dark
-fir-wood behind it at the foot of the hill, where a bend in
-the river makes a natural moat. Approaching it from
-Rose Hill, it looks as if the building were still nearly
-complete, but the south side has almost entirely fallen
-away and all the floors and the roof are out. Edward
-I. slept in this Castle when it was newly built, in 1306;
-but now it is grass-grown and moss-grown, and its
-three bare walls rise gaunt and grim to the sky. It is
-entirely built out of stones with Roman chisel marks,
-taken from the great Roman wall, which unfortunately
-was once regarded as a handy stone-quarry for anyone
-to take from.
-
-The name "Thirlwall" means "Drill-wall," and marks
-the spot as that at which the wild Northern tribes first
-"drilled" or broke through the wall. The name was,
-of course, given to the place long before this castle was
-built.
-
-To mount from Thirlwall Castle to the top of the Nine
-Nicks is an easy enough task for any vigorous person.
-It is just a fine healthy scramble. When at the top, it
-becomes evident that some sort of fortification once
-existed there. In point of fact this was the important
-Roman station called "Magna" which stood at about
-the middle of the Roman Wall. The wall ran from sea
-to sea, that is to say, from the mouth of the Tyne to the
-Solway. Thus it was nearly eighty miles long, and a
-very elaborate structure indeed.
-
-It consisted of three distinct portions:—
-
-1. The main stone wall, with a ditch to the north
-of it.
-
-2. An earth-work to the south of this, consisting of
-either two or three ramparts about seventy feet apart,
-with a ditch between.
-
-8. Stations, Castles and Watch-towers. Sometimes
-these were to the north of the wall, sometimes in the
-middle, sometimes south, according to the nature of the
-country.
-
-The height of the main wall was from sixteen to twenty
-feet, including battlements. It was six to nine feet
-thick. Fancy a powerful military wall of about eighteen
-feet high stretching nearly eighty miles right across
-England! It hardly seems possible that the Romans
-could undertake such a work. The square strong stones
-were carefully selected and often brought from quarries
-at a distance. These stones flanked the outsides of the
-wall, and in between was strong concrete which was
-poured in while in liquid.
-
-The second wall was of earth and stones, and, of
-course, lower than the first. Then there was a castle
-every mile, some of which can still be clearly traced, and
-a "station," about every four miles, of which several
-interesting ruins remain. There was a road eighteen feet
-wide between the two walls.
-
-Those who have the energy to toil on for a full dozen
-miles of rough walking, along the wall, eastward from
-Thirlwall, will be rewarded by some of the most romantic
-scenes in Britain. They will see the wall at its best.
-They will pass Whinshields, the highest point in the wall,
-1230 feet above sea level. The wild Northumbrian
-lakes will lie at their feet; if the day is fine, the Solway
-will be seen glistening, thirty miles to the west; and on
-the east the eye follows the Tyne almost to the sea. The
-Pennine Ridge bars the view twenty miles to the south,
-while on the North the High Cheviot is clear and strong,
-thirty miles away.
-
-Passing Whinshields, it is not far to Borcovicus (often
-called Housteads) where lie the remains of a large Roman
-Station, wonderful remains, showing the whole outline
-with startling clearness. This station covered five acres,
-and here was quartered a cohort of the Tungrian infantry,
-consisting of a thousand brave soldiers, servants of
-Imperial Rome.
-
-But, after all, nothing is so impressive as the remains
-of the wall itself. Stand at the top either of Whinshields
-or of the Nine Nicks, and try to imagine what it looked
-like in Roman days. Eastward along the Tyne valley
-and westward along the Irthing valley ran this wonderful
-work, this powerful girdle of stone. The very spot was
-chosen with great judgment, for these valleys gave the
-Romans a district protected by the bleak hills, where
-they could live and where they could keep cattle and grow
-grain. But the hilly nature of the ground must have
-added to the difficulty of the builders. The wall had to
-run up steep hill sides and cling to the edge of cliffs, and
-precipices; it had to be carried by bridges over roaring
-torrents, and when it reached low-lying ground it had to
-avoid the treacherous swamps and morasses. And yet,
-despite every obstacle, the great wall ran on its direct
-way, as strong and persistent as the great people who
-built it.
-
-It withstood the shock of war, it was not flung down
-by soldiers marching against it. But to the people who
-wanted to build castles or houses or farms, or even to
-mend roads, the wall offered a mass of material ready to
-hand, and it suffered not from man's energy so much as
-from his laziness. Century after century it was robbed
-of its stones; to-day a series of long grass-grown mounds,
-a few feet high, running across the meadows, are nearly all
-that remain of one of the most wonderful pieces of
-building that was ever erected in Great Britain. Even today,
-in its decay, it is one of the most romantic features
-of a highly romantic district.
-
-
-
-
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. _`In Wild Northumberland To-day`:
-
-.. class:: center large bold
-
- Chapter XLIX
-
-
-.. class:: center medium bold
-
- In Wild Northumberland To-day
-
-.. vspace:: 2
-
-These tales of the Borders would hardly be
-complete without a few concluding words about
-the great romantic charm which still invests
-the Borderline. Let us, for example, make a brief survey
-of some of the haunting spots in wild Northumberland.
-We will pass over such towns as Warkworth, Alnwick,
-Alnmouth; beautiful as they are, they have moved with
-the times and are too modern to be more than mentioned
-here. But in a place like Holy Island we feel the call
-of the old days, and the charm that was theirs. This
-Island was the scene of the first efforts of Christianity to
-curb the wild and warlike Northumbrians; St Aidan,
-and St Cuthbert, both men of remarkable genius and
-great influence, taught there lessons of peace and justice
-without which every warlike state would descend into
-mere savagery. The island is about two miles square,
-and at low tide it is easy to walk across the sands to or
-from the mainland of Northumberland. The distance is
-two and a half miles, and it is necessary to take off shoes
-and stockings, for the water on the sands will often be
-six inches deep. A row of posts marks the way, and some
-of them have ladders, reaching up to a barrel on the top,
-so that any caught by the tide can find a safe harbour
-wherein they will suffer nothing more serious than a long
-wait! The island is inhabited by fishing folk, living
-simple healthy lives. There are fine rocks and splendid
-sands; beautiful flowers and lovely shells. The
-seabirds are wonderful. The ruins of the old Cathedral
-and castle are very interesting, it is a delightful
-old-world place, out of the rush and hurry of modern life.
-
-Retracing our steps to the mainland, and proceeding
-westward for a dozen or so miles as the crow flies, we
-reach the River Till, and the field of Flodden. Here we
-are near to the big wild wall of the Cheviot hills, and to
-keep on the English side of the border we need to turn
-due south. It is then about thirty miles of rough
-walking through these grandly rugged hills before
-we come to the field of Otterburn.
-
-But we realise in that walk how it was that the district
-produced and still produces a hardy race of hunters and
-sheep-farmers, and why it is that the towns and farms
-nestle in the valleys, so that the Borderers, when they
-meant to say, "Rouse the neighbourhood," used the
-phrase, "Raise the *water*" (meaning, of course, the houses
-along the waterside). Further south, still going among
-splendid shaggy hills, we reach the North Tyne River,
-and soon afterwards some highly interesting Roman
-remains, including the arches of a fine bridge over the
-river at the Roman Station of Cilurnum, near Chollerford.
-This is on the Roman Wall, which has already been
-described under the heading of Thirlwall. A few miles
-to the west would bring us to the picturesque but
-little-known Northumberland Lakes, where the wild swans
-nest. If we continue south and south-west we can follow
-the beautiful valleys of the Allan or the South Tyne.
-This is a district of hills, roads, and castles; the domain
-of the fated Lord Derwentwater was near here. For
-beauty the whole of this neighbourhood would be hard to
-beat; yet it is too little known.
-
-If we still go south, the scenery grows wilder and
-wilder as we approach the huge mountain of Cross Fell.
-We may cross into south-east Cumberland and visit
-the quaint old town of Alston, one of the highest towns
-in England. Here were once the royal silver mines,
-when English coins were made from Alston silver.
-Lead is chiefly mined there now, and the mines are
-worth a visit. Near Cross Fell also is a rough road
-called the "Maiden Way," and an old legend says it
-was made by women, who carried the stones in their
-aprons! The western slope of the Fell is famous for
-a specially violent wind called the "Helm wind,"
-which rages there at certain seasons. It is just as if
-it were rushing fiercely down the hill, with a roaring
-noise and strength enough to overturn a horse and cart,
-and to beat the grass and grain till it is black! But
-though it does a deal of damage it is very exhilarating,
-making people feel merry in spite of themselves. And
-on Cross Fell slopes can be seen the beautiful River
-Tees, which can be followed to its grand waterfalls of the
-the Cauldron and the High Force. In the first the
-water dashes on to huge rocks, and is thrown back
-on itself, roaring, foaming, and fighting; in the second,
-it tumbles sheer down a dark and noble cliff. And
-everywhere on the heights there are splendid views.
-
-In making any such excursions as the ones here
-outlined, into the out-of-the-way parts of Northumberland
-and the Borders, we find an added pleasure in the
-character of the people. The Borderers are still a
-grand race; big men, vigorous, honest, courteous,
-hospitable, free from all that is mean and small. In
-some districts you can hear "thou" and "thee"
-still used, and meet old men who have never seen a
-railway. One dear old farmer, a real picture of a
-simple honest man, hearing I had come from London,
-asked me if the London men had got their hay-crop
-in yet! One typical Northumbrian, of great natural
-intelligence, bearing a name famous on the Borders,
-is station-master at a local station that stands in a wood,
-and between trains, studies bird and wild-flower till
-he has made himself a most interesting naturalist. A
-stranger who has lost his way will find these courteous
-folk ready to walk a mile or two with him, out of their
-own way, just to set him right; and he who is tired
-and hungry will be invited to step in and eat, and
-perhaps find himself introduced to all the family and
-treated like an honoured guest; then, not a penny of
-payment taken, they will set him on his way with a
-bunch of the best flowers from the garden! For hearts
-on the Border are very human and warm. So that
-in due time he who knows the Borderers will delight
-to hear the unmistakeable Northumbrian or the
-pronounced Border accent. And he will say to himself:
-Splendid is the Border scenery, and stirring are the
-Border ballads, but best of all are the Border men.
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. class:: center white-space-pre-line
-
- \* \* \* \* \* \* \* \*
-
-.. vspace:: 4
-
-.. class:: center large
-
- TOLD THROUGH THE AGES
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent white-space-pre-line
-
-Legends of Greece and Rome
-Favourite Greek Myths
-Stories of Robin Hood and his Merry Outlaws
-Stories of King Arthur and his Knights
-Stories from Herodotus
-Stories from Wagner
-Britain Long Ago
-Stories from Scottish History
-Stories from Greek Tragedy
-Stories from Dickens
-Stories from the Earthly Paradise
-Stories from the Æneid
-The Book of Rustem
-Stories from Chaucer
-Stories from the Old Testament
-Stories from the Odyssey
-Stories from the Iliad
-Told by the Northmen
-Stories from Don Quixote
-The Story of Roland
-Stories from Thucydides
-The Story of Hereward
-Stories from the Faerie Queene
-Cuchulain: The Hound of Ulster
-Stories from Xenophon
-Old Greek Nature Stories
-Stories from Shakespeare
-Stories from Dante
-Famous Voyages of the Great Discoverers
-The Story of Napoleon
-Stories of Pendennis and the Charterhouse
-Sir Guy of Warwick
-Heroes of the Middle Ages
-The Story of the Crusades
-The Story of Nelson
-Stories from George Eliot
-Froissart's Chronicles
-Shakespeare's Stories of the English Kings
-Heroes of Modern Europe
-The Story of King Robert the Bruce
-Stories of the Scottish Border
-The Story of the French Revolution
-The Story of Lord Kitchener
-Stories of the Saints
-The Story of St Elizabeth of Hungary
-In Feudal Times
-The High Deeds of Finn
-Early English Travel and Discovery
-Legends of Ancient Egypt
-The Story of the Renaissance
-Boyhood Stories of Famous Men
-Stories from French History
-Stories from English History
-Famous English Books and their Stories
-Women of the Classics
-In the Days of the Guilds
-Science through the Ages
-
-.. vspace:: 1
-
-.. class:: noindent small
-
- *Other volumes in active preparation*
-
-.. vspace:: 6
-
-.. pgfooter::
diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-028.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-028.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index e86bed1..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-028.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-042.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-042.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 597c721..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-042.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-054.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-054.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0f6b081..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-054.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-070.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-070.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 6bf2d75..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-070.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-094.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-094.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 6b79475..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-094.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-100.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-100.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index b6bd7c0..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-100.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-116.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-116.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index fe944f1..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-116.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-126.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-126.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 93118e6..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-126.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-148.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-148.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 4d5a973..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-148.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-162.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-162.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 030456d..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-162.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-180.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-180.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 9670420..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-180.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-198.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-198.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 1abe6ad..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-198.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-210.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-210.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index fcecd8d..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-210.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-228.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-228.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0d57a51..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-228.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-242.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-242.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index cc8b9ab..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-242.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-cover.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-cover.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 9341dfa..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-cover.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845-rst/images/img-front.jpg b/38845-rst/images/img-front.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 7bc052c..0000000 --- a/38845-rst/images/img-front.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/38845.txt b/38845.txt deleted file mode 100644 index 19bf4c9..0000000 --- a/38845.txt +++ /dev/null @@ -1,8261 +0,0 @@ - STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER - - - - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost -no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it -under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this -eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license. - - - -Title: Stories of the Scottish Border -Author: Mr and Mrs William Platt -Release Date: July 17, 2013 [EBook #38845] -Language: English -Character set encoding: US-ASCII - - -*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER -*** - - - - -Produced by Al Haines. - - - -[Illustration: _The Rookhope Ride_] - - - - - STORIES OF THE - SCOTTISH BORDER - - - BY - - Mr and Mrs WILLIAM PLATT - - - - WITH SIXTEEN FULL-PAGE ILLUSTRATIONS BY - M. MEREDITH WILLIAMS - - - - GEORGE G. HARRAP & CO. LTD. - LONDON BOMBAY SYDNEY - - - - - _First published December 1910_ - _by_ GEORGE G. HARRAP & COMPANY - _39-41 Parker Street, Kingsway, London, W.C.2 - Reprinted: December 1916; March 1919; - April 1929_ - - - - _Printed in Great Britain by Turnbull & Spears, Edinburgh_ - - - - - *Contents* - - -INTRODUCTION - - I. THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS - II. A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER - III. WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US - - -CHAP. - - I. Bamburgh and its Coast - II. Athelstan at Vinheath - III. Monks and Minstrels - IV. Sir Patrick Spens - V. Auld Maitland - VI. The Mystery of the Eildons - VII. Black Agnes of Dunbar - VIII. The Young Tamlane - IX. The Gay Goss-Hawk - X. The Corbies - XI. Otterbourne and Chevy Chase - XII. The Douglas Clan - XIII. Alnwick Castle and the Percies - XIV. Hexham and Queen Margaret - XV. Fair Helen of Kirkconnell - XVI. Johnie of Breadislee - XVII. Katharine Janfarie - XVIII. By Lauder Bridge - XIX. The Battle of Flodden Field - XX. After Flodden - XXI. Graeme and Bewick - XXII. The Song of the Outlaw Murray - XXIII. Johnie Armstrong - XXIV. The Lament of the Border Widow - XXV. The Raid of the Kers - XXVI. Merrie Carlisle - XXVII. Kinmont Willie - XXVIII. Dick o' the Cow - XXIX. The Lochmaben Harper - XXX. The Rookhope Ride - XXXI. Barthram's Dirge - XXXII. Queen Mary and the Borders - XXXIII. The Raid of the Reidswire - XXXIV. Jock o' the Side - XXXV. Hobbie Noble - XXXVI. The Laird o' Logie - XXXVII. Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead -XXXVIII. Muckle-Mou'd Meg - XXXIX. The Dowie Dens of Yarrow - XL. Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland - XLI. Gilderoy - XLII. Archie Armstrong's Oath - XLIII. Christie's Will - XLIV. Northumberland at the Time of the Civil War - XLV. Montrose and Lesly - XLVI. The Death of Montrose - XLVII. The Borderers and the Jacobites - XLVIII. The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall - XLIX. In Wild Northumberland To-Day - - - - - *Illustrations* - -The Rookhope Ride. . . . . . . Frontispiece - -Egil at Vinheath - -The Siege of Maitland Castle - -Black Agnes - -The Twa Corbies - -The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham - -Johnie of Breadislee. - -Flodden Field - -"Tell Us All--Oh, Tell Us True!" - -The Border Widow - -The Escape of Kinmont Willie - -Queen Mary crossing the Solway - -"A Boon, a Boon, my Noble Liege!" - -"She Kissed his Cheek, She Kaim'd his Hair" - -The Storming of Newcastle - -"'Tis I, 'Tis thy Winifred!" - - - - -_In liquid murmurs Yarrow sings_ - _Her reminiscent tune_ -_Of bygone Autumn, bygone Springs,_ - _And many a leafy June._ - -_No more the morning beacons gleam_ - _Upon the silent hills;_ -_The far back years are years of dream--_ - _Now peace the valley fills._ - -_No more the reivers down the vale_ - _On raid and foray ride;_ -_No more is heard the widow's wail_ - _O'er those who fighting died._ - -_When morning damns with all its joys_ - _Then from the meadows rise_ -_A hundred throbbing hearts to voice_ - _Their anthems to the skies._ - -_When noontide sleeps where brackens wave,_ - _Ere shadows yet grow long,_ -_No sound awakes the echoes save_ - _The Yarrow's pensive song._ - -_And when the eve, with calm delight,_ - _Betokens night is nigh,_ -_Beneath the first star's tender light_ - _Is heard the owlet's cry._ - -_While Yarrow's liquid cadence swells_ - _By meadow, moor, and hill,_ -_At morn or noon or eve there dwells_ - _A mournful memory still._ - -W. CUTHBERTSON. - - - - - *Stories of The Scottish Border* - - - *Introduction* - - *I.--THE CHARACTER OF THE BORDERS* - - -The district called the Border is one of the most interesting in Great -Britain. It consists of that part of England that is nearest Scotland, -and that part of Scotland that is nearest England, mainly the counties -of Northumberland, Cumberland, Berwickshire, Roxburghshire, and -Dumfriesshire. - -The country is very picturesque and highly romantic. It abounds in great -rolling, breezy hills, with swift streamlets or "burns" running down -their sides to swell the rushing rivers. No part of our island has more -beautiful valleys than those of the Border. - -This bold, rough district, well adapted to defence, and situated also -just where the island of Great Britain is almost at its narrowest, -became, after many a struggle, the boundary between England and -Scotland. The character of the country was suited to the rearing of -hardy Moorland sheep and cattle; its inhabitants therefore were a tough, -open-air race of men, strong, strapping fellows, fearless riders, always -ready for an adventure, especially if it meant a fight. - -In those days of Border strife there was hardly such a thing as -international justice, that is to say, the people of one nation were not -very particular as to what they did to people of another nation; -therefore these bold, hardy Border men, Englishmen and Scot alike, were -fond of creeping across the boundary to steal the cattle of their -neighbours. Men devoted to such raids were called "Freebooters" or -"Mosstroopers," the name "Moss" being given in the North Country to -boggy tracts that lie about the hill-sides. - -So it happened that the Border was in a perpetual state of petty -warfare, conducted, it is true, with a certain amount of good-will and a -rough approach to chivalry, and with the concurrence of the powerful -Border nobles of both nations, who often played an important part -therein. At times these raids developed into important warlike -expeditions, when a fierce noble, or even a king, had some reckless game -to play. Hence, among the ballads which give us so vivid an account of -Border strife, we find descriptions not only of the minor doings of -picturesque sheep-stealers, but also of pitched battles such as Chevy -Chase and Homildon Hill. - -The union of England and Scotland in 1603 naturally put an end to all -the former excuses for raiding, and therefore terminated the true -Freebooter period. After this, despite one or two belated attempts, -such as Elliot's big raid in 1611, sheep-stealing ceased to be looked -upon as an honourable calling, and became mere thieving. The men who -would have raided one another's farms in 1602 became friendly neighbours -after the Border Commission of 1605. There had been little malice in -their former freebooting. Both sides were of one race; and they had the -pleasure of finding that their lands went up greatly in value in -consequence of the Border peace. - -To-day, the Border presents scenes of peaceful cattle-farming. But -Romance is still in the air, hangs about the fine, breezy moorlands and -beautiful dales, and is seen clearly in the faces of the healthy -Border-folk. A holiday at any Border farm would prove a most enjoyable -one. There are wonderful Roman remains, for here it was that the Romans -built their wall; there are castles of the Border barons; the views are -wide and grand; the river-valleys are unmatched for beauty, and -delightful wild flowers are plentiful, chief among which are fox-gloves, -the giant wild Canterbury Bells, the handsome North Country wild -geranium, several interesting kinds of wild orchids, and a variety of -others too numerous to mention. Last, but not least, it is often -possible in the evenings to see the farmers' sons engaged in friendly -wrestling in the meadows, when we can realise that these great manly -fellows are of the same vigorous race that kept the Borders lively a few -centuries ago. - - - - II.--A BRIEF HISTORY OF THE BORDER - - -Before dealing in detail with the stirring stories of Border history and -legend, to retell which is the purpose of this book, we will first -inquire--What is it that settles exactly the position of the border-line -between two countries? To find the answer we must think what happens -when a country is invaded. - -If the invaders are stronger than the people whom they attack, they go -on thrusting back their foes till these reach some strong position -where, by the aid of mountain, river, or marsh, they are able, at any -rate for a time, to hold their own. Thus, a border-line is always -determined by some natural feature of the country which gives the -defenders an advantage. - -The attackers will not always operate from the same locality, and the -defenders will not always fall back in the same direction; the two -sides, also, will vary in power from time to time. For these reasons a -border-line, especially in the old fighting days, was often altered. - -When the Romans invaded Britain they gradually conquered the southern -part of it, but they could not subdue the wilder north; one of their -boundary lines was drawn from the Solway to the Tyne; then they fought -their way further north and their next definite boundary was a line -running from the Forth to the Clyde. Along each of these boundaries they -built a great wall, and to this day parts of these Roman walls remain. -But it is worth noting that neither of these wall border-lines stands -upon the present border, one being all in England and the other all in -Scotland. - -When the Romans left Britain, called back to defend their own native -land from invasion, there followed a brief period for which we have no -definite record of events in this island. This is the period of King -Arthur, and none can say how much is true in the Arthurian legends. - -But history begins to become clear again about the time that the Angles -came in their ships across the North Sea, bent on conquest. They landed -on all the natural harbours of the east coast, driving the Britons back -and taking the land for themselves. The fact that they landed on the -East and drove the Britons westward, leads us to think that sooner or -later a boundary would have been formed dividing the island into the -east side (for the Angles) and the west side (for the Britons). - -Now that is exactly what did happen. The border-lines were nowhere like -the present ones. The northern kingdom of the Angles reached to the -Forth, where these people founded Edinburgh (Edwin's burgh). On the -west the Britons had sway in Cornwall (Corn-Walles), Wales, Cumbria -(which stretched from the Mersey to the Solway), and Strathclyde (from -the Solway to the Clyde). North of the Forth was the country of the -Picts; while the Scots were a race recently come from Ireland, and they -only owned what we now call Argyleshire, and the islands lying near to -it. Not one inch of the present Border was at that day in the -border-line! - -Of the various races that lay round about where the Border now is, the -Northumbrians seemed at first to be the strongest. The capital of their -kingdom was Bamburgh, a place still famous for its castle, though to-day -it is not important enough to have a railway station! But it still -looks very picturesque on the wild coast, with the Farne Islands, the -first seat of Northumbrian Christianity, in the near distance. - -Ambition had much to do with the downfall of Northumbria. The famous -King Eadbert would not rest content till he had scaled Dumbarton, the -capital of Strathclyde. This was to his career what the march to Moscow -was to Napoleon's, for, though Eadbert got safely to Dumbarton (756) his -army was cut to pieces in getting back again. The Northumbrians seem to -have lost some of their northern lands, for they moved their capital -further south, to the old Roman city of Corbridge which stood on the -Tyne just where the delightful country town of that name stands to-day. - -In 844 a king of the Scots, named Kenneth MacAlpin, became (we don't -quite know how) king of the Picts also, joining two strong races under -one ruler, and thus was powerful enough to give great trouble to the -weakened kingdom of Northumbria. He several times led his army through -Lothian, the district belonging to the Angles between the Forth and the -Tweed, but was never quite able to conquer it. It is important to -remember that up to that date Lothian had never belonged to Scotland. -The appearance of the Danes added to the confusion of those restless -days. For some few years it was doubtful whether Scot, Dane, or Angle -would get the best of it in Northumbria. But at last the genius of -Athelstan of Wessex revived the power of the Angles over the whole of -that large part of the island which they had settled, right up to the -Forth itself. Edinburgh was still English in 957, and the border-line -was still very far from the present one. But there was no longer a king -of Northumbria; only an earl, who was subject to the will of the -West-Saxon kings. - -This fact of the dominance of the West Saxons, whose capital was far to -the south at Winchester, must have added to the weakness of the -Northumbrian border. By the year 963 the Scots had conquered Edinburgh, -and it was now never again to return to English rule. Before very long -the whole of Lothian had passed under Scottish control; but it was not -yet held to be part of Scotland. Nor must it be thought that this -conquest of Lothian fixed the border-line in its present position, for -the king of the Scots was at that time ruler over Cumberland, which had -never yet been English and was all that was left of the old British -kingdom of Cumbria. - -Frontier wars with varying successes between Scot, Angle, and Dane mark -the stormy history of this time. The power of Cnut held back the Scotch -attempts upon Nothumberland; but during a lull in the wars the grand-son -of the Scottish king married the sister of Earl Siward, and received as -her dowry twelve towns in the valley of the Tyne, an astonishingly -imprudent arrangement. - -At the time of the battle of Hastings, the earldom of Northumberland was -so far distant from Winchester as to be somewhat out of the control of -the King of England; the power of the Scottish kings threatened it; they -held twelve towns in Tynedale, and Cumberland was a part of Scotland. -The Northumbrians refused to accept William the Conqueror as their king; -and had they been able to make good their refusal, they must sooner or -later have been conquered by the Scots, and the border-line between -England and Scotland would then most probably have been formed by the -Tees, the mountain boundary of Westmoreland, and Morecambe Bay. - -But William was not a king to be played with. He reduced Northumberland -to subjection and carried his army into Scotland as far as the river -Tay, where he forced the King of Scotland to admit that he, William, was -his overlord. - -Notwithstanding this humiliation, when King William returned to -Winchester, the Scots several times went back to their favourite -amusement of raiding unhappy Northumberland. - -One of these invasions took place in the reign of William Rufus (1093), -who went north in person. He doubtless recognised the fact that owing -to the Scots possessing Cumberland they were in the strong position of -being able to attack Northumberland on two sides. He took Cumberland by -force of arms, and thus for the first time it became a part of England -(the word "Cumberland" means the land of the Cumbrians or Welsh, a Saxon -form of the Welsh word Cymry). - -Rufus rebuilt the strong fortress of Carlisle to defend his new border -at its weakest corner. For the most part this border is excellently -protected by the natural rampart of the wild Cheviot Hills, and is in -every way as good a border as could be devised. It runs in a fairly -straight line from south-west to north-east, across a narrow part of the -island. - -But although this border-line proved to be a permanent one, it must not -be thought that it remained undisputed. The times were rough, and hardy -fighting folk lived on the Border. They had many grounds for quarrel, -and took advantage of them all. For one thing, the exact boundary of -North Cumberland was never quite defined till 1552; up to which year -there was a tract of land between the rivers Esk and Sark, which was -claimed by both countries, and therefore called the "Debateable Land." -Then the Scots maintained that they were overlords of Northumberland, -while the English kings cherished the notion that they were overlords of -the whole island of Britain, and the wild spirits on both sides were -always ready to fight. - -Out of this fighting spirit sprung the stirring history of the Border, -which forms the theme of the deathless Ballads, the stories of which it -is now our purpose to retell. - - - - III.--WHAT THE BORDER NAMES TELL US - - -Many a name holds a meaning wrapt up within itself like a nut in its -shell. For instance, "Edinburgh" is a Saxon name--Edwin's burgh--and -the word tells us that this noble city, though now the capital of -Scotland, was originally founded by and belonged to a Saxon king of -Northumbria. The Highlanders, in their own Gaelic language, called it -Dunedin. This has the same signification as Edinburgh, but, like most -Gaelic names, it is arranged in the reverse order to that in which an -English name is generally put together. "Dun" means burgh, "Edin" is -Edwin. This is the same Dun that we have in "Dundee," which means the -burgh on the Tay, and might be translated as "Tayburgh." "Dumbarton" -means the burgh of the Britons, and teaches us another notable lesson, -namely, how far north in the old times the British influence extended. -For "British" in this case means "Welsh." Nowadays we associate the -Welsh with Wales only. Formerly there must have been a numerous colony -of Welsh in Scotland, as the name "Dumbarton" testifies, as also many -Scottish family names. The great name of Wallace itself, for instance, -suggests such an origin, for "Wallace" is merely a corrupt form of the -word "Welsh," and proves that the great national hero was of Welsh -extraction. Then "Cumberland"--Cymry land--means the land of the Welsh, -or Cymry, as they call themselves. The county of Cumberland did not -really belong to the English till the time of William Rufus. The first -syllable of "Carlisle" denotes a Celtic fortified town, and must be -compared with the first syllable of "Carnarvon." - -The presence of the Roman wall is shown in many names in Northumberland, -such as "Wallsend," "Walltown," "Wallridge," "Heddon-on-the-Wall," -"Wallhouses," and "Thirlwall." - -For a very interesting instance of what a name tells us we may leave the -Border for a moment and consider why the northernmost part of Scotland -is called "Sutherland." It must have been so named by people living in -the Orkney and Shetland isles, of a different race from the Scotch--that -is, Norse settlers in those islands. - -With regard to surnames, how many stop to think that "Oliphant" is -merely a form of "elephant," and was originally an allusion to a big, -burly ancestor? "Grant," which is the same as "grand," must also have -been once applied to one who was a giant in size. The Frazers somehow -got their name from the French word for a strawberry, fraise. The -odd-looking "Scrymgeour" means simply a scrimmager or skirmisher. -"Turnbull" recalls one who turned the bull at a bull-baiting. The -well-known "Gladstains" or "Gladstone" has nothing to do with "glad," -but is from "glede," an old word for the kite, and commemorates some -stone where these birds frequented. "Buccleuch" is from the killing of -a buck in a cleugh or ravine. - -The Christian names of the Borderers are full of life and local colour, -and differ much from those of Southern England. "Barthram" is the -northern form of "Bertram," "Nigel" of "Neil," "Jellon" of "Julian," -"Ringan" of "Ninian." It was the general custom to abbreviate Christian -names or use them in the diminutive form, as is constantly the practice -in these Border ballads. "Hobbie" stands for "Halbert," a fine old name -which must not be confused with "Albert." "Dandie" or "Dandrie" is -"Andrew," "Eckie" is "Hector," "Lammie" is "Lambert," "Lennie" is -"Leonard." "Adam" becomes, in the familiar form, "Aicky," "Christian" -becomes "Christy," "Gilbert" becomes "Gibby." - -Another peculiarity of the ballads is the regular recurrence of such -phrases as "the Laird's Jock," "the Laird's Wat," "Ringan's Wat," etc. -These expressions mean, "John the son of the Laird," "Walter the son of -the Laird," "Walter the son of Ringan or Ninian." - - - - - *Chapter I* - - *Bamburgh and its Coast* - - -The little town of Bamburgh has two striking features--the great castle -upon its stern rock, and the wild coast-line at its feet where dash the -storms of the North Sea. - -To-day it is not important enough to have a railway station of its own; -yet once it was the capital of the great Saxon kingdom of Northumbria. -Its original name was Bebbanburgh, so called after Queen Bebba; of its -Saxon fortress hardly a trace remains, the present building being partly -the old Norman castle, with repairs and additions of a later date. The -ancient pile has a strength, dignity, and grandeur which accords well -with its truly noble situation. - -The North Saxons in choosing such a spot for their capital showed a very -evident desire to keep in touch with the sea. Over the sea they had -come; and over the sea would come both friends and enemies. Many a -meeting of both friend and foe has taken place at Bamburgh! - -Perhaps the fiercest of the enemies was Ragnar of the hairy-breeches, a -famous viking who plundered, ravaged, and burnt without mercy. These -vikings, powerful men and fearless sea-rovers, were a standing terror to -Northumbria. Men with frames and muscles strong as iron; at home both -on the sea and on the battle-field; fair-haired, blue-eyed men, guarded -by helmet, breast-plate, and shield, armed with heavy weapons, because -at that date the art of the smith was not equal to making them sharp, -light, and strong at once. So these mighty warriors hewed their way -through the field of battle with great strokes, and when their foes fled -in terror, the vikings took back to their ships all the treasure they -could find, and away they went across the sea again. But with all their -fierceness they loved poetry (wild war-poetry, most of it) and they -loved their strong, brave women. - -Ragnar was a thorough viking. He loved fighting, and his handsome wife, -and the battle songs he made. But the Saxons had no cause to love him, -and when his ship ran aground near Jarrow, they bound him and cast him -into a pit of snakes, and watched him slowly die. The viking had no fear -of death. He sang as he lay there, of his life and his deeds--of the -great banquets he had given to the wolves and the vultures and the -fierce battles he had won, spreading the terrors of his name from the -Orkneys to the Mediterranean; of his beautiful wife and strong sons, and -of how they would avenge him; and of how Woden, the lord of all -warriors, was calling him to his Hall. - -Many a battle has been fought on that wild coast since Ragnar died; much -history has been made thereabouts, and many legends have attached -themselves to Bamburgh. Like most famous places, it had its own special -dragon, the "Laidly Worm" or loathsome serpent of the ancient ballad. - - "For seven miles east, and seven miles west, - And seven miles north and south, - No blade of grass or corn would grow, - So venomous was her mouth!" - - -And yet, when the gallant knight gave her "kisses three," she changed at -once into a beautiful lady! - -But despite its castle, its battles, and its legends, Bamburgh slowly -declined in importance. As the capital of Northumbria it had been one -of the chief towns in England. But the gallant Northumbria of the -Saxons was more open to enemies than any other part of the country; -Cumbrians were on the west and Scots on the north, and this was of all -Saxon kingdoms the most exposed to the ravages of the Danes. From the -capital of a kingdom it became the capital of a county (Bamburghshire), -returning two members to Parliament in the reign of Edward I.; but it -grew of less and still less importance, till at last it was known only -to the student of history. It shared this fate with Lindisfarne, called -Holy Island, once the Canterbury of the North, on whose rocky shores -still stand the ruins of the fine Norman cathedral which took the place -of the old Saxon one. Lindisfarne and Bamburgh--neighbours, divided -only by a narrow belt of sea--two names that conjure up vivid pictures -of romantic history. Yet suddenly, early in the nineteenth century, the -great deed of a splendid heroine lent new glory to the wild, sea-girt -town. - -Grace Darling was born at Bamburgh in 1817, in a cottage on the south -side of the village street, which can still be seen to-day. Her father -became keeper of the lighthouse on the Langstone, a rocky islet five -miles from the coast, guarding ships from the dangerous Farne Islands, a -group of iron-bound rocks where seabirds dwell. In the early morning of -September 7, 1838, during the raging of a most terrible storm, she heard -the crash of a ship dashed upon the rocks, and anguished cries; as soon -as dawn enabled them to see, the girl and her father made out the dark -outline of the wreck, and the miserable forms of the mariners crouching -on rocks from which the rising tide would sweep them inevitably to -death. With superb heroism Grace and her father pushed their small boat -into the furious waters, and after strenuous and dauntless efforts, -always at the peril of their own lives, they saved the whole ship's -company, nine souls in all. So fierce was the storm that it was three -days before a boat dared take them from the Langstone to the mainland. - -The roar of approbation which greeted her from the whole country found -her as modest as she was brave. But for all her courage, this noble girl -was not strong. She died four years later, and lies buried at Bamburgh, -within sound of the sea. And the Langstone is known to-day as "Grace -Darling's Island," and the tomb of the brave girl rouses sweeter -memories than the frowning fortress of Bamburgh. - - - - - *Chapter II* - - *Athelstan at Vinheath* - - -Famous among the old Norse sea-rovers was Egil, son of Skallagrim. In -the course of his many voyages, he visited all the lands between the -White Sea and the Bay of Biscay, and when at last he settled down in his -Iceland home, where he lived on till well past the age of eighty, he -loved to gather his children and grandchildren around him by the -fireside during the long Icelandic winter, and to tell the story of his -adventures. He was a true Norseman, fond of the sea and the fight, fond -of his wife and children, fond of song, at which he was highly skilled. -His songs and his stories of adventure were listened to with eagerness, -and they were repeated after him, and were at last written down, -probably between one hundred and fifty and two hundred years after his -death. Books were scarce in those days, and stories were treasured and -faithfully re-told. So this story of Egil was probably written out very -much in the simple, vigorous style in which the old warrior would have -told it to his grandchildren, as they listened to him with wide-open, -wondering eyes. And as the old man had taken part in an early battle -between Saxon-English and Scots, upon the Border, we have here a fine -picture of how fights were fought in the reign of King Athelstan. - -Egil was speaking to Icelandic children who knew little about England, -so he began by telling how in the days when Harold Fairhair was king of -Norway, Alfred the Great was the first supreme king over all England. -When Alfred died he was succeeded by his son Edward, who was followed by -Athelstan the Victorious. In Egil's day Athelstan was young and had but -just been made king, and many chieftains, who had kept quiet before, now -thought that the time had come when they could do as they pleased again. -But Athelstan meant to show them that he too could rule England strongly -and wisely. - -These were the days of brute force, and the king had first to get an -army together. Besides his own English folk, many roving Norsemen came -to take his pay, and among the number were Egil and his elder brother -Thorolf, with their men. They saw the king himself, who received them -well. Athelstan was a good Christian, known as the Faithful, and he -desired that Thorolf and Egil should submit to be marked with the Cross, -that they might take their place by his Christian soldiers without -quarrel. This they agreed to, and the king gave them command over three -hundred men. Now Olaf the Red was king in Scotland. His father was a -Scot, but his mother was a Dane of the family of Ragnar -with-the-hairy-breeches, that savage old viking. Northumberland, which -in those days extended to the Humber, and included York as its chief -city, was half-full of Danes, and King Olaf wished to claim it for his -own, and add it to Scotland. - -Athelstan had set Earl Alfgeir and Earl Gudrek to rule Northumberland -and defend it from the Scots. But Olaf of Scotland came south with his -mighty host; there was a fierce battle; Earl Gudrek was slain and Earl -Alfgeir fled. When Athelstan heard of the triumph of Olaf, he began at -once to march northward with all the men he could get together; but he -was yet young, and some of the treacherous earls, hearing that Olaf had -so far been victor, deserted King Athelstan. Chief among these traitors -were Earl Hring and Earl Adils, who should have been in the very front -of the English army, but who basely went over to the Scots. Thus Olaf's -host became exceeding great, greater by far than the English army. - -Then Athelstan called together his captains and his counsellors; Egil -was there, and heard all the grave talk as to what should be done. At -last a plan was made that all thought good, and this is what followed. - -First, messengers were sent to King Olaf, saying that King Athelstan -would meet him in fair fight at Vinheath by Vinwood, in Northumberland, -where he would mark out the field of battle with rods of hazel. He who -won the battle should be king over all England. The armies should meet -a week hence, and whichever was first on the ground should wait a week -for the other. King Olaf should bide quiet, and not harry the land till -the battle was ended. North of the heath was a town; there King Olaf -stayed, for there he could best get provisions for his army. But some -of his men he sent to the heath, to view it. - -The hazel-poles were already set up on the large level plain. A river -was on one side, and a wood was on the other. And where river and wood -were nearest to one another, there King Athelstan's tents were pitched. - -Many tents there were, but the front line of tents stood high, so that -the Scots could not see how many were behind. Every third tent was -empty, but many men were sleeping on the grass in the open, so that the -Scots might think that the English had a large army there. Every day -more English troops came in, and when the time was come that was fixed -for the battle, English envoys went to the King of the Scots asking if -there need be the great fight and bloodshed that threatened; if Olaf -would go peaceably home, Athelstan would give him a shilling of silver -for every plough that ploughed in England. The Scots took counsel -together and said they must have more than this. Then the messengers -begged a three days' truce to consider this. On the third day they came -again, saying that King Athelstan would give what he offered before and -also to the Scottish army a silver shilling for every freeman soldier, a -silver mark for every lesser officer, a gold mark for every captain, and -five gold marks for every earl. But the Scots asked not only for this, -but also for Northumberland to be yielded to them. Then the English -messengers answered that Scottish messengers must ride back with them, -to take the answer from Athelstan himself. - -Now the truth is this: that the Scottish king had taken Athelstan by -such surprise that he needed time to get his men together; all these -messages were but a trick to gain time till the king should come up -himself with all the men he could gather. When, therefore, the -messengers rode up to King Athelstan, he had but just arrived on the -scene of battle. And when he heard the message he said: "Tell King Olaf -this, that I will give him leave to return to Scotland safely if only he -give back all he has unjustly taken from this land, and if he own -himself my under-king, holding Scotland for me and at my behest." - -This proud answer made the Scottish messengers at once see what had been -going on. So they hastened back to their king to tell him how they had -been received and what the meaning of it was. - -When the Scots found that the English had thus outwitted them, they took -counsel together in some anger. Earl Adils, he who had deserted the -English, said that he and his brother, Earl Hring, would that very night -make a surprise attack; if it succeeded, well and good; if not, then -they could easily withdraw, and the main battle could begin in the -morning. This the King of Scots held to be good advice. - -So the two traitor earls and their men moved southward under cover of -the darkness. But Thorolf the Norseman was used to the ways of war, and -his sentries were alert and blew a great war-blast on their horns. And -thus the fight began. - -Thorolf was armed with a massy halberd that stood taller than a man; -broad was its blade and thick its socket, and it ended in a four-edged -spike. He had a strong sword by his side and a big, heavy shield on his -left arm; he had a helmet but no shirt of mail. His brother Egil was -armed in much the same way. The Norsemen's standard was borne by Thorfid -the strong. - -Next to the Norsemen, in the first rank also, was the division led by -Earl Alfgeir, he who had once before fled from the Scots. King -Athelstan gave him this chance to redeem himself. Now when the first -onslaught of the Scots took place, Earl Adils came against Earl Alfgeir, -while Earl Hring came against the Norsemen. - -And now the battle began. The two traitor earls urged on their men, who -charged with spirit. The fight was fierce, and soon Alfgeir gave -ground; this made the foe press on the fiercer, and before long Alfgeir -was in full flight. He avoided the town where Athelstan was, and fled -night and day to the coast, where he took ship out of the country he had -served so ill. - -Adils did not dare to pursue him far, for fear of being himself cut off -from his friends. So he returned to help his brother Hring against the -Norsemen. Thorolf, like a true general, saw the danger of this, and at -once told Egil to turn aside with half their force to prevent Adils from -joining his brother. The Norsemen fought a grand fight, but were badly -outnumbered, and the battle seemed to be going against them. Then -Thorolf became furious. Disdainful of life, he cast his shield behind -his back, grasped his great halberd with both hands, and sprang forward, -hacking down all who opposed him. Straight for Hring's standard he went, -nothing could stop him. He slew the standard-bearer, cut through the -standard-pole, and with a mighty stroke thrust his halberd right through -the body of Hring, the traitor earl, and lifted him up in the air that -all might see that he was slain. Then Adils and the rest of the men -fled to the wood, and thus ended the first part of the fight. More was -to come on the morrow. - -At dawn next day King Athelstan came forward with his main army. He had -heard of the great deeds of the brothers Thorolf and Egil; most -courteously he thanked them, and said that he would always reckon them -as his friends. Then with his captains he made his plans for the -battle. Egil he put in command of the front ranks of his men, and -Thorolf he set aside to face those of the Scots who might charge the -English in loose array. - -[Illustration: Egil at Vinheath] - -"For this is the way of the Scots," he said; "they dash to and fro, rush -forward and hither and thither, and are dangerous except to a commander -who is both wary and bold." - -Egil said, "I would rather that Thorolf and I were near together"; but -Thorolf answered, "As the king commands, so will we do." - -The battle began, and soon waged furiously. Thorolf and his men pressed -forward along the woodside, hoping to take the enemy on the flank. Now, -unknown to him, Adils and his followers were hiding among the trees, and -of a sudden Adils sprang out and smote him down. Thorfid, too, the brave -standard-bearer, was pressed back, but rallied the men, who fought -desperately. - -The Scots had raised a great shout at the fall of Thorolf, and this was -heard by Egil, who, when he saw the standard forced back, feared that -his brother was dead, for Thorolf had never drawn back from any foe. So -with a fierce cry Egil hacked his way through to that part of the field, -and when he learnt the truth from his men, he never rested till he had -slain Adils with his own hand. - -The followers of Adils then fled, and Egil and the Norsemen hewed their -way through the flank of the Scottish force towards the place where King -Olaf's standard was. Noting this, King Athelstan, that wary general, -caused his own standard to be set forward and all his army to attack at -once. Fierce and furious was the fight, and great was the slaughter. -King Olaf was slain, with great numbers of his men, and the rest fled in -confusion. The English victory was complete. - -As soon as Athelstan saw that victory was his, he left the pursuit to -his captains and hastened to the town to make his arrangements. Egil -pursued far and fiercely, and when at last he came back to the -battlefield his first thought was for his dead brother. Worn out though -he was, he would take no rest until he had buried the warrior with full -honours, with his arms and his raiment; and before the sad farewell was -said Egil clasped a gold bracelet on both of Thorolf's wrists to show -his deep love. Then they buried the hero deep and put a high cairn of -stones over him. - -Then one last tribute Egil paid to his brother, the greatest of them -all. Among these old Norse warriors there existed a great love of song; -the great fighters strove also to be great song-makers, and Egil was -famous above most for this power. The Norsemen's poems had not rhymes -like ours; they had short vigorous lines, and in each pair of lines -three of the important words had to begin with the same letter. Wild -strong chants they were. This is the song that Egil sang at the burial -of his brother, Thorolf Skallagrimsson:-- - - "The halberd of the hero - Hewed down the foe before him; - Then in the brunt of battle - Was spilt brave Thorolf's blood. - The grass is green on Vinheath - Where sleeps my great-souled brother; - But death, in doubled sorrow, - Our doleful hearts must bear." - - -When Egil got to the town he found the king and his army making merry -over their victory at a huge feast. The courteous king saw Egil and bade -him come and sit near to him. The king watched the burly Norseman, who -was tall, with broad shoulders, a powerful head and mighty strength; but -now his head was bent forward, and he kept his sword across his knees, -and now and again half drew it and then clashed it back into its -scabbard like a man who fights with heavy thoughts. He ate little and -drank less. Then King Athelstan, watchful and courteous, took a gold -ring from his arm, and placing it on his sword-point, handed it thus to -where Egil sat. At this mark of honour the Norseman's face grew -brighter. Then the king sent round his own horn for Egil to drink; so -he drank to the king and sang a verse of wild poetry in his praise, made -on the spur of the moment; and with this the king was much pleased. - -Then the king sent also for two chests full of silver, and said to -Egil:-- - -"These chests carry to thy father; it is fitting that King Athelstan -make him some gift for the loss of his son. And do thou stay with me -long, and I will give thee honour and dignity." - -Thus the great king in kindness and courtesy did what he could to soothe -the grief of the warrior; and Egil stayed the winter with Athelstan, but -when the summer came he wished to go back to his own people. But he had -much respect for King Athelstan, and ere he bade him farewell he made a -long poem to his glory. - -_From the Song of Egil Skallagrimsson, to the Glory of King Athelstan._ - - "See how the kingly warrior, - Land-warder, battle-wakener, - Smites even to the earth - The earls who rise against him! - Glad is now Northumberland, - This the king she needed, - Wise and bold of race and blood, - Dauntless in the battle-field!" - - -Many were the verses of this stirring song; and after each came the -refrain:-- - - "Scottish hills where reindeer roam - Own the rule of Athelstan!" - - -The king gave Egil two heavy gold rings and a handsome cloak that he -himself had worn; then the Norseman sailed away, for always near to his -heart was the welfare of his dead brother's wife and child. Yea, for -the rest of his long life he loved this child even as he loved his own. - - - - - *Chapter III* - - *Monks and Minstrels* - - -The wild Borderland was the scene of the labours of many ol the first -great Christian leaders. Where the arts of war were so much practised, -it was needful that the arts of peace should flourish also. Great was -the influence, even in the wildest times, of these able, serious, -devoted leaders of early religious thought, men like Ninian and -Kentigern. - -Christianity first came into Britain in Roman times, and some of the -Britons were converted. After the Romans quitted the country, King -Arthur was the leader of the Christian Britons, and he is said to have -fought with the pagan Britons, the pagan Picts, the pagan Saxons, who -had begun their invasions, and the disorderly soldiers of various races, -probably pagans whom the Romans left behind along the wall. - -In due time the fight developed into a struggle between Christian -Britons and pagan Saxons, and then the Saxons themselves began to accept -the new religion. Oswald, a Northumbrian prince, had in a time of peril -hidden in the island of Iona, to where the great Irishman Columba had -come from Ireland as a missionary. When Oswald returned to power he -summoned to his kingdom Aidan, a high-minded Christian teacher, whom he -made first bishop of Lindisfarne (Holy Island). Aidan being a Celt, had -to do his work through interpreters, but he did it well, and laid the -foundations of Christianity and learning in Northumbria. Cuthbert was -another famous missionary. Rising from shepherd-boy to bishop, he -impressed both king and peasant by the dignified simplicity and -sincerity of his life. His place of meditation was a sea-girt rock by -Lindisfarne, lonely and picturesque, and still called after his name. A -curious fossil, with the mark of a cross, is plentiful there, and goes -by the name of St Cuthbert's beads. Other famous teachers were Wilfrid -of York, who founded the churches of Hexham and Ripon; Boisil, who -founded Melrose, and Biscop, who founded Jarrow. - -But perhaps the most celebrated of all was Bede, the "Venerable Bede," -who lived at Jarrow and wrote forty-five learned books on all subjects, -including music, astronomy, and medicine. All the scholars in England -flocked to hear his teachings, and he was justly called "the father of -English learning." He it was who first introduced into England the art -of making glass. - -His last work was to translate the Gospel of St John into Northumbrian -English. This was in the year 735. Being too ill to hold a pen, he -dictated to his favourite pupil. "Write quickly," he said, for he felt -that he was dying. "It is finished," answered the lad, and the old -man's heart was satisfied. In a faint, brave voice he chanted the -_Gloria_, and so died singing. - -In those days there was, of course, no such thing as printing. Every -manuscript was written and rewritten, carefully, by hand, and treasured -as a sacred possession in the seats of learning. So proud were they of -their manuscripts that they beautified them with illustrations in -colour. Many of these manuscripts have, of course, been destroyed; for -instance, the Danes in 875 burnt the priceless library of Bishop Acca at -Hexham, destroying in one day the treasured collection of a lifetime; -but many remain to show the love of learning which existed even then. -Bishop Edfrid, who lived in the little rocky island of Lindisfarne, made -a copy of the Gospels, which is looked upon with wonder even to-day. -Strings of beautiful birds and quaint animals are drawn upon his pages; -evangelists with mantles of purple and tunics of blue, pink, or green. -With the writing clear and beautiful, the decorations showing the -greatest care and devotion, this manuscript of one thousand two hundred -years ago has been the delight of thousands, and comes down to us to -witness to the loving care of the scholars of old in the days before -printing was known. - -Great as was their love of beautiful manuscripts, they had an equally -noble passion for grand buildings. A superb monument of simple dignity -and religious grandeur is the Norman Cathedral at Durham, commenced by -Bishop Carilef in 1093, and finished by Bishop Flambard in 1128. -Occupying a wonderful position at the top of a wooded hill, around which -flows the beautiful river Wear, Durham Cathedral is in itself one of the -noblest buildings in the world. While the Church in those troublous -times kept thus a storehouse of learning for serious scholars, other -methods kept the people informed of the more stirring events of their -day. - -In the old days, when no newspapers existed to tell people the news, -when books were scarce and history was not taught to every lad as a part -of his training, the ballad-writer and the wandering minstrel played a -very important part. Ballads, sometimes really fine pieces of poetry, -sometimes a mere halting troop of lame lines, were made upon every -occasion of local or general interest. They were sung to simple and -often beautiful tunes or chants. The best of the minstrels were welcome -to the halls of the nobles, and even to the king himself; the poorest of -them sang on the village green. The ballads were learnt and repeated by -the folk of the country-side; some were in later times printed on loose -sheets, but at first they were handed on from mouth to mouth. -Alterations and errors often crept in; mistakes due to a sameness of -sound. For instance, in the old ballad of _Mary Ambree_, a soldier is -referred to as "Sir John Major," probably meaning Sergeant-major. In -one of the versions of the battle of Chevy Chase, Henry Percy was said -to have been killed there, whereas he really lived on to be slain at -Shrewsbury. But, despite such occasional blunders, the ballads on the -whole throw a vivid light on the manners and customs of the old days, as -well as being usually stirring and sometimes strikingly noble and -pathetic pieces of poetry. They deal as a rule rather with the side -currents than with the main stream of history; but they express -themselves with such homely force and directness that they bring home to -us with wonderful clearness the character of the vigorous manly men with -whose doings they are chiefly concerned. - -During the last one hundred and fifty years many able men have laboured -to collect old ballads, writing them down from the mouths of the -country-folk and printing them in books with notes of explanation. One -of the earliest thus to collect ballads seriously was Bishop Percy; the -best known is Sir Walter Scott, of whose interest in the subject -Lockhart, his biographer, writes very pleasantly. - -Prefaced to many of the stirring tales in this present book are lines -from the old Border ballads from which they are taken. It is to be -hoped that readers will be tempted sooner or later to read the rest of -these fine ballads for themselves. - - - - - *Chapter IV* - - *Sir Patrick Spens* - - - "The king sits in Dunfermline town - Drinking the blood-red wine; - 'O where shall I get a well-skilled skipper - To sail this new ship of mine?'" - - -Almost every collection of Scottish songs contains this picturesque old -ballad, which refers to a very remote time in Scottish history, probably -the end of the thirteenth century. King Alexander III. of Scotland died -in 1285; he had the bitter grief of seeing all his children die before -him. His daughter Margaret had been married to Eric, King of Norway, -and she left a daughter also called Margaret, and known as the "Maid of -Norway." This maid was now heiress to the Scottish throne, and it is -natural to suppose that the lonely king should wish her to return to -Scotland, and should send a richly appointed ship to fetch her back. -And although there is no strictly historical record of such an -expedition, the truth of the ballad is made more probable by the fact -that it opens in the fine old town of Dunfermline. - -Dunfermline was a favourite residence of Alexander, who was killed in -its neighbourhood by a fall from his horse, and was buried in the abbey -there, the ruins of which beautiful structure still remain. - -In this ballad the king is feasting at Dunfermline town, and calls for a -skilful mariner to sail his new ship. An old knight at the king's right -hand answers that the best sailor who ever sailed the sea is Sir Patrick -Spens. So the king writes a letter, sealing it with his own hand, and -sends it to Sir Patrick, commanding him to sail away to Norway over the -white sea-foam and bring home the maid. - -Now every good sailor dreaded the rough Northern seas in winter, so -though the brave Sir Patrick laughed aloud when he began to read, he -wept blinding tears before he had ended. "Who has done this deed?" he -cried; "who has told the king of me and urged him to send us out at this -time of the year to sail on the stormy sea? Yet, wind, wet, hail, or -sleet, we must set out, for 'tis we who must fetch home the maid." - -So they set sail on a Monday morning, and reached Norway on a Wednesday. -History tells us that Eric of Norway was very unwilling to part with his -daughter. This probably accounts for the fact that the old ballad tells -us that the Scotsmen had only been there a fortnight when the lords of -Norway began to say that Sir Patrick and his men were spending the gold -of their king and queen. "Ye lie," cried Sir Patrick, "loudly I hear ye -lie, for I brought with me over the sea enough red gold and white money -to supply the wants of my men. Make ready, make ready, my merry men; we -will sail at daybreak." "Alack," quoth the men, "a deadly storm is -brewing. Yesterday evening the new moon was seen carrying the old moon -in her arms; we shall certainly come to harm if we go to sea." - -Barely had they sailed three leagues when the sky darkened, the wind -blew loudly, and the sea grew boisterous. Soon they were in the midst -of a terrible storm. The anger of the sea was far more dreadful than -the anger of the lords of Norway. The anchors broke away, the topmasts -snapped, and the waves came over the broken ship, tearing her sides -asunder. "O where shall I get a good sailor to take the helm while I -climb the tall topmast to see if I can espy land?" "That I fear ye -never will," cried a sailor as he took the helm, and scarcely had Sir -Patrick gone a step when a plank started in the ship's side and the -water came pouring in. - -"Fetch a web of silken cloth, and fetch a web of twine," cried Sir -Patrick, "and cast them down to our ship's side!" For it was the custom -in those days, when a leak could not be reached from inside the vessel, -to cast down some closely woven stuff in the hope that the suction of -the water would drag it across the leak and stop thus the fatal inrush -of water. Alas! all their efforts failed. Then the ballad-writer says -somewhat grimly of the dandies among the Scottish lords that whereas at -first they grumbled to see the water spoil their fine cork-heeled shoes, -when the storm had done its fatal work the sea was "above their hats"! - - "And many was the feather bed - That fluttered on the foam; - And many was the gude lord's son - That never mair came home! - - The ladyes wrang their fingers white; - The maidens tore their hair, - A' for the sake of their true loves; - For them they'll see nae mair. - - O lang, lang may the ladyes sit, - Wi' their fans into their hand, - Before they see Sir Patrick Spens - Come sailing to the strand! - - And lang, lang may the maidens sit, - With their goud kaims[#] in their hair, - A' waiting for their ain dear loves! - For them they'll see nae mair. - -[#] Golden combs. - - O forty miles off Aberdeen, - 'Tis fifty fathoms deep, - And there lies gude Sir Patrick Spens, - Wi' the Scots lords at his feet." - - - - - *Chapter V* - - *Auld Maitland* - - - "'Wha holds this house?' young Edward cried, - 'Or wha gives it o'er to me?' - ''Tis I will keep my good old house, - While my house will keep me!'" - - -The story of Auld Maitland is said to be taken from a very old ballad, -and known chiefly to the people who lived in the neighbourhood of -Ettrick Forest. The old folks there would while away the long winter -evenings by singing of the deeds of their ancestors, and the ballad of -_Auld Maitland_, as thus chanted, was written down by the mother of -James Hogg, the "Ettrick Shepherd." - -The castle of Thirlestane stood on the river Leader, and still, in its -restored form, deserves its name of "the darksome house." It may have -often withstood the English during the Baliol wars, and hatred of the -English and of Edward I. is expressed with extreme virulence throughout -the poem. Here is the story:-- - -There lived in the south country a king named Edward, who wore the crown -unworthily for fifty years. This king had a nephew, strong in blood and -bone, who bore the same hateful name. One day the young man came before -the king, and kneeling low, he said, "A boon, a boon I crave of thee, my -good uncle. Oft have I wished to take part in our long wars in fair -Scotland. Grant me fifteen hundred chosen strong men to ride there with -me." - -"Certainly thou shalt have them, and more, and I myself, though old and -grey, will see thy host arrayed for battle." - -King Edward sent hither and thither, and assembled fifteen hundred men -on Tyne side, and three times as many at North Berwick, all bound for -battle. They marched up the banks of Tweed, burning the Merse and -Teviotdale, and up and down the Lammermoor Hills, until they came to the -darksome house called, by some, "Leader-Town." - -"Who holds this house?" cried young Edward, "or who gives it over to -me?" He was answered, as proudly, by a grey-haired knight: "I hold my -house of Scotland's king, who pays me in meat and fee, and I will hold -it as long as it will stand together." - -Thereupon the English brought up their sows[#] to the wall with many a -heavy sound, but the soldiers on the wall cast down blazing pitch and -tar barrels, to consume the formidable machine. They also threw down -stones and beams and darts from their springalds,[#] and slew many of -the English. - -[#] A military engine framed of wood, covered with hides and mounted on -wheels, so that, being rolled forward to the foot of the wall, it served -as a shed to defend the miners underneath it and their battering-rams -from the stones and arrows of the soldiers above. - -[#] Large crossbows worked by machinery. - -Fifteen days they besieged the castle of Auld Maitland, but left him at -the end of that time unhurt within his stone stronghold. - -[Illustration: _The Siege of Maitland Castle_] - -They loaded fifteen ships with as much spoil as they could carry away -from the district around, and claimed that now they had conquered -Scotland with buckler, bow, and brand. So they sailed away to France to -meet the old King Edward, who was burning every castle, tower, and town -that he met with. They came at last to the town of Billop-Grace, where -Auld Maitland's three sons were at school. - -Edward had quartered the arms of Scotland with his own. "See'st thou -what I see?" said the eldest son to the youngest; "if that be true that -yonder standard says, then are we all three fatherless, and Scotland -conquered up and down. Never will we bow to the conquerer. Let us go, -my two brothers, and try our chance in an adventure?" Thereupon they -saddled two black horses and a grey, and rode before day-dawn to King -Edward's army. Arrived there, they hovered round, and Maitland begged -to be allowed to carry the king's standard, the Golden Dragon. - -"Where wast thou born and bred, and in what country?" demanded the -knight who bore the banner. "I was born in the north of England," -answered Maitland; "my father was a knight and my mother a lady, and I -myself am a squire of high renown, and may well carry the banner of a -king." "Never had the son of an Englishmen such an eye or brow," -answered the knight; "thou art more like Auld Maitland than any man I -have ever seen; yet God grant that such a gloomy brow I never see again; -he slew and wounded many of our men." - -At the mention of his father's name Maitland's anger burst out, and -lifting up a gilded dagger that hung low by his knee, he struck fiercely -at the standard-bearer, and, catching hold of the corner of the -standard, rode swiftly away with it, crying to his brothers, "Is it not -time to flee?" "Ay, by my sooth," they both shouted, "we will bear you -company." So they rode off at hot speed, the pursuers following. The -youngest Maitland, turning round in the path, drew his brand and killed -fifteen of the foremost, and the rest fell back. Then he dug his spurs -into the sides of his faithful grey, until both the sides ran blood. -"Thou must carry me away, or my life lies in pledge," he cried. - -About daybreak the brothers arrived at their uncle's castle, who, seeing -the three Scottish lads with pursuers riding hard at their heels, -ordered the portcullis to be drawn up and the drawbridge let down, for -that they should lodge with him that night in spite of all England. - -When the three came inside the gate, they leapt down from their horses, -and taking three long spears in their hands, they fought till it was -full daylight, killing and wounding many of the Englishmen round the -drawbridge. Some of the dead were carted away in waggons, and stones -were heaped upon the rest as they lay in the gutter. - -King Edward proclaimed at his pavilion door that three lads of France, -disguised, and with false words, had come and stolen away the standard, -and had slain his men in their lawful attempt to regain it. - -"It ill befits a crowned king to lie," said the youngest Maitland, "and -he shall be reproved for it before I taste meat or drink." - -Straightway he went before King Edward, and, kneeling low, begged leave -to speak a word with him. "Man, thou shalt have leave to speak, even -though thou shouldst speak all day," answered the king. - -"Ye said," spoke the youngest Maitland, "that three young lads of France -had stolen away the standard with a false tale, and slain many men. But -we are not lads of France, and never have pretended to be; we are three -lads of fair Scotland, and the sons of Auld Maitland, nor are there men -in all your host dare fight us three to three." - -"Now, by my sooth," said the young Edward, who stood by, "Ye shall be -well fitted, for Percy shall fight with the eldest, and Egbert Lunn with -thee, and William of Lancaster with the other, and the surviving brother -shall fight with me. Remember, Percy, how oft the Scot has cowered -before thee; I will give thee a rig of land for every drop of Maitland -blood." - -So they set to, and the eldest Maitland clanked Percy over the head and -wounded him so deeply that the best blood of his body ran down his hair. -"I have slain one," shouted Maitland to his brothers; "slay ye the other -two, and that will be good company, and if the two shall slay ye both, -ye shall get no help from me."[#] - -[#] According to the laws of chivalry, having slain his own man, he -could, if he pleased, come to the assistance of the others. - -But Egbert Lunn was like a baited bear and had seen many battles, and -when Maitland saw that his youngest brother was having the worst of it, -he could not restrain himself longer, and shouting, "I am no king; my -word shall not stand," he struck Egbert over the head and slew him. -"Now I have slain two; slay ye one for good company," he cried; "neither -shall ye get any help from me even if the one shall slay ye both." So -the two brothers slew the third, and hung him over the drawbridge for -all the host to see. - -Then they rode and ran, but still got not away, but hovered round, -boasting: "We be three lads of fair Scotland that fain would see some -fighting." - -When young Edward heard this, he cried wrathfully, "I'll take yon lad -and bind him, and bring him bound to thee." - -"Now God forbid that ever thou shouldst try that," said the king; "we -have lost three worthy leaders; wouldst thou be the fourth? Never again -would I be happy if thou wert to hang on yonder drawbridge." - -But Edward struck fiercely at Maitland, cleaving his stout helmet and -biting right near his brain. When Maitland saw his own blood flowing he -threw away his weapon, and springing angrily at young Edward's throat, -he swung him thrice about and flung him on the ground, holding him there -though he was of great strength. - -"Now let him up," cried King Edward, "let him come to me, and for thy -deed thou shalt have three earldoms." - -"Nay," replied Maitland, "never shall it be said in France or in -Scotland that Edward once lay under me and got up again," and with that -he pierced him through the heart and hung him over the drawbridge with -the other three. - -"Now take from me my bed of feathers," said the king, "make me a bed of -straw. Would that I had not lived to see the day that makes my heart so -sad." - - - - - *Chapter VI* - - *The Mystery of the Eildons* - - - "Before their eyes the Wizard lay - As if he had not been dead a day. - His hoary beard in silver roll'd, - He seemed some seventy winters old. - High and majestic was his look, - At which the fellest friends had shook, - And all unruffled was his face; - They trusted his soul had gotten grace." - SCOTT: _Lay of the Last Minstrel._ - - -Just above Melrose, the ruined abbey of which is one of the beauties of -Scotland, there rises a striking mass of three hills known as "the -triple Eildons." They rise very high above the surrounding land, and -are steep enough to need a very hard scramble to mount to the very -summit; but once at the top the view is wonderful indeed. On a fine day -the Tweed can be seen winding in and out most picturesquely, till it -loses itself in the low distant haze of the North Sea, thirty miles -away. But even grander is the view of the entire line of the Cheviots, -like a huge wall, fifty miles long, seen to immense advantage from -Eildon, which towers over the rich valleys of Tweed and Teviot that lie -between. One of the legends of the triple Eildons is that King Arthur -lies sleeping beneath them, some day to awaken. Tradition says that he -fought a great battle near here, by Gala Water, in the Vale of Woe. - -However that may be, it is certain that at the foot of Eildon lie many -famous dead. In Melrose Abbey lies the heart of Robert Bruce, and also -the body of the strong King Alexander II., he who first subdued and made -obedient the wild tribes of Argyle. Here, too, is buried the brave -Douglas who died so gallantly on the field of Otterbourne; and also of -another brave Douglas who got his death wound at Poictiers. - -Sir Walter Scott, who did more than any other man to spread all over the -world the knowledge of Scotland, Scottish history, Scottish romance, and -Scottish character, lies buried on the southern side of Eildon, in the -rival abbey of Dryburgh. But Melrose can claim a man who in his day was -an object of the deepest wonder and terror--Michael Scott, the famous -wizard of the thirteenth century, he who brought the learning of -Aristotle to expound to Western Europe, he whom Dante described as -learned in every deep spell of the magic arts. Perhaps he was only a -scientist, born before his time; yet even to-day old folk in the country -remember that it was he who is said to have cleft the head of Eildon -Hill into three! - -One of the many strange tales told of Michael Scott is this:-- - -They say that the lord of Morpeth, in Northumberland, promised the great -wizard a rich reward if he would only make the sea roll up the valley of -the pretty river Wansbeck till it reached Morpeth, so that vessels could -sail up to the town. The distance is seven miles, and the wizard, -declaring the matter a most simple one, prepared his magic spell. He -then said that if a certain man would run from the sea to the town, and -on no account look back, whatever he heard, the desire of the lord would -be satisfied. The man no sooner started to run than he heard the waters -following him. Faster and faster he went, and faster and faster came -the ocean, dashing and roaring, never overtaking him, but always so near -his heels as to fill him with ever greater and greater terror. - -Before he had finished the third mile he was in such a state of alarm -that he could not resist the impulse to see what was happening. He -turned round, and the spell was broken; the waters had followed him thus -far, but would come no further. Even the best of wizards will fail when -his instructions are not obeyed. - -So says the story. People are free to believe it or not, as they -please. It is certain that the sea runs nearly three miles up the -Wansbeck valley, and there stops; but many people think that that is -explained by the natural rise of the land! - -The story of how Michael Scott came to divide the Eildon Hill into three -runs as follows:-- - -The wizard had one very active little demon, who was always bothering -his master to give him something to do. First Michael commanded him to -put a barrier across the Tweed at Kelso, thinking to keep him quiet for -at least a week; it was done in a single night, and again the demon -demanded work. Then Michael set him to divide Eildon into three; this -also was done in a night, and again the demon came clamouring for -employment. So in despair the wizard ordered him to make ropes out of -sea-sand! This, of course, is impossible, as the sand will not hold -together. But if you go down to the shore on the south-east coast of -Scotland on a dark and stormy night, you can still hear what sounds like -the demon moaning and groaning over his impossible task; and there is -certainly a barrier across the Tweed at Kelso, and the Eildon Hill is -certainly divided into three! So you may believe as much as you please -of this story. - -Another tale that is told of the magic powers of this famous man relates -that he was once chosen to go as ambassador from the King of Scotland to -the King of France on urgent business. Instead of going, as is usual in -such cases, with a number of followers, he conjured up a demon shaped -like a huge black horse, and rode away over the sea. When half-way -across the North Sea the horse said to his rider:-- - -"What do the old women of Scotland say at bed-time?" Had the magician -fallen into the trap and named a prayer, the demon would have -disappeared and the wizard would have been drowned! But Michael Scott -merely commanded his steed to go on quickly and not to talk. Very soon -he came to Paris, tied his horse to the gate of the French king's -palace, and boldly entered and stated his business. The French king -sneered at an ambassador who was not followed by a train of knights, and -began at once to refuse all he asked. "Wait a moment, your Majesty," -said Michael, "till you have seen my horse stamp three times." - -At the first stamp the ground so shook that every steeple in Paris -rocked, making all the bells ring loudly; at the second stamp the king -heard behind him a loud crash that made him leap three feet in the air; -looking round, he saw that three of the towers of his palace had fallen; -the horse raised his foot to stamp a third time, but the king was so -terrified that he shouted hastily that he would grant all that Michael -asked if only he would keep his horse from stamping! - -Whether this tale is true or not, Michael Scott was certainly one of the -ambassadors sent to bring back the Maid of Norway to Scotland on the -death of King Alexander III. He wrote many learned books, and possessed -many others; and they say that when he was buried at Melrose many of -these same magic books were buried with him. - -To this romantic district of the Eildons belonged True Thomas, Thomas -the Rhymer, or Thomas of Ercildoune, as he was variously called, who was -held in awe by Border-folks as a prophet. The ruins of his tower are -still shown by the pretty river Leader, just about two miles above the -spot where it joins the Tweed. The Rhymer seems to have died a few -years before 1300; but despite the passing of six centuries he is still -remembered. The story of how he gained his prophetic powers is quite -worth hearing, whether we believe it or not. - -The tale goes that Thomas was on Huntlie bank, near the Eildon Hills, -when he saw a wonderful lady approaching him. She was dressed in -grass-green silk, with a mantle of fine velvet, and the noble horse on -which she rode had silver bells in its mane. Thomas was so surprised at -this remarkable sight that when the lady came near he dropped on his -knee and pulled off his cap, and cried out, reverently, that she must be -the Queen of Heaven. But she answered that she was Queen of fair -Elfland, and dared him, with a witching glance, to kiss her lips. The -bold and gallant Thomas did not need a second invitation, and promptly -kissed the fairy, when she seized upon him and fled away with him -swifter than the wind. - -Soon all living land was left behind, and they came to a wild place -where three roads met. One was a narrow path, beset with thorns and -briers; and this the fairy said was the road of righteousness, which -very few people ever troubled to find. Another was a broad and -attractive road, which was the way of sinners; whilst the third, a -pretty winding road, led to Elfland, and thither they went together. - -Soon there was neither sun nor moon to lighten the way, and Thomas and -his companion waded through rivers above the knee. The sea moaned and -roared in the dread darkness, and Thomas somehow found that they waded -oft through streams of red blood--blood that had been shed on earth. -Then they came to a beautiful garden, and the Elfland queen gave Thomas -an apple to eat, saying:-- - -"Take this for thy wages, true Thomas; it will give thee the tongue that -can never lie." Poor Thomas turned pale at the thought of such a gift. -"Let my tongue be my own!" he pleaded; "how shall I buy or sell in any -market, flatter a prince, or compliment a lady, if you give me such a -tongue!" - -But the Elfland queen would take no denial, and Thomas had to do her -behest, wherefore for the rest of his life Thomas carried with him this -gift of truthfulness. - - - - - *Chapter VII* - - *Black Agnes of Dunbar* - - -The fortress of Dunbar was always a very important one to the Scots. It -commanded the coast road from England across the Border to Edinburgh, -not only one of the best routes in itself, but one which had the -additional advantage to the English that by following it they could keep -in touch with their ships. So it is not surprising that many stirring -events in history took place at this historic town. - -King Edward I. of England won a very important victory at Dunbar during -his first invasion of Scotland, and to the place which had witnessed the -triumph of the father, his son, Edward II., fled for safety after his -defeat at Bannockburn, taking ship thence back to England. In the time -of Mary Queen of Scots the fortress was held by Earl Bothwell; from here -he consented to the surrender of poor Mary, and here he rested in safety -before his final flight to Scandinavia. Oliver Cromwell fought and won -at Dunbar his desperate battle with the Scottish Presbyterians, the fate -of which for some time hung in the balance. Cromwell considered the -place so valuable that he had new harbour works made there, and a -portion of his work, forming part of the east pier of the present much -larger harbour, is still to be seen. - -The last time that Dunbar resounded to the march of an army bent on -immediate fight was in 1745, when the boastful English general, Sir John -Cope, landed here to engage the Highland followers of Prince Charles -Edward (called the "Young Pretender"). Prince Charlie was at Edinburgh, -and Dunbar Castle commanded the road into England. Cope asserted that -the Highlanders would run away at the mere sight of his army. He -marched westward, but was surprised in the early morning by his enemies -when near Prestonpans. In less than ten minutes it was the unprepared -English who were flying in disorder, utterly routed. - -The foregoing is but a brief outline of the stormy history of those grey -and ruined battlements overlooking the bleak North Sea at the -southernmost point of entrance to the noble Firth of Forth. The mention -of these stirring incidents, however, will serve to show what a very -important place Dunbar was, and that it was necessary to Scottish safety -that a strong hand should have charge of its fortress. We are now to -see how at one of the most critical hours a woman was to hold command, -and to hold it worthily. - -Early in the reign of King Edward III. of England Scottish affairs were -in some confusion. King Robert Bruce had lately died, leaving a son, -King David II., then only five years old. That great leader and friend -of Bruce, Randolph, Earl of Moray, was appointed Guardian of Scotland, -but he too soon died. Edward III., anxious to interfere in Scottish -affairs, agreed to help Edward Balliol to make himself king of the -Scots. So an English army was again in Scotland, and one of the places -they were keenest to take was the fortress of Dunbar. - -[Illustration: _Black Agnes_] - -The castle was a very strong one. It was built on a chain of great -rocks that stretched out to sea, and could only be reached from land by -one road, which was, of course, strictly guarded. The lord of the -castle was the Earl of March (the word March in those days meant a -border-land), but he was away with the Scottish army, and his wife was -in charge of the castle. She was the daughter of that brave Earl of -Moray, Guardian of Scotland, who has just been mentioned. The English -army was led by an experienced general, the Earl of Salisbury, and he -probably thought that he would not have much trouble in overcoming -"Black Agnes," as the dark-haired countess was called. - -He soon discovered that she was of heroic mould, however, for though he -himself led the storming-parties, she on her side, urging on her men in -person, hurled back his every attack. The Lady Agnes was quite -fearless, and treated the siege as if it were a pastime to be enjoyed. -When the English, with machines made for the purpose, hurled heavy -stones against the walls, Black Agnes would call one of her maidens with -a napkin to wipe off the dust that they made! The biggest of all the -English war-machines was called a sow, and when it was brought to the -walls the countess cried out in rough jest that it was surrounded by -little pigs. At the same moment a mass of rock, which she had caused to -be loosened, was hurled by her men on to the English, crushing their sow -and many soldiers with it. - -At last there seemed a chance for the English. Near midnight a Scot -came into their camp, saying that he was ready to betray the castle for -a reward. The Earl of Salisbury and some chosen knights rode carefully -forward, and found the gate open and the portcullis raised, as the man -had promised. But for all that, they doubted if Black Agnes could so -far relax her vigilance; wherefore instead of the earl entering first, -he sent forward a retainer. His caution was soon justified, for no -sooner had this man passed the gate than the portcullis fell. It was a -trick to capture the earl, but the Scots were disappointed this time. - -The gallant English lord was loud in admiration of the brave Scottish -lady who was thus defying him. Once when examining the defences with a -lieutenant, an arrow struck his companion dead. "The countess's -love-arrows pierce to the heart," said Salisbury, on his return to the -camp. Despite the courtly manner in which the well-bred baron referred -to the lady, however, he did not relax his efforts to overcome her. - -Salisbury's land forces had now surrounded the castle on the land side, -while his ships at sea completed the blockade. The garrison was -threatened with starvation. Greater and greater became the privations -of the heroic defenders. The countess, no less brave than ever, hoped -on, though ground for hope grew less and less. She could not bring -herself to think of defeat, and her brave, bright face still gave -courage and inspiration to all. - -Meantime the story of the struggle and difficulties of the defenders was -raising up helpers, and Sir Alexander Ramsay of Dalhousie got ready a -light vessel filled with provisions and manned by forty brave Scots, who -only waited for a dark night to make the attempt to steal past the -English fleet. They lay hidden by the Bass Rock, a lofty islet at the -mouth of the Firth of Forth, some seven or eight miles from Dunbar, -until one starless night they stole very cautiously down the wild -coast-line of Haddingtonshire, sometimes all but bumping into an English -vessel in the dark. Fortune favours the brave, and despite dangers and -difficulties they got safely at last to the castle, whose distant light -had been their guide. Be sure Black Agnes welcomed them! This proved to -be the turning-point of the long siege. With fresh hope, the garrison -made a sudden sally on the English, driving back their advance guard, -and after five months of fierce but fruitless attempts, Salisbury was -compelled to withdraw his forces and admit defeat. Nevertheless, the -English were gallant enough to sing their praises of this Scottish -heroine; their minstrels made songs in her honour, in one of which -Salisbury is made to say:-- - - "Came I early, came I late, - I found Black Agnes at the gate." - - - - - *Chapter VIII* - - *The Young Tamlane* - - - "He's ta'en her by the milk-white hand, - Among the leaves so green." - - -This tale belongs to the romantic side of the Border minstrelsy, and -illustrates some of the common superstitions of olden times concerning -elves and fairies. The scene is laid in the Selkirk or Ettrick Forest, -a mountainous tract covered with the remains of the old Caledonian -Forest. About a mile above Selkirk is a plain called Carterhaugh, and -here may still be seen those fairy rings of which it was believed that -anyone sleeping upon one will wake in a fairy city. And here was, and -perhaps still is, an ancient well. The ballad opens by telling how all -young maids were forbidden to come or go by way of Carterhaugh, "for -young Tamlane (or Thomalin) is there," and every one going by -Carterhaugh is obliged to leave him something in pledge. But the Lady -Janet, the fairest of the Selkirk lasses, was obstinate, and declared -that she would come or go to Carterhaugh, as she pleased, "and ask no -leave of him," since the land there belonged to her by hereditary right. -She kilted her green mantle above her knee, and braided her yellow hair -above her brow, and off she went to Carterhaugh. When she got to the -well, she found the steed of the elfin knight Tamlane standing there, -but he himself was away. - - "She hadna pu'd a red, red rose, - A rose but barely three; - Till up and starts a wee, wee man - At Lady Janet's knee. - - Says--'Why pu' ye the rose, Janet? - What gars (makes) ye break the tree? - Or why come ye to Carterhaugh, - Withouten leave of me?' - - Says--'Carterhaugh it is mine ain; - My daddy gave it me: - I'll come and gang to Carterhaugh, - And ask nae leave o' thee.'" - - -But Tamlane took her by the hand and worked upon her his spells, which -no maiden might resist, however proud she might be. - -When she came back to her father's hall, she looked pale and wan; and it -seemed that she had some sore sickness. She ceased to take any pleasure -in combing her yellow hair, and everything she ate seemed like to be her -death. When her ladies played at ball, she, once the strongest player, -was now the faintest. One day her father spoke out, and said he, "Full -well I know that you must have some lover." She said:-- - - "'If my love were an earthly knight, - As he's an elfin grey, - I wouldna give my own true love - For no lord that ye hae.'" - - -Then she prinked herself, and preened herself, all by the light of the -moon alone, and went away to Carterhaugh, to speak with Tamlane. When -she got to the well, she found the steed standing, but Tamlane was away. -She had barely pulled a double rose, when up started the elf. - -"Why pull ye the rose, Janet?" says he; "why pull ye the rose within -this garden green?" "The truth ye'll tell me, Tamlane; were ye ever in -holy chapel, or received into the Christian Church?" "The truth I'll -tell thee, Janet; a knight was my father, and a lady was my mother, like -your own parents. Randolph, Earl Moray, was my sire; Dunbar, Earl -March, is thine. We loved when we were children, which yet you may -remember. When I was a boy just turned nine, my uncle sent for me to -hunt, and hawk, and ride with him, and keep him company. There came a -wind out of the north, a deep sleep came over me, and I fell from my -horse. The queen of the fairies took me off to yon green hill, and now -I'm a fairy, lithe and limber. In Fairyland we know neither sickness -nor pain. We quit our body, or repair unto them, when we please. We can -inhabit, earth, or air, as we will. Our shapes and size we can convert -to either large or small. We sleep in rose-buds, revel in the stream, -wanton lightly on the wind, or glide on a sunbeam. I would never tire, -Janet, to dwell in Elfland, were it not that every seven years a tithe -is paid to hell, and I am so fair of flesh, I fear 'twill be myself. If -you dare to win your true love, you have no time to lose. To-night is -Hallowe'en, and the fairy folk ride. If you would win your true love, -bide at Miles Cross." Miles Cross is about half a mile from -Carterhaugh, and Janet asked how she should know Tamlane among so many -unearthly knights. "The first company that passes by, let them go. The -next company that passes by, let them go. The third company that passes -by, I'll be one of those. First let pass the black steed, Janet, then -let pass the brown; but grip the milk-white steed, and pull down the -rider-- - - "For I ride on the milk-white steed, - And aye nearest the town; - Because I was a christened knight, - They gave me that renown." - - -Tamlane went on to explain that his fairy comrades would make every -effort to disgust her with her captive. They would turn him in her very -arms into an adder; they would change him into a burning faggot, into a -red-hot iron goad, but she must hold him fast. In order to remove the -enchantment, she must dip him in a churn of milk, and then in a barrel -of water. She must still persevere, for they would shape him in her -arms into a badger, eel, dove, swan, and, last of all, into a naked man, -but - - "Cast your green mantle over me, - I'll be myself again." - - -So fair Janet in her green mantle went that gloomy night to Miles Cross. -The heavens were black, the place was inexpressibly dreary, a north wind -raged; but there she stood, eagerly wishing to embrace her lover. -Between the hours of twelve and one she heard strange eldrich sounds and -the ringing of elfin bridles, which gladdened her heart. The oaten -pipes of the faires grew shrill, the hemlock blew clear. The fairies -cannot bear solemn sounds or sober thoughts; they sing like skylarks, -inspired by love and joy. Fair Janet stood upon the dreary heath, and -the sounds waxed louder as the fairy train came riding on. Will o' the -Wisp shone out as a twinkling light before them, and soon she saw the -fairy bands passing. She let the black steed go by, and then the brown. -But she gripped fast the milk-white steed, and pulled down the rider. -Then up rose an eldrich cry, "He's won among us all!" As Janet grasped -him in her arms the fairies changed him into a newt, an adder, and many -other fantastic and terrifying shapes. She held him fast in every -shape. They turned him at last into a naked man in her arms, but she -wrapped him in her green mantle. At last her stedfast courage was -rewarded, she redeemed the fairies' captive, and by so doing won his -true love! Then up spoke the Queen of Fairies, "She that has borrowed -young Tamlane has got a stately groom! She's taken the bonniest knight -in all my company! But had I known, Tamlane," said the fairy queen, "had -I known that a lady would borrow thee, I would have taken out thy two -grey eyes, and put in wooden eyes. I would have taken out thy heart of -flesh, Tamlane, and put in a heart of stone. I would have paid my tithe -seven times to hell ere I would have let her win you away." - - - - - *Chapter IX* - - *The Gay Goss-Hawk* - - -In the opening lines of this old ballad Lord William is talking to the -goss-hawk, who tells his master that he is looking pale and thin, and -seeks to know che cause. - - "O waly, waly, my gay goss-hawk, - Gin your feathering be sheen!" - "And waly, waly, my master dear, - Gin ye look pale and lean! - - O have ye tint[#] at tournament - Your sword, or yet your spear? - Or mourn ye for the Southern lass, - Whom ye may not win near?" - -[#] lost - - "I have not tint at tournament - My sword, nor yet my spear; - But sair[#] I mourn for my true love, - Wi' mony a bitter tear. - -[#] sore - - But weel's me on ye, my gay goss-hawk, - Ye can baith speak and flee; - Ye sall carry a letter to my love, - Bring an answer back to me." - - "But how sall I your true love find, - Or how suld I her know? - I bear a tongue ne'er wi' her spake, - An eye that ne'er her saw." - - "O weel sall ye my true love ken, - Sae sune[#] as ye her see; - For, of a' the flowers of fair England, - The fairest flower is she. - -[#] soon. - - The red that's on my true love's cheek - Is like blood-drops on the snaw; - The white that is on her breast bare, - Like the down o' the white sea-maw. - - And even at my love's bour-door - There grows a flowering birk;[#] - And ye maun sit and sing thereon - As she gangs to the kirk. - -[#] birch. - - And four-and-twenty fair ladyes - Will to the Mass repair; - But weel may ye my ladye ken, - The fairest ladye there." - - Lord William has written a love-letter, - Put it under his pinion grey; - An' he is awa' to Southern land - As fast as wings can gae. - - And even at the ladye's bour[#] - There grew a flowering birk; - And he sat down and sung thereon - As she gaed to the kirk. - -[#] bower. - - And weel he kent that ladye fair - Amang her maidens free, - For the flower that springs in May morning - Was not sae sweet as she. - - He lighted at the ladye's yate[#] - And sat him on a pin,[#] - And sang fu' sweet the notes o' love, - Till a' was cosh[#] within. - -[#] gate. -[#] pine. -[#] quiet. - - And first he sang a low low note, - And syne[#] he sang a clear; - And aye the o'erword[#] o' the sang - Was--"Your love can no win here." - -[#] then. -[#] refrain. - - "Feast on, feast on, my maidens a', - The wine flows you amang, - While I gang to my shot-window - And hear yon bonnie bird's sang. - - Sing on, sing on, my bonny bird, - The sang ye sung yestreen, - For weel I ken, by your sweet singing - Ye are frae my true love sen."[#] - -[#] sent. - - O first he sang a merry song, - And syne he sang a grave; - And syne he picked his feathers grey, - To her the letter gave. - - "Have there a letter from Lord William; - He says he's sent ye three; - He canna wait your love langer, - But for your sake he'll die." - - "Gae bid him bake his bridal bread, - And brew his bridal ale; - And I shall meet him in Mary's Kirk, - Lang, lang ere it be stale." - - The lady's gane to her chamber, - And a moanfu' woman was she; - As gin[#] she had taken a sudden brash[#] - And were about to die. - -[#] if -[#] illness. - - "A boon, a boon, my father dear, - A boon I beg of thee!" - "Ask not that haughty Scottish lord, - For him ye ne'er shall see. - - But for your honest asking else, - Weel granted it shall be." - "Then, gin I die in Southern land, - In Scotland gar[#] bury me. - -[#] cause - - And the first kirk that ye come to, - Ye's gar the mass be sung; - And the next kirk that ye come to - Ye's gar the bells be rung. - - And when ye come to St Mary's Kirk, - Ye's tarry there till night." - And so her father pledged his word, - And so his promise plight. - - She has ta'en her to her bigly bower - As fast as she could fare; - And she has drank a sleepy draught, - That she had mixed wi' care. - - And pale, pale grew her rosy cheek, - That was sae bright of blee,[#] - And she seemed to be as surely dead - As any one could be. - -[#] bloom. - - Then spake her cruel step-minnie,[#] - "Tak ye the burning lead, - And drap a drap on her bosome, - To try if she be dead." - -[#] mother. - - They took a drap o' boiling lead, - They drapped it on her breast; - "Alas! alas!" her father cried, - "She's dead without the priest." - - She neither chattered with her teeth, - Nor shivered with her chin; - "Alas! alas!" her father cried, - "There is nae breath within." - - Then up arose her seven brethren, - And hewed to her a bier; - They hewed it frae the solid aik,[#] - Laid it o'er wi' silver clear. - -[#] oak. - - Then up and gat her seven sisters, - And sewed to her a kell,[#] - And every steek[#] that they put in - Sewed to a siller bell. - -[#] shroud. -[#] stitch. - - The first Scots kirk that they cam to, - They garred the bells be rung; - The next Scots kirk that they cam to, - They garred fhe mass be sung. - - But when they cam to St Mary's Kirk, - There stude spearmen all on a row; - And up and started Lord William, - The chieftaine amang them a'. - - "Set down, set down the bier," he said, - "Let me look her upon;" - But as soon as Lord William touched her hand, - Her colour began to come. - - She brightened like the lily flower, - Till her pale colour was gone; - With rosy cheek, and ruby lip, - She smiled her love upon. - - "A morsel of your bread, my lord, - And one glass of your wine; - For I have fasted these three lang days, - All for your sake and mine. - - Gae hame, gae hame, my seven bauld brothers, - Gae hame and blaw your horn! - I trow[#] ye wad hae gi'en me the skaith,[#] - But I've gi'en you the scorn. - -[#] reckon. -[#] harm. - - Commend me to my grey father, - That wished my soul gude rest; - But wae be to my cruel step-dame, - Garred burn me on the breast." - - "Ah! woe to you, you light woman! - And ill death may ye die! - For we left father and sisters at hame, - Breaking their hearts for thee." - - - - - *Chapter X* - - *The Corbies* - - -Two ancient songs have come down to us in which the principal speakers -are supposed to be Corbies, carrion-crows or ravens, birds which feed on -the flesh of the dead. In both songs the birds discuss a dead knight -upon whose rich body they wish to feed. But deep interest lies in the -fact that the two song-writers present entirely different views of the -case. One appeals to our feelings with a beautiful and touching picture -of devotion, the knight's companions proving true to him in death. The -other is far more grim, and causes us to shudder at the utter loneliness -of the dead man, deserted by all those who in life were beholden to his -friendship. Both are powerful and striking examples of ancient vigour -and directness. - - THE TWA CORBIES - - As I was walking all alane, - I heard twa corbies making a mane;[#] - The tane unto the t'other say, - "Where sall we gang and dine to-day?"-- - -[#] moan. - - "In behint yon auld fail dyke, - I wot there lies a new-slain knight; - And naebody kens that he lies there, - But his hawk, his hound, and lady fair. - - His hound is to the hunting gane, - His hawk, to fetch the wild-fowl hame, - His lady's ta'en another mate, - Sa we may mak our dinner sweet. - - Ye'll sit on his white hause-bane,[#] - And I'll pick out his bonny blue een: - Wi' ae lock o' his gowden hair, - We'll theek[#] our nest when it grows bare.[#] - -[#] neck. -[#] thatch. -[#] Variant reading--"We'll theek our nest--it's a' blawn hare." - - Mony a one for him makes mane, - But nane sall ken where he is gane; - O'er his white banes, when they are bare, - The wind sall blaw for evermair." - -[Illustration: The Twa Corbies] - - - - THE THREE RAVENS - - There were three ravens sat on a tre, - They were as black as they might be: - - The one of them said to his mate, - "Where shall we our breakfast take?"-- - - "Downe in yonder greene field, - There lies a knight slain under his shield; - - "His hounds they lie downe at his feete, - So well they their master keepe; - - "His hawkes they flie so eagerlie, - There's no fowle dare come him nie. - - "Down there comes a fallow doe, - As great with yong as she might goe. - - "She lift up his bloudy hed, - And kist his wounds that were so red. - - "She got him up upon her backe, - And carried him to earthen lake. - - "She buried him before the prime, - She was dead her selfe ere even song time. - - "God send every gentleman, - Such hawkes, such houndes, and such a leman." - - - - - *Chapter XI* - - *Otterbourne and Chevy Chase* - - - "It fell about the Lammas-tide, - When moor-men win their hay, - The doughty Douglas bound him to ride - Into England, to drive a prey." - - -The ballads of _Otterbourne_ and _Chevy Chase_ record the Scottish and -English versions of a most stubborn Border battle. Whichever of the two -contains the greater amount of truth, it is clear that the day was a -bloody one, and that, moreover, it was fought on both sides with a -chivalrous admiration for the powers of the other which is -characteristic of those strife-loving days. Sir Philip Sidney wrote of -it: "I never heard the old song of Percy and Douglas, that I found not -my heart moved more than with a trumpet." - -The ballad of _Chevy Chase_ is of later date than its rival, and it -contains certainly one misstatement of historical fact, since Hotspur -outlived the fight at Chevy Chase (1388) and was slain some fifteen -years later at the battle of Shrewsbury (1403). - -The Scottish version of the battle of Otterbourne tells us that it was -about the Lammas-tide or haymaking time of the year 1388 when the brave -Earl of Douglas, with his brother, the Earl of Murray, made a foray into -England, with a gay band of Gordons, Graemes, and Lindsays. He burned -Tynedale and half of Bamborough and Otterdale, and marching up to -Newcastle, rode round about the castle, crying, "Who is lord of this -castle, and who is its lady?" - -Then up spake proud Lord Percy, known as _Hotspur_, and said, "I am the -lord of this castle, and my wife is the gay lady of it." - -"That pleases me well," answered Douglas, "yet, ere I cross the Border -hills, one of us shall die." - -Then Percy took his long spear, shod with metal, and rode right -furiously at the Douglas; but his lady, looking from the castle wall, -grew pale as she saw her proud lord go down before the Scottish spear. - -"Had we two been alone, with never an eye to see, I would have slain -thee, but thy lance I will carry with me," said Douglas, and, to -complete the disgrace, this lance bore attached to it the Percy pennon. - -"Go then to Otterbourne," said Percy, "and wait there for me, and if I -come not before the end of three days, call me a false knight." - -"Otterbourne is a pleasant and a bonny place," answered Douglas; "but -though the deer run wild among the hills and dales, and the birds fly -wild from tree to tree, yet is there neither bread nor kale nor aught -else to feed me and my men. Yet will I wait thee at Otterbourne to give -thee welcome, and if thou come not in three days' time, false lord, will -I call thee!" - -"By the might of Our Lady, I will come," cried the proud Percy. "And -I," answered Douglas, "plight thee my troth that I will meet thee -there." - -So Douglas and his men encamped at Otterbourne, and sent out their -horses to pasture. - -But before the peep of dawn, up spake a little page: "Waken ye, waken -ye, my good lord; the Percy is upon us!" "Ye lie, ye lie," shouted -Douglas; "yesterday, Percy had not men enough to fight us. But if thou -lie not, the finest bower in Otterbourne shall be thy reward, and if -what thou sayest prove false, thou shalt be hanged on the highest tree -in Otterbourne. Yet I have dreamed a dreary dream; I dreamed that a -dead man won a battle and that I was that dead man." - -So Douglas belted on his good broadsword, and ran to the field, but -forgot his helmet, and Percy and the Douglas fought with their swords -together till the blood ran down like rain, and the Douglas fell, -wounded on the brow. - -Then he called to him his little foot-page and told him to run quickly -and bring to him his sister's son, Sir Hugh Montgomery. - -"My good nephew," said Douglas, "the death of one matters not; last -night I dreamed a dreary dream, but yet I know the day is thine. My -wound is deep; take thou the vanguard; bury me in the bracken high that -grows on yonder lea, and let no man living know that a Scot lies there. -And know that I am glad to die in battle, like my good forefathers, and -not on a bed of sickness." - -Montgomery lifted up his noble lord, while his eyes wept salt tears, and -hid him in the bracken bush that his followers might not see, and before -daylight the Scots slew many a gallant Englishman. The good Gordons -steeped hose and shoes in the blood of the English; the Lindsays flew -about like fire till the battle was ended, and Percy and Montgomery -fought till the blood ran down between them. - -"Now, yield thee, yield thee, Percy," cried Sir Hugh, "or I vow I will -lay thee low!" - -"Since it must be so," quoth Earl Percy, "to whom shall I yield?" - -"Thou shalt not yield to me or to any lord, but to the bracken bush that -grows on yonder lea!" - -"I will not yield to briar or bracken bush, but I would yield to Lord -Douglas or to Sir Hugh Montgomery, if he were here." - -Then Montgomery made himself known, and as soon as Percy knew that it -was Montgomery, he struck the point of his sword into the ground, and -Montgomery, who was a courteous knight, took him up by the hand. - -This deed was done at Otterbourne at daybreak, where Earl Douglas was -buried by the bracken bush, and Percy led captive into Scotland, and it -is said that Hotspur, for his ransom, built for Montgomery the castle of -Penoon, in Ayrshire. - -But the English version of these stirring events can also claim to be -heard; the ballad upon it is called _Chevy Chase_, which means the Chase -on the Cheviots; and so popular was this ballad that its name was given -to a boys' game, which is so called even to this day. It tells how the -Percy, from his castle in Northumberland, vowed that within three days -he would hunt on the mountains of Cheviot in spite of the doughty -Douglas and his men, and that he would kill and carry away the fattest -deer in Cheviot. - -"By my faith," said Douglas, when he heard of the boast, "but I will -hinder his hunting." - -Percy left Bamborough Castle with a mighty company, no less than fifteen -hundred bold archers chosen out of three shires. - -The foray began on a Monday morning in the high Cheviot Hills, and many -a child yet unborn was to rue the day. - -The drivers went through the woods and raised the deer, and the bowmen -shot them with their broad arrows. Then the wild deer rushed through -the woods, only to be met and killed by the greyhounds, and before -noontide a hundred fat deer lay dead. The bugles sounded, "A mort!" and -on all sides Percy and his men assembled to see the cutting up of the -venison. - -Said Percy: "The Douglas promised to meet me here this day, yet right -well did I know that he would fail." But a Northumberland squire saw -the doughty Douglas coming with a mighty company, with spear and -batter-axe and sword. Never were men hardier of heart and hand seen in -Christendom--two thousand spearmen born along the banks of the Tweed and -Teviotdale. Then said Lord Percy: "Now leave off the cutting of the -deer, and take good heed to your bows, for never had ye more need of -them since ye were born." - -Earl Douglas rode before his men, his armour glittering like a burning -coal, and never was such a bold baron. "Tell me whose men ye are," said -he, "and who gave ye leave to hunt in Cheviot without word asked of me?" - -Then answered Lord Percy, "We will not tell thee whose men we are, and -we will hunt here in spite of thee. We have killed the fattest harts in -Cheviot and will carry them away." - -"By my troth," said Douglas, "one of us shall die this day. Yet it were -great pity to kill all these guiltless men. Thou, Percy, art a lord of -land, and I am called an earl in my country; let our men stand by, and -we will fight together." - -"Now a curse on his crown, who says nay to that," cried Lord Percy. "By -my troth, Douglas, thou shalt never see the day either in England, -Scotland, or France, when I fear to meet one, man to man." - -Then spoke Richard Witherington, a squire of Northumberland. "Never -shall this be told in England, to the shame of good King Harry the -Fourth. I wot ye be two great lords, and I but a poor squire, yet would -I never stand and look on while my captain fought. While I can wield a -weapon, I will not fail, both heart and hand." - -So the English with good heart bent their bows, and slew seven score -spearmen with the first arrows they shot. - -Earl Douglas stayed on the field, but that he was a good captain was -truly seen, for he wrought great woe and mischief. He parted his host -in three like a proud chieftain, and they came in on every side with -their mighty spears, wounding the English archers and slaying many a -brave man. - -Then the English pulled out their brands, and it was a heavy sight to -see the bright swords light on the helmets, striking through the rich -mail, and the cloth of many folds under it, and laying many low. - -At last the Douglas and the Percy met and fought with swords of Milan -steel till the blood spurted like rain and hail from their helmets. - -"Hold thee, Percy," said Douglas, "and I will bring thee to James, our -Scottish king, where thou shalt have an earl's wages and free ransom, -for thou art the manfullest man that ever yet I conquered fighting in -the field." - -"Nay, then," said Lord Percy. "I told thee before that never would I -yield to any man of woman born." - -With that there came an arrow hastily from a mighty man, and struck Earl -Douglas through the breast bone, and never more did he speak a word but -only this: "Fight, my merry men, while ye may--my life's days are done." - -Then Percy leaned on his hand, and when he saw the Douglas die, he said, -"Woe is me. I would have parted with my land for three years to have -saved thy life, for a better man of heart and hand was not in all the -north country." - -But Sir Hugh Montgomery, a Scottish knight, when he saw the Douglas done -to death, grasped a spear and rode through a hundred archers, never -slackening his pace till he came to Lord Percy, whom he set upon, -sending his mighty spear clean through his body, so that a man might see -a long cloth-yard and more at the other side. There were no two better -captains in Christendom than were that day slain. - -When one of the Northumberland archers saw this, he drew an arrow to his -bow and set upon Montgomery, until the swan feathers of his arrows were -wet with his heart's blood. - -Not one man gave way, but still they stood hewing at each other, while -they were able. - -This battle began in Cheviot, an hour before noon, nor was it half done -at evensong, but they fought on by moonlight though many had scarce the -strength to stand. Of fifteen hundred English archers only fifty-three -remained, and of two thousand Scottish spearmen only fifty-five -remained, all the rest being slain in Cheviot. - -With Lord Percy were slain, Sir John of Agerstone, Sir Roger the gentle -Hartly, Sir William the bold Heron, Sir George the worthy Lovel, a -renowned knight, and Sir Ralph the rich Rugby. Woe was it that -Witherington was slain, for when both his legs were hewn in two he -kneeled and fought on his knees. - -With the brave Douglas were slain Sir Hugh Montgomery, and worthy Sir -Davy Liddle, that was his sister's son; Sir Charles, a Murray who -refused to flee, and Sir Hugh Maxwell. On the morrow they made biers of -birch and grey hazel, and many widows bore weeping from the field the -bodies of their dead husbands. Well may Teviotdale and Northumberland -wail and moan for two such great captains. - -Word came to James the Scottish king at Edinburgh, that the brave -Douglas, Lieutenant of the Marches, lay slain in Cheviot, and he wept -and wrung his hands, and said, "Alas! Woe is me; there will never be -such another captain in Scotland." - -Word came also to London, to Harry the Fourth, that Lord Percy, -Lieutenant of the Marches, lay slain in Cheviot. "God have mercy on his -soul," said King Harry; "I have a hundred captains in England as good as -he, yet I wager my life that his death shall be well avenged"; and this -vow he kept, at the Battle of Homildon Hill, where he beat down six and -thirty Scottish knights on one day. - -But so real to the Borderers was their grief over their dead that the -ballad ends with a quaint but heartfelt appeal to the Prince of Peace:-- - - "Jesus Christ our ills abate, - And to His bliss us bring! - Thus was the hunting of the Cheviot; - God send us all good ending!" - - - - - *Chapter XII* - - *The Douglas Clan* - - -The Douglas clan was at one time the strongest of all the great Scotch -families on the Border; they were wild and proud and recklessly brave, -and no account of the Borders would be complete without the broad -details of their tragic history. - -The first to raise the fame of the family to the highest place in honour -was the brave Sir James Douglas, the friend of Bruce, and, after Bruce -himself, the greatest hero among the Scots of that stormy period. He -was a powerful, black-haired man with a dark complexion, and was called -by the English "The Black Douglas." So great was the terror of his name -that English mothers on the Border, when their children were naughty, -would tell them that the Black Douglas would get them, or if they were -fretful they would comfort them with the assurance-- - - "Hush ye, hush ye, little pet ye, - Hush ye, hush ye, do not fret ye, - The Black Douglas shall not get ye." - - -Sir Walter Scott relates how, when the garrison of Roxburgh Castle were -making merry at Shrovetide, the castle was surprised by the Douglas, who -mounted to the ramparts where a woman was crooning the refrain to her -babe. "You are not so sure of that," he said, laying his hand upon her -shoulder. It is pleasant to read that on this occasion the Black -Douglas did not turn out so black as he was painted, and beyond her -fright the woman came to no harm at the hands of Sir James and his -followers. - -At one time the English had seized the Douglas castle in Lanarkshire, -and Sir James and his men disguised themselves and came to church on -Palm Sunday, when the English soldiers were worshipping there. Suddenly -in the midst of the service Douglas dropped his cloak and drew his sword -and shouted: "A Douglas! a Douglas!" - -The English soldiers were taken by surprise, and were killed before they -could recover themselves. This deed brought Douglas great fame, but -after all it was hardly a fair fight. - -In 1327, when Edward III. was only fifteen years old, Douglas led a raid -into Northumberland and Durham which did the English much damage. -Edward came after them with an English army, and the Scots, being -outnumbered, were compelled to dodge up and down in order to avoid a -pitched battle. But in one bold night attack, Douglas and five hundred -of the Scots penetrated to the king's tent, and almost succeeded in -taking him prisoner. Failing in this, they returned unharmed to their -own country, and shortly afterwards, at the Treaty of Northampton in -1328, King Edward III. agreed to acknowledge Robert Bruce as King of -Scotland, and the long war between Scotland and England ended. - -A year later Bruce died, but after a romantic custom of that day he -bequeathed his heart to his gallant friend, Sir James Douglas. Douglas -had this heart enclosed in a silver casket and carried it hung about his -neck. The war with England being over, this restless knight sought -adventures in Spain, fighting against the Saracen followers of Mahomet. -In one fierce battle, he and his men were surrounded by their enemies. -Douglas, probably realising that this was his last fight, took the -casket and flung it into the midst of his foes, crying: "Go first in -fight, as thou wert used to do; Douglas will follow thee or die!" He -then rushed desperately after it, fighting his way on till at last his -dead body fell on this dearly prized relic, which he guarded to the end. -The casket lies buried in the Abbey of Melrose, but Douglas's body was -laid in his own church. - -Of the bold Earl Douglas who fought and died at Otterbourne the tale is -told in our last chapter. We may pass on to another famous Douglas, -this time a heroine, who lived in the reign of James I. of Scotland -(quite a different king from James I. of England). When James was only -twelve years old, he was taken prisoner by Henry IV. of England, and -kept captive till he was thirty. But he was given an education fit for -a king, and in England he met the lady he devotedly loved, Lady Joan -Beaufort, daughter of the Earl of Somerset. He addressed a beautiful -poem to her and married her, and these two always most dearly loved one -another. When at last his long captivity came to an end, he got back to -Scotland to find the kingdom in disorder, and the nobles defying the law -and acting as they pleased. James, a strong and able king, set his -strength against their strength, and gradually got his whole kingdom -into order and ruled with wisdom and justice. - -But in these days it was impossible to be firm without sternness, and -James made enemies. When he was staying at Perth one Christmas-time, -these enemies, led by a bold villain called Sir Robert Graham, secretly -encircled the house where he was staying. The unarmed king only heard -of their presence when they were advancing, fully armed, to his room. -He tore up a plank in the floor, seeking thus to find a hiding-place. -The enemies were almost at the door, and it was necessary to delay their -entrance, for one minute might save his life. All the bars of the door -had been removed beforehand, but a brave heroine, Kate Douglas, thrust -her arm through the staples. The villains were angered to find the door -barred against them, and hurled their weight upon it. - -The Douglas heroine stood there, her pale face set hard, without a cry, -as the crash broke the bone of her brave strong arm, and the would-be -murderers staggered in. But alas! the sacrifice of Kate Douglas availed -nothing except to place her name upon the immortal roll of the heroes of -the ages, for after a brief search the murderers found the king and slew -him. - -The queen, who had loved James with the utmost devotion, found her love -give added fierceness to her hate against his murderers. They were all -tracked down, and she caused them to die with terrible tortures, the -cruellest of which she reserved for Graham. Thus did great King James's -"milk-white dove" revenge the slaying of the husband she loved dearer -than life itself. - -Till this time it had seemed as if the Douglases were devoted to the -good of Scotland. But in those wild, reckless times qualities that were -strong for good could also be strong for evil. - -When James I. of Scotland was murdered, his young son was only six years -old. This meant that for many years there would be no strong king able -to cope with the lawless spirit of the nobles, strongest among whom were -the proud, bold Douglases. - -The lawlessness of the times is well shown by an act of foul treachery -committed by Sir William Crichton, Governor of Edinburgh, and an enemy -of the Douglas family. He invited one of the earls to dinner at the -castle, and while there had him seized and beheaded. It is said that a -bull's head was placed on the dish in front of Douglas, this being a -sign that he was to be killed. The people called this "Douglas's black -dinner," and sang of the wicked deed in sorrowful verse:-- - - "Edinburgh Castle, town and tower - God grant thou sink for sin! - And even for that black dinner - Earl Douglas got therein." - - -But the new King James found, before he was twenty years old, that the -Douglases themselves could act with equal cruelty and lawlessness. - -The king was fond of a brave young soldier named Maclellan, who, having -some quarrel with Earl Douglas, was thrown by him into a dungeon in his -castle. So the king wrote a letter to Douglas, saying he must set -Maclellan free, and sent this letter by Maclellan's uncle, Sir Patrick -Gray. When Douglas saw Gray riding up to his castle, he at once guessed -the errand. So he came out as though he were delighted to see him, and -insisted on his sitting down and having dinner with him, before the -king's letter was opened and discussed. But the treacherous earl had -given secret orders that Maclellan should be beheaded while they were -dining, so that after dinner was over, and the letter was read, he could -say that this had been done before he had seen the king's message. - -Gray dared not show his anger, for fear he too should be killed. He -mounted his swift horse and rode away, but the moment he was outside the -castle walls he shook his mailed fist at Douglas and cried out-- - -"Treacherous earl, disgrace to knighthood, some day you shall pay for -this black, base deed!" - -Douglas mounted his men, and they pursued Gray almost to the gates of -Edinburgh; but he rode for his life, and faster than they. - -When Douglas and the king next met there was a stormy scene. The earl -was so proud and wilful that he would not bend to any of the king's -wishes or heed the king's anger in the least. So King James, mad with -rage, stabbed the reckless earl with his dagger, and Sir Patrick Gray, -seeing this, struck him a death-blow with his axe. - -The king was in Stirling Castle, a powerful fortress at the top of a -steep hill, when the new earl, the younger brother of the murdered man, -rode up with six hundred followers, and burnt and plundered the town -before the king's very eyes, and added to the insult by publicly -declaring that King James II. was a law-breaker. - -For three years the quarrel went on between the king and the Douglases, -but it was then evident that there could be no peace between them. So -at last the king's army attacked the collected forces of the strong -Douglas family at a place on the Borders then called Arkinholm, where -the picturesque little town of Langholm now stands. Here the beautiful -river Esk receives the water of two smaller streams, and so it was a -good place to make a stand for a fight. The battle was long and -desperate; three brothers of the bold black Douglases were there, and -they withstood the king's men till the rivers ran red; but their cause -was hopeless. One was slain in battle; one was taken and executed; one -escaped into England; and the power of the Black Douglases was gone. - -Thus it was that the strongest and most famous family of the Borders was -broken up, because its proud leaders dared to dictate to the king -himself. - - - - - *Chapter XIII* - - *Alnwick Castle and the Percies* - - -The castle of Alnwick stands on a hill on the south bank of the river -Alne; being protected on one side by the river and on another by a deep -gorge, it stands in a strong natural position. There are traces of -earthworks that seem to show that the spot was fortified in the old -British days, but the earliest fact which we know certainly is that -there was a Saxon fortress here, held by a Gilbert Tyson, when William -the Conqueror claimed England. Tyson hastened south to fight on -Harold's side, and was killed at the battle of Hastings. - -The fortress seems to have got into the hands of a Norman knight, Ivo de -Vesci, who married the grand-daughter of Gilbert Tyson. King Malcolm of -Scotland was killed in front of it, in 1093, with three thousand of his -men. De Vesci's son-in-law was probably the knight who rebuilt the -castle in the Norman style, some portions of which still remain. - -In 1174, William the Lion, King of Scotland, who had claimed -Northumberland as his own, attacked the castles of Wark and of Alnwick. -Wark was defended by a gallant knight named Roger de Stuteville. -William's brave men tried in vain to force their way through the -portcullis, but were beaten back. Then William ordered up his -_periere_, a machine made for hurling stones. "This," said the king, -"will soon smash down the gate for us!" With great expectations the -machine was set in motion, but it acted so badly that it threw the -stones on to William's own men, and nearly killed one of his best -knights! William raved in his fury, and swore he would rather have been -captured in fair fight than be made to look so foolish in the eyes of -his enemies. He gave word to burn the castle, but the wind was in the -wrong quarter and blew back the flames. So he had to give up the siege. -Stuteville, like a gallant enemy, told his men not to shout taunts and -jeers at the departing Scots. But instead they blew trumpets and horns, -and sang songs, and called out a very loud and hearty "Good-bye." - -Shortly afterwards, William came before Alnwick, and it was then De -Vesci's turn. It was Saturday morning on a hot July day, and the -Scottish king's knights flatteringly told him that the English were -bound to give way to him, and Northumberland would be his. The king was -dining in front of the castle, with no helmet on, when suddenly a part -of the English army made a surprise attack. The bold king leapt on to -his grey charger, and unhorsed the first knight he met. So quick and -brave were the Scots that they had almost defeated the English when an -English foot-soldier stabbed the king's horse with his lance, and it -fell, bringing William down to the ground and pinning him there. This -turned the course of battle; the Scots were beaten back, and William -taken prisoner. - -In was in 1309 that the great Percy family first obtained possession of -Alnwick and its domain. Henry Percy purchased it from Anthony Bek, -Bishop of Durham, who had somehow obtained power over it, and the brave -De Vesci family disappear. About this date Northumberland was in a -miserable condition; it was the reign of the feeble Edward II., and -Bruce had invaded the four northernmost counties of England, and was -exacting tribute from them. The English were safe only within their -fortresses. - -However, the brave Sir Thomas Gray, who held Norham Castle, did much to -uphold the falling honour of England, and Henry Percy almost rebuilt the -castle of Alnwick, which in his son's time successfully withstood a -siege. But at last peace was restored by the Treaty of Northampton in -1328, by the terms of which the English king renounced all claim to -Scotland. - -The Percy family were of Norman origin, deriving their name from a -Norman village. William de Percy crossed to England just after the -battle of Hastings, and received grants of land in Yorkshire. Agnes de -Percy married Jocelin, Count of Louvain, and their son Henry took his -mother's surname. From that year onward, the the Christian name of -Henry was always given to the eldest son; there were fourteen Henry -Percies! - -Even in these wild times the Percies were distinguished by the boldness -of their spirits. One of the Counts of Louvain, grandfather of the -first Henry Percy, shocked the men of his day by hanging some of his -enemies with the church bell-ropes. It was not the hanging that was -objected to--hanging was common enough; but the use of church-ropes for -the purpose was thought very wicked! - -After they had rebuilt Alnwick Castle and settled down there, the -Percies soon established their power in the North. At the coronation of -Richard II., in 1377, a Henry Percy was Marshal of England, and he was -then made Earl of Northumberland. His son, "Hotspur," was the most -famous of all the Percies. In their time, the battles of Otterbourne -and Homildon Hill were fought. But they rebelled against Henry IV. and -Hotspur was killed at the battle of Shrewsbury (1403), while his father -was slain a few years later at Bramham Moor, his head set up on London -Bridge, and quarters of his body on the gates of Berwick, Newcastle, -Lincoln, and London, to discourage others from following in his -footsteps! - -Henry, son of "Hotspur," was the second earl. He repaired and added to -the castle and was present at the battle of Agincourt. It was not the -habit of the Percies to die in their beds, and this one was killed in -the Wars of the Roses, at the first battle of St Albans, in 1455. - -The fact of their having taken the losing Lancastrian side in these wars -kept the family under a cloud for a number of years. One of them -deserted Richard III. on Bosworth field in 1485; one of them was -beheaded at York in 1572, for taking part in the "Rising of the North"; -one of them was found shot in his bed in 1585, and another died in the -Tower in 1632. So that the family could hardly be said to be quieting -down. - -They sided with Parliament during the Civil War, but later on they -favoured the Restoration. At last there came a time when there were no -male heirs left in this great line, but only a daughter, Elizabeth. She -married the Duke of Somerset, and had thirteen children, the eldest -surviving of whom was created Earl of Northumberland in 1748. But he -died the year after, leaving only a daughter, who had married a very -able baronet, to whom was given the title of Duke of Northumberland in -1766. He very wisely took the surname of Percy, and again restored the -castle of Alnwick, putting the family estates and affairs in good order. -So that the Percies of Alnwick Castle are Dukes of Northumberland to -this day. - - - - - *Chapter XIV* - - *Hexham and Queen Margaret* - - -The town of Hexham stands on the south bank of the Tyne, rising -gradually up the hill and presenting a most picturesque appearance. -About two miles above Hexham the North and the South Tyne meet, and the -combined river is broad and noble, and the hills around Hexham give -strength and beauty to the scene. The commanding appearance and central -position of the priory church adds its note of dignity, and the total -effect of the town is very pleasing to the eye. - -There is no doubt that from very early times there was a town in this -fine natural position. The burial-grounds of primitive races have been -discovered here, with stone and bronze implements. The Romans had a -town here of some importance, although it was four miles south of their -great wall. A Roman tombstone was discovered here, nine feet by three -and a half feet, showing a Roman officer on horseback, overthrowing in -fierce fight a savage and scowling foe. This fine relic is set up in -the church, and is not the only thing to see there. The original church -upon this spot was built in 674, in the reign of King Egfrid of -Northumbria. Wilfrid, the very able and influential Bishop of York, was -the man who presided at the building of it, and there were bishops at -Hexham for a couple of centuries. In 875 the Danes ruthlessly burnt the -town; and nearly one thousand years later, in 1832, there was found -buried in the ground a bronze vessel containing about nine thousand -Saxon coins of the eighth and ninth century, evidently buried to protect -this treasure from the invaders. Those who buried them were probably -slain before they had time to dig them up again. There was a legend of -another treasure hidden between Hexham and Corbridge, and King John came -to Hexham in 1201 to search for it. He returned in 1208 and in 1212, -but found nothing. Time passed, and this tale of hidden treasure ceased -even to be local gossip, but in 1735 by accident it was found. - -The present handsome priory church must have been built about the time -of King John's visits to Hexham. It is a noble building, well worth a -visit. In 1725, when some work was being done in the church, a -wonderful discovery was made. It was found that there was an old Saxon -crypt, a narrow vault with several passages, underneath the church! -This was so carefully hidden that it was evidently intended as a place -of refuge in danger. It was built of Roman stones, several of which -have Roman inscriptions. - -The Scots several times attacked Hexham. Once Sir William Wallace came -there with his army, but he would not let his Scots damage the church, -so that Hexham, on the whole, had a less stormy life than many of the -Border towns, although in 1537, when Henry VIII. caused the monastery to -be suppressed, the prior and five of the leading monks were hanged -before the gates as a gentle reminder that they were to live there no -longer. - -But by far the most stirring event in Hexham's history was the battle -which raged there in 1464. The Wars of the Roses do not form a pleasing -episode in English history. They were pitiless, and treachery was -mingled with bloodshed; desertions and executions were the accompaniment -of every battle. Edward IV. was coldly cruel and unscrupulous, one of -the blackest figures of a black time. But romance centres round Queen -Margaret, the dauntless and resourceful wife of the feeble King Henry -VI., with whom Edward disputed the throne. She it was who, making up for -her husband's weakness, urged ever bravely and hopefully the cause of -her son. Thus she pressed on to the very end, till that son, worthy of -his heroic mother, proudly answered the taunts of his base enemies, even -though in their power, preferring speedy death to any lessening of his -tragic dignity, and dying before the eyes of the successful and exultant -Edward. - -In this fierce drama, Hexham was but an episode. The Lancastrians had -scattered after their heavy defeat at Towton. Margaret in person had -begged a little help of the King of Scotland, a little more of the King -of France. The Borderland was favourable to her, and she gathered her -forces together there, King Henry VI. staying in Alnwick Castle. - -Lord Montague, brother to the powerful but crafty Earl of Warwick, was -warden of the East Marches for Edward, and he hastily collected the -Yorkist forces. He was swift, able, and unscrupulous. He attacked a -small body of Lancastrians on Hedgeley Moor, only ten miles from -Alnwick, and defeated them, killing their leader, Sir Ralph Percy, son -of Hotspur. As this gallant man died he consoled himself by saying, "I -have saved the bird in my bosom," by which poetical phrase he meant that -he had saved his honour by being true to his queen. In May the greater -battle of Hexham was fought. King Henry was there in person, with the -dauntless Queen Margaret and her son, and their brave general, the Duke -of Somerset. They marched out of Hexham to attack Lord Montague; the -battle began by the village of Linnels, on the south side of the Devil's -Water, a stream that runs into the Tyne. The fight was desperate, for -both sides knew that no quarter would be given. It is said by some that -the Scots, having no interest in the war, deserted Margaret; anyway, bit -by bit the Lancastrians were forced back, to the very streets of Hexham -itself, two miles away. In these narrow streets, in the quarter that is -still called Battle Hill, the last desperate fighters on the side of the -Red Rose made their final and unavailing stand. - -At last the remnant fled, and no doubt many a Hexham maid and dame, at -the risk of her own life or limb, hid that day some devoted follower of -Margaret. - -The gallant Duke of Somerset was taken prisoner, and there and then was -brought to the block in the market-place and beheaded. The cruel -Montague had not the true soldier's respect for a brave enemy, whose -blood thus mingled with that of his men. Other nobles were taken as -prisoners to Newcastle, but Edward also was devoid of mercy, and all -perished. - -[Illustration: _The Final Battle in the Streets of Hexham_] - -Till the last moment the queen hoped on. She was not daunted by scenes -of strife and bloodshed. When defeat was an accomplished fact, she and -her young son fled to the Dipton Woods, where they fell into the hands -of rough men, some say a party of Yorkist stragglers. Whilst these men -were eagerly dividing and quarrelling over the queen's jewels, she and -the prince slipped away. Deeper into the dangerous woods they had to go, -for worse than robbers were hunting for them around Hexham. Suddenly an -outlaw stood in their path with drawn sword. Even after that day of -stir and terror Margaret's courage did not fail her. She boldly -declared to the man that she was the Queen of England, and with her was -her only son. Now, if he chose to betray them he could do so; but if he -had that natural nobility that hailed gladly great chances to do great -deeds, now was his time to prove himself a man, and to save the -ill-fated prince and his queen. - -The robber bowed before her as though she were on her throne, and as if -the trees were her army around her. He swore to die a hundred deaths -rather than betray his rightful sovereign and her prince. He honourably -kept his word; and through his safe guidance and steady devotion, both -queen and prince were able to join King Henry in Scotland, to which -place he had safely escaped. - -Thus the bandit of Hexham proved himself to be a truer man than either -Lord Montague, or Warwick, the King-maker, or King Edward IV. of -England. - - - - - *Chapter XV* - - *Fair Helen of Kirkconnell* - - -Very simple, very touching, is the story of fair Helen of Kirkconnell. -This beautiful maiden had two lovers, one rich, one poor. Her friends -favoured the rich one, she loved the poor one. She and her chosen lover -used to meet secretly in the romantic churchyard of Kirkconnell, by the -side of the river Kirtle. Learning this, the rejected lover crept up -one evening, with his carbine, to shoot his luckier rival; Helen saw him -at the moment of firing, and threw herself forward to receive the shot -in her bosom, and so save her lover's life at the cost of her own. - -The ballad describing the grief of her lover is one of the most -beautiful and touching pieces of poetry in existence, and must be given -here entire. - - - *FAIR HELEN* - - I wish I were where Helen lies; - Night and day on me she cries; - O that I were where Helen lies, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee! - - Curst be the heart that thought the thought, - And curst the hand that shot the shot, - When in my arms burd Helen dropt, - And died to succour me. - - O think ye not my heart was sair, - When my love dropt and spak nae mair! - There did she swoon wi' meikle care, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee. - - As I went down the water-side, - None but my foe to be my guide, - None but my foe to be my guide, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee! - - I lighted down my sword to draw, - I hacked him in pieces sma', - I hacked him in pieces sma', - For her sake that died for me. - - O Helen fair beyond compare, - I'll make a garland of thy hair, - Shall bind my heart for evermair, - Until the day I die. - - O that I were where Helen lies, - Night and day on me she cries; - Out of my bed she bids me rise, - Says, "Haste and come to me!" - - O Helen fair! O Helen chaste! - If I were with thee, I were blest, - Where thou lies low, and takes thy rest, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee. - - O that my grave were growing green, - A winding sheet drawn ower my een, - And I in Helen's arms were lying, - On fair Kirkconnell Lee! - - I wish I were where Helen lies! - Night and day on me she cries, - And I am weary of the skies, - For her sake that died for me. - - - - - *Chapter XVI* - - *Johnie of Breadislee* - - -Johnie of Breadislee, outlaw and deer-stealer, was one of the "broken -men," as they were called, the Ishmaels of the Border. Johnie rose up -one May morning, and called for water to wash his hands. He ordered to -be unleashed his good grey dogs, that were bound with iron chains. When -his mother heard that he had called for the dogs, she wrung her hands. -"O Johnie!" she cried, "for my blessing, do not go to the greenwood -to-day. Ye have enough of good wheat bread, enough blood-red wine, -therefore, Johnie, I pray, stir not from home for any venison." But -despite his mother's tears, Johnie busked up his good bent bow, and his -arrows, and went off to Durrisdeer to hunt down the dun deer. As he -came by Merriemass he espied a deer lying beneath a bush of furze. -Johnie let fly an arrow, and the deer leapt as the pitiless shaft found -its mark, and between the water and the brae his good hounds "laid her -pride." So Johnie cut up the venison, giving the liver and lungs to his -faithful hounds, as if they had been earl's sons. With such zest did -they eat and drink that Johnie and the dogs fell asleep, as if they had -been dead. Then as they lay, there came by a silly old man, and, as -soon as he saw the poachers, he ran away to Hislinton, where the Seven -Foresters were. "What news?" they asked. "What news bring ye, ye -grey-headed carle?" "I bring no news," said the grey-headed carle, -"save what my eyes did see. As I came down by Merrimass among the -stunted trees, the bonniest child I ever saw lay asleep among his dogs. -The shirt upon his back was of fine Holland, his doubtlet, over that, -was of Lincoln twine, his buttons were of the good gold, the mouths of -his good grey hounds were dyed with blood." - -Now Johnie, like many another free-hearted outlaw, was a well-liked man. -So the chief forester said, "If this be Johnie of Breadislee we will -draw no nearer." But this was not the spirit of his men. Quoth the -sixth Forester, "If it indeed be he, rather let us slay him." -Cautiously they went through the thicket, and when they saw their man, -asleep and helpless, they shot a flight of arrows. Johnie sprang up, -sore wounded on the knee. The seventh forester cried out, "The next -flight will kill him," but little chance did the outlaw give them for -such an easy victory. He set his back against an oak and propped his -wounded leg upon a stone; with bow or with sword he was a better man by -far than any of his foes. - -In the short, sharp fight that followed, he killed six of the foresters, -some with arrow, and some with steel; and when the seventh turned to -flee, Johnie seized him from behind and threw him on to the ground with -a force that broke three of his ribs. Then he laid him on his steed, -and bade him carry the tidings home. - -[Illustration: _Johnie of Breadislee_] - -But Johnie himself was hurt to death. "Is there no bonnie singing -bird," he cried, "that can fly to my mother's bower and tell her to -fetch Johnie away?" A starling flew to his mother's window sill, and -sang and whistled, and the burden of its tune was ever the same. "Johnie -tarries long." So the men made a litter from rods of the hazel bush and -of the thorn and fetched Johnie away. Then his old mother's tears -flowed fast, and she said, "Ye would not be warned, my son Johnie, to -bide away from the hunting. Oft have I brought to Breadislee the less -or greater gear, but never what grieved my heart so sorely. But woe -betide that silly old grey-headed carle! An ill death shall he die! -The highest tree in Merriemass shall be his reward." - - "Now Johnie's gude bent bow is brake, - And his gude grey dogs are slain, - And his body lies dead in Durrisdeer, - And his hunting it is done." - - - - - *Chapter XVII* - - *Katharine Janfarie* - - -This ballad is evidently the original of Sir Walter Scott's "Lochinvar," -though Sir Walter reversed the names of the two leading male characters. -In "Katharine Janfarie" Lochinvar plays the part of the craven -bridegroom. - - There was a may,[#] and a weel-far'd may, - Lived high up in yon glen; - Her name was Katharine Janfarie, - She was courted by mony men. - -[#] maiden. - - Up there came Lord Lauderdale, - Up frae the Lowland Border, - And he has come to court this may, - A' mounted in good order. - - He told na her father, he told na her mother, - And he told na ane o' her kin, - But he whispered the bonnie lassie hersell, - And has her favour won. - - But out there cam Lord Lochinvar, - Out frae the English Border, - All for to court this bonny may, - Weel mounted, and in order. - - He told her father, he told her mother, - And a' the lave[#] o' her kin; - But he told na the bonny may hersell, - Till on her wedding e'en. - -[#] rest. - - She sent to the Lord o' Lauderdale, - Gin[#] he wad come and see, - And he has sent back word again, - Weel answered he suld[#] be. - -[#] if. -[#] should. - - And he has sent a messenger - Right quickly through the land, - And raised mony an armed man - To be at his command. - - The bride looked out at a high window, - Beneath baith dale and down, - And she was aware of her first true love, - With riders mony a one. - - She scoffed him, and scorned him, - Upon her wedding-day; - And said, "It was the Fairy Court, - To see him in array! - - "O come ye here to fight, young lord, - Or come ye here to play? - Or come ye here to drink good wine, - Upon the wedding-day?" - - "I come na here to fight," he said, - "I come na here to play, - I'll but lead a dance wi' the bonny bride, - And mount, and go my way." - - It is a glass of the blood-red wine - Was filled up them between, - And aye she drank to Lauderdale, - Wha[#] her true love had been. - -[#] who. - - He's taen[#] her by the milk-white hand, - And by the grass-green sleeve; - He's mounted her hie behind himsell, - At her kinsmen speired[#] na leave. - -[#] taken. -[#] asked. - - "Now take your bride, Lord Lochinvar! - Now take her if ye may! - But if you take your bride again, - We'll call it but foul play." - - There were four-and-twenty bonnie boys, - A' clad in the Johnstone grey; - They said they would take the bride again, - By the strong hand, if they may. - - Some o' them were right willing men, - But they were na willing a'; - And four-and-twenty Leader lads - Bid them mount and ride awa'. - - Then whingers flew frae gentles' sides, - And swords flew frae the shea's,[#] - And red and rosy was the blood - Ran down the lily braes. - -[#] sheathes. - - The blood ran down by Caddon bank, - And down by Caddon brae, - And, sighing, said the bonnie bride-- - "O wae's me for foul play." - - My blessing on your heart, sweet thing! - Wae to your wilfu' will! - There's mony a gallant gentleman - Whae's bluid ye have garred[#] to spill. - -[#] caused. - - Now a' the lords of fair England, - And that dwell by the English Border, - Come never here to seek a wife, - For fear of sic[#] disorder. - -[#] such. - - They'll track ye up, and settle ye bye, - Till on your wedding-day; - Then gie ye frogs instead of fish, - And play ye foul foul play. - - - - *LOCHINVAR* - -In Sir Walter Scott's poem, Lochinvar is the hero, and the story has a -happier ending. The song was supposed to have been sung to James IV. by -Lady Heron at Holyrood shortly before the fatal battle of Flodden. - - O young Lochinvar has come out of the west, - Through all the wide border his steel was the best; - And save his good broadsword, he weapons had none, - He rode all unarmed, and he rode all alone, - So faithful in love, and so dauntless in war, - There never was knight like the young Lochinvar. - - He staid not for brake, and he stopped not for stone, - He swam the Eske river where ford there was none, - But ere he alighted at Netherby gate, - The bride had consented, the gallant came late; - For a laggard in love, and a dastard in war, - Was to wed the fair Ellen of brave Lochinvar. - - So boldly he entered the Netherby Hall, - Among bride's men, and kinsmen, and brothers, and all, - Then spoke the bride's father, his hand on his sword - (For the poor craven bridegroom said never a word), - "O come ye in peace here, or come ye in war, - Or to dance at our bridal, young Lord Lochinvar?" - - "I long wooed your daughter, my suit you denied; - Love swells like the Solway, but ebbs like its tide, - And now am I come, with this lost love of mine, - To lead but one measure, drink one cup of wine, - There are maidens in Scotland, more lovely by far, - That would gladly be bride to the young Lochinvar." - - The bride kissed the goblet; the knight took it up, - He quaffed off the wine, and he threw down the cup. - She looked down to blush, and she looked up to sigh, - With a smile on her lips, and a tear in her eye. - He took her soft hand, ere her mother could bar, - "Now tread we a measure!" said young Lochinvar. - - So stately her form, and so lovely her face, - That never a hall such a galliard did grace; - While her brother did fret, and her father did fume, - And the bridgroom stood dangling his bonnet and plume, - And the bride-maidens whispered, "'Twere better by far, - To have matched our fair cousin with young Lochinvar." - - One touch to her hand, and one word in her ear, - When they reached the hall-door, and the charger stood near; - So light to the croupe the fair lady he swung, - So light to the saddle before her he sprung! - "She is won! we have gone over bank, bush, and scaur; - They'll have fleet steeds that follow," quoth young Lochinvar. - - There was mounting 'mong Graemes of the Netherby clan; - Fosters, Fenwicks, and Musgraves, they rode and they ran, - There was racing and chasing, on Cannobie Lee, - But the lost bride of Netherby ne'er did they see. - So daring in love, and so dauntless in war, - Have ye e'er heard of gallant like young Lochinvar? - - - - - *Chapter XVIII* - - *By Lauder Bridge* - - -The Ancient Royal Burgh of Lauder, a quaint little border town with -hardly more than one street, is on the banks of the river Leader, on the -high road between Edinburgh and Kelso. It stands very picturesquely, -among the bold hills and fine woods of Berwickshire, and the valley is -called Lauderdale, extending to where the Leader joins the Tweed, just -below Melrose. Peacefully beautiful is the spot; and yet it was once -the scene of a harsh, grim tragedy. - -It was in the reign of King James III. of Scotland, who offended his -subjects in two particulars. - -First, to get wealth for himself, he mixed brass and lead with his -silver money, and put it into circulation as pure silver; next, he chose -favourites from the common people, and set these above the proud -noblemen of Scotland. - -This latter would not have been so bad a fault if the king had always -chosen wisely; but, as often in such cases, he was led by flatterers -rather than by worthy men. - -In 1482 the king declared war against England, and, as in these warlike -days the nobles were the leaders of the army, this brought the -discontented lords together. - -When the Scottish army reached Lauder in their southward march, the -proud nobles met in Lauder church; all were angry with the king, yet -each was afraid to make the first move. So Lord Gray told them a -mocking fable. - -"Do you remember," said he, "how all the mice got together and agreed -that it would be a splendid thing if a bell were hung round the cat's -neck, so that wherever she went she could be heard; the only difficulty -was to find a mouse to bell the cat!" - -These warlike nobles did not like to be spoken of as if they were mice, -and it roused them to deeper rage. - -Then out spoke Archibald Douglas, Earl of Angus, the head of the younger -branch of the Douglas family. "Trust me, I'll bell the cat!" - -There was a knock at the door; Cochrane, the architect, whom the nobles -said had been a mason, but was now the king's chief favourite, entered, -dressed in black velvet, with a heavy chain of gold round his neck, a -horn of gold tipped with precious stones, and all his attire of the -costliest. Angus caught the chain in his hands and said, "A rope would -suit that neck better!" - -Then the nobles laid violent hands on all the king's low-born favourites -and hanged them by the bridge of Lauder, in front of the king's very -eyes! Cochrane was proud and brave to the last. He said that as the -king had made him an earl he should be hanged with a rope made of silk; -little did the nobles care for his protests, the halter of a horse was -in their opinion good enough for him. - -From this time onward the headstrong Earl of Angus was known by the -nick-name of "Bell-the-Cat." It may be taken for granted that neither -he nor the nobles who supported him would have dared to act so -arrogantly and violently unless they felt quite sure that the king had -not the power to punish them. He returned sullenly to Edinburgh, more -the captive of the nobles than their master. - -A parliament appointed the Duke of Albany lieutenant-general of the -kingdom, but he in turn soon lost favour, for he was suspected of too -great a friendship for Edward IV., King of England, and fled for safety -to France, giving James another chance to govern his kingdom for -himself. - -This weak and unhappy monarch, however, was not destined to have much -peace. Before very long, another quarrel with his nobles led to their -taking up arms with a view of deposing him and placing his son on the -throne. The king and his nobles met in battle near Stirling, but, at -the very beginning of the fight, James was thrown from his horse and -stabbed by a soldier, whose name remained unknown. Thus died this weak -but amiable and unfortunate king. - - - - - *Chapter XIX* - - *The Battle of Flodden Field* - - -One of the most tragic episodes in the History of the Borders was the -battle of Flodden Field, when the flower of the Scottish nobility fell -around their sovereign, James IV., while fighting against the English -under Surrey. - -The causes of the war were many. Henry of England refused to give up -the jewels which had been promised as the dowry of his sister Margaret -on her marriage with James IV. - -The Lord High Admiral of England, Sir Edmund Howard, had attacked and -taken two Scottish ships, and slain their captain, Sir Andrew Barton. -James, who was fond of Barton, demanded redress, but Henry insolently -replied that kings should not quarrel about pirates. - -But the immediate cause was the friendship between France and Scotland. -Henry was preparing for war with France, and James stood by his ally, -declaring that if Henry warred with France, he would lead an army into -England. The Queen of France sent James a turquoise ring, asking him to -carry out his threat to serve her interests. - -James had been warned that his action would have terrible consequences. -A man appeared to him at Linlithgow, clad in a long blue gown, with bare -head, and carrying a pikestaff, and having told the king that his dead -mother had sent him to warn him not to go to war against England, he -disappeared as suddenly as he had come. - -Also at the dead of night a voice had been heard proclaiming aloud at -the market Cross in Edinburgh the names of those who, within forty days, -would be no more. It was thought at the time that these happenings were -instigated by Queen Margaret, but the king still persisted in his -policy, and led his army across the Border, in spite of the warnings of -his counsellors and his queen. - -A fine description of his army is given by Sir Walter Scott, when Lord -Marmion watches the scene from Blackford Hill. - - "Thousand pavilions, white as snow, - Spread all the Borough-moor below, - Upland, and dale, and down:-- - A thousand, did I say? I ween, - Thousands and thousands, there were seen, - That chequer'd all the heath between - The streamlet and the town; - In crossing ranks extending far, - Forming a camp irregular; - Oft giving way, where still there stood - Some relics of the old oak wood, - That darkly huge did intervene, - And tamed the glaring white with green, - In these extended lines there lay, - A martial kingdom's vast array. - - For from Hebudes, dark with rain, - To eastern Lodon's fertile plain, - And from the southern Redswire edge, - To farthest Rosse's rocky ledge, - From west to east, from south to north, - Scotland sent all her warriors forth, - Marmion might hear the mingled hum, - Of myriads up the mountain come; - The horses' tramp, and tingling clank, - Where chiefs reviewed their vassal rank, - And charger's shrilling neigh; - And see the shifting lines advance - Whilst frequent flash'd, from shield and lance, - The sun's reflected ray. - * * * * * - They saw, slow rolling on the plain, - Full many a baggage-cart and wain, - And dire artillery's clumsy car. - By sluggish oxen tugg'd to war; - * * * * * - Nor mark'd they less, where in the air - A thousand streamers flaunted fair, - Various in shape, device, and hue, - Green, sanguine, purple, red, and blue, - Broad, narrow, swallow-tailed, and square, - Scroll, pennon, pensil, bandrol,[#] there - O'er the pavilions flew. - Highest and midmost, was descried - The royal banner floating wide; - The staff, a pine-tree, strong and straight, - Pitch'd deeply in a massive stone, - Which still in memory is shown, - Yet bent beneath the standard's weight. - Whene'er the western breeze unroll'd, - With toil, the huge and cumbrous fold, - And gave to view the dazzling field, - Where, in proud Scotland's royal shield, - The ruddy lion ramp'd in gold." - -[#] Each feudal ensign intimated the rank of those who displayed them. - - -Marmion wondered that with such a glorious army at his back anyone -should try to dissuade James from battle, yet Sir David Lindesay of the -Mount answered him, - - "'twere good - That Kings would think withal, - When peace and wealth their land has bless'd, - 'Tis better to sit still at rest, - Than rise, perchance to fall." - - -Men-at-arms were there, sheathed in plate armour, with battle-axe and -spear, and mounted on Flemish steeds. Young knights and squires -practised their chargers on the plain. Hardy burghers marched on foot, -armed with long pikes and two-handed swords and bright bucklers. - -The yeoman, too, was on foot, dressed in steel-jack quilted well with -iron, and bearing at his back, provisions for forty days. He seemed sad -of cheer, and loth to leave his humble cottage, wondering who would till -the land during his absence. - -There, too, was the Borderer:-- - - "bred to war, - He knew the battle's din afar, - And joy'd to hear it swell. - His peaceful day was slothful ease, - Nor harp nor pipe his ear could please - Like the loud slogan yell." - -for - - "War's the Borderer's game, - Their gain, their glory, their delight, - To sleep the day, maraud the night, - O'er mountain, moss, and moor." - -[Illustration: _Flodden Field_] - -There, too, were the Celts, with savage eyes looking out wildly through -red and sable hair, with sinewy frames and legs bare above the knees, -their chiefs known by the eagle's plumage. They wore the skin of the -red deer, a graceful bonnet, and a plaid hung from the shoulders, and -carried as weapons a broadsword, a dagger, and quivers, bows, and -shafts. - -The Isles-men, too, were there, carrying the ancient Danish battle-axe. -While the army was mustering together, James feasted the chiefs in -Holyrood Palace, for at dawn they were to march southward. - - "Well loved that splendid monarch aye - The banquet and the song, - By day the tourney, and by night - The merry dance, traced fast and light, - The maskers quaint, the pageant bright, - The revel loud and long. - This feast outshone his banquets past; - It was his blithest and his last." - - And hazel was his eagle eye, - And auburn of the darkest dye, - His short curl'd beard and hair. - Light was his footstep in the dance, - And firm his stirrup in the lists; - And oh! he had that merry glance, - That seldom lady's heart resists." - - -Yet no fair lady was as dear to James as his own Queen Margaret, who sat -alone in the tower of Linlithgow weeping for the war against her native -country, and for the danger of her lord. - -On the morrow, James marched south, crossed the Tweed, and encamped on -the banks of the Till, near Twisel Bridge. The Scottish army moved down -the side of the Tweed to Flodden Hill taking Norham Castle, and the -Border towns of Etal, Wark, and Ford. Much time was wasted in these -petty enterprises, time which should have been spent in marching to -Newcastle before the English were prepared to offer resistance. When -the castle of Ford was stormed, Lady Heron, wife of Sir William Heron, -then a prisoner in Scotland, was taken, and this beautiful and artful -woman induced James to idle away his time until all chance was lost of -defeating the enemy. - -The army suffered severely from want of provisions, and many of the -Highlanders and Isles-men returned home, many who had come only for -booty, deserted, and the numbers were reduced to about thirty thousand. - -Meanwhile, the Earl of Surrey had raised twenty-six thousand men, and -received other enforcements as he came north from Durham. He therefore -challenged James to fight, and charged him with violating the treaty of -peace between the two kingdoms. - -The Scottish nobles were unwilling to fight, and said it was impossible -to remain in a country so plundered; also, if fight the king must, he -would fight to much greater advantage in his own country, to whose -welfare the loss of this battle would be fatal; while he had -sufficiently indicated his honour by crossing the Border. - -James would not listen to the counsel of his nobles, though even the -aged Earl of Angus expostulated with him. To this old warrior he -angrily said, "Angus, if you are afraid, you may go home," at which -insult the aged Earl burst into tears. - -The English army crossed the Till by Twisel Bridge and pressed on while -the Scottish army stood idly by, the Scottish nobles in vain entreating -the king to attack the English while they were crossing. - -When the English army had drawn up in order of battle on the left bank -of the river, the Scots, setting fire to their temporary huts, came down -the ridge of Flodden. The clouds of smoke from the burning huts were -driven into the face of the English, so that the Scots had got to within -a quarter of a mile of them before they perceived them. - - "No martial shout, nor minstrel tone, - Announced their march; their tread alone, - At times one warning trumpet blown, - At times a stifled hum, - Told England, from his mountain-throne, - King James did rushing come: - Scarce could they hear or see their foes - Until at weapon-point they close." - - -With clanging blows and arrows that fell like rain, with yelling and -clamour and sword-sway and lance-thrust, the battle continued until the -evening, and when even fell, the Scots still fought in an unbroken ring -round their king. But when darkness came, and Surrey withdrew his men, -the flower of Scotland's chivalry had fallen, and the king lay dead on -the field. - - "Afar, the royal standard flies, - And round it toils and bleeds and dies. - Our Caledonian pride!" - * * * * * - But yet, though thick the shafts as now, - Though charging knights like whirlwinds go, - Though billmen ply the ghastly bow, - Unbroken was the ring. - The stubborn spearmen still made good - Their dark impenetrable wood, - Each stepping where his comrade stood - The instant that he fell. - No thought was there of dastard flight: - Link'd in the serried phalanx tight, - Groom fought like noble, squire like knight, - As fearlessly and well; - Till utter darkness closed her wing - O'er their thin host and wounded King. - Then skilful Surrey's sage commands - Led back from strife his shattered bands; - And from the charge they drew, - As mountain-waves, from wasted lands, - Sweep back to ocean blue. - Then did their loss his foemen know; - Their King, their lords, their mightiest low, - They melted from the field as snow, - When streams are swoln and south winds blow - Dissolves in silent dew. - * * * * * - Still from the sire the son shall hear - Of the stern fight and carnage drear - Of Flodden's fatal field, - Where shiver'd was fair Scotland's spear, - And broken was her shield! - * * * * * - And well in death his trusty brand, - Firm clench'd within his manly hand - Beseem'd the Monarch slain." - - - - - *Chapter XX* - - *After Flodden* - - -So deeply did the tragic result of Flodden touch the hearts of the -Scottish people that no Scot could for many a long day hear it mentioned -without a heart-thrill. - -Many are the songs written about it, the most famous perhaps, being the -"Flowers of the Forest," written two centuries later, though partly -founded upon an older and almost forgotten song. - - - *THE FLOWERS OF THE FOREST* - - I've heard them lilting, at our ewe-milking, - Lasses a' lilting, before dawn o' day; - But now they are moaning on ilka green loaning[#] - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - -[#] a broad grassy lane used as milking-ground. - - At bughts, in the morning, nae blythe lads are scorning;[#] - The lasses are lonely, and dowie, and wae; - Wae daffing,[#] nae gabbing,[#] but sighing and sabbing; - Ilk ane lifts her leglin,[#] and hies her away. - -[#] rallying. -[#] joking. -[#] chatting. -[#] milking-pail. - - In hair'st, at the shearing, nae youths now are jeering, - The bandsters[#] are runkled,[#] and lyart[#] or gray; - At fair, or at preaching, nae wooing, nae fleeching;[#] - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - -[#] sheaf-binders. -[#] wrinkled. -[#] inclining to grey. -[#] coaxing. - - At e'en, in the gloaming, nae younkers are roaming - 'Bout stacks with the lasses at bogle to play; - But ilk maid sits dreary, lamenting her deary-- - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - - Dool and wae for the order, sent our lads to the Border! - The English, for ance, by guile wan the day: - The Flowers of the Forest, that fought aye the foremost, - The prime of our land, are cauld in the clay. - - We'll hear nae mair lilting at the ewe-milking; - Women and bairns are heartless and wae: - Sighing and moaning on ilka green loaning-- - The Flowers of the Forest are a' wede away. - JEAN ELLIOT (1727-1805). - - -The following poem also gives eloquent and touching expression to the -deep gloom which descended upon the Border after the fatal battle, and -tells of the despair felt in almost every Ettrick home:-- - - - *SELKIRK AFTER FLODDEN* - - (A WIDOW'S DIRGE, OCTOBER 1513) - - It's but a month the morn - Sin' a' was peace and plenty; - Oor hairst was halflins shorn, - Eident men and lasses denty. - But noo it's a' distress-- - Never mair a merry meetin '; - For half the bairns are faitherless, - And a' the women greetin'. - O Flodden Field! - - Miles and miles round Selkirk toun, - Where forest flow'rs are fairest, - Ilka lassie's stricken doun, - Wi' the fate that fa's the sairest. - A' the lads they used to meet - By Ettrick braes or Yarrow - Lyin' thrammelt head and feet - In Brankstone's deadly barrow! - O Flodden Field! - - Frae every cleuch and clan - The best o' the braid Border - Rose like a single man - To meet the royal order. - Oor Burgh toun itsel' - Sent its seventy doun the glen; - Ask Fletcher[#] how they fell, - Bravely fechtin', ane to ten! - O Flodden Field! - -[#] This was the man who brought an English flag back to Selkirk from -Flodden. Four brothers of that name are said to have perished in the -battle. - - Round about their gallant king, - For country and for croun, - Stude the dauntless Border ring, - Till the last was hackit doun. - I blame na what has been-- - They maun fa' that canna flee-- - But oh, to see what I hae seen, - To see what now I see! - O Flodden Field! - - The souters a' fu' croose, - O'er their leather and their lingle, - Wi' their shoon in ilka hoose, - Sat contentit round the ingle. - Noo there's naething left but dool,-- - Never mair their work will cheer them; - In Flodden's bluidy pool - They'll neither wait nor wear them! - O Flodden Field! - - Whar the weavers used to meet, - In ilka bieldy corner, - Noo there's nane in a' the street, - Savin' here and there a mourner, - Walkin' lonely as a wraith, - Or if she meet anither, - Just a word below their braith - O' some slauchtered son or brither! - O Flodden Field! - - There stands the gudeman's loom - That used tae gang sae cheerie, - Untentit noo, and toom, - Makin' a' the hoose sae eerie, - Till the sicht I canna dree; - For the shuttles lyin' dumb - Speak the loudlier to me - O' him that wunna come. - O Flodden Field! - - Sae at nicht I cover't o'er, - Just to haud it frae my een, - But I haena yet the pow'r - To forget what it has been; - And I listen through the hoose - For the chappin o' the lay, - Till the scrapin' o' a moose - Tak's my very braith away. - O Flodden Field! - - Then I turn to sister Jean, - And my airms aboot her twine, - And I kiss her sleepless een, - For her heart's as sair as mine,-- - A heart ance fu' o' fun, - And hands that ne'er were idle, - Wi' a' her cleedin' spun - Against her Jamie's bridal. - O Flodden Field! - - Noo we've naether hands nor hairt-- - In oor grief the wark's forgotten, - Though it's wantit every airt, - And the craps are lyin' rotten. - War's awsome blast's gane bye, - And left a land forlorn; - In daith's dool hairst they lie, - The shearers and the shorn. - O Flodden Field. - - Wi' winter creepin' near us, - When the nichts are drear and lang, - Nane to help us, nane to hear us, - On the weary gate we gang! - Lord o' the quick an' deed, - Sin' oor ain we canna see, - In mercy mak gude speed, - And bring us whar they be, - Far, far, frae Flodden Field! - "J. B. Selkirk" (JAMES B. BROWN). - _By permission of W. Cuthbertson, Esq._ - - -Another lyric, relating to the fatal battle of Flodden, refers to the -gallantry of the Souters, or shoemakers of Selkirk, who, to the number -of eighty, and headed by their town-clerk, joined the army as it entered -England. They distinguished themselves greatly, and few returned. The -"yellow and green" are the liveries of the house of Home, taxed by some -with being the cause of the defeat. - - - *THE SOUTERS OF SELKIRK* - - Up wi' the Souters of Selkirk, - And doun wi' the Earl of Home; - And up wi' a' the braw lads - That sew the single-soled shoon. - - Fye upon yellow and yellow, - And fye upon yellow and green, - But up wi' the true blue and scarlet, - And up wi' the single-soled sheen. - - Up wi' the Souters of Selkirk, - For they are baith trusty and leal; - And up wi' the men o' the Forest, - And doun wi' the Merse to the deil. - - -In Aytoun's "Lays of the Scottish Cavaliers," the following well-known -poem tells how the news of the disaster at Flodden Field was received in -Edinburgh:-- - - - *EDINBURGH AFTER FLODDEN* - - I - - News of battle! news of battle! - Hark! 'tis ringing down the street: - And the archways and the pavement - Bear the clang of hurrying feet. - News of battle! Who hath brought it? - News of triumph! Who should bring - Tidings from our noble army, - Greetings from our gallant King? - All last night we watched the beacons - Blazing on the hills afar, - Each one bearing, as it kindled, - Message of the opened war. - All night long the northern streamers - Shot across the trembling sky: - Fearful lights that never beckon - Save when kings or heroes die. - - - II - - News of battle! Who hath brought it? - All are thronging to the gate; - "Warder--warder! open quickly! - Man--is this a time to wait?" - And the heavy gates are opened; - Then a murmur long and loud, - And a cry of fear and wonder - Bursts from out the bending crowd. - For they see in battered harness - Only one hard-stricken man; - And his weary steed is wounded, - And his cheek is pale and wan. - Spearless hangs a bloody banner - In his weak and drooping hand-- - God! can that be Randolph Murray, - Captain of the city band? - - - III - - Round him crush the people, crying, - "Tell us all--oh, tell us true! - Where are they who went to battle, - Randolph Murray, sworn to you? - Where are they, our brothers--children? - Have they met the English foe? - Why art thou alone, unfollowed? - Is it weal, or is it woe?" - Like a corpse the grisly warrior - Looks from out his helm of steel; - But no word he speaks in answer-- - Only with his armed heel - Chides his weary steed, and onward - Up the city streets they ride; - Fathers, sisters, mothers, children, - Shrieking, praying by his side. - "By the God that made thee, Randolph! - Tell us what mischance hath come." - Then he lifts his riven banner, - And the asker's voice is dumb. - -[Illustration: "_Tell us all--oh, tell us true!_"] - - - IV - - The elders of the city - Have met within their hall-- - The men whom good King James had charged - To watch the tower and wall. - "Your hands are weak with age," he said, - "Your hearts are stout and true; - So bide ye in the maiden town, - While others fight for you. - My trumpet from the Border-side - Shall send a blast so clear, - That all who wait within the gate - That stirring sound may hear. - Or, if it be the will of Heaven - That back I never come, - And if, instead of Scottish shout, - Ye hear the English drum, - Then let the warning bells ring out, - Then gird you to the fray, - Then man the walls like burghers stout, - And fight while fight you may. - 'Twere better that in fiery flame - The roofs should thunder down, - Than that the foot of foreign foe - Should trample in the town!" - - - V - - Then in came Randolph Murray, - His step was slow and weak, - And, as he doffed his dinted helm, - The tears ran down his cheek: - They fell upon his corslet - And on his mailed hand, - As he gazed around him wistfully, - Leaning sorely on his brand. - And none who then beheld him - But straight were smote with fear, - For a bolder and a sterner man - Had never couched a spear. - They knew so sad a messenger - Some ghastly news must bring; - And all of them were fathers, - And their sons were with the King. - - - VI - - And up then rose the Provost-- - A brave old man was he, - Of ancient name, and knightly fame, - And chivalrous degree. - He ruled our city like a Lord - Who brooked no equal here, - And ever for the townsmen's rights - Stood up 'gainst prince and peer. - And he had seen the Scottish host - March from the Borough muir, - With music-storm and clamorous shout, - And all the din that thunders out - When youth's of victory sure. - But yet a dearer thought had he;-- - For, with a father's pride, - He saw his last remaining son - Go forth by Randolph's side, - With casque on head and spur on heel, - All keen to do and dare; - And proudly did that gallant boy - Dunedin's banner bear. - Oh! woeful now was the old man's look, - And he spake right heavily-- - "Now, Randolph, tell thy tidings, - However sharp they be! - Woe is written on thy visage, - Death is looking from thy face; - Speak! though it be of overthrow-- - It cannot be disgrace!" - - - VII - - Right bitter was the agony - That wrung that soldier proud; - Thrice did he strive to answer, - And thrice he groaned aloud. - Then he gave the riven banner - To the old man's shaking hand, - Saying--"That is all I bring ye - From the bravest of the land! - Ay! ye may look upon it-- - It was guarded well and long, - By your brothers and your children, - By the valiant and the strong. - One by one they fell around it, - As the archers laid them low, - Grimly dying, still unconquered, - With their faces to the foe. - Ay! ye may well look upon it-- - There is more than honour there, - Else, be sure, I had not brought it - From the field of dark despair. - Never yet was royal banner - Steeped in such a costly dye; - It hath lain upon a bosom - Where no other shroud shall lie. - Sirs! I charge you, keep it holy; - Keep it as a sacred thing, - For the stain ye see upon it - Was the life-blood of your King!" - - - VIII - - Woe and woe and lamentation! - What a piteous cry was there! - Widows, maidens, mothers, children, - Shrieking, sobbing in despair! - Through the streets the death-word rushes, - Spreading terror, sweeping on. - "Jesu Christ! our King has fallen-- - O Great God, King James is gone! - Holy mother Mary, shield us, - Thou who erst did lose thy Son! - O the blackest day for Scotland - That she ever knew before! - O our King--the good, the noble, - Shall we see him never more? - Woe to us, and woe to Scotland! - O our sons, our sons and men! - Surely some have 'scaped the Southron, - Surely some will come again!" - - -Randolph Murray describes how the monarch lies dead on the field with -his nobles round him. - - "All so thick they lay together, - When the stars lit up the sky, - That I knew not who were stricken, - Or who yet remained to die." - - -A hollow knell is rung and the miserere is sung, and all is terror and -disorder until the Provost rouses them. - - "If our King be taken from us, - We are left to guard his son. - * * * * * - Up! and haste ye through the city, - Stir the burghers stout and true! - Gather all our scattered people, - Fling the banner out once more-- - Randolph Murray! do thou bear it, - As it erst was borne before: - Never Scottish heart will leave it, - When they see their monarch's gore!" - - - - - *Chapter XXI* - - *Graeme and Bewick* - - -Good Lord Graeme and Sir Robert Bewick were friends. They met one day -in Carlisle, and went arm in arm to the wine, and, as was too oft the -custom of these days, they stayed and drank till they were both merry. -Good Lord Graeme took up the cup. "Sir Robert, and here's to thee!" he -said, "and here's to our two sons at home, for they like us best in our -own country." - -"O were your son a lad like mine," answered Bewick, boastfully, "and -learnt some books that he could read, they might be two brothers in -arms, and lord it over the Borderside. - - 'But your son's a lad, and he's but bad, - And billie[#] to my son he cannot be.' - -[#] Comrade, or brother-in-arms. - -You sent him to school, and he would not learn; you bought him books, -and he would not read!" - -Lord Graeme called angrily for the reckoning. "My blessing shall he -never earn," said he, "till I see how his arm can defend his head." He -threw down a crown, and went to the stable, took his horse, and rode -home. "Welcome, my old father," said his son, Christie Graeme, "but -where were ye so long from home?" "I have been at Carlisle town, and a -shamed man I am by thee," answered his father with a black look; "I have -been at Carlisle town, where Sir Robert Bewick met me. He says you are -but a bad, wild youth, and can never be billie to his boy. I sent you -to the school, and you would not learn. I bought you books, and you -would not read; therefore you shall never have my blessing till I see -you save your head in fight with young Bewick." "Now God forbid, my old -father, that ever such a thing should be! Billie Bewick was my master, -and I his scholar, in spite of the pains he wasted in teaching me." "O -hold thy tongue, thou foolish lad! If thou dost not soon end this -quarrel, there's my glove, I'll fight with thee myself." - -Then Christie Graeme stooped low. "Father, put on your glove again, the -wind has blown it from your hand." - - "What's that, thou sayst, thou limmer loon? - How darest thou stand to speak to me? - If thou do not end this quarrel soon, - There's my right hand, thou'lt fight with me!" - - -Then went Christie to his chamber, to consider what should happen. -Should he fight with his own father, or with his brother-in-arms, -Bewick? - - "If I should kill my billie dear, - God's blessing I shall never win; - But if I strike at my auld father, - I think 'twould be a mortal sin. - But if I kill my billie dear - It is God's will, so let it be; - But I make a vow, ere I go from home, - That I shall be the next man's die." - -He put a good old jack or quilted doublet on his back, and on his head -he put a cap of steel, and well did he become them with his sword and -buckler by his side! - -Now young Bewick had taken his father's sword under his arm, and walked -about his father's close. He looked between himself and the sun, to see -some approaching object, and was aware of a man in bright armour, riding -that way most hastily. - - "O who is yon, that comes this way, - So hastily that hither came? - I think it be my brother dear, - I think it be young Christie Graeme. - Your welcome here, my billie dear, - And thrice you're welcome unto me." - - -Christie explained that he was come to fight, that his father had been -to Carlisle, and had met with the elder Bewick. He retailed what had -passed, "and so I'll never earn my father's blessing, till he sees how -my arm can guard my head in fight against thee." - - "O God forbid, my billie dear, - That ever such a thing should be! - We'll take three men on either side, - And see if we can our fathers agree." - - -Christie shook his head. He knew that it was useless. "O hold thy -tongue, billie Bewick. If thou'rt a man, as I'm sure thou art, come -over the dyke and fight with me." - -"But I have no harness, billie, as I see you have." - -"As little harness as is on your back shall be on mine." - -With that Christie threw off his coat of mail and cap of steel, stuck -his spear into the ground, and tied his horse up to a tree. Bewick -threw off his cloak, and cast aside his psalter book. He laid his hand -upon the dyke, and vaulted over. The two fought for two long hours. -The sweat dropped fast from them both, but not a drop of blood could be -seen to satisfy the requirements of honour. At last Graeme hit Bewick -under the left breast, and he fell to the ground wounded mortally. - - "Rise up, rise up, now, billie dear, - Arise and speak three words to me! - Whether thou's gotten thy deadly wound, - Or if God and good leeching[#] may succour thee?" - -[#] Doctoring. - -Bewick groaned. "Get to horse, billie Graeme, and get thee hence -speedily. Get thee out of this country--that none may know who has done -this." "O have I slain thee, billie Bewick? But I made a vow, ere I -came from home, that I would be the next man to die!" Thereupon he -pitched his sword hilt downwards into a mole-hill, took a run of some -three and twenty feet, and on his own sword's point he fell to the -ground dead. - -Then up came Sir Robert Bewick. "Rise up, my son," he said, "for I -think you have got the victory." - -"O hold your tongue, my father dear. Let me be spared your prideful -talking. You might have drunken your wine in peace, and let me and my -billie be! Go dig a grave, both wide and deep, and a grave to hold us -both; but lay Christie Graeme on the sunny side, for full sure I know -that the victory was to him." - -"Alas," cried old Bewick, "I've lost the liveliest lad that ever was -born unto my name." "Alas," quoth good Lord Graeme, "my loss is the -greater. - - 'I've lost my hopes, I've lost my joy, - I've lost the key, but and the lock; - I durst have ridden the world around, - Had Christie Graeme been at my back!'" - - - - - *Chapter XXII* - - *The Song of the Outlaw Murray* - - - "Word is gone to our noble king, - In Edinburgh where that he lay, - That there was an Outlaw in Ettrick Forest - Counted him nought, nor all his Court so gay." - - -The King mentioned in the ballad is supposed to have been either James -IV. or James V. This places the date somewhere in the early part of the -sixteenth century. - -The Outlaw Murray and his lady kept royal state in Ettrick Forest. Here -he lived with five hundred men, all gaily clad in livery of Lincoln -green. His castle, built of lime and stone, stood fair and pleasantly -in the midst of the Forest, surrounded by pine trees under which -wandered many a hart and hind, many a doe and roe and other wild -creatures. In the forefront of the castle stood two unicorns, with the -picture of a knight and lady with green holly above their brows. - -The King in Edinburgh heard of all this royal state and that the Outlaw -in Ettrick Forest cared nought for the King of Scotland and his court. - -"I make a vow," said the King, "that either I shall be King of Ettrick -Forest, or the Outlaw shall be King of Scotland." - -Then up spoke Lord Hamilton to the noble King, "my sovereign prince, -take counsel of your nobles and of me. I counsel ye to send to the fine -Outlaw and see if he will come and be your man and hold the Forest in -fee from you. If he refuse, we will conquer both him and his lands, -throw his castle down, and make a widow of his gay lady." - -Then the King called to him James Boyd, son of the Earl of Arran, and -when Boyd came and knelt before him, "Welcome, James Boyd," said the -noble King; "you must go for me to Ettrick Forest where bides yonder -Outlaw, ask him of whom he holds his lands, and who is his master, and -desire him to come and be my man, and hold the Forest free from me. I -will give him safe warrant to and from Edinburgh, and if he refuse we -will conquer him and his lands, and throw down his castle, and make a -widow of his gay lady; and hang his merry men pair by pair wherever we -see them." - -James Boyd took leave of the King and went blithely on his way, until he -came to the fair Ettrick Forest, the first view of which he got coming -down Birkendale Brae. He saw the doe and roe, the hart and hind and wild -beasts in plenty, and heard blows ringing boldly, and arrows whizzing -near by him. - -He saw, too, the fair castle, the like of which he had never seen -before, with the two gay unicorns on the forefront, and the picture of -the knight and lady with the green holly above their brow. - -Then he spied the five hundred men, all clad in livery of Lincoln green, -and shooting with their bows on Newark Lee. In the midst of them was a -knight armed from head to foot, mounted on a milk-white steed, with -bended bow, all fine to look upon; whom Boyd knew at once to be the -Outlaw himself. - -"God save thee, brave Outlaw Murray, thy lady, and all thy chivalry!" - -"Marry, thou art welcome, gentleman; thou seemst to be a King's -messenger." - -"The King of Scotland sent me here, good Outlaw, to know of whom you -hold your lands, and who is your master." - -"These lands are _mine_. I know no King in Christendom. I won this -Forest from the English when neither the King nor his knights were there -to see." - -"The King desires that you come to Edinburgh, and hold the Forest then -of him. If you refuse, he will conquer your lands and you, and he has -vowed to throw down your castle, make a widow of your gay lady, and hang -your knights pair by pair wherever he finds them." - -"Ay, by my troth! I should indeed be far behind. Before the King should -get my fair native land, many of his nobles would be cold, and their -ladies right weary." - -Then spoke the lady of the Outlaw, fair of face. "That an Outlaw should -come before the King without my consent makes me fear much that there is -treason. Bid him be good to his lords at home, for my lord shall ne'er -see Edinburgh." - -James Boyd took leave of the bold Outlaw and went back to Edinburgh, and -when he came to the King, knelt lowly on his knee. - -"Welcome, James Boyd," said the noble King, "of whom is Ettrick Forest -held?" - -"Ettrick Forest is the fairest forest that ever man saw. There are doe -and roe and hart and hind and wild beasts in plenty; there's a fine -castle of lime and stone standing there pleasantly, and in the forefront -of the castle two unicorns all fine to see, with a picture of a knight -and a lady, and the green holly above their brows. There the Outlaw -keeps a royal company--five hundred merry men, all gaily clad in Lincoln -green, and the Outlaw and his lady in purple. Surely they live right -royally. He says that the forest is his own, that he won it from the -English, and that as he won it, so will he keep it against all the Kings -in Christendom." - -"Go warn me Perthshire and Angus," cried the King, "go warn Fife up and -down and the three Lothians, and harness my own horse, for I will myself -to Ettrick Forest." - -When the Outlaw heard that the King was coming to his country to conquer -him and his lands: - -"I make a vow," said he. "I make a vow, and that truly, that the King's -coming shall be a dear one." - -Then he called messengers and sent them in haste hither and thither. - -"One of you go to Halliday, Laird of Corehead, my sister's son. Tell -him to come quickly to my aid, for that the King comes to Ettrick -Forest, and we shall all be landless." - -"What news? What news, man, from thy master?" said Halliday. - -"No news thou carest to hear; I come seeking your aid; the King is his -mortal enemy." - -"By my troth, I am sorry for that; if Murray lose fair Ettrick Forest, -the King will take Moffatdale from me. I'll meet him with five hundred -men, and more if need be, and before he gets to Ettrick Forest, we will -all die on Newark Lee." - -Another messenger went from the Outlaw to Andrew Murray of Cockpool, his -dear cousin, to desire him to come and help him with all the power he -could get together. - -"It is hard," said Andrew Murray, "very hard to go against a crowned -King and put my lands in jeopardy; but if I come not by day I shall be -there at night." - -A messenger went also to Sir James Murray of Traquair. - -"What news? What news, man, from your master to me?" said James Murray. - -"What need I tell? Well ye know that the King is his mortal enemy and -that he is coming to Ettrick Forest to make ye all landless men." - -"By my troth," said James Murray, "with yonder Outlaw will I live and -die; the King has long ago given away my lands, so matters can be no -worse for me." - -So the King came on with five thousand men through Caddon Ford. They -saw the dark forest before them and thought it awesome to look upon, and -Lord Hamilton begged that the King should take counsel of his nobles and -should desire the Outlaw to meet him at Permanscore with four of his -company and that the King should go there also accompanied by five -Earls. "If he refuse to do that, we'll conquer both him and his lands; -there shall never a Murray after him hold lands free in Ettrick Forest." - -The Laird of Buckscleuth, a man stalwart and stern, thought it beneath -the state and dignity of a King to go and meet an Outlaw. "The man that -lives in yonder forest, lives by robbery and felony! wherefore, ride on, -my liege; we will follow thee with fire and sword; or if your courtier -lords fall back, our Borderers will make the onset." - -But the King spoke forth, casting a wily glance around. "Thou mayest -hold _thy_ tongue, Sir Walter Scott, nor speak more of robbery and -felony, for if every honest man had his own cattle thy clan would be a -poor one." - -The King then called to him a gentleman, a royal banner-bearer, James -Hoppringle of Torsonse by name, who came and knelt before him. -"Welcome, James Pringle of Torsonse, ye must take a message for me; go -to yonder Outlaw Murray, where he bideth so boldly; bid him meet me at -Permanscore with four of his company, I myself will come to him with -five Earls. If he refuse, bid him look for no favour from me. There -shall never a Murray after him have free land in Ettrick Forest." - -So James Pringle came before the Outlaw. "Welcome James Pringle of -Torsonse! What message bringst thou from the King to me?" - -"He bids ye meet him at Permanscore, with four of your company, and he -will go there himself with no more than five Earls. If you refuse, he -will cast down your bonny castle, make a widow of your gay lady, and -loose on you the bloodhound Borderers to harry you with fire and sword. -Never shall a Murray after you hold free land in Ettrick Forest." - -"It goes hard with me," said the Outlaw; "judge if it go not very hard. -I mind not the losing of myself, but when I think of my offspring after -me, my merry men's lives, my widow's tears, that is the pang that -pinches me. Yonder castle will be right dreary when I am laid in bloody -earth. Auld Halliday, young Halliday, ye two shall go with me, with -Andrew and James Murray." - -When they came before the King they fell on their knees. "Mercy, mercy, -noble King, for His sake who died on the Cross." - -"Such mercy shall ye have; ye shall be hanged on the gallows." - -"May God forbid, and may your mercy be better than that, else, when ye -come to the port of Edinburgh, ye shall be thinly guarded. These lands -of fair Ettrick Forest I won from the Southrons, and as I won them so -will I keep them, against all the Kings in Christendom." - -The nobles round the King thought it a pity that he should die. - -"Grant me mercy, sovereign prince, and extend me favour. If thou wilt -make me Sheriff of Ettrick Forest, and my offspring after me, I will -give thee the keys of my castle, and the blessing of my gay lady." - -"If thou wilt give me thy castle keys and the blessing of thy gay lady, -I'll make thee Sheriff of Ettrick Forest as long as the trees grow -upward, and never shalt thou forfeit it, if thou be not a traitor to the -King." - -"But Prince, what shall become of my men? When I go back they will call -me traitor. I had rather lose both life and land than be rebuked by my -merry-men." - -"I will pardon them all if they amend their lives. Name thy lands where -they lie, and I will render them back to thee." - -"Philiphaugh and Lewinhope are mine by right, Newark, Foulshiells and -Tinnies I won by my bow and arrow. I have farms at Newark Lee and -Hangingshaw which are mine by birth, and I have many farms in the Forest -whose names I do not know." Thereupon he gave the King the key of his -castle, with the blessing of his fair lady, and the King made him -Sheriff of Ettrick Forest for as long as the trees should grow upward, -never to be forfeited while he and his descendants remained faithful to -the King. Much of this land belongs to Murray's heirs, even to this -day. - - "Wha ever heard in, in ony times, - Sicken an outlaw in his degre, - Sic favour got befor a King, - As did the Outlaw Murray of the Foreste free?" - - - - - *Chapter XXIII* - - *Johnie Armstrong* - - - "When Johnie came before the King, - With all his men so brave to see, - The King he moved his bonnet to him; - He knew he was a King as well as he." - - -In 1529 James V. visited the Border country to execute justice on the -wild freebooters. Of these the chief was Johnie Armstrong of Gilnockie, -who levied blackmail for many miles round his residence at the Hollows, -and spread the terror of his name as far as Newcastle. Acting on the -evil counsel of false friends, Johnie presented himself before the King -in all the pomp of Border chivalry. - -According to the old ballad the King wrote with his own hand a loving -letter to Johnie Armstrong, Laird of Gilnockie, bidding him come and -speak with him speedily. Whereupon the Elliots and Armstrongs convened a -meeting, to which they came in gallant company, and decided to ride out -to meet the King and bring him to Gilnockie. - -"Make ready rabbits and capon and venison in plenty," said Johnie, "and -we'll welcome home our royal King to dine at Gilnockie." - -So they ran out their horses on Langholm Down, and broke their spears, -and the ladies, looking from their high windows, cried "God send our men -safe home again." - -When Johnie came before the King with all his brave fellows, the King -took off his bonnet to him as to an equal. - -"My name is Johnie Armstrong," said the freebooter, "your subject, my -liege; let me find grace for my loyal men and me." - -But the King cried, "Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! -Never have I granted a traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a bonnie -gift--four-and-twenty milk-white steeds, newly foaled--I'll give thee -four-and-twenty milk-white steeds that prance and neigh at a spear, and -as much English gold as four of their broad backs are able to bear." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a bonnie -gift--four-and-twenty mills that are working all the year round for -me--four-and-twenty mills that shall go for thee all the year round, and -as much good red wheat as all their happers are able to bear." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a great -gift--four-and-twenty sisters' sons shall fight for thee though all -should flee." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Grant me my life, my King, and I will give thee a brave gift. All -between here and Newcastle town shall pay thee yearly rent." - -"Away with thee, thou traitor, out of my sight! Never have I granted a -traitor's life, nor will I now begin with thee!" - -"Ye lie, calling me traitor; ye lie now, King, although ye be King and -Prince. Well dare I say it, that all my life I have loved naught but -honesty, a fleet horse, a fair woman, and two bonny dogs to kill a deer; -yet had I lived for another hundred years, England should have still -found me meal and malt and plenty of beef and mutton. Never would a -Scot's wife have been able to say that I robbed her of aught. But -surely it is great folly to seek for hot water beneath cold ice. I have -asked grace of a graceless King, but there is none for me and my men. -But had I known before I came how unkind thou wouldst prove to me, I -would have kept the Borderside in spite of thee and thy nobles. How -glad would be England's King if he but knew that I was taken, for once I -slew his sister's son and broke a tree over his breastbone." - -Now Johnie had a girdle round his waist embroidered and spangled with -burning gold, very beautiful to look upon, and from his hat hung down -nine tassels, each worth three hundred pounds. "What wants that knave -that a King should have, but the sword of honour and the crown?" cried -the King. - -"Where did ye get those tassels, Johnie, that shine so bravely above -your brow?" - -"I got them fighting in the field where thou darest not be," replied -Johnie. "And had I now my horse and good harness, and were I riding as -I am used to do, this meeting between us should have been told these -hundred years. God be with thee, my brother Christy, long shalt thou -live Laird of Mangertown on the Border-side ere thou see thy brother -ride by again. God be with _thee_, my son Christy, where thou sitst on -thy nurse's knee; thou'lt ne'er be a better man than thy father, though -thou live a hundred years. Farewell, bonnie Hall of Gilnockie, standing -strong on Eskside; if I had lived but seven more years, I would have -gilded thee round about." - -Then Johnie Armstrong was slain by the King's orders at Carlinrigg with -all his gallant company, and Scotland's heart was sad to see the death -of so many brave men, who had saved their country from the Englishmen. -None were so brave as they, and while Johnie lived on the Border-side no -Englishman durst come near his stronghold. - - - - - *Chapter XXIV* - - *The Lament of the Border Widow* - - -How King James V. of Scotland, in 1529, set forth to strike terror into -the Border freebooters, has been already told in the account of Johnie -Armstrong. A less celebrated moss-trooper, Cockburne of Henderland, was -hanged by the pitiless King over the gate of his own tower. The wife of -Cockburne loved him most dearly, and when she found the King would show -no mercy, fled away to the rocks behind the castle whilst the cruel -sentence was carried out. She sat by a roaring torrent of the -Henderland burn, the noise of which in her ears drowned the savage -shouts of the King's soldiers. The beautiful song which describes the -grief of this loving woman is one of the gems of ancient poetry, and is -here printed entire. - - - *THE LAMENT OF THE BORDER WIDOW* - - My love he built me a bonny bower, - And clad it a' wi' lilye flower, - A brawer bower ye ne'er did see, - Than my true love he built for me. - - There came a man by middle day, - He spied his sport, and went away; - And brought the King that very night, - Who brake my bower, and slew my knight. - - He slew my knight to me sae dear; - He slew my knight, and took his gear; - My servants all for life did flee, - And left me in extremitie. - - I sew'd his sheet, making my moan; - I watch'd the corpse, myself alone; - I watch'd his body, night and day; - No living creature came that way. - - I took his body on my back, - And whiles I gaed, and whiles I sat; - I digg'd a grave, and laid him in, - And happ'd him with the sod sae green. - - But think na ye my heart was sair, - When I laid the moul' on his yellow hair; - O think na ye my heart was wae, - When I turn'd about, away to gae? - - Nae living man I'll love again, - Since that my lovely knight was slain, - Wi' ae lock of his yellow hair, - I'll chain my heart for evermair. - -[Illustration: "_I sew'd his sheet, making my moan; I watch'd the -corpse, myself alone._"] - - - - - *Chapter XXV* - - *The Raid of the Kers* - - -The spirited ballad that describes this raid is quite modern, since it -was written by Hogg, "the Ettrick Shepherd," in 1830. But the rash raid -it describes took place in 1549. The Kers were an important Border -family, the leaders of whom afterwards became Earls of Roxburgh. Sir -Andrew Ker was warden of the Border at the time of the raid, but he -proved that it took place without his consent. The Kers were all -left-handed men, and puzzled their enemies by their left-handed -swordsmanship. Even to-day in some parts of the borders a left-handed -man is called "Ker-handed." - -On a fine September evening Tam Ker rode out, with fifty in his company. -They were armed for a fight and their swords were keen; they rode by the -Maiden Crags and down the Osway burn, going carefully till the daylight -closed, for they were soon in Northumberland. Their bold plan was to get -down the valley of the Coquet even as far as Rothbury where Withrington, -the English warden, kept a magnificent herd of cattle. They had one -castle to pass, that of Biddleston, which had been held by the Selby -family since the reign of Henry III., and still belongs to them to this -day. Biddleston Castle guarded the Allanton or Alwinton ford, where the -Alwin stream enters the Coquet. So they sent the reckless Mark Ker -first, to scout along by the ford, and told him to set up marks on the -cairns to show his progress. Having nothing else to mark with, he tore -the shirt off his back, and left strips of it on the cairns. At the -ford a sentry challenged him, and he answered that he had a message for -Withrington. The sentry demanded his sealed warrant, and the Scot drew -his sword. They fought bravely and long before the Englishman was -killed, and the Scot marvelled that a common soldier should so withstand -him, for he was the best swordsman of his race. On he galloped, on and -on, till he met a comely maiden, and addressing her he tried to imitate -the Northumberland speech, saying that he had lost his way. She told -him at once that she knew he was a Scot, but so also was she. She had -been taken captive, but word had came by an English spy that the Kers -were out upon a raid, and while the English had set a hundred soldiers -to guard their cattle she had slipped away to warn the Scots and to -return with them. Being a gallant after the manner of that day, he -sprang from his horse, kissed her, and invited her to mount his saddle -even if he had to run beside till he could capture another steed. But -an English soldier came up and warned him roughly off the road. Mark -Ker had been brought up to answer rough words with rougher blows; out -leapt his sword, and he cut the rude words short by slashing the man's -head off. Then he disguised the maid in the dead man's clothes, and they -retraced their steps that he might warn his companions. They very soon -came upon them, and all together hid in the lowest dell of the Larbottle -burn while they made their plans. Tam Ker, with twenty of the men, was -to draw off the English, while Mark with thirty others slipped round and -drove off the cattle unperceived. This was done, and till after -midnight, Tam, aided by the darkness and by the difficulties of the wild -locality, held the English at bay. - -Then he heard the bugle signal, and knew that Mark was well on the road -with the beasts, and that he must follow quickly. But Withrington also -guessed what the signal meant, and pursued with all the speed he knew. -Mark had not long crossed the ford at Biddleston before the English were -on him. First Mark and Withrington fought in single combat, hand to -hand, all their men watching eagerly; it was still very dark, but the -clash of sword against sword lit the air with sparks. Withrington was -badly wounded, but Mark was killed. With desperate shouts the Scots fell -upon the English; then up came Tam and his men from behind to help the -Scots, but the Captain of Biddleston had also been awakened, and -galloped down with his men to aid the English. Tam smote his head off -with his sword, but the horse galloped on with his headless body right -into the ranks of the Scots. They thought it must be a demon and began -to scatter in full flight to the Border. Tam was slain, trying to -follow them, and his men, seeing that they had work enough to gallop for -their lives, slew the cattle they could no longer hope to steal. On and -on the hard-pressed remnant spurred their weary horses. It was daylight -now, and the English along the road shot arrows at them as they galloped -past. Out of fifty-one hardy, healthy Kers who had started forth in the -raid, only seventeen, weary and wounded, saw their homes again. - -And back in the south country, the comely Scottish maiden lay dead -across the breast of the gallant Mark, their hearts' blood mingling in a -common stream. Small wonder that a Scot should make a ballad of the -story and that Borderers should sing it even to this day. - - - - - *Chapter XXVI* - - *Merrie Carlisle* - - -The city of Carlisle stands in the midst of a beautiful and fertile -district with pleasant but not too steep hills around. In the old days -an easy water-supply was a first essential, and at Carlisle three rivers -meet, the Caldew and the Petterill running here into the broad stream of -the Eden. These three rivers almost enclose the ground upon which the -city is built, so that it is most probable that there was an ancient -British settlement upon so advantageous a site, before the Roman -invasion. Our earliest record, however, goes back no further than Roman -days, and it is certain there was then a Roman city here called -_Luguvallium_ (the trench of the legion). Even to-day, when new -gas-pipes are being laid in the ground, it is by no means rare to dig up -Roman relics. The long Roman name became gradually corrupted into -"Luel," or "Liel," and the Britons added their word "Caer," which means -a city, hence "Caer-luel"--an earlier form of the modern Carlisle. The -Roman city stood, as might be expected, by the great Roman wall, -guarding the spot where the wall crossed the river Eden. And visitors -may see to-day that the centre of Carlisle consists of a market-place -with two main streets leading therefrom, the usual plan in cities of -Roman origin. - -Carlisle was destined to have a stormy history. Draw a line from the -Solway eastward, straight through Carlisle, and it will be seen that -here the mainland of Britain is about at its narrowest, hardly so much -as seventy miles wide, as the crow flies. Note, too, that the wild -hills of the Pennines and the Cheviots fill in most of this narrow -district, and that the mainland of Scotland strikes sharply off to the -west. It is plain from these facts that Carlisle commands the main road -between Scotland and England, and they provide the reason why at the -present day seven different railways, most of them important ones, run -their trains into Carlisle station. The very same reason was responsible -for the fact that in the good old times no English town was more often -burnt down by enemies than "Merrie Carlisle." - -Even in Roman days, during the reign of Nero, Carlisle was burnt down at -least once by the wild Picts, who were brave enough to venture against -the well-armed troops of Rome. After the Romans left Britain this town -was one of the strongholds of King Arthur; to be sure, nothing very -definite is known about this romantic king, but the old ballads tell us -that he was victorious over Gauls, Dacians, Spaniards, and Romans. This -sounds very unlikely to those who do not realise that when Rome called -home her best men for her own defence she may have left behind many -rough soldiers, of various nations, to guard the wall. Although we know -nothing about King Arthur save what is vague and legendary, we do know -that the Roman legions were recruited from all the provinces of the -empire. Cumberland had many connexions with King Arthur; within twenty -miles of Carlisle, near Penrith, is a big round hill called "King -Arthur's Table"; while nearer still, on the Penrith and Carlisle road, -is shown the spot where stood Tearne-Wadling Lake and Castle, where King -Arthur was bewitched and taken prisoner by the "foul, discourteous -knight," only to be released provided one of his men would consent to -marry the hideous lady with hair like serpents! When at last Sir -Gawaine married this hag for his King's sake, she, of course, changed at -once into a beautiful young woman! This does not sound very convincing, -it is true, but in the old days many tales just as unlikely were told of -famous men. At any rate the ballad begins with the lilting line:-- - - "King Arthur lives in merrie Carleile," - -and all that concerns us at the moment is that perhaps he really did -live there, and did do some very real fighting along the debateable line -of the wall. - -We next learn of Carlisle that King Egfrid of Northumbria rebuilt the -city about the year 675, wherefore we can only suppose that it had -suffered its somewhat usual fate, perhaps at the hands of that savage -Saxon warrior called The Burner. But in any case, Carlisle never -belonged to the Northumbrians for any considerable space of time, but -was the capital of the Celtic or Welsh kingdom of Cumbria, from which -the present name of Cumberland is derived. - -In 875 the Danes had a turn at pillaging and harrying Carlisle, which -was again in sorry plight. Both Cumbria and Northumbria were faring -very badly in the struggle between the various kingdoms which then -divided up Britain, and for a while it looked as if the energetic kings -of the Scots would annex both these northern dominions. But the coming -of the strong-handed Normans altered all this; and by far the most -noteworthy event in the history of Carlisle was the fact that during -1092 and 1093 William Rufus seized Cumberland, and for the first time -added it definitely to England. - -Recognising at once the strength and value of Carlisle, Rufus caused a -strong Norman castle to be built where the old Roman fort used to stand. -To-day, despite the many rough adventures which have befallen this -northern city, there yet remain portions of William Rufus's castle, side -by side with fragments of the old Roman walls. Many of the modern -buildings put up in King George's day are crumbling, but the old Norman -and Roman remains are firm as a rock! - -The castle was strengthened by King Henry I., but this did not prevent -its seizure in 1135 by King David of Scotland, who added to it in turn. -The Scots held the keep till 1157, when it was retaken by Henry II., but -a few years later, in 1173, William the Lion, King of Scotland, besieged -it, and for the next fifty years it changed hands several times, -according to the fortunes of war. It is significant that a main street -in the northern part of Carlisle is called "Scotch Street," while -another in the southern part is called "English Street!" - -Edward I. held a parliament here after defeating Wallace at Falkirk; and -it was from Carlisle that this English King conducted his later -operations against Scotland. It is a pathetic picture, that of this -stern warrior in his old age, on his last march, trying to carry out his -pet scheme of uniting the entire island under one rule. He was so ill -that he had to be carried in a litter as far as Carlisle. Finding -himself again so near the border, he felt the old fire glow within him, -and sprang upon his horse--but at Burgh-on-Sands, on the shore of the -Solway, whence he could view the goal of his ambition, the brave King -died. - -During the next thirty years Carlisle was frequently attacked by the -Scots, but they were usually defeated. In 1337, however, they partly, -and in 1345 almost entirely burnt it down. Again in 1380 they burnt -part of what had been rebuilt! Had there been fire insurance in these -wild days, the premiums in Carlisle would have been heavy! - -After the Wars of the Roses, the city seemed to settle down somewhat, -and was chiefly known on the Border as the place where Scottish -freebooters were hanged if caught. In one of the Border villages there -is a famous churchyard where of old only the graves of women and -children were to be seen. The explanation was given to a passing -traveller by an old woman, who said that the men were all buried "in -merrie Carlisle," meaning, that is, that they had all been hanged there! - -In 1537 there was a rising in England known as the "Pilgrimage of -Grace," in opposition to the savage policy of Henry's minister, Thomas -Cromwell, and no less than eighty thousand insurgents are said to have -attacked Carlisle; but after much fighting the rebels were defeated and -seventy-four of their leaders were executed on the city walls. - -When Mary Queen of Scots was imprisoned in Carlisle in 1568 it was -vainly besieged by a force that sought to rescue her; but less than -thirty years afterwards, in 1596, by a bold stroke of daring, Lord Scott -of Buccleuch succeeded in surprising the castle and in liberating the -well-known freebooter, "Kinmont Willie." - -When King James united England and Scotland, the troubles of Carlisle -might have been thought to be over. But in the civil war between King -and Parliament it was again a storm centre, and was held alternately by -each of the parties. - -The last warlike operations against this much-besieged city were -undertaken in 1745, when it was first taken by Prince Charlie, who made -a triumphal entry without any serious fighting, and afterwards retaken -almost as easily by the cruel Duke of Cumberland, whose entry into the -place was followed, as usual, by a series of executions. - -Among those who suffered was Sir A. Primrose, a gallant ancestor of the -present Lord Rosebery. The victims were executed, with the cruelties of -the old law against treason, on the celebrated Gallows Hill, at Harraby, -and were buried in nameless graves in the Kirkyard of St Cuthbert's. -Passing down the Botchergate (the London Road), past the site of the old -Roman cemetery, the wayfarer may see Gallows Hill rise where a deep cut -has been made to avoid a steep rise in the road. It was just outside the -boundary of old Carlisle, and executions were witnessed from the walls, -by men and women alike. Climb the hill--it is worth while. The little -river Petteril sparkles at our feet; the view, fresh and green, -stretches away nobly to the Pennines and the Border Hills. Keep a warm -thought in your heart for all the gallant fellows who met death bravely -in this place. - -No history of Carlisle could omit to mention the Cathedral. English -cathedrals are shaped like a cross lying on the ground; the long stem of -the cross is the _nave_ of the cathedral; the two arms are the -_transepts_; and the upper end that continues the main stem is the -_choir_. Where choir, nave and transepts meet, the _tower_ rises. But -unlike every other English cathedral, that of Carlisle has height and -width, but is too short in length, two-thirds of the nave having been -hurled down by the Scots! - -Every cathedral has its history written in its stones, for those who -know how to read it. That of Carlisle shows a stormy history, stormier -than any other. It is not a peaceful building carried out very much in -one style and undisturbed. It is a building full of signs of -disturbance, the builders of which were interrupted in their plans by -war and frequently had their building seriously damaged by their -enemies. It is a mixture of styles, a mass of re-buildings and -afterthoughts, but for that very reason it is a fitting symbol of the -much-harassed city. With all its signs of storm and stress it has much -beauty, and possesses the finest window in all England, one of the -finest in the world. Just outside the Cathedral is a noble stretch of -the old West Wall of the city, which gives a vivid idea of its strength -in the old days. - -The bishops of Carlisle live at Rose Castle, five miles south of the -Cathedral. This has been their residence for over six hundred years. -No doubt they thought it advisable not to live in the "merrie city"! - -In this castle King Edward I. stayed. It was once partly burnt by -Bruce, and again partly by the Puritans, but this is a comparatively -clean record for such a district! In 1745 Captain Macdonald and his -Scots came down to besiege it, but hearing that the bishop's baby -daughter was about to be christened, the gallant captain would not let -warfare spoil so peaceful a ceremony, and not only withdrew his men, but -also left a white cockade behind him as a sign that the place was not to -be molested. In all this he showed that true courtesy that always marks -the real Highland gentleman. - -Standing to-day in this bustling, breezy, pleasant little city, it is -not easy to realise the wild scenes it has witnessed. The charming -rivers that hem it in show no traces of the bloodshed of the past. Yet -here have contended painted Pict and war-trained Roman; here the most -skilful leaders of the Celts, Saxons, and Danes have led their brave and -sturdy men to battle; here Norman knight has fought with hardy Scot, and -fierce Border factions have wrangled and sought speedy justice; Puritan -has fought Cavalier, and Jacobite has faced Hanoverian; kings, generals, -and warriors of many centuries have found a fitting meeting-place before -or behind the walls of Carlisle. - -An open, airy, quaint city. There is not very much that is old in it, -for the old was not allowed to stand long enough! But on the top of its -principal hill the tall truncated Cathedral presents a picturesque -figure, and if we stand there or by the castle the eye commands fine, -ancient walls and very delightful distances. It is a place of lingering -memories, and if these are chiefly of strife and bloodshed we do not -forget that to the Border folk the city was "Merrie Carlisle." - - - - - *Chapter XXVII* - - *Kinmont Willie* - - - "O have ye not heard of the false Sakelde, - O have ye not heard of the keen Lord Scroope, - How they have taken bold Kinmont Willie - On Haribee to hang him oop?" - - -The story of this famous freebooter, William Armstrong of Kinmonth, -belongs to the time of Queen Elizabeth, when Lord Scroope was Warden of -the Western Marches, and Mr Sakelde of Corby Castle was his Deputy. - -Kinmont Willie was a descendant of the famous Johnie Armstrong of -Gilnockie, and his capture was a violation of the existing truce between -Scroope and Buccleuch, the Keeper of Liddesdale. Elizabeth was -indignant at Buccleuch's action in rescuing Willie, and as the Scots at -that time were very anxious not to offend her, Buccleuch was sent to -England and came before the Queen, who asked him how he dared to -undertake such an adventure. "What is it," answered he, "that a man -dare not do?" - -"With ten thousand such men," said Elizabeth, turning to a -lord-in-waiting, "our brother of Scotland might shake the firmest throne -of Europe." - -The ballad tells of the capture of Kinmont Willie, and how the false -Sakelde and his men treacherously seized him. - -They bound his legs beneath his horse, and tied his hands behind his -back, and with five men on each side to guard him, brought him over -Liddel ford and through Carlisle sands to Carlisle castle. - -When he arrived there, Willie addressed his captor in these words: - -"My hands are tied, but my tongue is free. Who will avow this deed or -answer for it to bold Buccleuch?" - -"Hold thy tongue, thou rank robber! Never a Scot shall set thee free. -Ye shall take farewell of me before ye cross my castle gate," said -Scroope. - -"Fear ye not that, my lord," answers Willie, "for by the faith of my -body, never did I yet lodge in a hostelry but that I paid my reckoning -before I went." - -Word was sent to Branksome Hall to the Keeper of Liddesdale that Lord -Scroope had captured Kinmont Willie, whereupon the Keeper smote the -table with his hand till the red wine sprang on high, "A curse on my -head," he cried, "if I be not avenged of Lord Scroope. Is my helmet a -widow's cap, or my lance a twig from a willow-tree, or my fist a lady's -lily hand, that an English lord should appraise me so lightly? Have -they taken Kinmont Willie in spite of the truce, and forgotten that the -bold Buccleuch is Keeper on the Scottish side? Have they taken Kinmont -Willie so fearlessly, and forgotten that the bold Buccleuch can back a -steed and wield a weapon? Were there but war between the lands, then -would I slight Carlisle Castle though it were built of marble; I would -set it on fire and drench it with English blood. But since there is -peace and not war, I'll set the Kinmont free yet never harm English lad -or lass!" - -So Buccleuch called forty bold Marchmen, all of his own name and kin -except one, Sir Gilbert Elliot, Laird of Stobs. They came spur on heel -and armour on shoulder, with gloves of green and feathers of blue. Five -and five came first with hunting-horns and bugles; five and five more -came with Buccleuch like Warden's men arrayed for battle; five and five -came like a gang of masons, carrying long high ladders; and five and -five came like broken men, and so they reached Woodhouselee. - -When they had crossed to the English side, the first man they met was -the false Sakelde. - -"Where are ye going, ye keen hunters?" quoth Sakelde. - -"We go to hunt an English stag that has trespassed on Scottish ground." - -"Where are ye going, ye martial men?" - -"We go to catch a rank robber that has broken faith with the bold -Buccleuch." - -"Where are ye going, ye mason lads, with all these long high ladders?" - -"We go to harry a corbie's nest not far from here." - -"Where are ye going, ye broken men?" said false Sakelde. - -But Dickie of Dryhope, leader of the broken men, had never a word of -learning, and answered nothing. - -"Why trespass ye on the English side? Stand! ye raw-footed outlaws!" - -Never a word yet said Dickie, but for answer ran his lance clean through -the body of the false Sakelde. - -On then they went to Carlisle town, crossing the Eden at Staneshaw-bank, -nor lost they either horse or man, though the water was high in flood. - -When they reached Staneshaw-bank the wind was rising, and the Laird -ordered them to leave there their horses for fear they should stamp and -neigh. The wind blew loudly enough then, but when they came beneath the -castle wall there was wind and rain and flying sleet. On they crept on -their knees and held their breath till they placed the ladders against -the wall. Buccleuch himself mounted first, took the watchman by the -throat and flung him down upon the leads. "Thou hadst gone on the other -side," said he, "had there not been peace between our lands." - -[Illustration: _The Escape of Kinmont Willie_] - -"Sound out the trumpets!" quoth he; "let's wake up Lord Scroope!" Then -loud blew the Warden's trumpet to the tune of "O wha dare meddle wi' -me?" - -To work they went speedily, and cut a hole through the lead, gaining -thus the castle hall. - -Those inside thought the castle had been taken by King James and all his -men, yet it was only twenty Scots and ten that had put a thousand in -such a stir. They hammered and banged at the bars until they came to -the inner prison, where lay Kinmont Willie. - -"Do ye sleep or wake, Kinmont Willie, on the morn when ye shall die?" - -"O I sleep lightly and wake often; it's long since sleep was frightened -from me. Give my service to my wife and bairns and all good fellows -that enquire after me." - -Red Rowan, the strongest man in Teviotdale, lifted him up. "Stay now, -Red Rowan, till I take farewell of Lord Scroope. Farewell, farewell, my -good Lord Scroope," he cried. "I will pay ye for my lodging when first -we meet on the Border." - -With shout and cry Red Rowan bore him on his shoulders down the long -ladder, the irons clanking at every stride. - -"Many a time," said Kinmont Willie, "have I ridden a horse both wild and -unruly, but never have my legs bestrode a rougher beast than Red Rowan. -Many a time have I pricked a horse over the furrows, but never since I -backed a steed have I worn such cumbrous spurs." - -Scarcely had they won the Staneshaw-bank when all the bells in Carlisle -were ringing and Lord Scroope was after them with a thousand men on -horse and on foot. But-- - - "Buccleuch has turn'd to Eden water - Even where it flowed frae bank to brim, - And he has plunged in wi' a' his band, - And safely swam them through the stream. - - He turn'd him on the other side, - And at Lord Scroope his glove flung he-- - 'If ye like na my visit to merry England, - In fair Scotland come visit me!' - - All sore astonished stood Lord Scroope, - He stood as still as rock of stane; - He scarcely dared to trew[#] his eyes, - When through the water they had gane. - -[#] Trust - - 'He is either himsell a devil frae hell, - Or else his mother a witch maun be; - I wadna have ridden that wan water, - For a' the gowd[#] in Christentie.'" - -[#] Gold - - - - - *Chapter XXVIII* - - *Dick o' the Cow* - - - "Fair Johnie Armstrong to Willie did say - 'Billie, a-riding we will gae.'" - - -The ballad of this name, a popular one in Liddesdale, relates, like that -of Kinmont Willie, to the time when Lord Scroope was Warden of the West -Marches and Governor of Carlisle. Dick o' the Cow seems to have been his -fool or jester. Dickie, some years after the events described in the -ballad, fell a victim to the vengeance of the Armstrongs. - - -There had been no raids from Liddesdale for a considerable time, and no -riding, and the horses had all grown so fat that they dare scarcely stir -out of the stall. Then fair Johnie Armstrong said to his brother Willie, -"Brother, we will go a-riding. We have long been at feud with England, -and perhaps we shall find some spoil." - -So they rode to Hulton Hall and round about it, but the laird, a wise -man, had left neither goods nor cattle outside to steal, except six -sheep in a meadow. Said Johnie, "I'd rather die in England than take -those six sheep to Liddesdale." - -"But who was that man we last met as we came over the hill?" - -"Oh, he is an innocent fool, and men call him Dick o' the Cow." - -"That fool has three good cows of his own, as good as there are in -Cumberland. Betide me life or death, they shall go to Liddesdale with -me!" - -So they came to the house of the poor fool, broke down his thick wall, -loosed his three cows, and took also three coverlets from his wife's -bed. - -In the morning at daylight when the loss was discovered, there were loud -lamentations. "Hold thy tongue, wife," said Dickie, "and stop thy -crying. I'll bring thee back three cows for each one that thou hast -lost." - -So Dickie went to Lord Scroope. "Hold thy tongue, fool," said Scroope. -"I have no time for jesting." - -"A shame on your jesting, my lord!" said Dickie, "jesting agrees not -with me. Liddesdale was in my house last night and has taken my three -cows. I can no longer dwell in Cumberland as your poor faithful fool, -unless you give me leave to steal in Liddesdale." - -"I give thee leave, fool!" said Scroope; "but thou speakest against me -and my honour unless thou give me thy hand and pledge that thou wilt -steal from none but those who stole from thee." - -"There is my right hand and pledge! May my head hang on Haribee, and -may I never again cross Carlisle sands if I steal from any man who stole -not from me.", - -Dickie joyfully took leave of his lord and master, and went and bought a -bridle and a pair of new spurs which he packed up in the thigh of his -breeches, then he came on as fast as he could to Pudding-burn house, -where were thirty-three Armstrongs. - -"O what has come to me now?" said Dickie, "what great trouble is this? -For here is but one innocent fool against thirty-three Armstrongs?" Yet -he went courteously up to the Hall board. - -"Well may ye be, my good Laird's Jock, but the devil bless all your -company. I'm come to complain of your man, Johnie Armstrong, and of his -brother Willie, that they came to my house last night and took away my -three cows." - -Quoth fair Johnie Armstrong, "We'll hang him." - -"Nay," said Willie, "we'll slay him." - -But up spoke another young Armstrong, "We'll give him a thrashing and -let him go." - -Then up spoke the good Laird's Jock, the best fellow in all the company, -"Sit down a while, Dickie, and we'll give thee a bit of thine own cow's -thigh." - -Dickie's heart was so sore that he could not eat a bit, but he went and -lay down in an old peat-house where he thought to sleep the night, and -all the prayers the poor fool prayed were, "I wish I had amends for my -three good cows." - -Now it was the custom of Pudding-burn house and of the house of -Mangerton, whose laird was chief of the Armstrong clan, that any who -came not to the table at the first summons got no more meat till the -next meal, so some of the lads, hungry and weary, had thrown the key of -the stable above the door-head. Dickie took good notice of that to turn -it to his own account, went into the stable where stood thirty-three -horses and tied thirty of them with St Mary's knot, tight to their -stalls. - -Of the remaining three, Dickie took two, which belonged to Johnie and -Willie Armstrong, and the one belonging to the Laird's Jock he left -loose in the stable. Leaping on one, he took the other along with him, -and rode off as fast as he could. - -When day came, there were great shouts and cries. - -"Who has done this," quoth the good Laird's Jock; "see that ye tell me -the truth." - -"It is Dickie that has been in the stable last night, and has taken the -horses." - -"Ye never would listen to me," said the good Laird's Jock, "though I -told ye true tales. Ye would never stay out of England but would steal -everything, till ye were crooked and blind." - -"Lend me thy bay," said fair Johnie; "he is the only horse loose in the -stable, and I'll either fetch back Dick o' the Cow, or he shall die." - -"Lend thee my bay!" said Jock; "he is worth gold and good money. Dick -o' the Cow has taken two horses; I would not ye make them three." - -Johnie, however, took the Laird's steel jacket on his back, and a -two-handed sword by his side, and a steel cap on his head, and galloped -after Dickie, who was barely three miles from the town when Johnie -overtook him on Cannobie Lee, on the borders of Liddesdale. - -"Abide, abide, thou traitor thief!" cried Armstrong; "the day is come -that thou shalt die!" - -Dickie looked over his left shoulder and said, "Johnie, hast thou no -more in thy company? There is a preacher in our chapel who teaches all -the livelong day, and when day is gone and night has come, there are -only three words I remember--the first and second are Faith and -Conscience--the third is 'Ne'er let a traitor free.' What faith and -conscience was thine, Johnie, when thou tookest away my three cows? And -when thou hadst taken them away, thou wast not satisfied. Thou sentest -thy brother Willie, and took away three coverlets off my wife's bed!" - -Then Johnie let his spear fall low by his side, and thought he would -have killed Dickie, but the powers above were stronger than he, and he -only succeeded in running through the fool's jerkin. Dickie out with -his sword and ran after him, and when he could not get at him with the -blade, he felled him with the butt-end over the eye, felled Johnie -Armstrong, the finest man in the south country. "Gramercy," said -Dickie, "I had but two horses, thou hast made them three!"--and he took -Johnie's steel jacket off his back and his two-handed sword, and his -steel cap. "Farewell, Johnie," said he, "I'll tell my master I met -thee." - -When Johnie wakened out of his swoon, he was a sad man. "Art thou gone, -Dickie?" he said. "Then the shame and woe are left with me. Art thou -gone? Then, Dickie, the devil go in thy company, for if I live to be a -hundred, I'll never again fight with a fool." - -Dickie came home to the good Lord Scroope as fast as he could. "Now, -Dickie, I'll neither eat nor drink till thou art hanged on high." -"Shame speed the liars, my lord," said Dickie, "this was not the promise -ye made me, for I would never have gone to Liddesdale to steal if I had -not got leave from thee." "But why did ye steal the Laird's Jock's -horse? Ye might have lived long in Cumberland before the Laird's Jock -had stolen from thee." - -"Indeed, I knew ye lied, my lord. I won the horse from fair Johnie -Armstrong hand to hand on Cannobie Lee. There is the jacket that was on -his back, and the two-handed sword that hung by his side, and the steel -cap that was on his head. I brought all these tokens to show thee." - -"If that be true that thou tellest me (and I think thou durst not lie) -I'll give thee fifteen pounds for the horse, all told out in the lap of -thy cloak; I'll give thee one of my best milk cows to maintain thy wife -and three children, and they will be as good as any two of thine would -be." - -"Shame speed the liars, my lord!" said Dickie. "Do ye think aye to make -a fool of me? I'll either have twenty pounds for the horse or else I'll -take him to Mortan fair." - -So Scroope gave him twenty pounds for the horse, all in gold and good -money, and one of his best milk cows to maintain his wife and three -children. - -Then Dickie rode as fast as he could through Carlisle town, and the -first man he met was my lord's brother, Ralph Scroope, Bailiff of -Glozenburrie. - -"Well be ye met, Ralph Scroope!" said Dickie. - -"Welcome, my brother's fool!" said Ralph. "Where did ye get Johnie -Armstrong's horse?" - -"Where did I get him? I stole him," said Dickie. - -"Wilt thou sell me the bonny horse?" - -"Ay, if thou count out the money in the lap of my cloak, for never a -penny will I trust thee." - -"I'll give thee ten pounds for the horse and count it into the lap of -thy cloak, and one of my best milk cows to maintain thy wife and three -children." - -"Shame speed the liars, my lord! Do ye think aye to make a fool of me? -I'll either have twenty pounds for the horse, or I'll take him to Mortan -fair." - -So Ralph gave him twenty pounds for the horse, all in gold and good -money, and one of his milk cows to maintain his wife and three children. - -Then Dickie leaped and laughed, and cried, "May the neck of the third -horse be broken if either of the two were better than he!" - -So he came home to his wife and ye may judge how the poor fool had -succeeded. For her three stolen coverlets he gave her two score English -pounds, and two cows as good as her own three. "And here," said he, "is -a white-footed nag that I reckon will carry us both. But if I stay -longer in Cumberland the Armstrongs will hang me." So Dickie took leave -of his lord and went to live at Burgh under Stanmuir. - - - - - *Chapter XXIX* - - *The Lochmaben Harper* - - -The castle of Lochmaben is said to have been the residence of Robert -Bruce while Lord of Allandale. Hence, as a royal fortress, the keeping -of it was always granted to some powerful lord. There is extant a grant -giving to one of these, Robert Lauder, the office of Captain and Keeper -of Lochmaben Castle for seven years, and among his perquisites were -"lands stolen from the King"! - -The inhabitants of four small villages near the castle have each still -to this day a right to a small piece of ground. These people are -descendants of Robert Bruce's retainers, to whom he assigned these -portions of land in reward for faithful service, and there are still to -be found some families (_e.g._ the Richardsons of Lochmaben) who hold -their lands direct from the times of Bruce without a break. - - "O heard ye na o' the silly blind Harper, - How long he lived in Lochmaben town? - And how he wad gang to fair England, - To steal the Lord Warden's Wanton Brown? - - But first he gaed to his gude wyfe, - Wi' a' the haste that he could thole[#] - 'This wark,' quo' he, 'will ne'er gae well - Without a mare that has a foal.' - -[#] Suffer. - - -Quoth his wife, "Thou hast a good grey mare that can jump both high and -low; so set thee on her back and leave the foal at home with me." Away -went the Harper to England as fast as he might, and when he came to -Carlisle gate, who should be there but the Warden himself? - - "'Come into my hall, thou silly blind Harper, - And of thy harping let me hear!' - 'O, by my sooth,' quo' the silly blind Harper, - 'I wad rather hae stabling for my mare." - - The Warden looked o'er his left shoulder, - And said unto his stable groom-- - 'Gae take the silly blind Harper's mare, - And tie her beside my Wanton Brown.'" - - -So the Harper harped and sang, the lordlings danced, and so sweet was -the music that the groom forgot all about the stable door. Still the -Harper harped on till all the nobles were fast asleep, when he quickly -took off his shoes, crept softly down the stair, and hied with light -tread to the stable door, which he opened and entered. He found there -three-and-thirty steeds. He took a colt's halter which he had hidden in -his hose, slipped it over Wanton Brown, tied it to the grey mare's tail, -and turned them both loose at the castle gate. - -Away they went over moor and moss and dale, and the mare never let -Wanton rest a moment, but kept him galloping home to her foal. So swift -of foot was she, and knew her way so well, that she reached Lochmaben a -good three hours before daybreak. - -When she came to the Harper's door, she neighed and snorted. "Rise up," -shouted the Harper's wife, "thou lazy lass, and let in thy master and -his mare." The lass rose up, put on her clothes and looked through the -lock-hole. "By my sooth," cried she, "our mare has got a fine brown -foal!" - -"Hold thy tongue, thou foolish wench, the light is dazzling thine eyes. -I'll wager all I have against a groat that it's bigger than ever our -foal will be." - -Still in merry Carlisle the Harper harped to high and low, and nought -could they do but listen to him until day-dawn. But when it was -daylight they discovered that Wanton Brown was gone and also the poor -blind Harper's mare. - -"Alas! alas!" cried the cunning old Harper, "alas that I came here; in -Scotland I have lost a brown colt foal and in England they have stolen -my good grey mare." - -"Cease thy lamenting, thou silly blind Harper, and go on harping; we'll -pay thee well for the loss of thy colt foal and thou shalt have a far -better mare." So the harper harped and sang, and so sweet were his -harpings that he was paid for the foal he never had lost and three times -over for the gray mare. - - - - - *Chapter XXX* - - *The Rookhope Ride* - - -This Durham border song is supposed to be spoken by a Weardale man, who -begins by denouncing the inhabitants of the Tyne valley, "and all their -companies there about" as false thieves, - - "minded to do mischief - And at their stealing stands not out." - - -It must be confessed that the Tynedale men had an unenviable reputation. -They were such lawless desperadoes, so addicted to rapine, that during -more than two centuries the merchants of Newcastle regularly refused to -take an apprentice born in that district. The date is December 1572. -The rebel Earl of Northumberland, who had taken up arms for Mary Queen -of Scots, and for the old religion, had been betrayed by the Scots and -beheaded at York. Owing to this rebellion there was great confusion in -the northern counties, hence the time was well chosen by the "limmer -thieves" of Tynedale to make a predatory raid on their neighbours. They -gathered together the stoutest men of arms and the best in gear, a -hundred or more in number, and in the forenoon, about eleven o'clock, -they came into a "bye-fell" and stopped for a meal--the last which some -of them would eat. When they had eaten, they chose their captains, -Harry Corbyl, Simon Fell, and Martin Ridley. Then they rode on over the -moss, "with many a brank and whew," saying to one another that they were -men enough, - - "For Weardale-men have a journey ta'en, - They are so far out o'er yon fell, - That some of them's with the two earls, - And others fast in Bernard castell. - - There we shall get gear enough, - For there is nane but women at hame; - The sorrowful fend that they can make. - Is loudly cries as they were slain." - - -They came in at Rookhope Head, which is the top of a rocky valley, about -five miles long, at the end of which Rookhope Burn empties itself into -the river Wear. This valley is as wild and open to-day as it was then. -In some four hours they gathered together about six hundred sheep and -they were engaged in "shifting" the horses, when the hue and cry was -raised by one Rowley, whose horse they tried to take. He was the first -man to see them. The cry spread rapidly down Rookhope burn and through -Weardale, and word came to the bailiff's house at the East-gate. He was -out, but his wife had his horse saddled and sent it to him, together -with his sword, spear, and jacket quilted with iron plates, the sort of -harness worn by the moss-troopers and other light horsemen of the time. -The bailiff had already heard the bad news, and was sorely troubled -thereby. His own brother had been attacked three days before by -marauders, and lay sick with nineteen wounds. Yet the bailiff shrank -not at all, but hied fast after the sheep-stealers, with as many of the -neighbours as he could gather to bear him company. - -The pursuers overtook the thieves in Nuketon Cleugh, and gave them all -the fighting they wanted. Not one of them ever thought to see his wife -again. They bore three banners against the Weardale men, "as if the -world had been all their own." The fray lasted only an hour, but many a -tall man lay weaponless and sore wounded before that hour was done, and -four of the Northumbrian prickers were slain, including Harry Corbyl -whom they had chosen to be their captain. Eleven of them were taken -prisoners. Only one of the Weardale men fell but-- - - "These Weardale-men, they have good hearts, - They are as stiff as any tree; - For, if they'd everyone been slain, - Never a foot back man would flee. - - And such a storm amongst them fell, - As I think you never heard the like; - For he that bears his head on high, - He oft-tymes falls into the dyke. - - And now I do entreat you all, - As many as are present here, - To pray for the singer of this song, - For he sings to make blythe your cheer." - - - - - *Chapter XXXI* - - *Barthram's Dirge* - - -The story of how this ballad came to be preserved to us is a very -interesting one. A Mr Surtees, who was very interested in the old -ballads, used to give work to a poor old Scotswoman to weed in his -garden. Finding that she had learnt ballads in her young days, he -encouraged her to talk about them, and this was amongst those which she -recited to him. She told him that it referred to a young man named -Bertram or Barthrum, who made love to a young lady against the wish of -her brothers. The cruel brothers slew him, but the lady had him buried -at the very spot where he was wont to come to visit her in the days of -their love. Sir Walter Scott thinks that perhaps Barthram was an -Englishman and the lady was Scottish, and that the anger of the lady's -brothers against him was partly on that account. - -It must be remembered that in those stormy days, when Border rivalry was -keen, and all the Border chiefs, on both sides, were men of war-like -mould, intermarriage between the two races was punishable by Border law. -Each side felt equally that such mixed marriages would sooner or later -produce a race that was neither loyal English nor loyal Scotch. A -spirit of aloofness and rivalry was deliberately encouraged, right up to -the time of the union of the two countries under one king. - - - *BARTHRAM'S DIRGE* - - They shot him dead at the Nine-Stone Rig, - Beside the Headless Cross, - And they left him lying in his blood, - Upon the moor and moss. - - * * * * * - - They made a bier of the broken bough, - The sauch and the aspin gray, - And they bore him to the Lady Chapel, - And waked him there all day. - - A lady came to that lonely bower, - And threw her robes aside, - She tore her long yellow hair, - And knelt at Barthram's side. - - She bathed him in the Lady-Well, - His wounds so deep and sair, - And she plaited a garland for his breast, - And a garland for his hair. - - They rowed him in a lily-sheet, - And bare him to his earth, - And the Gray Friars sung the dead man's mass, - As they pass'd the Chapel Garth. - - They buried him at the mirk midnight, - When the dew fell cold and still, - When the aspin gray forgot to play, - And the mist clung to the hill. - - They dug his grave but a bare foot deep, - By the edge of the Ninestone Burn, - And they covered him o'er with the heather-flower, - The moss and the Lady fern. - - A Gray Friar staid upon the grave, - And sang till the morning tide, - And a friar shall sing for Barthram's soul, - While the Headless Cross shall bide.[#] - -[#] Mr Surtees observes, on this passage, that in the return made by the -commissioners, on the dissolution of Newminster Abbey, there is an item -of a Chauntery, for one priest to sing daily _ad crucem lapideam_. -Probably many of these crosses had the like expiatory solemnities for -persons slain there. They certainly did bury, in former days, near the -Ninestone Burn, for Sir Walter Scott found there, lying among the -heather, a small monumental cross, with initials, which he reverently -placed upright. - - - - - *Chapter XXXII* - - *Queen Mary and the Borders* - - -The brief reign of Mary, Queen of Scots, was so crowded with incident -that she was left with little time to visit the disturbed borderland of -her kingdom. None-the-less her few visits to this district were fraught -with important consequences. In 1565, when she married her cousin Lord -Darnley, the head of the Douglas faction and a Roman Catholic, the -Protestant nobles took up arms. In her very honeymoon she headed her -soldiers, pursued the rebels to Dumfries, entered the town with a pistol -in each hand, and laughed heartily at the fun of making her enemies -"skip like rabbits" over the Border. She was only twenty-two years -old--a fearless, dashing, attractive woman, with a clever head, a strong -will, and a wild and lawless disposition. - -In the next year she again visited the Border, but on a very different -errand. Mary had developed an extreme fancy for that bold Border Lord, -the Earl of Bothwell, whose Castle of Hermitage commanded the -picturesque and important valley of the Liddel. The Queen had given him -authority to control the fierce Borderers; and when the earl was riding -out he met the most lawless of them, Jock Elliot, of whom the couplet-- - - "My name is little Jock Elliot - And who dare meddle wi' me?" - -Bothwell fired straight at Elliot with his pistol, wounding him in the -leg. Elliot aimed a mighty blow at Bothwell with his two-handed sword, -giving the earl so sore a wound that he was glad enough to gallop home -while there was yet time to save his life. - -Mary was holding solemn court at Jedburgh when she heard of her -favourite's danger. She straightway took horse and rode to Hermitage, a -hard cross-country ride of twenty miles, through a district infested -with reckless men. When she galloped back to Jedburgh, she was in high -fever and nearly died. Later on, in the misery of her long -imprisonment, she often said, "Would I had died at Jedburgh!" Years -later, a broken piece of a silver spur was found at Queensmire, on this -difficult and dangerous road, just where Queen Mary's horse was said to -have come to grief. - -Yet another time Queen Mary came to the Border, this time to cross -it--after her imprisonment at Lochleven, her escape, and the disastrous -rout of her followers at Langside. Daring and resourceful as ever, she -fled across the Solway in an open boat; Scotland had failed her, she -sought the protection of England. She landed at Cockermouth, and was -led to Carlisle by Sir R. Lowther, and kept there, in reality a -prisoner, while Elizabeth was musing of the dangers of the position. The -Earls of Northumberland and Westmoreland took up Mary's cause and -attempted to rescue her, but the Warden of Carlisle, Lord Scroope, -defended the town successfully against the two earls, and they were soon -in flight, eastward for their very lives. After this attempt at rescue -Mary was, for greater safety, sent down to Bolton Castle in Yorkshire. - -[Illustration: Queen Mary crossing the Solway] - -Leonard Dacre, a member of the powerful Cumberland family of the Dacres, -seems to have played a treacherous part, first promising the earls his -help, and then betraying them to Elizabeth. He seized Nawarth Castle, -which properly belonged to his young niece, and collected together three -thousand men to the old Border war-cry, "A Red Bull, a Red Bull!" -(probably the nickname of some fierce red-haired Celtic champion). The -defeated earls came to Nawarth for shelter, and Dacre refused to harbour -them. But by this time Elizabeth was convinced of Dacre's treason, and -ordered Lord Hudson, the Governor of Berwick, to arrest him. - -Hudson appears to have marched by rather a round-about way, for Dacre -met him at Geltbridge, on the west of Nawarth. A bridge is always a -good point of vantage for meeting an enemy, especially when the river -runs, as the Gelt does, through a deep and wooded gorge. The enemy has -only a narrow way by which to approach, and no doubt Dacre posted his -archers behind the trees and among the great rocks. The fight was a -desperate one, but Hudson's men prevailed and pursued their foes far up -the hill of Gelt, scuffling fiercely among the forest trees and dyeing a -deeper hue the red sandstone cliffs and quarries. - -All the rebels who could escape fled across the Border to Scotland, -where the Borderers, who were till then their enemies, received them -with that open and fair hospitality which was one of their many great -qualities. Elizabeth demanded that the leading noblemen should be given -up to her; but although the Scottish Regent, Murray, made a pretence of -trying to secure the Earl of Westmoreland, the Scots had too much sense -of honour to allow him to proceed. - -The Earl of Northumberland, was however betrayed to the Scottish Regent -by Hector Armstrong of Harelaw; but this the gallant Borderers held to -be shameful, and Armstrong was a ruined man from that day forth. - -Two years later, this Earl was actually sold to Elizabeth and beheaded -at York. Thus ended this small rebellion, called in history the Rising -of the North, but which is known locally in Cumberland as Dacre's Raid. - -There is a little stream which rushes down a deep and beautiful glade to -join the river Gelt above Geltbridge; this stream is known as -"Hellbeck," and villagers tell us that the reason for this name is that -it was stained with blood for two whole days after some battle that took -place there. This battle is probably the one spoken of here. - -A wicket gate by Geltbridge leads us to the path through Gelt woods. -The noble gorge is deeply cleft through the grand red sandstone rocks. -Below roars and dashes the impetuous river; the path winds, sometimes -high, sometimes low, through wonderful weeds, carpeted with beautiful -mosses, gemmed with delightful flowers. On one of the rocks is an -inscription carved by a Roman soldier, over fifteen hundred years ago. -Follow the river, up, up, till the little Hellbeck is seen trickling -down from the east; cross the little bridge and follow the streamlet on -its opposite bank, along a path so little trod as to be scarcely -visible; wander among ferns along one of the loneliest glens in the -whole of Britain, passing the great railway bridge (_under_ if the -stream be low or _over_ if it be high) till you join the main road -again. There is no spot more beautiful or more peaceful. Yet this is -the Hellbeck where men fought and hacked, and slashed and slew, among -these woods, up and down these steep hillsides. These old trees, when -young, have felt warm blood at their roots; and all because of a young, -wild wilful queen, who fascinated men's hearts then, and the memory of -whom fascinates them still. - - - - - *Chapter XXXIII* - - *The Raid of the Reidswire* - - - "To deal with proud men is but pain, - For either must ye fight or flee, - Or else no answer make again, - But play the beast, and let them be." - - -Reidswire, the name of a place about ten miles from Jedburgh, means the -Red Swire. Swire is an old northern term for the descent of a hill, and -the epithet red may refer to the colour of the heath. - -The affair about which we are to tell took place on the 7th of July -1575, at a meeting held, on a day of truce, by the Wardens of the -Marches, for redressing wrongs and adjusting difficulties which could -not be prevented from arising upon the Border. The Scottish Warden was -Sir John Carmichael, and among his following were the Armstrongs and -Elliots, Douglas of Cavers (a descendant of the Douglas who fell at -Otterbourne), Cranstoun, whose ferocious motto was "Ye shall want ere I -want," Gladstain, "good at need," and the ancient head of the -Rutherfoords, called in tradition the Cock of Hunthill, "with his nine -sons him about." The English Warden was the haughty Sir John Forster, -and he had full fifteen hundred men with him, chiefly Northumbrians, -Tynedale, and Reedsdale men, who looked with scorn upon the much smaller -array of their hereditary foes. - -The meeting, however, began meekly enough, with merriment and jests. -Such Border meetings of truce, though they might wind up in blood, as -was to happen now, always began as occasions of marketing and revelry. -Both parties came fully armed to such a tryst, yet intermixed in mutual -sports and familiar intercourse, - - "Some gaed to drink, and some stood still, - And some to cards and dice them sped." - - -The Scots planted their pavilions or tents and feared no ill, even when -they saw five hundred Fenwicks (a powerful Northumbrian clan) "marching -in a flock." The clerk began to call the rolls, and to deal with one -complaint after another for the loss of cows or ewes or other property. -In the course of the proceedings an accusation was raised against an -English freebooter named Farnstein, at the instance of a Scotch -complainant. A "true bill" was found against the man, which means that -he ought to be handed over to justice. But the English Warden alleged -that he had fled, and could not be found. Carmichael, considering this -as a pretext to avoid making compensation for the felony, bade the -Northumbrians speak out plainly, and "cloke no cause for ill nor good." -Upon this Sir John Forster, a proud and insolent man, "began to reckon -kin and blood," by which picturesque phrase the ballad probably means -that he swiftly added up his forces. Then he drew himself up, backed by -his Dalesmen, all fingering their bows, and with insulting expressions -against Carmichael's kin he bade him "match with his equals." The men -of Tynedale, who only wanted a pretext for a quarrel, drew their bows -and let off a flight of arrows among the Scots. The more moderate men on -both sides at first tried to quell the tumult, but in vain. The fight -was bound to come. - - "Then there was naught but bow and spear, - And every man pulled out a brand." - - -The English showed their usual dexterity with the bow. The Scots, for -some reason, never took to this weapon; they had fire-arms, pistolets, -and the like. The terrible cloth-yard arrows "from tackles flew," and -the old proverb bade fair to justify itself, that every English archer -carried twenty-four Scots under his belt--an allusion to his bundle of -shafts. Success seemed certain for the English side; some of the -foremost men among the Scots fell, and even Carmichael was thrown to the -ground and was within an ace of being made a prisoner. The air -resounded with the rallying cries of the English, the names of their -captains, "A Shaftoe! A Shaftoe!" "A Fenwick! A Fenwick!" The Scots -had little harness among them, only a few had the jack which served them -as a defence for the body. Nevertheless, they laid about them sturdily, -with "dints full dour," and there was many a cracked crown. Then -suddenly a shout was heard. "Jedburgh's here!" A body of Jedburgh -burgesses appear to have arrived just in the nick of time to add to the -outnumbered force of Scots. They probably wore armour and what were -called "white hats," that is steel caps. Meanwhile, the English, too -confident of easy victory, instead of slaying more Scots and turning the -repulse into a rout, thought only to plunder the unhappy merchants, who, -trusting to the truce which had been proclaimed, had attached themselves -to the meeting. Had it not been for the English greed, the Scots would -have been defeated. As it was, the Tynedale men, throwing themselves on -the merchants' packs, fell into disorder, their adversaries recovered -from their surprise, and the timely arrival of the Jedburgh men turned -the tables. A short, sharp bout ended in the triumph of the Scots and -the Northumbrians fled, "Down ower the brae, like clogged bees." The -Scots took many prisoners, amongst whom were the English Warden, and his -son-in-law, Sir Francis Russell; but the most gallant soldier taken that -day was that courteous knight, Sir Cuthbert Collingwood, to whose family -Admiral Collingwood belonged. Several of those "Fenwicks fierce," who -had turned up five hundred strong at the commencement of the fray, had -the mortification of being carried off in triumph by their enemies. All -these prisoners were sent to the Earl of Morton, Regent of Scotland, who -detained them at Dalkeith for some days, until the bitter feeling -natural after such an affair had died down, at any rate in part, and by -this prudent precaution the Regent is thought to have probably averted a -war between the two kingdoms. He ultimately permitted them to return to -their own country, parting from them with great expressions of regard. -The interest taken in the matter by Queen Elizabeth, and the -representations of her Ambassador at Edinburgh, no doubt had something -to do with this happy issue. - -It will probably occur to the careful reader of this book as somewhat -strange to find the ruling powers of England and Scotland both so set -upon peace; but it must be remembered that at this period in the reign -of Queen Elizabeth the heir-apparent to the English throne was the young -James VI., King of Scotland, who would naturally not wish for any -quarrel with the country which he hoped later on to rule. Elizabeth, on -the other hand, had Mary Queen of Scots as her prisoner, and did not -wish in any further way to strain the already delicate relations between -the two countries. - -The Carmichael mentioned in this ballad, known in full as Sir John -Carmichael of Edrom, Scottish Warden of the Middle Marches, was -afterwards murdered by one of the wild Armstrongs, who is said to have -composed, the night before his execution, the following manly and -pathetic "Good-night." The third and fourth lines show clearly the -disrepute into which this once honoured clan was falling; the seventh -and eighth lines could only have been written by one who, despite his -faults, had the true gallant instincts deep in his blood. - - - ARMSTRONG'S GOOD-NIGHT - - "This night is my departing night, - For here nae langer must I stay; - There's neither friend nor foe o' mine, - But wishes me away. - - What I have done thro' lack of wit, - I never, never can recall; - I hope ye're a' my friends as yet; - Good-night and joy be with you all!" - - - - - *Chapter XXXIV* - - *Jock o' the Side* - - - "He is well kend, John of the Syde, - A greater thief did never ryde." - - -The subject of this ballad bears some resemblance to Kinmont Willie, and -such adventures were not uncommon in those turbulent times. The events -we are to relate originated in a raid ridden by the famous Liddesdale -spearmen (the hardiest of the Scotch moss-troopers) upon English ground. - -"They had better hae staid at home," for the outcome was that one of -their best men, Michael of Winfield, was killed, and Jock o' the Side, -nephew to the Laird of Mangerton, was taken prisoner, and promptly -lodged in Newcastle Jail. When the news reached Jock's mother she -kilted her coats up to her knee, and ran down the water with the tears -falling in torrents from her eyes. She ran to Mangerton House, on the -banks of the Liddel, and told her brother, the good old lord, the bad -news. "Michael is killed, and they have taken my son John." "Never -fear, sister," quoth Mangerton, "I have eighty-three yokes of oxen, my -barns, my byres, my folds are all filled, I'll part with them all ere -Johnie shall die." Then he thought out his plan. "Three men I'll send -to set him free, all harnessed in the best steel; the English loons -shall feel the weight of their broad swords. The Laird's Jock shall be -one, the Laird's Wat two, and Hobbie Noble, thou must be the third. Thy -coat is blue, and since England banished thee thou hast been true to -me." Now this Hobbie was an Englishman, born in Bewcastledale, the -wildest district in Cumberland. Like numerous other English outlaws, he -had made his own country too hot to hold him; his misdeeds had banished -him to Liddesdale, and he was now in high favour with the Laird of -Mangerton. The Laird gave the dauntless three orders to reverse the -shoes of their horses, so that anyone crossing their trail might think -they were proceeding in a contrary direction. He also warned them not -to seem gentlemen, but to look like corn-carriers; not to show their -good armour, nor appear like men of war, but to be arrayed as country -lads, with halter and cart-collar on each mare. So Hobbie mounted his -grey, Jack his lively bay, and Wat his white horse, and they rode for -Tyne water. When they reached the Tyne they lighted down at a ford, and -by the moonlight they cut a tree, with fifteen nogs on each side, to -serve them as a scaling ladder, to climb Newcastle wall with. However, -when they came to Newcastle town and alighted at the wall, their tree -proved three ells too short, and there was nothing for it but to force -the gates. At the gate a proud porter attempted to withstand them. The -Armstrongs wrung his neck, took his life and his keys at once, and cast -his body behind the wall. Soon they reached the jail, and called to the -prisoner, - - "Sleeps thou, wakes thou, Jock o' the Side, - Or art thou weary of thy thrall?" - - -Jock answered dolefully, "Often I wake, nay, sleep seldom comes to -me--but who's this knows my name so well?" Then out and spoke the -Laird's Jock, his cousin and namesake, "Now fear ye not, my billie!" -quoth he; "for here are the Laird's Jock, the Laird's Wat, and Hobbie -Noble the Englishman come to set you free." Jock o' the Side did not -think it possible that they could effect his release. "Now hold thy -tongue, my good cousin," said he. "This cannot be-- - - 'For if all Liddesdale were here the night, - The morn's the day that I must die.' - -They have laid full fifteen stone of Spanish iron on me, I am fast bound -with locks and keys in this dark and dreary dungeon." But the Laird's -Jock replied. "Fear not that; faint heart never won fair lady. Work -thou within, we'll work without, and I'll be sworn we'll set thee free." -They loosed the first strong door without a key, the next chained door -they split to flinders. The Laird's Jock got the prisoner on his back, -irons and all, and brought him down the stairs with no small speed and -joy. Hobbie Noble offered to bear some of his weight, but the Laird's -Jock said that he was lighter than a flea. When they had all gone out -at the gates, the prisoner was set on horseback, and they all joked -wantonly. "O Jock," they cried, "you ride like a winsome lady, with -your feet all on one side." The night was wet, but they did not mind. -They hied them on full merrily until they came to the ford at -Cholerford, above Hexham. There the water was running mountains high. -They asked an old man, "Honest man, tell us in haste, will the water -ride?" "I've lived here thirty years and three," replied he, "and I -never saw the Tyne so big, nor running so like a sea." The Laird's Wat -counselled them to halt. "We need not try it, the day is come we all -must die!" "Poor faint-hearted thief!" cried the Laird's Jock. -"There'll no man die but him that's fated; I'll guide you safely -through; lift the prisoner behind me." With that they took to the water -and managed to swim through. "Here we are all safe," said the Laird's -Jock triumphantly. "Poor faint Wat, what think ye now?" They now saw -twenty men pursuing them, sent from Newcastle, all English lads, stout -and true. But when their leader saw the water he shook his head. "It -won't ride, my lads," said he. Then he cried to the party of Scots: -"Take the prisoner, but leave me my fetters." But the Laird's Jock was -not a Scot for nothing. "I wat weel no," he shouted back, "I'll keep -them, they'll make horse-shoes for my mare--for I am sure she's bought -them right dear from thee." Then they went on their way to Liddesdale, -as fast as they could, and did not rest until they had brought the -rescued prisoner to his own fireside, and made him free of his irons. - - - - - *Chapter XXXV* - - *Hobbie Noble* - - - "Keep ye weel frae the traitor Mains! - For gold and gear he'll sell ye a'." - - -In the ballad of "Jock o' the Side," we have seen Hobbie Noble act a -distinguished part in the deliverance from captivity of Jock, cousin of -the Laird of Mangerton, chief of the Armstrong clan. Now in the -following ballad we shall learn how ungrateful the Armstrongs were for -his faithful services. The Armstrongs were one of those outlawed or -broken clans, whose hand was against every man, and living as they did -in what was called the Debateable Land, on the frontier between -Liddesdale and England, these stark cattle-lifters and arrant thieves -levied tribute from English and Scotch alike. Halbert or Hobbie Noble -was an Englishman, a Cumbrian born and bred, but his misdeeds were so -great, they banished him never to return, and he established himself -among the Armstrongs. From their territory he continued his -depredations upon the English, in resentment of which they at length -offered a bribe to the Armstrongs to decoy him into England under -pretence of inviting him to join them in a foray. - - "At Kershope foot the tryst was set, - Kershope of the lily lee," - -and the name of the chief traitor and leader of the gang was Sim o' the -Mains. Hobbie harnessed himself "both with the iron and with the -steel," buckled spur on his heel and belted brand to his side, leaped -upon his "fringed grey," and rode down the banks of the Liddel. As soon -as he saw the others, "Well be ye met, my comrades five," he cried. -"Now, what is your will with me?" They all answered, with one consent, -"Thou'rt welcome here, brave Noble; wilt thou ride with us into England, -and we will be thy safe warrant? If we get a horse worth a hundred -pounds thou shalt soon be upon its back." But Hobbie said that he dared -not ride into England by day, as he had a feud with the Land-Sergeant -(an officer under the Warden, to whom was entrusted the arrest of -delinquents). - - "But will ye stay till the day gae down, - Until the night come o'er the ground, - And I'll be a guide worth any two - That may in Liddesdale be found? - Though the night be black as pitch and tar, - I'll guide ye o'er yon hill so high; - And bring ye all in safety back, - If ye'll be true and follow me." - - -They let him guide them over moss and moor, over hill and hope, and over -many a down, until they came to the Foulbogshiel. But meanwhile word -was gone to the Land-Sergeant, in Askerton, about seventeen miles from -Carlisle. "The deer that you have hunted so long, is in Bewcastle Waste -this day." The Sergeant understood at once. Quoth he, "Hobbie Noble is -that deer! He carries the style full high. He has often driven our -bloodhounds back. Now go, warn the bows of Hartlie Burn, see they -sharpen their arrows on the wall! Warn Willeva and Speir Edom, take -word to them that they meet me on the Rodric-haugh at break of day. We -will on to Conscouthart-green, for there, I think, we'll get our -quarry." In the meantime Hobbie had alighted and was sleeping in the -Foulbogshiel. He dreamed that his horse was shot beneath him, and he -himself was hard put to it to get away. The cocks crowed, the day -dawned, and if Hobbie had not wakened he would have been taken or slain -in his sleep. - - "Awake, awake, my comrades five! - I trow here makes a full ill day; - Yet the worst cloak o' this company - I hope shall cross the Waste this day," - -Thus cried he to his companions, thinking the gates were clear. But -alas! it was not so. They were beset by the Land-Sergeant's men, cruel -and keen, and while the Englishmen came before, the traitor Sim o' the -Mains came behind. Had Noble been as masterful a champion as Wallace -himself, he could not have won under such untoward circumstances. He -had but a laddie's sword, but he did more than a laddie's deeds, for -that sword would have cleared Conscouthart-green had it not broken over -one of the English heads. So his treacherous companions delivered -Hobbie up to the officers of justice; they bound him with his own -bowstring, but what made his heart feel sorest of all, was that it was -his own five who bound him. They took him on to Carlisle. They asked -him mockingly if he knew the way. He thought much, but said little, -though he knew it as well as they did. As they took him up the Carlisle -streets, the old wives cast their windows wide, every woman whispering -to another, "That's the man loosed Jock o' the Side." The poor fellow -cried out, "Fie on ye, women! why call ye me man? It's no like a man -that I'm used, but like a beaten hound that's been fighting in the -gutter." They had him up through Carlisle town, and set him by a -chimney fire, where they gave him a wheaten loaf to eat, and a can of -beer. "Confess my lord's horse, Hobbie," they said, "and to-morrow in -Carlisle thou shalt not die." "How can I confess them," says the poor -man, "when I never saw them." And he swore a great oath, by the day -that he was born, that he had never had anything of my lord's. He had -but short shrift and they hung him the next morning. - -According to the ballad, his last words were of manly pride:-- - - "Yet wad I rather be ca'd Hobbie Noble, - In Carlisle, where he suffers for his fault, - Than I'd be ca'd the traitor Mains, - That eats and drinks o' meal and malt." - - -Thus died the doughty Noble. It is proper to add, however, that the -Armstrong's chief, Lord Mangerton, with whom Hobbie had been a -favourite, took a severe revenge on the traitors who betrayed him. The -contriver of the scheme, Sim o' the Mains, fled into England to escape -the resentment of his chief, and was there caught by the English, and -himself executed at Carlisle, two months after Hobbie's death in the -same place! Such is, at least, the tradition of Liddesdale. - - - - - *Chapter XXXVI* - - *The Laird o' Logie* - - -In 1592, the Earl of Bothwell, Francis Stuart, failed in an attempt -against King James VI., whom he tried to surprise in the palace of -Falkland. Amongst his adherents, whom he sought about the King's person, -was the hero of this ballad, the Laird of Logie, who was taken prisoner -and laid in Edinburgh chapel in the keeping of Sir John Carmichael, the -hero of the ballad called the "Raid of Reidswire." Carmichael was at -this time captain of the King's Guard, and had the keeping of State -criminals. - - I will sing, if ye will hearken, - If ye will hearken unto me; - The King has ta'en a poor prisoner, - The wanton laird o' young Logie. - - Young Logie's laid in Edinburgh chapel, - Carmichael's the keeper o' the key; - And may Margaret's lamenting sair, - A' for the love of young Logie. - - "Lament, lament na, may Margaret, - And of your weeping let me be; - For ye maun to the King himsell, - To seek the life of young Logie." - - May Margaret has kilted her green cleiding,[#] - And she has curl'd back her yellow hair-- - "If I canna get young Logie's life, - Farewell to Scotland for evermair." - -[#] Clothing. - - When she came before the King, - She kneelit lowly on her knee-- - "O what's the matter, may Margaret? - And what needs a' this courtesie?" - - "A boon, a boon, my noble liege, - A boon, a boon, I beg o' thee! - And the first boon that I come to crave, - Is to grant me the life of young Logie." - -[Illustration: "_A boon, a boon, my noble liege, A boon, a boon, I beg -o' thee!_"] - - "O na, O na, may Margaret, - Forsooth, and so it mauna be; - For a' the gowd o' fair Scotland - Shall not save the life of young Logie." - - But she has stown[#] the King's redding kaim,[#] - Likewise the Queen her wedding knife, - And sent the tokens to Carmichael, - To cause young Logie get his life. - -[#] Stolen. -[#] Dressing comb. - - She sent him a purse of the red gowd, - Another o' the white monie; - She sent him a pistol for each hand, - And bade him shoot when he gat free. - - When he came to the Tolbooth stair, - There he let his volley flee; - It made the King in his chamber start, - E'en in the bed where he might be. - - "Gae out, gae out, my merrymen a', - And bid Carmichael come speak to me; - For I'll lay my life the pledge o' that, - That yon's the shot o' young Logie." - - When Carmichael came before the King, - He fell low down upon his knee; - The very first word that the King spake, - Was--"Where's the laird of young Logie?" - - Carmichael turn'd him round about - (I wot the tear blinded his ee), - "There came a token frae your grace, - Has ta'en away the laird frae me." - - "Hast thou play'd me that, Carmichael? - And hast thou play'd me that?" quoth he; - "The morn the justice-court's to stand, - And Logie's place ye maun supplie." - - Carmichael's awa to Margaret's bower, - Even as fast as he may dree-- - "O if young Logie be within, - Tell him to come and speak with me!" - - May Margaret turn'd her round about - (I wot a loud laugh laughed she), - "The egg is chipp'd, the bird is flown, - Ye'll see nae mair of young Logie." - - - - - *Chapter XXXVII* - - *Jamie Telfer of the Fair Dodhead* - - - "'Tis I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, - And a harried man I think I be! - There's nothing left at the fair Dodhead - But a woeful wife and bairnies three!" - - -About Martinmas time, when Border steeds get corn and hay, the Captain -of Bewcastle rode over to Tividale to forage. And first he met a guide -high up in Hardhaughswire, and next he met a guide low down in Borthwick -water. - -"What tidings, what tidings, my trusty guide?" "No tidings have I--yet -if ye go to the fair Dodhead, I'll let ye see many a cow's calf." Right -hastily they came to the fair Dodhead, loosed the cows and ransacked the -house. - -Jamie Telfer's[#] heart was sore when he saw this, and the tears ran -down his cheeks, and he pleaded with the Captain to give him back his -gear, or else he would have revenge upon him. But the Captain only -laughed and said, "Man, there's nothing in thy house but an old sword -without a sheath that could scarcely kill a mouse." - -[#] The Telfers, though they had become Scotch at the time of this -ballad, were originally a Norman family, descended from the knight -"Taille-fer" (cut-iron), who came over with William the Conqueror. - -The sun was not up though the moon had gone down, and there was a -sprinkling of new-fallen snow upon the ground when Jamie Telfer ran ten -miles a-foot between the Dodhead and Stob's Hall. When he came to the -tower gate he shouted aloud, and old Gibby Elliot came out and asked the -meaning of such disturbance. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I, for -nothing is left at fair Dodhead but a sad wife and three bairnies." - -"Go and seek help at Branksome Hall, for ye shall get none from me--seek -help where ye paid blackmail, for, man, never did ye pay _me_ any." - -James turned him about, his eyes blinded with tears. "Never shall I pay -blackmail again to Elliot. My hounds may all run masterless, my hawks -may fly as they will from tree to tree, and my lord may seize the lands -of his vassal, for never shall I see again the fair Dodhead." - -He turned him to Tiviotside and made as fast as he could for Coultart -cleugh, and there he shouted aloud until out came old Jock Grieve, and -asked who it was that made such a noise. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I, for -nothing is left at fair Dodhead but a weeping wife and three bairnies, -and six poor calves stand in the stall crying aloud for their mothers." - -"Alack!" quoth Jock Grieve, "alack, my heart is sore for thee! for I -married the eldest of three sisters, and you married the youngest." - -So he took out his bonny black horse, right well fed with corn and hay, -and set Jamie Telfer on his back, to take his troubles to Catslockhill. -When he came to Catslockhill he shouted aloud until out came William's -Wat to ask what was the matter. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I. -The Captain of Bewcastle has driven away my gear; for God's sake rise -and help me." - -"Alas and alack," quoth William's Wat, "my heart is sore for thee. -Never did I yet come to the fair Dodhead and found thy basket bare." - -He set his two sons on coal-black steeds, and he himself mounted a -freckled grey, and with Jamie they rode to Branksome Hall, where they -shouted so loud and high that old Buccleuch came out to ask what was the -matter. - -"It is I, Jamie Telfer, of the fair Dodhead, and a harried man am I; -there is nought left at fair Dodhead but a weeping wife and three -bairnies." - -"Alack," quoth the good old lord, "my heart is sorry for thee; go call -Willie, my son, to come speedily. Go call up hastily the men that live -by the waterside. They who will not ride for Telfer's cattle, let them -never again look me in the face. Call up Wat o'Harden and his sons, -call up Borthwick Water, Gaudilands and Allanhaugh, call Gilmanscleugh -and Commonside; ride by the gate at Priesthaughswire and call the -Currors of the Lee, and call brave Willie of Gorrinberry as ye come down -the Hermitage slack." - -So the Scotts rode and ran bravely and steadily, shouting "Ride for -Branksome," and when Willie looked ahead he saw the cattle being driven -fast up the Frostylee brook, and to the plain. - -"Who drives yon cattle?" cried Willie Scott, "to make us a laughing -stock?" "'Tis I, the Captain of Bewcastle; I will not hide my name from -thee." - -"Let Telfer's cattle go back, or by the faith of my body," said Willie, -"I'll ware my dame's calf-skin on thee." - -"I will not let the cattle go back neither for thy love nor fear; I will -drive Jamie Telfer's cattle in spite of all your company of Scotts." - -"Set on them, lads!" cried Willie; "set on them cruelly; there will be -many an empty saddle before they come to Ritterford." - -So they set to with heart and hand, and blows fell like hail until many -were slain and many a horse ran masterless. But Willie was struck by a -sword through the headpiece and fell to the ground, and auld Wat of -Harden wept for rage when he saw that his son was slain. He took off -his steel cap and waved it thrice, and the snow on the Dinlay mountain -was never whiter than the locks of his hair. - -"Revenge! revenge!" he cried; "lay on them, lads. Willie's death shall -be revenged or we will never see Teviotside again." - -The lances flew into splinters, and many another brave rider fell, and -before the Kershope ford was reached, the Scots had got the victory. -John of Brigham was slain, and John of Barlow, and thirty more of the -Captain's men lay bleeding on the ground. The Captain himself was run -through the right thigh and the bone broken, and never would woman love -him again, if he should live a hundred years. - -"Take back the kye!" said he; "they are dear kye to some of us; never -will a fair lady smile on me if I should live to be a hundred." - -Word came to the Captain's bride in her bower, that her lord had been -taken prisoner. "I would rather have had a winding-sheet," said she, -"and helped to put it over his head than that he should have been -disgraced by the Border Scot when he led his men over Liddel." - -There was a wild gallant there named Watty Wudspurs (Madspurs) who -cried, "Let us on to his house in Stanegirthside, if any man will ride -with us!" - -So they came to Stanegirthside, pulled down the trees, burst open the -door, and drove out all the Captain's kye before them. - -An old woman of the Captain's kin cried, "Who dare loose the Captain's -kye, or answer to him and his men?" - -"It is I, Watty Wudspurs, that loose the kye; I will not hide my name -from thee; and I will loose them in spite of him and his men." - -When they came to the fair Dodhead they were a welcome sight, for -instead of his own ten milk kye Jamie Telfer had now got thirty-three. -He paid the rescue shot in gold and silver, and at Willie Scott's -burial, there were many weeping eyes. - - - - - *Chapter XXXVIII* - - *Muckle-mou'd Meg* - - -The Scott family was very powerful on the Border in the days of Queen -Elizabeth, the bravest and strongest of them being the bold Lord of -Buccleuch. His name is often mentioned in Border history, and so is -that of another Scott, "auld Wat Scott of Harden." He was a fit man for -these wild times, being both brave and canny. He married a beautiful -Border lass, "the Flower of Yarrow," and it is surprising how many able -men have descended from this marriage. Not only did Sir Walter Scott -and Robert Louis Stevenson claim descent from this fine old freebooter; -his daughter Maggie married Gilbert Elliot of Stobs, nicknamed "Gibbie -wi' the Golden Garters," and from them were descended George Augustus -Elliot (Lord Heathfield), famous for his splendid defence of Gibraltar, -worthy of the best Border traditions, and also the Elliots of Minto, who -have twice been Viceroys of India, once late in the eighteenth and once -early in the twentieth century. - -But on one occasion one of the sons of Scott of Harden came perilously -near to finding out how far his neck was capable of carrying the weight -of his body. It was late in Queen Elizabeth's reign, and King James VI. -of Scotland was extra anxious to live at peace with England, for he -expected now very soon to be King over both countries. So he told his -Warden, the bold Buccleuch, to restrain the wild Scotch freebooters; and -you may imagine that the order was little to their liking. Young Willie -Scott, Scott of Harden's son, quickly determined that cattle he must -steal anyhow; he was his father's son, and did not his father once say, -as he gazed longingly at a fine English haystack, "if only ye'd got four -legs, haystack, ye would not be standing there!" So as Willie Scott was -forbidden to steal English cattle, he decided to steal Scotch. - -Sir Gideon Murray, of Elibank Castle, was an old enemy of the Scott -family, having once been told off to punish them for some audacious act -of theirs. And Sir Gideon had some cattle that would make any -Borderer's mouth water and his arm itch to drive them home. So Willie -and a few boon companions started off one night for Elibank. But a -warning voice had reached Sir Gideon, and Willie received a warm -reception, and was taken prisoner. He lay in the castle dungeon all -night, reflecting on the folly of being caught, and fully expecting to -be hanged very early next morning, perhaps without even his breakfast to -comfort him! - -But early on the fatal morning, Lady Murray startled her husband by -asking him if he really meant to hang Willie Scott. He looked at her as -if she were mad; of course, what else was there to do? Then she -unfolded her scheme. She had a very plain-looking daughter known as -"Muckle mou'd Meg," or Margaret with the extremely large mouth. Young -Scott was handsome and of good family, and poor Meg would never again -have such a chance of getting a good husband. Why not release Willie -Scott, if only he would marry Mucklemou'd Meg? - -They were men of action in those days, and the priest was instantly sent -for. Then, all being ready, the prisoner was brought forth. He was -shown on the one hand the priest and the girl, and on the other hand the -tree and the noose, and was asked to take his choice. His first proud -feeling was that he would be mocked at if he married such a girl on such -terms, and he walked bravely towards the rope. But the nearer he got to -it the uglier it looked. He had to confess to himself that it was not -at all a comfortable looking rope; he had a nasty feeling round his neck -from merely looking at it, and thought it would probably feel worse when -it got round his throat. Then he looked at the girl; she certainly was -not as beautiful as his mother, the lovely Flower of Yarrow; and a -Borderer loved a beautiful wife. But if he hanged he would have no wife -at all! Then he suggested that he should have three days to think it -over, but Murray said no, neither priest nor noose was prepared to wait, -he must decide at once. Then he looked again at Meg and saw a kind -glance in her eye; she felt sorry for the handsome young fellow. Then -he knew she had a good heart, and that decided the matter; he went up -and kissed her with a good grace, and the priest married them straight -away. - -Afterwards he became Sir William Scott, and an important man on the -Border. And, best of all, Meg proved to be a real good wife to him, and -he never regretted the day when he elected to suffer the knot to be tied -by the priest instead of by the hangman. - - - - - *Chapter XXXIX* - - *The Dowie Dens of Yarrow* - - -This is one of the most famous and widely known of all the Border -ballads, and has proved a source of inspiration to several poets, -including Wordsworth, who wrote three poems upon the subject. The bard -does not relate the full particulars, but gives only the barest outlines -of facts, which were well known in his day, and still live in tradition. -The story tells of a duel between two brothers-in-law. The very spot -where it took place is still pointed out, a low muir on the Yarrow -banks. The slain knight was apparently Walter Scott, one of the -ancestors of Lord Napier. His murderer was his brother-in-law, John -Scott. "Dowie" means melancholy, and "den" is a word used to describe a -narrow, rocky valley, usually wildly beautiful. - - Late at e'en drinking the wine, - And e'er they paid the lawing, - They set a combat them between, - To fight it in the dawing.[#] - -[#] Dawn. - - "O stay at home my noble lord, - O stay at home my marrow. - My cruel brother will you betray, - On the dowie houms[#] of Yarrow." - -[#] Hillocks. - - "O fare ye well, my lady gay! - O fare ye well, my Sarah! - For I must go, though I ne'er return - From the dowie banks of Yarrow." - - She kissed his cheek, she combed his hair, - As oft she had done before, O, - She belted him with his noble brand, - "And he's away to Yarrow." - - As he gaed up the Tennies bank - I wot he gaed with sorrow, - Till down in a den he spied nine armed men, - On the dowie houms of Yarrow. - - "O come ye here to part your land, - The bonnie forest thorough? - Or come ye here to wield your brand, - On the dowie houms of Yarrow?" - - "I come not here to part my land, - And neither to beg nor borrow, - I come to wield my noble brand - On the bonnie banks of Yarrow. - - "If I see all, ye're nine to ane; - And that's an unequal marrow; - Yet will I fight, while lasts my brand, - On the bonnie banks of Yarrow." - - Four has he hurt, and five has slain, - On the bloody braes of Yarrow, - Till that stubborn knight came him behind, - And ran his body thorough. - - "Gae hame, gae hame, good brother John, - And tell your sister Sarah, - To come and lift her leafu'[#] lord; - He's sleepin' sound on Yarrow." - -[#] Lawful. - - "Yestreen I dreamed a dolefu' dream, - I fear there will be sorrow! - I dreamed I pu'd the heather green, - Wi' my true love on Yarrow. - - "O gentle wind, that bloweth south, - From where my love repaireth, - Convey a kiss from his dear mouth, - And tell me how he fareth! - - "But in the glen strive armed men; - They've wrought me dole and sorrow; - They've slain--the comeliest knight they've slain, - He bleeding lies on Yarrow." - - As she sped down yon high, high hill, - She gaed wi' dole and sorrow, - And in the den spied ten slain men, - On the dowie banks of Yarrow. - - She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair, - She searched his wounds all thorough, - She kiss'd them till her lips grew red, - On the dowie houms of Yarrow. - - "Now haud[#] your tongue, my daughter dear, - For a' this breeds but sorrow; - I'll wed ye to a better lord, - Than him ye lost on Yarrow." - -[#] Hold. - - "O haud your tongue, my father dear! - Ye mind me but of sorrow; - A fairer rose did never bloom - Than now lies cropp'd on Yarrow." - -[Illustration: "_She kissed his cheek, she kaim'd his hair, She searched -his wounds all thorough._"] - - - - - *Chapter XL* - - *Belted Will and the Baronry of Gilsland* - - - "When for the lists they sought the plain - The stately lady's silken rein - Did noble Howard hold; - Unarmed by her side he walk'd - And much, in courteous phrase they talk'd - Of feats of arms of old. - Costly his garb; his Flemish ruff - Fell o'er his doublet, shaped of buff, - With satin slashed and lined; - Tawny his boot and gold his spur, - His cloak was all of Poland fur, - His hose with silver twined. - His Bilboa blade, by Marchmen felt, - Hung in a broad and studded belt; - Hence, in rude phrase, the Borderers still - Call'd noble Howard, Belted Will." - SCOTT, _Lay of the Last Minstrel_. - - -One of the many picturesque figures of Border history was "Belted Will," -or to call him by his proper name and title, Lord William Howard, a -younger son of the powerful Duke of Norfolk. - -His mother had died when he was an infant, and his father, the foremost -Roman Catholic nobleman in England, took up the cause of Mary Queen of -Scots, whom he wished to marry. For this treason against Queen -Elizabeth he was beheaded in 1572, when young Lord William was only nine -years old. At the age of fourteen the young lord's guardians arranged -for him a marriage with Elizabeth Dacre, a member of a powerful Border -family, and heiress to the Baronry of Gilsland. As the bride was even -younger than her boy-husband, let us hope that they both went to school -again immediately after the marriage! - -When he grew to manhood, Lord William warmly supported the Roman -Catholic cause and was imprisoned by Elizabeth; but when James became -King, he was released and restored to his estates on the Border. -Throughout the remainder of his career he was the most notable man of -his district. He knew how to make himself respected by his wild -neighbours. His fame and power were great. He founded the fortunes of -his family so surely that he it is who is usually thought of as the -ancestor of the Earls of Carlisle, though his great-grandson was the -first to hold the title. - -Lord William had great energy and many interests, and was remarkable as -being an "all-round" man. He was equally a leader of men and a lover of -books; no detail in the management of his estates was too small for him -to study; he was a good husband to his wife, and a splendid father to -his fifteen children. He selected the most beautiful of his several -castles, that of Naworth, and repaired and almost rebuilt it; he took -there the fine old oak ceiling from the ancient castle of Kirkoswald, -which was ornamented with portraits of all the kings of England. -Visitors to Naworth can see to-day the "hall of Belted Will," by kind -permission of the present Earl of Carlisle. - -He was something of a poet and very much of an antiquarian. His estates -were full of interesting things, and none knew them better than he. -There were miles of the Roman wall, still in excellent condition; there -were many Roman altars and inscriptions, which he copied and translated; -quite near him, at Coome Crags, was a Roman quarry, which can still be -seen to-day, with marks of Roman tools on its stones. It stands in a -beautiful wood by the side of the lovely river Irthing. And only a -little further on, standing on a fine cliff overlooking the river, is -the old Roman station of Amboglanna, a fort that covered five and a half -acres, with walls that were once five feet thick, the main foundations -of which are still standing, clear enough for anyone to trace them out. -It is quieter there to-day than it was in Roman times, or in the -stirring days of Belted Will! - -It is good to think that this broad-shouldered, gallant, powerful -nobleman, who could ride, shoot, fight and keep this wild district in -order, was at the same time such a clever student and book-worm. They -tell a story that he was once sitting in his library intent on a book -when his men brought in a robber whom they had caught red-handed, and -asked Lord William to try him. Belted Will, angry at being interrupted, -cried out:--"Don't disturb me; hang him!" Half an hour later he rose -and came down to try the man, but finding that he was already hanged he -went on with his book. It is only fair to add that robbers in those -days expected no mercy when caught. - -One of the many clever things that Lord William did was to have figures -carved in oak to represent soldiers; these he placed on the top of his -high towers, and deceived the Scots into thinking that he had a large -and very watchful garrison! These figures can still be seen at Naworth. -Near Naworth Castle is Lanercost Priory, where King Edward I. stayed on -his way to Scotland. There is a secret passage from Naworth tower which -is supposed to run under the river to Lanercost. No one is allowed to -go through it, as it is considered dangerous; the people of the district -say that the last man to do so was Oliver Cromwell. - -Visitors to Naworth to-day should certainly go on to Gilsland itself, -the picturesque straggling little town, which was the head of the -Baronry which Elizabeth Dacre brought to her boy-husband. The Irthing -at Gilsland runs through a wonderfully beautiful gorge, rocky and -wooded, wild and romantic. Stand on the venturesome stepping stones -near the old church, with the river rushing at your very feet, and see -if this is an exaggeration of the beauties of the scene. Right in the -midst of the glen you can see the "Popping-stone" where Sir Walter Scott -walked with the lady of his choice and asked her to marry him. Readers -of "Guy Mannering" can see in Over Denton church near Gilsland the grave -of Meg Merrilees, who died here at the age of ninety-eight. The town is -also interesting for the fact that the county border is at Gilsland, and -there is an inn so built that it stands in both counties, and contains a -bed in which you can sleep with your head in Northumberland and your -feet in Cumberland! - -There is a story of Belted Will that tells eloquently of the strength of -his character. When he was released from prison by King James he found -his estates so ruined by careless management that he knew that great -care was needed to put things right again; so until he got his affairs -into order, all the pocket-money that he would allow himself was twenty -shillings per month! - -Bold William, Belted Will, gallant Lord Howard, as you will, died at -Naworth in 1640 aged seventy-seven, one year after the death of his -devoted wife. His descendants were, like himself, students and men of -action; the present Earl of Carlisle is directly sprung from him, and is -very proud of the fact. - - - - - *Chapter XLI* - - *Gilderoy* - - -Gilderoy was a celebrated and most daring highwayman, who roamed far, -and was well-known all over Scotland and indeed in London. His death -inspired a very striking ballad, but this is hardly a Border Lowland -ballad, but refers chiefly to another Border district, namely, that -between the Lowlands and Highlands. Just as the Scottish Lowlanders -thought the English their legitimate quarry, so the Highlanders in turn -looked upon the Lowlanders as created to supply them with all they -lacked. There is a story on record of a Highland chief who, finding his -men had carelessly robbed another Highlander, returned the spoil with a -handsome apology, and issued stringent orders that in future nothing was -to be taken except in the Lowlands, "where all men make their prey." - -Among the robber clans of the Highlands, the MacGregors stand easily in -the first rank. In a long series of Scottish Acts of Parliament, they -are habitually referred to as "the wicked clan Gregor, so long -continuing in blood, slaughter, theft, and robbery." One of their most -famous exploits was the battle of Glenfruin, when they defeated their -enemies, the Colquhouns, and slew two hundred of them. The Colquhouns -appeared before the King at Stirling with the bloody shirts stripped off -their dead, and the law was put in motion against the MacGregors more -vigorously than ever. This was in 1603. The execution of Gilderoy, as -described in our poem, took place in 1638. His real name was Patrick -MacGregor, and the fact that he belonged to this Ishmaelite clan, whose -hand was directed against every man, and whose very name had been -solemnly abolished, may well serve as an excuse for his career of crime. -Gilderoy, in Gaelic, means the red-haired gillie or lad, and besides the -name there are many other points of similarity between him and Rob Roy, -who was the head of the Clan MacGregor in the following century. Both -Gilderoy and Rob Roy were professional blackmailers, that is, they could -be relied on never to plunder anyone who was prudent enough to buy them -off by paying a fixed contribution. This is what is meant in the -following lines of the ballad-- - - "All these did honestly possess - He never did annoy, - Who never failed to pay their cess - To my love, Gilderoy." - - -The "cess" is the blackmail, or insurance against robbery. The -widespread reputation of Gilderoy is attested by the many legends of him -which are printed in the old chap-books and "Lives of the Highwaymen." -According to these authorities, Gilderoy once robbed Oliver Cromwell -near Glasgow; but an even more romantic episode of his career was a -roaming trip upon the continent, in the course of which he is said to -have picked Cardinal Richelieu's pocket while he was celebrating mass in -the King's presence, at the church of St Denis in Paris. He made his -way even to Madrid, where he succeeded in carrying off the Duke of -Medina-Cell's plate. Altogether a most notorious and dashing cateran. -The ballad is supposed to be spoken by a young woman who had all her -life been attached to him. - - "Gilderoy was a bonnie boy, - Had roses to his shoon;[#] - His stockings were of silken soy, - With garters hanging down. - It was, I ween, a comely sight - To see so trim a boy; - He was my jo, and heart's delight, - My handsome Gilderoy. - * * * * * - My Gilderoy and I were born - Both in one town together; - We scant were seven years before - We 'gan to love each other. - Our daddies and our mammies they - Were filled with meikle joy, - To think upon the bridal day - Of me and Gilderoy." - -[#] Shoes. - - -But there intervened the spirit of adventure which had ever been the -birthright of all of his surname, - - "Oh, that he still had been content - With me to lead his life! - But ah! his manful heart was bent - To stir in deeds of strife; - And he in many a venturous deed - His courage bold would try; - And now this gars[#] my heart to bleed - For my dear Gilderoy." - -[#] Makes. - - -No doubt those who knew Gilderoy personally would have agreed, as was -actually said of Rob Roy, that he was a benevolent and humane man "in -his way." - - "My Gilderoy, both far and near, - Was feared in every town; - And boldly bore away the gear - Of many a Lowland loun, - For man to man durst meet him none, - He was so brave a boy; - At length with numbers he was ta'en, - My winsome Gilderoy." - - -He was not so fortunate as Rob Roy, who ultimately died peacefully in -his bed. Gilderoy had lost the game, and he had to pay the stakes. - - "Of Gilderoy so feared they were, - They bound him fast and strong; - To Edinbro' they led him there, - And on a gallows hung. - They hung him high above the rest, - He was so trim a boy; - There died the youth whom I loved best, - My handsome Gilderoy." - - -Thus perished one of the characteristic products of an age whose -standards were so different from ours that we can hardly judge him -fairly. He was banned before his birth, a scion of a race so -indomitably and innately ferocious that the law attempted to extirpate -them, root and branch. The very name of Gregor could be given by no -clergyman at baptism, under penalty of deprivation and banishment. -Cunning and politic neighbours were not slow to take advantage of the -stubborn disposition of the MacGregors, and gradually stripped them of -their once extensive lands in Argyle and Perthshire. Gilderoy might well -consider that he was "an honester man than stood on any of their -shanks," and we may be excused for feeling a very lively sympathy with -him, and for echoing in our inmost hearts the exquisitely feminine point -of view expressed by the lady composer of the ballad. - - "If Gilderoy had done amiss, - He might have banished been; - Ah! what sore cruelty is this - To hang such handsome men! - To hang the flower of Scottish land, - So sweet and fair a boy! - No lady had so white a hand - As thee, my Gilderoy! - - When he had yielded up his breath - I bare his corpse away; - With tears, that trickled for his death, - I washt his comely clay; - And sicker[#] in a grave sae deep - I laid the dear lo'ed boy; - And now for ever maun I weep, - My winsome Gilderoy." - -[#] Safely. - - - - - *Chapter XLII* - - *Archie Armstrong's Oath* - - - "And oft since then, to England's King, - The story he has told; - And aye, when he 'gan rock and sing, - Charlie his sides would hold." - - -Archie Armstrong lived in Eskdale, where he did his best to keep up the -grand reputation of his family as being among the very boldest -sheep-stealers of the Border. His house was at Stubholm, where the -Wauchope stream runs into the river Esk, near where the picturesque town -of Langholm now stands. Living in the reign of Charles I., after the -union of crowns, the profession of freebooter was far less honourable -than of old. He could not now plead that he was a Border soldier, -fighting against his nation's enemy. The wild Border blood in him might -cry out for the old adventurous career, but he could no longer hope for -the aid of powerful Border families. When cornered, his sole protector -would be his own wits, and woe betide him if they failed! - -Archie's house was about eight miles from the Border, and he could not -help strolling towards the fascinating line and tasting the sweetness of -temptation. When the chance came that seemed to him sufficiently safe, -he would go home in company though he had walked out alone; the -"company" being a good fat English sheep. One night a shepherd had -marked him lingering about, and had watched him, and raised an alarm. -Away went stout Archie at a Marathon pace; half way home he passed -Gilnockie tower, where his ancestor bold Johnie Armstrong lived so -gaily. "Alas!" thought Archie, dolefully, "he too was hanged in the -end!" - -He got home well in front of his pursuers, but his wife gave him small -encouragement. With typical Scottish dourness she remarked to him, "Ye -will be ta'en this night and hanged i' the morning." - -But Archie put a braw face on it, and declared that he would never hang -for one silly sheep. Quicker than any butcher he skinned and roughly -trimmed the dead animal, throwing the rejected parts into the swift -stream. Then rejoicing in the fact that his child was away with its -aunt, he put the carcase carefully in the cradle and began rocking it -and singing a lullaby to it, as if he were the most loving father in all -the British Isles. - -The pursuers now rushed in, and began to accuse Archie triumphantly; but -he rebuked them for making so much noise, telling them that his child -was at death's door! As for stealing their sheep, he took a solemn oath -that if he had done such a thing he would ask to be doomed to "eat the -flesh this very cradle holds!" - -Such an oath on the Borders was a very serious matter; they little knew -that the only flesh in the cradle was sheep's flesh, which Archie asked -nothing better than to devour! - -Impressed but not convinced, his enemies carefully searched the whole of -Archie's house and garden; it was only with very great unwillingness -that they at last decided that they must miss the supreme pleasure of -hanging him! They went away saying that they must have been deluded by -the devil or by witches; and the shepherd resolved to hang a branch of -rowan-tree (mountain-ash) by his fold, for that was well-known to have -the power to keep witches away. - -As soon as they were all on their road to England again, Archie skipped -about like a dancing fiddler. "Wife," he said, "I never knew before -that I would make such a good nurse." - -After this Archie wandered down to London, and his wild jests becoming -famous, he was made Court Jester by King Charles I. And many a time he -acted the story to the King, rocking a pretended cradle, and singing a -persuasive lullaby, to the King's intense amusement. - -Nevertheless, Archie lost his place by his boldness. These were the days -of Archbishop Laud (1637), who was hated by the Scots. One day, as the -archbishop was about to say grace before dinner, Archie asked the King's -permission to say grace instead. The King consented, and the jester's -double-meaning words were as follows:-- - -"All _praise_ to God, and little _laud_ to the devil!" - -The archbishop, in many senses a little man, had Archie dismissed in -disgrace. But, such were the chances of these uncertain times, the -archbishop was executed in the end, while the sheepstealer escaped that -fate! - - - - - *Chapter XLIII* - - *Christie's Will* - - -The resourceful Archie, whose tale we have just told, was not the only -one of the reckless Armstrongs to keep up the old freebooting habits in -the reign of Charles I. There lived at Gilnockie tower (the old -residence of the famous Johnie Armstrong) in the parish of Cannobie, a -notorious Willie Armstrong, known as Christie's Will. Like Archie, he -more than once owed his life to his ready wit. He was shut up in -Jedburgh jail when the Earl of Traquair, Lord High Treasurer, paid the -prison an official visit. When he asked Will the cause of his being -there, the freebooter answered:-- - -"For stealing two halters, my lord." - -Traquair was surprised, but Will afterwards owned that there was a fine -colt at the end of each halter. - -Traquair was amused and pleased by the boldness of the man, and had him -set free. - -Some little time afterwards Traquair was involved in a law-suit which -was set down to be decided by Lord Durie, who seems to have let it be -known before-hand what his opinion was upon the case. Nothing would -save Traquair's interests except that Durie must be got out of the way -before the case began. But how was it to be done? - -Christie's Will was appealed to, and merely said "Leave it to me." - -It was the judge's habit to take horseback exercise on the sands of -Leith without any attendant. One morning, whilst so riding, a -well-dressed and gentlemanly stranger, on a good horse, happened to -overtake him; a courteous greeting led to a friendly conversation, in -which the stranger proved himself so affable and entertaining that the -judge rode on by his side without suspicion. Suddenly, when they had -come to a lonely spot, Lord Durie found himself seized by this muscular -gentleman, smothered up in a big cloak, whisked off his horse and on to -the stranger's, who galloped off, mischief knows where! It was -Christie's Will, carrying out his promise. - -The judge's horse galloped home, riderless. Search was made, but the -judge could not be found. It could only be supposed that he had been -thrown off into the sea. His successor was appointed, and Lord -Traquair's case was heard and won! - -Lord Durie had languished for several months in a dreary underground -vault. I wonder if he thought of the many poor wretches he had -sentenced to a similar fate? Suddenly at midnight he was roughly -awakened, muffled up as before, and carried away again by his captor on -horseback. Next morning, by the light of the newly-risen sun, he found -himself on the very spot by the sands of Leith from which he had been -kidnapped! We will hope that every one, including his successor, was -glad when he thus came to life again. - -When the Civil War began, the Earl of Traquair was faithful to King -Charles I. Having some papers of importance that he wished to have -given into the King's own hands, he entrusted these to the bold -freebooter. Christie's Will did his errand, and received an equally -important answer. But spies at Court had given Cromwell word of the -matter, and the command was sent up to Carlisle that Will Armstrong must -be intercepted there. Not knowing his danger, Will halted in the town -to refresh his horse, then pushed forward to the bridge which crossed -the Eden on the Northern boundary of the city. Cromwell's soldiers were -waiting for him; the bridge was high and narrow, the broad Eden waters -were swirling in high flood. - -Christie's Will, without one second's hesitation, spurred his horse over -the parapet. He sank ... he came up ... he sank ... he came up ... he -sank ... he came up, this time at the very bank. He cut his heavy, -dripping cloak from his shoulders; relieved of the weight, his horse -struggled to the land. Away went Will, away went the troopers after -him. It was a hard race to the river Esk, and this also Will had to -swim. But now he was in Scotland, and his friends were at hand; gaily -Will turned to his pursuers, who dared not cross the water; "Good -friends," cried he, "come over and drink with me!" But they showed him -their backs, and their horses's tails, and he saw no more of them. - -Such were the exploits of Christie's Will; he was the last of the -free-booters, but he certainly knew how to live up to their boldest -traditions. - - - - - *Chapter XLIV* - - *Northumberland at the time of the Civil War* - - -During the stormy days of King Charles I., the Borders, and especially -Northumberland, saw many stirring scenes. It must be remembered that -shortly before the Long Parliament was elected, King Charles almost came -to war with the Scottish Presbyterians, because they would not obey the -harsh rule of Archbishop Laud. The Scots raised an army under the lead -of shrewd general Alexander Leslie, the "old, little, crooked soldier," -of great experience, trained by the great Gustavus of Sweden. In 1639 -Charles sent ships up to the Forth, in reply to which Leslie marched his -army to threaten the border. The old quarrel between the two countries -began to blaze up again. King Charles led an army to the border and was -received with splendid applause at Newcastle. Many joined his army, and -shouted with joy at the thought of meeting the Scots in battle. But -they were an untrained disorderly crew, who fired their guns off at -random and kept no military order whatever. Gallant Leslie marched his -men down to Duns Law, in South Berwickshire, and was ready to fight. -But King Charles would not trust his army that length; he made terms -with his opponents, promising them the reforms they set their hearts -upon, and the two armies melted away like school-boys at the end of the -term. - -Things were soon as bad as before. Lord Conway was sent by the King to -put Newcastle into a strong defensive state. His greatest difficulty -was to get money for the purpose, for the King's quarrel with his -various Parliaments had deprived him of supplies. The badly paid troops -mutinied, and the ring-leader was shot. Very soon the Scottish army came -across the Tweed, the Highlanders armed with bows and arrows. - -They pitched their camp on Heddon Law, and soon proved to the country -folk that they had not come for plunder, but would pay for all they -wanted to eat. This re-assured the country people, who had no real -quarrel with the Scots, and even became most friendly to them. - -With Lord Conway it was otherwise; he was the King's officer, and was -bound to offer resistance. His opinion was that if once the Scots -crossed the Tyne, and attacked Newcastle from the south or Gateshead -side, they were sure of victory. Accordingly, leaving a strong garrison -to protect the town, he marched out with two thousand or more foot and -fully one thousand horse to command the important ford across the Tyne -at Newburn, a place five or six miles due west of Newcastle. It is -interesting to remember that here also the Romans had had -fortifications, along the line of the wall, and the very spot where the -Scots and English fought may well have been the scene of contests -between the Roman Legions and the wild Picts. - -The English arrived first, on the south bank of the river, and threw up -earth-works hastily. Very soon they saw the Scots march into Newburn -village, on the north bank, where they employed themselves by hauling -their cannon up to the church tower. Remarkable cannon they were, made -out of bar-iron hooped together with cord and wet, raw hides! But they -were not required to carry any distance, the foe was only on the other -side of the Tyne. All the morning the enemies looked at one another -across the river, each hesitating to fire the first shot of the war. At -last an English officer shot a Scotch officer, and the fight began. The -Scots were on the higher ground, and their cannon, rough as they were, -sent heavy shot on to the English. Then when the river tide went down, -the Scots rushed across the ford, and the battle was soon won, the royal -standard being taken. English runaways rushed through the woods and -into Newcastle, crying, "Fly for your lives, naked devils have destroyed -us!" Whether they referred to kilted Highlanders is uncertain. Anyway, -Leslie and his Scots entered Newcastle in triumph, but were afterwards -bought off with a payment of L60,000 and recrossed the Tweed into -Scotland. - -This was in 1641, a year in which King Charles was quarrelling bitterly -with his Long Parliament, though the actual civil war in England did not -begin till 1642. Early in 1642 it was decided that so important a town -as Newcastle ought to be put in a stronger state of defence. - -William Cavendish, Earl of Newcastle, was made governor of the town, but -he was much hindered in his plans by lack of money. King Charles, -however, promoted him from Earl to Marquis of Newcastle, and the lack of -funds he made up as best he was able. However, the Governor of Holy -Island, off the Northumberland shore, found himself left for sixteen -months without any pay! He wrote to the King's treasury a protest in -verse, beginning:-- - - "_The great commander o' the Cormorants,_ - _The geese and ganders of these hallowed lands,_ - _Where Lindisfarne and Holy Island stands,_ - _These worthless lines sends to your worthy hands._" - - -The allusion in the first two lines is to the fact that Holy Island and -the Farne Islands were then, and are still to-day, so thinly peopled -that sea-birds gather there in large numbers, adding greatly to the wild -beauties of these islets and rocks. - -In January 1644 a serious struggle began. Leslie and his soldiers -crossed the Tweed at Berwick bridge and again entered Northumberland. -General Bayly marched his men from Kelso across the frozen river and -joined Leslie at Alnwick. Warkworth Castle, though it contained cannon -and provisions, surrendered at once. The Scottish general gravely told -Bemerton, the governor, that if he had learnt to fight as well as he had -learnt to dance his castle could never have been taken! The country -districts of Northumberland had no quarrel with the Scots, and it was -soon evident that the real fight would be at Newcastle, bravely held by -the Marquis and by the Mayor, Sir John Marley. - -The Scottish "murthering pieces," as the cannon were called, were -brought down by sea, and the obstinate conflict began. Despite the -terrible weather of a very rough February, frequent skirmishes took -place, while the Scots closed nearer and nearer round the gallantly -defended town. Leslie soon found that the defences had been put into -good order; the ditch round the town was dug deep, and close to the -walls; the walls themselves were strongly underpinned. The battlements -were strengthened by stone and lime, but the top stones were loosened so -as to slip if the enemy attempted to mount them. Every cannon was -placed carefully, to the best advantage. - -[Illustration: _The Storming of Newcastle_] - -But the Marquis of Newcastle was called southward by the needs of his -King. With him were his thousand brave "White coats," so called because -they wore white coats which they promised to dye in the blood of the -enemy. But they met the terrible Ironsides at Marston Moor, and in a -conflict of furious bravery on both sides, all of the gallant thousand -except thirty were slain on the field of battle. - -This was in July of 1644, but it did not affect the siege of Newcastle, -which still dragged obstinately on, under the skilful guidance of the -dauntless Mayor. By October, Sir John Marley was so buoyed up by his -success that he sent a letter to General Leslie to ask if he was still -alive! This the Scots took to be an insult, and a grand assault was -begun. The Scots were furious, and the defence was desperate. The roar -of the cannon and the rattle of the musketry were succeeded, as the -assault got nearer and nearer to its aim, by the clashing of swords and -the clanging of pikes. At last, the regiments of Loudoun and Buccleugh -succeeded in forcing their way into the town. In vain the defenders -made their last gallant charge; their cause was now hopeless, and soon -the market-place was filled with fugitives, who flung down their arms -and cried aloud for quarter at the hands of the triumphant Scots. - -In these days the defender was often made to feel the anger of the -victors, who in the flush and cruelty of victory avenged their dead, -only too terribly, upon the losing side. Not so at Newcastle. -Prominent in its day, it stands out because of the mercy of the Scottish -conquerors as much as for the heroism of its defence. In this, the last -great struggle on English ground between Scots and English, it is -pleasing indeed to recall facts that redound to the high honour of both -parties. - - - - - *Chapter XLV* - - *Montrose and Lesly* - - -James Graham, the great Marquis of Montrose who at first sided with the -Scottish Covenanters against Charles I., was so out of sympathy with the -extreme turn which affairs took later against that unhappy monarch that -he went over to the King's side. Gathering the Highland Clans under his -standard, he marched Southward and defeated the Covenanters in a series -of brilliantly fought battles. He occupied Edinburgh, and laid great -plans to complete the conquest of Scotland by subduing the Borderland. - -If the Borders had remained in their old fighting state no doubt many a -Border chief would have joined Montrose's army and aided his bold plans. -But, unfortunately for King Charles, the Borders had been tamed and -disarmed since the union of England and Scotland under James I. Only a -few adventurous spirits like Christie's Will remained as examples of the -old wild days. - -The remnant of the army of the Covenanters was commanded by the stern -General David Lesly (not the Alexander Leslie who figures in the -preceding chapter), and was somewhere in the Border district. Gay -Gallant Montrose did not bother as to exactly where this army was; he -despised it too heartily. He himself was at Selkirk, while his army was -encamped on the neighbouring plain of Philiphaugh. - -Montrose was busy writing a cheering message to King Charles to the -effect that he had now no enemy left in Scotland who could offer an -effective resistance to his arms. Little did he think that General -Lesly was gradually creeping nearer, nearer, and was now actually within -four miles of his army. With the advantage of a thick Scotch mist, -Lesly's men actually burst upon Montrose's infantry without a single -scout having seen them to give warning of their approach! In such -confusion, Montrose's men had no chance whatever. - -The Marquis galloped up, only to find his soldiers hopelessly defeated -and great numbers slain. There was nothing left but for those to escape -who could. The Marquis succeeded in cutting his way through, and -gathered his troops to fight again later on; but his efforts were doomed -to failure. - -A popular ditty of these days, sung to a stirring tune, was called -"Lesly's March." Sir Walter Scott seems to regard this as wholly -serious, and ranks it as a Covenanter song. It appears to me, however, -that many of the lines have a very sarcastic flavour; no doubt the -Covenanters did really think that - - "There's none in the right but we, - Of the old Scottish nation"; - -but they would probably have phrased it a little less baldly. To me it -appears as if this song were the work of an onlooker and not a partisan; -one ready to see the faults of both sides, and very much inclined to -hold back his final opinion till he saw which was going to win. But let -the March speak for itself. - - - *LESLY'S MARCH* - - March! march: - Why the de'il do ye na march? - Stand to your arms, my lads, - Fight in good order; - Front about, ye musketeers all, - Till ye come to the English Border; - Stand till 't, and fight like men, - True gospel to maintain. - The parliament's blythe to see us a' coming! - When to the kirk we come, - We'll purge it ilka room, - Frae popish relics, and a' sic innovation, - That a' the world may see, - There's nane in the right but we, - Of the auld Scottish nation. - - -A truly partisan ballad of the day describes the battle of Philiphaugh -and exults in the defeat of Montrose, "our cruel enemy," it calls him. -As a ballad it has no great poetic merit; the very sober Covenanters -probably regarded ballad-making as a frivolity. But it describes rather -graphically how an "aged father," from the country-side, led Lesly's -army very cautiously and wisely to the very tents of the foe. These -details are no doubt accurate; though the ballad-writer (whoever he was) -displays his ignorance of other matters by making the old soldier say -that he was at the battle of Solway Moss (which took place one hundred -years before) and at that of Dunbar, which was not fought till five -years later! - -The following are the opening verses of the ballad, giving an idea of -its plain, straightforward style:-- - - On Philiphaugh a fray began, - At Hairhead-wood it ended; - The Scots out o'er the Graemes they ran, - Sae merrily they bended; - - Sir David frae the Border came, - Wi' heart an' hand came he; - Wi' him three thousand bonny Scots, - To bear him company. - - Wi' him three thousand valiant men, - A noble sight to see! - A cloud o' mist them weel conceal'd, - As close as e'er might be. - - When they came to the Shaw burn, - Said he, "Sae weel we frame. - I think it is convenient - That we should sing a psalm." - - -It is not necessary to quote more of it, but it may be remarked that in -place of the last line as given here, the _unregenerate_ substituted, - - "That we should take a dram." - -In point of actual fact, _both_ versions are probably true! - - - - - *Chapter XLVI* - - *The Death of Montrose* - - -During the imprisonment of King Charles I., at a time when active war on -his behalf might do the unhappy monarch more harm than good, the gallant -Montrose had retired to France. His bright military fame, his courteous -manners, and manly bearing made him friends everywhere, and when he -visited Germany the Emperor conferred on him the rank of Marshal. -Hearing of the execution of Charles I., Montrose at once placed himself -at the disposal of Charles II., now a fugitive in Holland. This prince -named him Captain General of Scotland, and the daring hero set out for -the Orkney Islands with about five hundred paid soldiers, mostly -adventurous Germans and Dutchmen. Only a reckless spirit like Montrose -would have undertaken so wild a commission. - -Scotland was heartily sick of war, and learnt with consternation of the -arrival of this firebrand. Lesly was sent forward with four thousand -men to attack Montrose's five hundred! Colonel Strachan led the -advanced guard, which fell unexpectedly upon the invading army, and, -after a brief, fierce struggle, totally defeated it. - -Montrose, disguised as a peasant, entrusted his life to one he believed -to be his friend, M'Leod, Laird of Assaint. But this unworthy man -betrayed him to his bitterest enemy, General Lesly. Thus, at last, this -brilliant commander was in the hands of the bitter Covenanters, into -whose hearts his brilliant victories had once spread such terror. Their -treatment of him is a black stain upon their memory. For days he was -led about in the peasant's disguise, which he had put on; he was carted -through the streets of Edinburgh, accompanied by such insults that the -populace cried shame upon his captors. - -When tried before the Scottish Parliament for treason, he made a most -eloquent defence, one of the most notable of his assertions being that -he had never stained his victories by slaughtering his foes in cold -blood after the battle. In this he was far above his enemies, who had -disgraced their victory of Philiphaugh by many an execution, and who -were now bent upon taking the life of Montrose himself. The sentence -against him was probably decided before his defence had been heard; it -ran thus:-- - -"That James Graham should next day be carried to Edinburgh cross and -there hanged on a gibbet 30 feet high for the space of three hours; then -to be taken down, his head to be struck off on a scaffold and affixed to -the prison; his arms and legs to be stuck up on the four chief towns of -the Kingdom, his body to be buried in the place set aside for common -criminals." - -To this sentence the great Marquis haughtily replied that he would -rather have his head so placed than his picture in the King's -bedchamber, and that he wished he had limbs enough to be dispersed into -all the cities of Christendom, to prove his dying attachment to his -king. And in the one evening of life that still remained to him, this -accomplished and fearless nobleman employed his time in turning these -loyal sentiments into verse. - -Despite the fact that he triumphed undaunted over all the mean -inventions of their malice, his enemies persisted to the end. - -The executioner tied mockingly round his neck the book that had been -published describing his victories; Montrose thanked him, saying that he -wore it with more pride than he had ever worn the garter of honour. He -uttered a short prayer; then asking them what more indignities they had -prepared for him, he patiently and with unbroken spirit yielded his life -to the hangman, at the too early age of thirty-eight. - -Whatever opinions we may have as to the rights and wrongs of the -quarrel, this brutal killing of a gallant soldier and accomplished -gentleman can only rank as a hideous blot upon all concerned in it. -Every insult hurled at Montrose has returned in the verdict of time with -redoubled force against the malice of those who stooped to such -vindictiveness. The execution of a soldier who has violated no rule of -war is at any time a thing that revolts the human conscience, and a -sentence hoarse with the vile taunts of its utterers has so far lost all -semblance of justice that it is needless to argue upon it. - -In the verdict of history, the great Marquis of Montrose, whether right -or wrong in his political views, lived and died like a man of honour. - -The ballad of the "Gallant Grahams," written about this time, reflects -very sincerely and touchingly the devotion and affection surrounding the -great Marquis, accompanied by the very Scottish feeling that in addition -to his own personal power and genius, he was also the head of the great -Border family of Grahams. - - - *THE GALLANT GRAHAMS* - - Now, fare thee well, sweet Ennerdale![#] - Baith kith and countrie I bid adieu; - For I maun away, and I may not stay, - To some uncouth land which I never knew. - -[#] A corruption of Endrickdale. The principal and most ancient -possessions of the Montrose family lie along the water of Endrick, in -Dumbartonshire. - - To wear the blue I think it best, - Of all the colours that I see; - And I'll wear it for the gallant Grahams, - That are banished from their countrie. - - I have no gold, I have no land, - I have no pearl nor precious stane; - But I wald sell my silken snood, - To see the gallant Grahams come hame. - - In Wallace days, when they began, - Sir John the Graham[#] did bear the gree - Through all the lands of Scotland wide: - He was lord of the south countrie. - -[#] The faithful friend and adherent of the immortal Wallace slain at -the battle of Falkirk. - - And so was seen full many a time; - For the summer flowers did never spring, - But every Graham, in armour bright, - Would then appear before the king. - - They were all drest in armour sheen, - Upon the pleasant banks of Tay; - Before a king they might be seen, - These gallant Grahams in their array. - - At the Goukhead our camp we set, - Our leaguer down there for to lay; - And, in the bonny summer light, - We rode our white horse and our gray. - - Our false commander sold our king, - Unto his deadly enemie, - Who was the traitor, Cromwell, then; - So I care not what they do with me. - - They have betray'd our noble prince, - And banished him from his royal crown;' - But the gallant Grahams have ta'en in hand - For to command those traitors down. - - In Glen-Prosen[#] we rendezvous'd, - March'd to Glenshie by night and day. - And took the town of Aberdeen, - And met the Campbells in their array. - -[#] Glen-Prosen is in Angusshire, usually called Forfarshire. The -Glenshee road, over the Grampians, is the highest road in Great Britain. - - Five thousand men, in armour strong, - Did meet the gallant Grahams that day - At Inverlochie, where war began, - And scarce two thousand men were they. - - Gallant Montrose, that chieftan bold, - Courageous in the best degree, - Did for the king fight well that day;-- - The Lord preserve his majestie! - - Then woe to Strachan, and Ilacket baith! - And, Lesly, ill death may thou die! - For ye have betray'd the gallant Grahams, - Who aye were true to majestie. - - And the Laird of Assaint has seized Montrose, - And had him into Edinburgh town; - And frae his body taken the head, - And quarter'd him upon a trone, - - And Huntly's[#] gone the self-same way, - And our noble king is also gone; - He suffer'd death for our nation, - Our mourning tears can ne'er be done. - -[#] The Marquis of Huntly, one of the few Scottish nobles who never -wavered in his devotion to King Charles I., was beheaded by the sentence -of the Parliament of Scotland. - - But our brave young king is now come home, - King Charles the Second in degree; - The Lord send peace into his time, - And God preserve his majestie! - - -The ballad-writer's reference to the "coming home" of Charles II. -probably means his signing of the Covenant and placing himself entirely -at the mercy of the violent bigots who had killed his most faithful -servant, Montrose. To this was Charles reduced by the desperate nature -of his fortunes. But this course of action entirely severed the -Scottish Covenanters from the English Puritans, and admirers of the -gallant Montrose can take a grim pleasure in the fact that his -arch-enemy, General Lesly, was most disastrously defeated by Cromwell at -the battle of Dunbar. - - - - - *Chapter XLVII* - - *The Borderers and the Jacobites* - - -During the Jacobite Rising, many of the Border chiefs took up arms in -the Stuart cause. Two of these, Lord Derwentwater and Viscount Kenmure, -were beheaded on Tower Hill for their part in the unsuccessful rising of -1715, and another, Lord Nithsdale, was only saved from the same fate by -the courage of his wife. - -This brave woman travelled in the depth of winter from Scotland, but -when she reached York the snow was so deep that the stage coach could go -no further. She continued her journey alone, though the snow was above -the horse's knees, and by good luck she reached London and the Tower in -safety, where, by bribing the guards, she managed to see her husband. - -She then resolved to petition the King for his life, and she herself -tells in a letter to her sister how she waited in the ante-room to see -the King (George I.), and how she threw herself at his feet to present -the petition. The King tried to get away from her, but she seized hold -of his coat, and was dragged on her knees along the floor. This scene -produced no result, and as other efforts to procure Nithsdale's release -also failed, the Countess determined to save him by a stratagem. She -again bribed the guards to let her in, telling them she had joyful news -for her husband about the petition. She dressed him in woman's clothes, -which she had smuggled in for the occasion, and painted his face, and -brought him out, speaking to him as to the woman friend who had -accompanied her, but who had already left the prison, calling him "Mrs -Betty," and asking him for the love of God to go as quickly as he could -to her lodging and fetch her maid, as she wished to go and present her -final petition for the release. - -All went well, and Nithsdale escaped to France; but the King was highly -incensed and declared that the Countess cost him more trouble than any -woman in Europe. - -Her adventures were not yet over, however. In spite of the fact that -the King had wished for her arrest, she travelled to Scotland to fetch -her son, and the valuable papers which she had taken the precaution to -bury underground on her departure for London. - -She was successful in this second journey, and, after concealing herself -and her son, until no further search was made for them, this noble and -enterprising woman escaped to France and joined her husband. They -afterwards went to Rome, where they lived happily for many years. - -In an old ballad called "Lord Nithsdale's Dream," he is described as -dreaming in the Tower the night before his execution, after having said -farewell to his beloved wife. - - "Farewell to thee, Winifred, pride of thy kind, - Sole ray in my darkness, sole joy in my pain." - -He listens for the last sound of her footfall, and catches the last -glimpse of her robe at the door, and then all joy and gladness depart -out of his life, and he prays alone in his dungeon, thinking of the -dreadful dawn that awaits him. - -He falls asleep and dreams that he is a frolicsome boy again, playing -amongst the bracken on the braes of the Nith, bathing in its waters and -treading joyfully the green heather. Or again he is riding to the hunt -on his gallant grey steed, with a plume in his bonnet and a star on his -breast, chasing the red deer and the wild mountain roe. - -The vision changes, and he dreams that he is telling his love to -Winifred, and swearing to be faithful to her, watching the red blushes -rise on her cheeks at his words of love, and hearing her sweet voice -replying. - -Again he is riding at the head of his gallant band. - - "For the pibroch was heard on the hills far away, - And the clans were all gathered from mountain and glen. - For the darling of Scotland, their exile adored, - They raised the loud slogan--they rushed to the strife; - Unfurl'd was the banner, unsheathed was the sword, - For the cause of their heart, that was dearer than life." - - -And now the darksome morn has come, the priest is standing by his side, -saying the prayers for the dead. He hears the muffled drum and the bells -tolling his death knell; the block is prepared, the headsman comes; and -the victim is led bare-headed from his cell. - -Waking, he turns on his straw pallet, and sees, by the pale, misty light -of a taper, the form of his wife. - - "'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!" softly she said, - "Arouse thee and follow, be bold, never fear, - There was danger ahead, but my errand has sped, - I promised to save thee, and lo! I am here!" - -[Illustration: "_'Tis I, 'tis thy Winifred!_"] - -Then she puts woman's garb upon him, and together they pass the -unsuspecting guards and weary sentinels. - - * * * * * - -When the peasantry on the Nithsdale estates heard of their Lord's escape -their joy was unbounded. - -One of the songs published and sung everywhere at the time, begins:-- - - "What news to me, carlin'? - What news to me?" - "What news!" quo' the carlin', - The best that God can gie." - - -The speaker asks if the true king has come to his own, and the carlin' -answers. - - "Our ain Lord Nithsdale - Will soon be 'mang us here. - - -Then the speaker says:-- - - "Brush me my coat, carlin', - Brush me my shoon; - I'll awa and meet Lord Nithsdale, - When he comes to our town." - - -"Alack-a-day," says the carlin'. "He has escaped to France, with scarce -a penny." - -"Then," says the first speaker, "we'll sell our corn and everything we -have and send the money to our lord, and we'll make the pipers blow and -lads and maidens dance, and we'll all be glad and joyful and play 'The -Stuarts back again,' and make the Whigs go mad." - - * * * * * - -Lord Derwentwater's fate was not so happy as that of Lord Nithsdale, -though Lady Derwentwater made a desperate effort to save him. - -It was she indeed who had urged him to throw in his lot with the -Stuarts, saying that it was not good that he should hide his head when -other gentlemen were mustering for the cause. - -The peasantry still think that Lady Derwentwater sits on her ruined -tower lamenting the evil counsel she gave her husband, and they hasten -by in fear when they see her lamp-light flickering. - -Derwentwater is described in the old ballads, as "a bonny lord," with -hair of gold, and kind love dwelling in his hawk-like eyes. - -He passionately loved his beautiful home in Tynedale, the foundations of -which may still be seen. The wooded glen below the castle, with the -little burn running through it, spanned by a grey bridge is romantically -beautiful. - -His "Farewell" to all this beauty is pathetic. - - "Farewell to pleasant Ditson Hall, - My father's ancient seat; - A stranger now must call thee his, - Which gars[#] my heart to greet.[#] - Farewell each kindly well-known face, - My heart has held so dear: - My tenants now must leave their lands, - Or hold their lives in fear. - -[#] makes. -[#] weep. - - No more along the banks of Tyne, - I'll rove in autumn grey; - No more I'll hear, at early dawn, - The lav'rocks[#] wake the day: - Then fare thee well, brave Witherington, - And Forster ever true. - Dear Shaftsbury and Errington, - Receive my last adieu. - -[#] larks. - - And fare thee well, George Collingwood, - Since fate has put us down, - If thou and I have lost our lives, - Our King has lost his crown. - Farewell, farewell, my lady dear, - Ill, ill thou counsell'dst me: - I never more may see thy babe - That smiles upon thy knee. - - And fare thee well, my bonny grey steed, - That carried me aye so free; - I wish I had been asleep in my bed, - The last time I mounted thee. - The warning bell now bids me cease; - My troubles nearly o'er; - Yon sun that rises from the sea, - Shall rise on me no more. - - Albeit that here in London town - It is my fate to die, - O carry me to Northumberland, - In my father's grave to lie: - There chant my solemn requiem - In Hexham's holy towers, - And let six maids of fair Tynedale - Scatter my grave with flowers. - - And when the head that wears the crown, - Shall be laid low like mine, - Some honest hearts may then lament - For Radcliff's fallen line. - Farewell to pleasant Ditson Hall, - My father's ancient seat; - A stranger now must call thee his, - Which gars my heart to greet." - - -Before his death, Earl Derwentwater signed a paper acknowledging "King -James the Third" as his sovereign, and saying that he hoped his death -would contribute to the service of his King. - -He is said to have looked closely at the block, and to have asked the -executioner to chip off a rough place that might hurt his neck. Then, -pulling off his coat and waistcoat, he tried if the block would fit his -head, and told the executioner that when he had repeated "Lord Jesus -receive my soul" for the third time, he was to do his office, which the -executioner accordingly did at one blow. - -History tells that Derwentwater was brave and open-hearted and generous, -and that his fate drew tears from the spectators, and was a great -misfortune to his country. He was kind to the people on his estates, to -the poor, the widow and the orphan. - -His request to be buried with his ancestors was refused, and he was -interred at St Giles, Holborn, but his corpse was afterwards removed and -carried secretly to Northumberland, where it was deposited in Dilston -Chapel. The aurora borealis, which appeared remarkably vivid on the -night of his execution, was long called in that part of the country -"Lord Derwentwater's Lights." - -Immediately after Derwentwater's execution, Lord Kenmure also suffered -death. After his execution, a letter was found in his pocket addressed -to the Pretender, by the title of King James, saying that he died in his -faithful service, and asking him to provide for his wife and children. - -The following ballad describes his rising in the Stuart cause-- - - "O Kenmure's on and awa', Willie, - O Kenmure's on and awa'; - And Kenmure's lord's the bravest lord - That ever Galloway saw. - Success to Kenmure's band, Willie! - Success to Kenmure's band! - There's no a heart that fears a Whig, - That rides by Kenmure's hand. - - His lady's cheek was red, Willie, - His lady's cheek was red, - When she saw his steely jupes[#] put on, - Which smell'd o' deadly feud. - Here's Kenmure's health in wine, Willie, - Here's Kenmure's health in wine; - There ne'er was a coward o' Kenmure's blude, - Nor yet o' Gordon's line. - -[#] armour. - - There's a rose in Kenmure's cap, Willie, - There's a rose in Kenmure's cap, - He'll steep it red in ruddie heart's blade, - Afore the battle drap. - Here's him that's far awa', Willie, - Here's him that's far awa', - And here's the flower that I lo'e best, - The rose that's like the snaw. - - O Kenmure's lads are men, Willie, - O Kenmure's lads are men, - Their hearts and swords are metal true, - And that their foes shall ken. - They'll live, or die wi' fame, Willie, - They'll live, or die wi' fame, - And soon wi' sound o' victorie - May Kenmure's lord come hame." - - - - - *Chapter XLVIII* - - *The Nine Nicks o' Thirlwall* - - -If you stand upon Rose Hill, which rises from the banks of the river -Irthing just where Northumberland meets Cumberland, you have lying -around you one of the finest wild prospects in the United Kingdom. Hills -to the north, stretching away into Scotland; hills to the east, broken -into picturesque valleys, especially the great gap through which rushes -the young Tyne; hills to the south, dominated by the powerful head of -Cross Fell, a great sprawling mountain, not a peaked one, the highest -stretch of which is nearly three thousand feet above sea level. - -But while drinking in the glories of the distances, the eye will note -with curiosity a strange-looking but picturesque hill only a couple of -miles to the South-east, with a long rocky ridge at its top deeply cut -into or "nicked" in nine different places, this giving it a very wild -appearance. It is one of these hills which tempts the keen observer to -go on and explore it. If we cut direct to it, over the fields, it is -rough going, but the view is good all the way. And there are four -special objects of interest, all close together; the rushing Tipalt -river, Thirlwall Castle, the Roman wall, and the Nine Nicks. - -Thirlwall Castle rises tall, square, and stern, with a dark fir-wood -behind it at the foot of the hill, where a bend in the river makes a -natural moat. Approaching it from Rose Hill, it looks as if the -building were still nearly complete, but the south side has almost -entirely fallen away and all the floors and the roof are out. Edward I. -slept in this Castle when it was newly built, in 1306; but now it is -grass-grown and moss-grown, and its three bare walls rise gaunt and grim -to the sky. It is entirely built out of stones with Roman chisel marks, -taken from the great Roman wall, which unfortunately was once regarded -as a handy stone-quarry for anyone to take from. - -The name "Thirlwall" means "Drill-wall," and marks the spot as that at -which the wild Northern tribes first "drilled" or broke through the -wall. The name was, of course, given to the place long before this -castle was built. - -To mount from Thirlwall Castle to the top of the Nine Nicks is an easy -enough task for any vigorous person. It is just a fine healthy scramble. -When at the top, it becomes evident that some sort of fortification once -existed there. In point of fact this was the important Roman station -called "Magna" which stood at about the middle of the Roman Wall. The -wall ran from sea to sea, that is to say, from the mouth of the Tyne to -the Solway. Thus it was nearly eighty miles long, and a very elaborate -structure indeed. - -It consisted of three distinct portions:-- - -1. The main stone wall, with a ditch to the north of it. - -2. An earth-work to the south of this, consisting of either two or -three ramparts about seventy feet apart, with a ditch between. - -8. Stations, Castles and Watch-towers. Sometimes these were to the -north of the wall, sometimes in the middle, sometimes south, according -to the nature of the country. - -The height of the main wall was from sixteen to twenty feet, including -battlements. It was six to nine feet thick. Fancy a powerful military -wall of about eighteen feet high stretching nearly eighty miles right -across England! It hardly seems possible that the Romans could -undertake such a work. The square strong stones were carefully selected -and often brought from quarries at a distance. These stones flanked the -outsides of the wall, and in between was strong concrete which was -poured in while in liquid. - -The second wall was of earth and stones, and, of course, lower than the -first. Then there was a castle every mile, some of which can still be -clearly traced, and a "station," about every four miles, of which -several interesting ruins remain. There was a road eighteen feet wide -between the two walls. - -Those who have the energy to toil on for a full dozen miles of rough -walking, along the wall, eastward from Thirlwall, will be rewarded by -some of the most romantic scenes in Britain. They will see the wall at -its best. They will pass Whinshields, the highest point in the wall, -1230 feet above sea level. The wild Northumbrian lakes will lie at -their feet; if the day is fine, the Solway will be seen glistening, -thirty miles to the west; and on the east the eye follows the Tyne -almost to the sea. The Pennine Ridge bars the view twenty miles to the -south, while on the North the High Cheviot is clear and strong, thirty -miles away. - -Passing Whinshields, it is not far to Borcovicus (often called -Housteads) where lie the remains of a large Roman Station, wonderful -remains, showing the whole outline with startling clearness. This -station covered five acres, and here was quartered a cohort of the -Tungrian infantry, consisting of a thousand brave soldiers, servants of -Imperial Rome. - -But, after all, nothing is so impressive as the remains of the wall -itself. Stand at the top either of Whinshields or of the Nine Nicks, -and try to imagine what it looked like in Roman days. Eastward along -the Tyne valley and westward along the Irthing valley ran this wonderful -work, this powerful girdle of stone. The very spot was chosen with -great judgment, for these valleys gave the Romans a district protected -by the bleak hills, where they could live and where they could keep -cattle and grow grain. But the hilly nature of the ground must have -added to the difficulty of the builders. The wall had to run up steep -hill sides and cling to the edge of cliffs, and precipices; it had to be -carried by bridges over roaring torrents, and when it reached low-lying -ground it had to avoid the treacherous swamps and morasses. And yet, -despite every obstacle, the great wall ran on its direct way, as strong -and persistent as the great people who built it. - -It withstood the shock of war, it was not flung down by soldiers -marching against it. But to the people who wanted to build castles or -houses or farms, or even to mend roads, the wall offered a mass of -material ready to hand, and it suffered not from man's energy so much as -from his laziness. Century after century it was robbed of its stones; -to-day a series of long grass-grown mounds, a few feet high, running -across the meadows, are nearly all that remain of one of the most -wonderful pieces of building that was ever erected in Great Britain. -Even today, in its decay, it is one of the most romantic features of a -highly romantic district. - - - - - *Chapter XLIX* - - *In Wild Northumberland To-day* - - -These tales of the Borders would hardly be complete without a few -concluding words about the great romantic charm which still invests the -Borderline. Let us, for example, make a brief survey of some of the -haunting spots in wild Northumberland. We will pass over such towns as -Warkworth, Alnwick, Alnmouth; beautiful as they are, they have moved -with the times and are too modern to be more than mentioned here. But -in a place like Holy Island we feel the call of the old days, and the -charm that was theirs. This Island was the scene of the first efforts -of Christianity to curb the wild and warlike Northumbrians; St Aidan, -and St Cuthbert, both men of remarkable genius and great influence, -taught there lessons of peace and justice without which every warlike -state would descend into mere savagery. The island is about two miles -square, and at low tide it is easy to walk across the sands to or from -the mainland of Northumberland. The distance is two and a half miles, -and it is necessary to take off shoes and stockings, for the water on -the sands will often be six inches deep. A row of posts marks the way, -and some of them have ladders, reaching up to a barrel on the top, so -that any caught by the tide can find a safe harbour wherein they will -suffer nothing more serious than a long wait! The island is inhabited -by fishing folk, living simple healthy lives. There are fine rocks and -splendid sands; beautiful flowers and lovely shells. The seabirds are -wonderful. The ruins of the old Cathedral and castle are very -interesting, it is a delightful old-world place, out of the rush and -hurry of modern life. - -Retracing our steps to the mainland, and proceeding westward for a dozen -or so miles as the crow flies, we reach the River Till, and the field of -Flodden. Here we are near to the big wild wall of the Cheviot hills, -and to keep on the English side of the border we need to turn due south. -It is then about thirty miles of rough walking through these grandly -rugged hills before we come to the field of Otterburn. - -But we realise in that walk how it was that the district produced and -still produces a hardy race of hunters and sheep-farmers, and why it is -that the towns and farms nestle in the valleys, so that the Borderers, -when they meant to say, "Rouse the neighbourhood," used the phrase, -"Raise the _water_" (meaning, of course, the houses along the -waterside). Further south, still going among splendid shaggy hills, we -reach the North Tyne River, and soon afterwards some highly interesting -Roman remains, including the arches of a fine bridge over the river at -the Roman Station of Cilurnum, near Chollerford. This is on the Roman -Wall, which has already been described under the heading of Thirlwall. -A few miles to the west would bring us to the picturesque but -little-known Northumberland Lakes, where the wild swans nest. If we -continue south and south-west we can follow the beautiful valleys of the -Allan or the South Tyne. This is a district of hills, roads, and -castles; the domain of the fated Lord Derwentwater was near here. For -beauty the whole of this neighbourhood would be hard to beat; yet it is -too little known. - -If we still go south, the scenery grows wilder and wilder as we approach -the huge mountain of Cross Fell. We may cross into south-east Cumberland -and visit the quaint old town of Alston, one of the highest towns in -England. Here were once the royal silver mines, when English coins were -made from Alston silver. Lead is chiefly mined there now, and the mines -are worth a visit. Near Cross Fell also is a rough road called the -"Maiden Way," and an old legend says it was made by women, who carried -the stones in their aprons! The western slope of the Fell is famous for -a specially violent wind called the "Helm wind," which rages there at -certain seasons. It is just as if it were rushing fiercely down the -hill, with a roaring noise and strength enough to overturn a horse and -cart, and to beat the grass and grain till it is black! But though it -does a deal of damage it is very exhilarating, making people feel merry -in spite of themselves. And on Cross Fell slopes can be seen the -beautiful River Tees, which can be followed to its grand waterfalls of -the the Cauldron and the High Force. In the first the water dashes on -to huge rocks, and is thrown back on itself, roaring, foaming, and -fighting; in the second, it tumbles sheer down a dark and noble cliff. -And everywhere on the heights there are splendid views. - -In making any such excursions as the ones here outlined, into the -out-of-the-way parts of Northumberland and the Borders, we find an added -pleasure in the character of the people. The Borderers are still a -grand race; big men, vigorous, honest, courteous, hospitable, free from -all that is mean and small. In some districts you can hear "thou" and -"thee" still used, and meet old men who have never seen a railway. One -dear old farmer, a real picture of a simple honest man, hearing I had -come from London, asked me if the London men had got their hay-crop in -yet! One typical Northumbrian, of great natural intelligence, bearing a -name famous on the Borders, is station-master at a local station that -stands in a wood, and between trains, studies bird and wild-flower till -he has made himself a most interesting naturalist. A stranger who has -lost his way will find these courteous folk ready to walk a mile or two -with him, out of their own way, just to set him right; and he who is -tired and hungry will be invited to step in and eat, and perhaps find -himself introduced to all the family and treated like an honoured guest; -then, not a penny of payment taken, they will set him on his way with a -bunch of the best flowers from the garden! For hearts on the Border are -very human and warm. So that in due time he who knows the Borderers -will delight to hear the unmistakeable Northumbrian or the pronounced -Border accent. And he will say to himself: Splendid is the Border -scenery, and stirring are the Border ballads, but best of all are the -Border men. - - - - - * * * * * * * * - - - - - TOLD THROUGH THE AGES - -Legends of Greece and Rome -Favourite Greek Myths -Stories of Robin Hood and his Merry Outlaws -Stories of King Arthur and his Knights -Stories from Herodotus -Stories from Wagner -Britain Long Ago -Stories from Scottish History -Stories from Greek Tragedy -Stories from Dickens -Stories from the Earthly Paradise -Stories from the AEneid -The Book of Rustem -Stories from Chaucer -Stories from the Old Testament -Stories from the Odyssey -Stories from the Iliad -Told by the Northmen -Stories from Don Quixote -The Story of Roland -Stories from Thucydides -The Story of Hereward -Stories from the Faerie Queene -Cuchulain: The Hound of Ulster -Stories from Xenophon -Old Greek Nature Stories -Stories from Shakespeare -Stories from Dante -Famous Voyages of the Great Discoverers -The Story of Napoleon -Stories of Pendennis and the Charterhouse -Sir Guy of Warwick -Heroes of the Middle Ages -The Story of the Crusades -The Story of Nelson -Stories from George Eliot -Froissart's Chronicles -Shakespeare's Stories of the English Kings -Heroes of Modern Europe -The Story of King Robert the Bruce -Stories of the Scottish Border -The Story of the French Revolution -The Story of Lord Kitchener -Stories of the Saints -The Story of St Elizabeth of Hungary -In Feudal Times -The High Deeds of Finn -Early English Travel and Discovery -Legends of Ancient Egypt -The Story of the Renaissance -Boyhood Stories of Famous Men -Stories from French History -Stories from English History -Famous English Books and their Stories -Women of the Classics -In the Days of the Guilds -Science through the Ages - -_Other volumes in active preparation_ - - - - - - -*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK STORIES OF THE SCOTTISH BORDER -*** - - - - -A Word from Project Gutenberg - - -We will update this book if we find any errors. - -This book can be found under: http://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/38845 - -Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one -owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and -you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission -and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the -General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and -distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works to protect the -Project Gutenberg(tm) concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a -registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, -unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything -for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may -use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative -works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and -printed and given away - you may do practically _anything_ with public -domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, -especially commercial redistribution. - - - -The Full Project Gutenberg License - - -_Please read this before you distribute or use this work._ - -To protect the Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or -any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project -Gutenberg(tm) License available with this file or online at -http://www.gutenberg.org/license. - - -Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg(tm) -electronic works - - -*1.A.* By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg(tm) -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the -terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all -copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in your possession. If -you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the -terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or -entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. - -*1.B.* "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things -that you can do with most Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works even -without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph -1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement -and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic -works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -*1.C.* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of -Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works. Nearly all the individual works -in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an -individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are -located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you -from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating -derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project -Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the -Project Gutenberg(tm) mission of promoting free access to electronic -works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg(tm) works in compliance with -the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg(tm) name -associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this -agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full -Project Gutenberg(tm) License when you share it without charge with -others. - - -*1.D.* The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in -a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check -the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement -before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or -creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project -Gutenberg(tm) work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning -the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United -States. - -*1.E.* Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -*1.E.1.* The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with - almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away - or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License - included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org - -*1.E.2.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is -derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating -that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can -be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying -any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a -work with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on -the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs -1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the -Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or -1.E.9. - -*1.E.3.* If an individual Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic work is -posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and -distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and -any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg(tm) License for all works posted -with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of -this work. - -*1.E.4.* Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project -Gutenberg(tm) License terms from this work, or any files containing a -part of this work or any other work associated with Project -Gutenberg(tm). - -*1.E.5.* Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg(tm) License. - -*1.E.6.* You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any -word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or -distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg(tm) work in a format other than -"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version -posted on the official Project Gutenberg(tm) web site -(http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or -expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a -means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original -"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include -the full Project Gutenberg(tm) License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -*1.E.7.* Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg(tm) works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -*1.E.8.* You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works -provided that - - - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg(tm) works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - - - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg(tm) - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) - works. - - - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - - - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) works. - - -*1.E.9.* If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael -Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg(tm) trademark. Contact the -Foundation as set forth in Section 3. below. - -*1.F.* - -*1.F.1.* Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection. -Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works, and the -medium on which they may be stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but -not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription -errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a -defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer -codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. - -*1.F.2.* LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg(tm) trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg(tm) electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. -YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, -BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN -PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND -ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR -ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES -EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. - -*1.F.3.* LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with -your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with -the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a -refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity -providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to -receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy -is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further -opportunities to fix the problem. - -*1.F.4.* Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER -WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO -WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -*1.F.5.* Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. -If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the -law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be -interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by -the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any -provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. - -*1.F.6.* INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works in accordance -with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, -promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic works, -harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, -that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do -or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg(tm) -work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any -Project Gutenberg(tm) work, and (c) any Defect you cause. - - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg(tm) - - -Project Gutenberg(tm) is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers -including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists -because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from -people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg(tm)'s -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg(tm) collection will remain -freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and -permanent future for Project Gutenberg(tm) and future generations. To -learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and -how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the -Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org . - - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive -Foundation - - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state -of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue -Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number is -64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at -http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf . Contributions to the -Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the -full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. -S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered -throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 -North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email -business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact -information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page -at http://www.pglaf.org - -For additional contact information: - - Dr. Gregory B. Newby - Chief Executive and Director - gbnewby@pglaf.org - - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation - - -Project Gutenberg(tm) depends upon and cannot survive without wide -spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where -we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state -visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any -statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside -the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways -including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, -please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate - - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg(tm) electronic -works. - - -Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg(tm) -concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared -with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project -Gutenberg(tm) eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg(tm) eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless -a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks -in compliance with any particular paper edition. - -Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's eBook -number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII, -compressed (zipped), HTML and others. - -Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over -the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed. -_Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving -new filenames and etext numbers. - -Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: - - http://www.gutenberg.org - -This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg(tm), -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. diff --git a/38845.zip b/38845.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 583beed..0000000 --- a/38845.zip +++ /dev/null |
